119894
READINGS IN
EUROPEAN HISTORY
VOLUME I
READINGS IN"
EUROPEAN HISTORY
A collection of extracts from the sources chosen ivith
the purpose of il frustrating the progress of
ctilture in Western Europe since
the German, Invasions
BY
JAMES HARVEY ROBINSON
PROFESSOR OF HISTORY m COLUMBIA UNIVERSITY
VOLUME I
FROM THE BREAKING UP OF THE ROMAN EMPIRE
TO THE PROTESTANT REVOLT
GINN & COMPANY
BOSTON - NEW YORK - CHICAGO - LONDON
PREFACE
In preparing my Introduction to the JEfistory of IVestern
Europe I was forced to forego all the amenities of historical
narration, except those of clearness and order, in my anxiety
to present a tolerably coherent sketch of the course of events
and the development of institutions. In this and the suc-
ceeding volume I hope that the reader, whether teacher or
student, may find some of that life and reality without which
historical study must remain arid and well-nigh profitless.
I have accordingly made a special effort to select such pas-
sages as might most readily conciliate the reader's interest.
Yet they are not the less useful for being interesting.
Indeed, I hope that they may prove to be like that river of
which Gregory the Great speaks, which is both shallow and
deep, "wherein the lamb may find a footing and the ele-
phant float at large " ; for there are few among the excerpts
that will not repay careful study and give the teacher abun-
dant opportunity to test his own and his students* insight.
The rather long and elaborate bibliographies which follow
the several chapters demand a word of explanation. They
each fall into three divisions. The first section, -^, contains
specific references to a collection of forty or fifty standard
volumes which should be in any good high-school library.
-£?, Additional readings in English, is especially designed
for those who have a good college library at their disposal,
although many of the volumes mentioned in this division
vii
viii Preface
might profitably be used by the high-school student. Lastly,
under C9 the teacher and advanced university student will
find the necessary guidance in carrying on his work as far
as he may feel inclined.
In the preparation of the present volume I am under
special obligations to Miss Ellen Scott Davison, who greatly
aided me in the quest for suitable material and in the transla-
tion, and to Miss Louise Ropes Loomis, Lecturer in Barnard
College, who prepared portions of the bibliographies and
also forwarded the translation. With the kind permission
of my friends, Professors Cheyhey and Munro, I have used
some of the extracts which have already appeared in the
Translations and Reprints -, of which we three were the original
editors. I have also included some of the pieces in Dr.
Henderson's very useful Select Historical J3ocuments of the
J^fiddle ^4.ges, but I have frequently preferred a different
rendering from his. I am also indebted to the translations
in the Bohn series, although here, too, I have freely modified
the wording in the interests of accuracy and clearness. I
owe most of all, perhaps, to the admirable Geschichtschreiber
der deutschen Vbrzeit in clearing up the occasional obscurities
of the mediaeval chroniclers. My indebtedness to a consid-
erable number of translators and editors is acknowledged in
the list of citations which follows.
J. H. R.
HIGH MOWING, JAFFREY, N.H.,
September i, 1904.
CONTKNXS AND LIST OF CITATIONS
VOLUME I
CHAPTER I — THE HISTORICAL POINT OF
VIEW
CHAPTER II — WESTERN EUROPE BEFORE THE
BARBARIAN INVASIONS
PAGE
I. Resemblances between Paganism and Christianity
1. Seneca on God's gifts to man 14
£>e bcnefictiS) Lib. iv, cc. 5—7, and Lib. if c. 2 ; ed. rlosius
(Teubner, 1900) ; trans.i by Th. Lodge in the Temple
Classics Series
2. Epictetus 15
dissertation es (or JSnchiiidion), Book I, Chaps. 30 and 9;
trans, from the Greek of Arrian by G. Long in the Bohn
Library
3. The Thoughts of Marcus Aurelius 17
Book II, Chaps. 1-3 ; trans, from the Greek by G. Long in
the Bohn Library
4. Important contrasts between Christianity and paganism 18
LECKV, History of European Af orals., opening of Chap. IV
II. The Early Conception of a Universal Church
5. The Catholic Church as conceived by Cyprian ... 19
J2e ccctholicae ecclcsiae unxtafff^ cc. 3, 4, 5, 6, ro, and 14 : Cor-
pus scriptorum ecclesiasticorum LatinoniTn, III ; trans,
by R. E. Wallis in Library of Ante-Nicene Fathers, VIII
III. The Church and the Roman Emperors
6. Edict of Galerius (A.IX 311), which first granted toler-
ation to the Christians 21
LACTANTIUS. 2>e morti&its ^ersfcuioruyn^ c. 34: Corpus
scriptr eccl. Lat. XXVII, Fas. ii ; trans, by \ViIliam
Fletcher in the Library of Ante-Nicene Fathers, XXII
1 "While I have freely availed myself of the assistance offered by translations, I have
not hesitated to modify, or even frankly desert in some cases, the renderings which I
mention in this list.
< Contents and List of Citations
7. The edicts of Constantine and his successors relating to PAGB
the Church in the Theodosian Code 23
Codex Theodosiamts^ ed. Haenel, Lib. xvi : tit. i, 2 (A.D. 380) ;
tit. ii, 2 (A.D. 319), 6 (A.D. 326), 9 (A.D. 349), 24 (A.D. 377),
16 (A.D. 361), 5 (A.D. 323), 4 (A.D. 32l), 4I (A.D. 4I2) ; tit.
V, I (A.D. 326), 3 (A.D. 372), 34 (A.D. 398), 66 (A.D. 435),
46 (A.D. 409)
IV. Comparison between the Lot of those within the
Empire and those living among the Barbarians
8. Salvian's comparison of the Romans and barbarians . 28
£)e gubernatione Dei^ Lib. v, cc. 4 sq.^ Lib. iv, c. 14 : Mon.
Ger. Hist., Auc. ant. I
9. Conversation of Priscus with a Greek living among the
barbarians (448) 30
PRISCUS PANITES, Historiaritmfragmenta, in Miiller, Frag-
menta historicorum Graecorum, IV, 86sg>. ; trans, by Bury,
History of the Later Roman Empire, I, 218 sqq.
CHAPTER III — THE GERMAN INVASIONS AND
THE BREAK-UP OF THE ROMAN EMPIRE
I. The Huns force the West Goths across the Danube
10. Description of the Huns by Ammianus Marcellinus . . 35
jRerum gestarum llbri qui sitfersuntj Lib. xxxi, cc. 2-4 and
13; ed. Gardthausen (Teubner, 1874); trans, by C. D.
\*onge in the Bohn Library
II. How the West Goths became Arlans and Alaric
took Rome
11. Jordanes on the conversion of the Goths and the sack
of Rome 39
JORDANES, L>e origine actusque Geta-rum, cc. 25-31 ; ed.
Mommsen, Mon. Ger. Hist., Auc. ant. V
12. St. Jerome on the destruction wrought by the barbarians 44
(a) Ep* ad Ageruc/iiam ; Migne, Patrologia Latina, XXII,
cols. 1057 sq. ; (b) Commentaria in Ezechie2em^ Preface
to Lib. iii ; Ibid. XXV, col. 79
13. Dill on the reports of the sack of Rome 45
Roman Society in the Last Century of the Roman Em^ire^
309 sq.
III. Attila and the Huns
14. Priscus' description of the court of Attila 46
MiiLLER, Frag. hist. Graec. (as above, No. 9), IV, 85 and
91 sq.\ Bury, I, 217 sqq.
Contents and List of Citations xi
IV. How Pope Leo saved Rome from Attila PAGH
15. Prospers account of the meeting of Leo and Attila . . 49
PROSPER TIRO, Epitoma chronicon, ad an. 450: Mon. Ger.
Hist., Auc. ant. IX
1 6. Later account of Leo's intervention 50
Vita S. Leonis Papae. Lib. i, c. 2 ; Acta sanctorum. April,
II, 18
V. Clovis and the Franks
17. Gregory of Tours and his history of the Franks ... 51
JFfistoriae ecclesiasticae Francorum libri X, Lib. ii, cc. 27,
29-31 : Mon. Ger. Hist., SS. rer. Mer., I
CHAPTER IV — THE RISE OF THE PAPACY
I. The Bishop of Rome and the Headship of the
Church
18. Irenseus' catalogue of the bishops of Rome 63
Contra haereses, Lib. iii, c. 3, §§ 2-3 -. Migne, Pat. Graec.
VII, cols. 848^^.; trans, in Library of Ante-Nicene
Fathers, V
19. Tertullian on the distinction of the Roman Church . . 64
(a) De praescri-ptione haereticoritm, c. 36 : Migne, Pat. Lat.
II, cols. 9 soy. ; trans, in Library of Ante-Nicene Fathers,
XV. (b) De Pitdicitia, c. 21 : Corpus script, eccl. Lat.
XX; trans, in Library of Ante-Nicene Fathers, XVIII
20. Cyprian on the danger of appeals to Rome 66
Ad CorneHitm ; (Ep. 54 or, in some editions, 59) : Corpus
script, eccl. Lat. Ill; trans, in Library of Ante-Nicene
Fathers, VIII
21. Sixth canon of Nicaea 66
Mansi, Conciliorum. collectio, II, 669 sqq,
22. Decretal of Siricius 68
c. xv, § 20 : Mansi, III, 661, or Migne, Pat. Lat LVI, coL
554
23. St. Jerome on the equality of the bishops 69
A d Euangelum (Ep. 146) : Migne, XXII, coL 1194
24. Sermon by Leo the Great on Peter's headship .... 69
(a) Sermon.es •, IV: Migne, LTV, cols. 148 sgff. (b) Ad Ana-
sfasium episcopwn Thessalonicensem (Ep. 14) : Migne,
LIV, coL 676
25. Edict of Valentinian recognizuig the supremacy of the
bishop of Rome 72
Nwellae Cod. Theod. II, Lib, iii, tit. xvi
26. Pope Gelasius on the superiority of the spiritual power 72
Ad Anastasium imferatorem^ c. 2: Migne, LVI, col. 633.
xii Contents and List of Citations
II. Gregory the Great and his Times PAGB
27. Milman's appreciation of Gregory the Great . . . . 73
ffistory of Latin. Christianity -, Book III, Chap. 7
28. Conditions depicted in Gregory's letters 74
(a) Ad Leandrunt episcopum Hispalensem (Ep. Lib. i., 43) ;
Migne, LXXVII, cols. 496 sq. (b) Homiliae in Evan-
gelia, Lib. i, Homilia i; Migne, LXXVI, col. 1078.
29. How a monk dared to have gold in his possession . . 76
GREGORIUS MAGNUS, Dialogorum libri IV, de vita et
miraculis patrum Italicorum, Lib. iv, c- 55 : Migne,
LXXVII, cols. 420 sq.
30. Extracts from Gregory the Great's Moralia 77
Morali-um libri sive expositio in librum B.Job. (a) "Epis-
tola Missoria," cc. 4 sq. : Migne, LXXV, cols. 514 sqq.
(b) Lib. i, c. 16 : Migne, LXXV, cols. 537 sg.\ translated
(very freely) in Library of the Fathers of the Holy
Catholic Church, 3 vols., Oxford, 1844 sq.
31. Extracts from Gregory's Pastoral Ckarge 80
Regnlae pastorates liber, Pars ii, cc. 8 sq., and Pars iii,
"Prologue": Migne, LXXVII. Good translation by
Rev. H. R. Bramley, with Latin original on opposite
pages, Oxford and London, 1874.
CHAPTER V — THE MONKS AND THE CON-
VERSION OF THE GERMANS
I. The Monastic Attitude of Mind
32. St. Jerome's plea for a life of solitude 86
Ad Heliodorum monachum^ cc. 2 sq. (Ep. 14) : Migne, XXII,
cols. 548 sq.
33. Ideals of monasticism described by a Spanish monk . 87
Saint Jean de la Croix, Vie et CEuvres, 1893, •"•*> 94» cited by
William James, The Varieties of Religious Experience,
304 sq.
34. A modern psychologist's analysis of asceticism . . , 88
JAMES, The Varieties of Religions Experience, 298 sq. and
296^.
IL The Devil and his Wicked Angels
35. The Pagan gods, devils in disguise 90
GREGORY THE GREAT'S Dialogites (as above, No. 29), Lib.
iii, c. 7: Migne, LXXVII, cols. 229 sqq.
36. St. Gall and the demons 90
WETTINUS, Vita Galli conf Assorts, cc. 7 so.: Mon. Ger.
Hist., SS. rer. Mer. IV.
37. Martin, a hermit, withstands the terrors of the devil . 92
GREGORY THE GREAT'S Dialogues (as above, No* 29), Lib.
iii, c. 16: Migne, LXXVU, col. 257
Contents and List of Citations xiii
III. Purgatory, Hell, and Heaven PAGH
38. Description of purgatory, hell, and heaven 93
BEDA, ffistoria ccclestastica gentts Anglorum, Lib. v, c.
12; trans, by Giles' Beda, Complete Works in the origi-
nal Latin u'xfA a nerw translation of the historical
-works, 1843-1844
IV. The Conversion of England, as described by Bede
39. Arrival in Kent of the missionaries sent by Gregory the
Great 97
Bede (as above, No. 38), Lib. i, cc. 23 and 25
40. Instructions of Gregory the Great for the missionaries
in England 100
Ibid. Lib. i, c. 30
41. The conversion of North umbria 101
Ibid. Lib. ii, c. 13
42. Controversy between the Roman and Irish missionaries
over the date of Easter 103
Ibid. Lib. iii, c. 25
V. Boniface and the Conversion of Germany
43. Boniface's commission from the pope 105
*S. Bon-ifatii et Litlli epistoJae: Mon. Ger. Hist.. Epist. Ill,
258 : also in Jaffe, Bibliotheca rerum G«rmanicarum,
III, 62
44. Gregory II appoints Boniface presiding bishop in Ger-
many 105
Ibid. Mon. Ger. Hist.t 292 ; Jafie, III, 103
45. Oath taken by Boniface to the pope 106
Ibid. Mon. Ger. Hist., 265 ; Jafte, 76 sq.
46. How Boniface destroyed the oak of Thor 106
WILLIBALD, Vita Sanrtt Bonifaiii^ c. 6: Jaffe, Bib. rer.
Ger. Ill, 452
47. How the monastery of Fulda was founded 107
Vita Sancti Siurmis atoafis, cc. 4-14 : Mon. Ger. Hist.,
Pertz, II, 367 sgq.
CHAPTER VI — CHARLES MARTEL AND PIPPIN
I. The Koran
48. Passages from the Koran 116
Cc. i, 2, 78, and 56; trans, by STANLEY LANE-POOLE, The
Speeches and Table Talk of the Prophet Mohammad.
Chap. II is from The Qur^an^ trans, by E. H. Palmer,
2 vols., Oxford, 1880
xiv Contents and List of Citations
II. How Pippin became King of the Franks PAGE
49. Weakness of the later Merovingian kings ..... 120
EINHARD, Vita Karoti (as below, No. 53), c. i
50. Pope Zacharias authorizes the coronation of Pippin. . 121
Annales Laurissenses minores^ ad an. 750; Mon. Ger.
Hist., Pertz, I, 139
51. Coronation of Pippin by the pope ........ 122
J, ad an. 753 sq. • Mon. Ger. Hist., Pertz,
III. The Lombards, Pope Stephen and Pippin
52. Letter of Pope Stephen to Pippin ........ 122
Codex Carolinus, Ep. 9: Mon. Ger. Hist., Epist. Ill, 498;
Jaffe, Bib. rer. Ger. IV, 48 syg.
CHAPTER VII — CHARLEMAGNK
I. Charlemagne, the Man
53. Charlemagne's personal appearance and habits . . .126
EINHARD, Vita Karoli Magni, cc. 22—25 : Jaflfe, Bib. rer.
Ger. IV, 509 sqg. : Mon. Ger. Hist., octavo edition
II. Charlemagne and the Saxons
54. Charlemagne conquers the Saxons in order to convert
them ................ 129
Vita Sancti Sturmis (as above, No. 47), c. 22
55. The Rebellion of Widukind ......... 129
EINHARD, Annales (as above, No. 51), ad an. 782
III. How Charlemagne was made Emperor
56. Charlemagne's coronation as emperor ...... 131
EINHARD, Ibid., ad an. 799-801
IV. Charlemagne's Way of raising Troops
57. The Heerbann, or fine for refusing to join the army . 135
Cajfotitlare Italicum. : Mon. Ger. Hist., Capitularia regum
Francorum, denuo edidit Alfredus Boretius, I, 205, — a
new edition much superior to that first issued in the
Monumenta by Pertz ; trans, by Munro in Tr. and Rp.
Vol. VI, No. 5
58. Wealthy landholders required to go to the army in person 135
Capitulars miss&rum de exercitu prommiendO) c. i : Boretius
(as above, No, 57), 137 ; trans, by Mnnro in Tr. and Rp.
Vol. VI, No. 5
Contents and List of Citatiotis xv
PAOB
59. Nature of the supplies for the army 135
Cajtitularc Aquisgraitense, cc. 9 sy. ; Boretius {as above,
No. 57), 171 ; trans, by Munr'o in Tr. and Rp. Vol. VI,
No. 5
60. Summons to Abbot Fulrad to join the army . . . .136
Karoli ad FulradittH abbatem efisiola ; Boretius (as above,
No. 57), 168; trans, by Munro in Tr. and Rp. Vol. VI,
No. 5
V. Charlemagne's Income from his Farms
61. Extracts from the Capitulary de Villis 137
Capitulare de villis: Boretius (as above, No. 57), 82 sqq. ;
trans, by Munro In Tr. and Rp. Vol. Ill, No. z
VI. Charlemagne's Ideals of Government
62. Extracts from the capitulary for the missi 139
Capitulare missorum generate: Boretius (as above, No. 57),
91 sqq. ; trans, by Munro in Tr. and Rp. Vol. VI, No. 5
VII. Charlemagne's Anxiety to improve Education
63. Charlemagne's letter on the dangers of ignorance . . 144
JCaroli epistola de liiteris colendis: Boretius (as above,
No. 57), 79; trans, by Munro in Tr. and Rp. VoL VI,
No. 5
64. Charlemagne commands the establishment of episcopal
and monastery schools 145
Admonitio generalis, c. 72 : Boretius (as above, No. 57), 59 ;
trans, by Munro in Tr. and Rp. Vol. VI, No. 5
CHAPTER VIII — THE DISRUPTION OF CHARLE-
MAGNE'S EMPIRE
I. The Northmen
65. Apollinaris Sidonius describes the Saxon pirates . . .150
Epistulae, Lib. viii, Ep. 6 (close) : Mon. Ger. Hist., Auc.
ant. VIII, 132 sq. ; trans, by HOIXSKIN, Italy and ker
Invaders, II, 366 sg,
66. A Northman's baptism 151
MONACHUS SANGAULENSIS, De gestis Karoli imjteraioris,
c. 19 ; Mon. Ger. Hislu, Pertz, II, 761 sy.
67. Opening of Tke Story of Burnt I&jal 1 52
The Story of Burnt Njal, translated from the Norse by
Dasent, 2 vols., 1861
II. Struggles between Sons of Louis the Pious
68. Death of Louis the Pions 1 55
RUDOLFUS FULDENSIS, Annales^ ad an. 840 sq. : Mon. Ger.
Hist., Pertz, I, 362 sgq*
xvi Contents and List of Citations
PAGE
69. The Northmen at Nantes 157
Annalium Bertinianontm pars sccitnda^ ad an. 843: Mon.
Ger. Hist., Pertz, I, 439 sq.
III. A Melancholy Glimpse of the Conditions in the
Ninth Century
70. An extract from the Annals of Xante n 158
Annales Xanienses, ad an. 844 sqq. : Mon. Ger. Hist.; Pertz,
II, 227 Sffff.
IV. How the Northmen harried Frankland and laid
Siege to Paris
71. How the Northmen laid siege to Paris 163
Annales Vedastini, ad an. 882 sqq. : Mon. Ger. Hist., Pertz,
I, 529 sqq.
CHAPTER IX — FEUDALISM
I. The Older Institutions which serve to explain
Feudalism
72. Grant of immunity to a bishop 171
Roziere, Recueil generate des formules usitees dans 1'empire
des Francs du Vft au X8 siecle, 3 vols. 1859-1871.
No. 16; Vol. I, 17. Trans., — as well as the following
numbers to 88 inclusive — by Cheyney, Tr. and Rp.
Vol. IV, No. 3
73. Grant of a vill with immunity to a layman 172
Roziere, No. 147; Vol. I, 185
74. Land received as a beneficium from a monastery . . .173
Roziere, No. 350 ; Vol. I, 433
75. A Frankish formula of commendation 175
Roziere, No. 43 ; Vol. I, 69
76. Formal acceptance of a follower by his lord . . . .176
Roziere, No. 8 ; Vol. I, 8
II. The Granting of Fiefs
77. How an allodial tenure might be turned into a fief . .176
Quantin, Recueil de pieces du Xlllme Siecle, No. 631, pp. 310 sq.
78. The count of Troyes grants a manor as a fief . . . .177
Ibid., No. 2, p. i
79. Record of grant of a fief to a knight 178
Historia Monasterii de Abingdon, II, ^35, Rolls Series
So. The count of Champagne grants a fief to a bishop . .178
Brussel, Usage des Fiefs, I, 3, note
Contents and List of Citations xvii
PAGE
81. Pons of Mont-Saint-Jean becomes the man of the
countess of Champagne 178
Quantin (as above, No. 77), No. 220, p. 101
82. How a knight accepted a money fief from the king of
France 179
BOUTARIC, Institutions militaires dc la France, p. 121
III. Ceremony of doing Homage and swearing Fealty
83. How the count of Flanders received the homage of his
vassals , 179
GALBERT DE BRUGES, £>e mttltro^ traditione^ et occisione
gloriost Karoli comitis Flandriarum ; ed. by Pinenne,
p. 89 : Collection de textes
84. The viscount of Carcassonne does homage to the abbot
of St. Mary of Grasse 180
Teulet, Layettes du Tresor des Chartes, No. 39; Vol. IT p. 36
85. Rules for homage and fealty established by St. Louis . 182
Mtablisscments de St. JLottis^ II, c. 19 ; ed. by Viollet, 1 I, 395
86. How a prelate threatened his vassals with excommuni-
cation 183
Bouquet, Recueil des historiens des Gaules et de la France,
X, 447 s#.
IV. Mutual Duties of Vassal and Lord
87. Fnlbert of Chartres explains the duties of lord and vassal 184
Bouquet (as above, No. 86), X, 463
V. Feudal Military Service
88. List of vassals summoned by the king of France in 1272 185
Bouquet (as above, No. S6), XXIII, 753 sq. and 759 sq.
VI. Failure of Feudalism to secure Order. The Truce
of God
89. Bishop Stubbs' definition of ideal feudalism . . . .187
Constitutional History of England^ Chap. IX, § 93
90. The truce of God 187
Mon. Ger. Hist., Leges, II, 55 sqq* \ trans, by Munro in Tr.
and Rp. Vol. I, No. 2
CHAPTER X — THE DEVELOPMENT OF FRANCE
I. The Election of Hugh Capet
91. How Hugh Capet was chosen king 195
RICHER, Historiantm libri IV, Lib. iv, cc. n sy. : Mon,
Ger. Hist., Pertz, III, 633 sq.
xviii Contents and List of Citations
II. King Robert and his Unruly Vassals PAGE
92. King Robert and his troubles with his vassals . . . .196
RAOUL GLABER, Francorum historiae libri V, in, c. 2 ; ed.
by Prou in Collection de textes, 1886, pp. 56 sq.
III. How Louis the Fat consolidated his Power
93. Sugar's account of Louis the Fat and his vassals . .198
Gesta Ludwici regis cognomento grossi, cc. 2, 3, 8, 23—25 ;
ed. by Molinier In Collection de textes
IV. Philip Augustus and his Vassals
94. Philip suppresses a rebellion and extends the royal
domain 206
RlGORD, Gesta Philip j>i II Attgusti rests Francorum, cc.
9, '26-28 ; ed. by Delaborde, Soc. de Fhist. de Fr.
V. Philip Augustus and John of England
94a. How Philip Augustus took Normandy from John . . 209
RIGORD (as above, No. 94), cc. 138, 140— 14^
VI. St. Louis
95. Extracts from Joinville 213
JEAN, SIRE DE JOINVILLE, Histoire de Saint-Louis, texte
original accompagn6 d*une traduction, par de Wailly, 2d
ed., Paris, 1874, cc. 15 sq. ; 47 $q. and 50 ; 6 and 12
CHAPTER XI — ENGLAND IN THE MIDDLE AGES
I. King Alfred's Interest in Learning
96. Alfred's introduction to his translation of the Pastoral
Care 222
King Alfred** West-Saxon Version of Gregory's Pastoral
Care; ed. by Sweet (Early English Text Soc.), 1871,
pp. 2 sqq.
II. The Battle of Hastings : English and Normans
97. Conduct of Harold and William in the battle of Has-
tings 224
WILLIAM OF MALMESBURY, De gestis regum Anglorum.
libri V, Lib. iii, §§ 241 sqq. ; ed. by Stubbs, Rolls Series ;
trans, by Stevenson in The Church Historians of Eng-
land, 1854 ; also in the Bohn Library
III. Rule of William the Conqueror
98. William orders Doomsday Book to be drawn up ... 229
The Anglo-Saxon Chronicle, ad an. 1185 and 1187 j ed. with
an introduction by Benj. Thorpe, Rolls Series, II, 186
and 188 sqq*
Contents and List of Citations xix
IV. How the Great Charter was Won PAGB
99. John and his barons 231
ROGER OF WENDOVER, Chronica sive Liber gui dicitur
F lores historiarum^ ad an. 1215; ecL by Hewlett in
Rolls Series ; trans, by Giles in the Bonn Library
V. Principal Provisions of the Great Charter
100. Principal articles of Magna Charta 233
Stubbs, Select Charters and Other Illustrations of English
Constitutional History, 8th ed.T 296 sag. • trans, by
Cheyney, Tr. and Rp. Vol. I, No. 6.
VI. Writs of Summons to the Model Parliament
101. Summonses to bishops, barons, and representatives of
the towns and shires 239
Stubbs, Select Charters, 484 sqq. ; trans, by Cheyney, Tr.
and Rp. Vol. I, No. 6
CHAPTER XII — GERMANY AND ITALY IN THE
TENTH AND ELEVENTH CENTURIES
I. The Times of Henry I and Otto the Great
1 02. Germany in the early tenth century 245
Contimtalio Reginonis Trevirensis, ad an. 907 sgy. : Mon.
Ger. Hist., Pertz, I, 614 syq.
103. Election of Otto the Great 249
WIDUKIND, Res gestae Saxonieae, Lib. ii, cc. i jjp.: Mon.
Ger. Hist, Pertz, III, 437 sy.
II. Rome and the Papacy in the Time of Otto the
Great
104. Degradation of the papacy In the tenth centnry . . .250
BENEDICTUS SANCTI ANIDREAE MONACHUS, Chronicon.^
cc. 30 sqq. : Mon. Ger. Hist., Pertz, III, 7*4 S32-
III. Liutprand and his Book of Retribution
105. Liutprand explains why he wrote his book 256
Antajodosis^ Lib. I, c, i, and Lib. iii, c. r : Mon, Ger. Hist.,
octavo ed.
IV. Bruno, the Ideal of a Scholar in the Tenth Century
1 06. Extract from Ruotger's Life of Bruno 259
RUOTGER, Vita Brunonist selections from cc. 4-10 and 30 :
Mon. Ger. Hist, Pertz, IV, 255 sqq.
xxii Contents and List of Citations
CHAPTER XV — THE CRUSADES
I. Pope Urban's Address at Clermont PAGB
123. Urban's speech at Clermont .......... 312
ROBERT us M ON AC H us, Hist or ia Iherosolytana, Lib. i, cc.
i sq. : Recueil des historiens des croisades, Historiens
occidentaux, III, 727 sgg. The extract in note is from
FULCHER OF CHARTRES, Historia Iherosolytana, Lib. i,
c. 3: Ibid. p. 324; trans, by Munro in Tr. and Rp. Vol. I,
No. 2
II. The First Crusade
124. Ekkehard on the opening of the First Crusade . . .316
EKKEHARD (as above, No. 107), ad an. 1099: Mon. Ger.
Hist., Pertz, VI, 211 sqq*
125. Anna Comnena on the bad manners of the crusaders . 320
Michaud, Bibliotheque des croisades, III, 393 sq.
III. Campaigns in Palestine, from the Letters of the
Crusaders
126. Stephen of Blois to his -wife .......... 321
EPAchery, Spicilegium, ad ed., Ill, 430 sq. ; trans, by Munro
in Tr. and Rp. Vol. I, No. 4
127. Godfrey of Bouillon and his companions to the pope . 325
Annales Sancti JDisidodi (to wit, the monastery of Disen-
berg near Mayence),ad an. uoo: Mon. Ger. Hist., Pertz,
XVII, 17 sffT; trans, by Munro in Tr. and Rp. Vol. I,
No. 4
IV. St. Bernard and the Second Crusade
128. St. Bernard exhorts the people to take arms against
the infidel .............. 330
' (No. 363), ad orientates Franciae clerum et £optc-
lum : Migne, CLXXXII, cols. 564 sqq. • trans, by EALES,
Life and Works of St. Bernard, II, 906 sqq.
St. Bernard blamed for the outcome of the crusade . .334
GAUFRIDUS, Vita S. Bernardi Clarvaltensis* Lib. iii, c. 2 :
Acta sanctorum, August, VoL IV, 298 ; Migne, CLXXX V,
cols. 308 sq.
V. A Holy Pilgrim
130. The pilgrimage of Udalrich to Jerusalem ...... 336
Vita^rior S: Udalrici prieris Cellensis: Mon. Ger. Hist.,
Pertz, XII, 252 7
Contents and List of Citations xxiii
VI. Inducements offered to the Crusaders PAGH
131. Privileges granted by Eugenius III (1146) 337
OTTO OF FREISING, Gesta Friderici^ Lib. i, c. 35: Mon.
Ger. Hist., Pertz, XX, 371 ; trans, by Munro in Tr. and
Rp. Vol. I, No. 2
132. Privileges granted by Innocent III (1215) . . . , , 338
Mansi, Conciliomm collectio, XXII, 1057
VII. A Glimpse of the Court of the Eastern Emperor
133. Luitprand*s account of his reception in Constantinople , 340
sis, Lib. vi, cc. 5-9: Mon. Ger. Hist., octavo ed.
CHAPTER XVI — THE MEDIAEVAL CHURCH AT
ITS HEIGHT
I. The Preeminence of the Church
134. The bull Unam Sanctam of Boniface VIII (1302) . . 346
Text based upon the papal register given by Mury, Revue
des questions historiques, XLVJ, 255 sq.
II. The Seven Sacraments
135. An account of the seven sacraments by Eugenius IV
(1438) 348
From the bull Exultate Deo, Denzinger, Enchiridion sym-
bolorum et definitionum, pjt. 201 sgq.
III. Tales illustrating the Miraculous Power of the
Sacraments
136. Christ is seen in the hands of a priest 355
CAESAR OF HEISTERBACH, Dialogus miraculoruyn^ Dist.
ix, c. 28 ; ed. by Strange, 2 vols., 1851, VoL II, 186 ; trans,
by Munro in Tr. and Rp. Vol. II, No. 4
137. Bees construct a church for the host 355
Anecdotes historiques, Legendes et Apologues fires du
Recueil inedit d^Etienne de Bourbon ; ed- Leooy de la
Marche, 1877, No. 31 7, pp. 266 sq. (in the publications of
the Soc. de Phist. de Fr.) ; trans, by Munro in Tr. and
Rp. Vol. II, No. 4
'through confession a forgotten prayer is erased from
the devil's register 356
STEPHEN OF BOURBON (as above, No. 137), No. 176, pp.
155 s$.
xxiv Contents and List of Citations
PAGE
139. The Virgin saves the reputation of an erring matron
and monk 357
The Exempla of Jacques de Vitry ; ed. by T. F. Crane;
pub. by the Folk Lore Society, 1890, No. cclxxxii, pp.
117 $qq. ; trans, by Munro in Tr. and Rp. Vol. II, No. 4
IV, The Privilege of Benefit of Clergy
140. How a clergyman might be saved from the gallows by
reading a line 359
Philobiblon of Richard of Bury, c. iv *, ed. and trans, by
E. C. Thomas, 1889, PP- I73 sffff~
V. How the Churches and Monasteries were Sup-
ported
141. The revenue of a parish church 361
Bibliotheque de 1'ecole des chartes, XXIV, 467
142. Manors given to the monastery of Zwifalt 362
ORTLIEB, JDe fundatione monasterii Zvuivilctensis, Lib. ii,
c. 5 : Mon. Ger. Hist., Pertz, X, 74 sq.
143. The family of the monastery of Zwifalt 363
Ibid. Lib. ii, c. 9; Pertz, pp. 77 sq.
VI. Tales illustrating the Mediaeval Attitude towards
Heretics
144. The body of a burned heretic turns into toads . . . 364
LUKE, bishop of Tuy, £>e altera vita, Lib. iii, c. 15: in
Magna bibliotheca veterum patrum; ed. of 1688, XIII,
283
145. Two heretics work miracles with the devil's aid . . . 365
CAESAR OF HEISTERBACH (as above, No. 136), Dist. v, c.
18, Vol. I, 269 sqg. j trans, by Munro in Tr. and Rp.
Vol. II, No. 4
CHAPTER XVII — HERESY AND THE FRIARS
I. Denunciations of the Evil Lives of the Clergy
146. The Revelation of Golias the Bisshoppe 371
The Latinpoems attributed to Walter Mopes, ed. Thomas
Wright (Camden Soc. Pub.), London, 1841, pp. 271 sqg.
147. Walther von der Vogelweide on the practices of the popes 37 5
Trans, by LEA, History of the Inquisition, Vol. I, Chap. I
148. A troubadour's description of the abuses in the Church 375
Ibid.
Contents and List of Citations xxv
IL Report of the Habits of the Norman Clergy PAGE
149. Habits of the Norman Clergy in the Thirteenth Century 378
EUDES RIGAUD, Regestntm visitationum archiepiscofi
Rothomagensis, Rouen, 1847, 4to, pp. 35, 245, 305, and
J59
III. The Waldensian and Albigensian Heretics
150. Waldo of Lyons 380
Ex chronico imiversali anonymi Laitdunensis^ s. a. 1173:
Moa- Ger. Hist., Pertz, XXVI, 447 sq.
151. Description of the Albigenses 381
BERNARD OF GUI, Praiica inqitisitionis heretuc pravitatts ;
ed. Douais, Pars V, c. i, § 4
IV. The Efficacy of the Sacraments in Polluted Hands
152. The efficacy of the sacraments in the hands of bad
priests 383
PILCHDORFFIUS, Contra Waldenses^ cc. xvi-xvii: in Max-
ima bibliotheca patrum (1677), XXV, 281 sq.
V. Attitude of the Civil Government toward Heretics
153. Provisions of laws of Frederick II concerning heretics . 385
Historia dlplomatica Friderici seciindi ; ed. Huilliard-Bre-
holles, Tome IV, Pt. I, pp. 5 sq.
VI. Life and Character of St. Francis
154. How St. Francis undertook his mission 387
THOMAS OF CELANO, Vita prima^ Book I, cc. ii-iv: Acta
sanctorum, October, Vol. II, pp. 685 sqq.
155. St. Francis preaches to the birds 391
Ihid. c. vi, p. 669
156. The will of St. Francis 392
Acta sanctorum, October, Vol. IIt pp. 663 sq.\ trans, in
Sabatier, Life of St. Francis of Assist, 337*??-
CHAPTER XVIII — THE PEOPLE IN COUNTRY
AND TOWN
I. The Manor and its People
157. Official description of a manor belonging to Peter-
borough Abbey 399
Liber niger monasterii S. Petri de Bur go, in Chronicon
Peterburgense, pp. 160 sq. (Camden Soc. Pub.) ; trans,
by Cheyney, Tr. and Rp. Vol. Ill, No. 5
xx vi Contents and List of Citations
PAGE
1 58. A manor in Sussex 4°o
Custumals of Battle Abbey, pp. 17 sqq. (Camden Soc.
Pub.) ; trans, by Cheyney, Tr. and Rp. Vol. Ill, No. 5
1 59. Description of an English manor house 404
Historical MSS. Commission Reports, 9, 1, pp. 35 sq. ; trans,
by Cheyney, Tr. and Rp. Vol. Ill, No. 5
1 60. Freeing a serf 4°5
DUGDALE, Monasficon, I, 394 ; trans, by Cheyney, Tr. and
Rp. Vol. Ill, No. 5
II. The Mediaeval Town
161. Customs of the town of Chester 406
Domesday Book, I, 262, b : Stubbs, Select Charters, 83 sq. ;
trans, by Cheyney, Tr. and Rp. Vol. II, No- i
1 62. Opening of charter granted to Lincoln 408
Rvmer, Foedera, I, 40: Stubbs, Select Charters, 158 sq.;
"trans, by Cheyney, Tr. and Rp. Vol. II, No. i
163. Charter granted to Chester 408
GROSS, Gild Merchant^ II, 140; trans, by Cheyney, Tr.
and Rp. Vol. II, No. i
164. Articles of the spurriers of London 409
RILEY, Memorials of London , pp. 226 sqq. ; trans, by
Cheyney, Tr. and Rp. Vol. II, No. i
165. Rules of the guild of white-tawyers 411
Ibid. pp. 232 sqq.
III. The Hanseatic League
166. Otto II promises protection to the merchants of Mag-
deburg (975) 412
Hansisches Urkundenbuch, ed. Hohlbaum, Halle, 1876, I,
i, No. i
167. Alliance between Miinster, Dortmund, Soest, and
Lippstadt (1253) 413
Ibid. I, 164 sq., No. 460
168. Agreement between London and Hans a towns (1282) . 414
Ibid. I, 308 sqq., No. 902
IV. Knights, Burghers, and Farmers
169. Knights and burghers in the thirteenth century . . .416
WOLFRAM VON ESCHENBACH, Wtlhelm -von Oratzge, mod-
ern German version by San Mante, Halle, 1873
170. Farmer Helmbrecht 418
WERNHE^R, Helmbreckt^ Haupt's Zeitschrift fur deutsches
Alterthum, IV; Freitag's version translated by G. L.
Burr and privately printed
Contents a?id List of Citations xxvii
V. Maltreatment of the Jews PAGB
171. Expulsion of the Jews from France 426
RIGORD (as above, No. 94), cc. 6, 12, 13, 15, and 16
CHAPTER XIX — THE CULTURE OF THE
MIDDLE AGES
I. The Development of Modern Languages
172.. An example of Anglo-Saxon 431
Anglo-Saxon Chronicle (as above, No. 98), ad an. 1068
173. English of the thirteenth century 432
The Story of Genesis and Exodus • an early English song
(ca. A.D. 1250), ed. by Morris (Early Eng. Text Soc.)
174. Comparison of the various stages in the development
of French 433
Histoire de /a langue et litterature francaise, publiee sous
la direction de Petit de Julleville, I, Ixxvii
175. A few lines of Proven9al 434
From a metrical romance, Flamenco, written in the first
half of the thirteenth century: LANGLQIS, La Socitte
fran$aise an lyeme siecle^ p. 157
176. The ideals of the troubadours 434
SMITH, J, H., The Troubadours at Home, I, 150 sq.
177. A troubadour's song by Arnault de Maruelh .... 435
Ibid. I, 169 sq.
178. The troubadours' creed, from Sordel 436
Ibid. I, 269 sq.
179. A song by Vidal 43^
Ibid. I, 302
i So. A song by Bernard de Ventadorn 437
Ibid. II, 162
18 1. A song by Walther von der Vogelweide 437
Lays of the Minnesingers; ed. by Edg. Taylor, London,
1825, pp. 204 sg.
II, Mediaeval Natural Science
182. Extracts from Alexander of Neckam 439
De naturis rmttn, Lib. I, cc. 23 and 78 ; Lib. ii, c. 98 ; ed.
by Thomas Wright (Rolls Series), pp. 71, 122 ^.,and 183
183. Mediaeval ideas of the earth and stars 44 *
Popular Treatises on Science witteri during the Middle
Ages in Anglo-Saxon, Anglo-Norman^ and English ; ed.
by Thomas Wright, London, 1841
xxviii Contents and List of Citations
PAGB
184. The pelican and its habits 442
Ibid. pp. 115 sq.
185. Of fauns, cyclops, etc 443
BARTHOLOMEW ANGLICUS, De j>roj>rietatibus rewm, as
selected and modernized by STEELE, Mediceval Lore,
London, 1893, PP' I2& stf- and 134 sg-
III. Historical Knowledge in the Middle Ages
186. How the Merovingian kings sprang from the Trojans . 445
RIGORD (as above, No. 94)
IV. Abelard and the Universities
187. Abelard's popularity as a teacher 447
McCABE, Abelard^ New York, 1901, 82 sq.
1 88. Abelard's autobiography 447
ABAELARDUS, P., Otera ; ed. V. Cousin, Paris, 1849-1859,
-2 vols.; Vol. J (first letter)
189. Abelard's Yea and JVay 450
PETRUS ABELARDUS Sic et Non; ed. Henke et Lindenkohl,
Marburg, 1851. (Not complete as given in Cousin's Opera
inedita of Abelard)
190. Privileges granted to students by Frederick Barbarossa 452
Habita of Frederick I: Mon. Ger. Hist., Leges, II, 114;
trans, by Munro in Tr. and Rp. Vol. II, No. 3
191. The system of lecturing at Paris 453
McCABE (as above, No. 187), 79 sq.
192. Student life at Paris 454
JACQUES DE VITRY, Historia occidentals, Lib. ii, c. 7;
trans, by Munro in Tr. and Rp. Vol. II, No. 3
V. Supremacy of Aristotle in the Mediaeval Univer-
sities. Scholasticism
193. Averroes on Aristotle's greatness 456
AVERROES, introduction to his edition of Aristotle's Physics
194. Aquinas and his work 458
RASHDALL, History of i7ie Mediceval Universities, I, 365
and 367
VI. Roger Bacon and the Beginning of Modern Experi-
mental Science
195. Roger Bacon's eulogy of Peter of Maricourt .... 460
O#vs Tertium, c. cxiii : Opera quaedatn hacten'us inedita ;
ed. by Brewer in the Rolls Series, 1 859, pp. 46 sq.
Contents and List of Citations xxix
I AGE
196. Bacon prophesies marvelous progress in science . . . 461
Eftstola fratris Roger ii Baconzs tfe sec ret is of crib us art is
£t naturae, et de nullttate magiae ; Brewer's ed-, 523 sqq.
CHAPTER XX — THE HUNDRED YEARS' WAR
I. Froissart's Account of the Battle of Crecy
197. The great battle bet-ween the French and the English . 466
FROISSART, Ckronigues^ cc. 128 sqq,\ trans, based upon
that of Lord Berners — made in the time of Henry VIII
— given in the Globe ed. of The Chronicles of Froissart^
ed. by G. C. Macaulay, pp. 102 sqq.
II. How King John of France was captured at Poitiers
198. The capture of King John 470
Ibid. cc. 164 and 168 ; Globe ed., pp. 128 sq. and 131
III. Devastation wrought by the Hundred Years' War
199. Sack of Limoges (1370) 472
FROISSART (as above, No. 197), c. 283; Globe ed., p. 201
200. How the count of Arundel burned a town 474
(a) DENIFLE, La deso/nfion dcs egliscs, tnonast^res ct hopx-
taitx en France, 1897, I, 27, No. 95. (b) Ibid. I, 275,
No. 600
201. Conditions in the time of Charles VII 474
THOMAS BASIN, Histoire dc Charles VII et de Louis XI,
in Denifle, op. cit. I, 514 sy^ No. 999
IV. The Vision of Piers the Plowman
202. Extracts from Piers Plowman 475
LAN GLAND, Vision of Piers Plowman^ passus vi, v. vii;
done into modern English by Miss Kate M. Warren, Lon-
don, 1899
V. Charles the Bold of Burgundy and the Swiss
203. Charles the Bold and the Swiss 477
PHILIP DE COMMINES, Memoires, Liv. viTc. 12, and Liv. v,
c. 2 ; trans, in Bohn Library, II, 84 sq.^ I, 303 sqq.^ and
311 sq.
VI. Louis XI of France
204. Character and troublous death of Louis XI .... 481
* Ibid. Liv. vi, c. 12, and c. n ; Bohn trans. II, So sq.* 70 sq^
and 75 sqq.
xxx Contents and List of Citations
CHAPTER XXI — THE POPES AND, THE
COUNCILS
I. Might the Civil Government tax the Church Prop-
erty? PAGE
205. The bull Clericis Laicos 488
Rymer's Foedera (ed. of 1727), II, 706 sq*
II. Marsiglio of Padua and his Defender of Peace
206. Analysis of the Defensor pads 491
Defensor pacis^ Lib. iii and Lib. ii, c. 16 (end), in Goldast,
Monarchia Romani imperil, etc.,*i6i 1-1614, Tom. II
III. Wycliffe's Attack on Pope and Clergy
207. Wycliffe on the evil state of the clergy 497
Select Rnglish Works of John Wycliffe ; ed. by Thomas
Arnold, Clarendon Press, 1869-1871, 3 vols. : I, 208 sq. ;
II, 30 Sq.
208. Wyclijffe on auricular confession, etc 499
Ibid. II, 87 sq. and 169 sq.
209. Statement of the views of Wycliffe's followers , . . 500
Ibid. II, 457 sqq.
IV. The Popes at Avignon. Origin of the Great
.Schism
210. Letter of Petrarch's describing the papal court at Avignon 502
PETRARCH A Opera omnta, Basel, 1581, — " Epistolae sine
titulo," V
211. Beginning of the schism in holy Church 504
FROISSART (as above, No. 197), cc. 326 sq.', Globe ed.,
207 sqq.
212. Nicholas of Clamanges on the three chief vices in the
Church 508
Von der Hardt, Magnum Constantiense concilium, I, Pt.
Ill, pp. 7 and 88
213. How corruption spread from the prelates to the lower
dergy 5x0
DIETRICH VRIE, Ibid. Tom. I, pp. 104 sy.
V. The Council of Constance
214. The decree Sacrosancta 511
Von der Hardt (as above, No. 212), Tom. IV, p. 98
215. The decree Prequens 512
Ibid. Tom. IV, p. 98 (1436)
216. List of abuses discussed at Constance 513
Ibid. Tom. IV (1452)
Contents and List of Citations xxxi
CHAPTER XXII— THE ITALIAN CITIES AND
THE RENAISSANCE
I. The Italian Despots PAGE
217. Machiavelli's advice to despots ......... 516
// Princip^ cc. 13, 15, 17; trans., among other places, in
Morley's Universal Library
II. Humanism
218. Dante and the great writers of Greece and Rome . . 520
Divine Comedy, canto iv (close) : trans, by C. Z. Norton
219. Dante's defense of Italian ........... 522
Conv&o, Lib, i, c. 1 1 ; ed. by Moore ; trans, (badly) in Morley's
Universal Library ; better by Miss Katharine Hillard
220. Dante's account of his sad life ......... 524
Ibid. Lib. i, c. 3
221. Petrarch's description of himself ........ 524
JSjpistola, ad fosferos: Epistobxe de re&us farniliariirus et
-variae; ed. by Fracassetti, VoL 1; trans, in ROBINSON
AND ROLFE, Petrarch^ 59 $gq, and 63
222. Petrarch's wide reputation .......... 526
Ibid. JEjp. J?atn.f Lib. xiii, 7 : Robinson and Rolfe, 165 sg+
223. Petrarch copies a work of Cicero ........ 527
Ibid. Ep- Fam-, Lib. xviii, 12 : Robinson and Rolfe, 275 syg^
224. Founding of the Vatican Library by Nicholas V ... 529
VESPASIANO, Vvfe diitomini illustri del secolo ^ff^f Life of
Nicholas V, cc. 25 sg. \ trans, by Whitcomb, Literary
Source-Book of the Italian Renaissance
225. How Cosimo de* Medici founded a library ..... 530
Ibid. Life of Cosimo, cc.
III. The Artists of the Renaissance
226. Cellini and the art-loving pope, Clement VII .... 532
Vtta da fai ntedisimo scritia^ Lib. i, cc. 43 sq. and 51 ; trans.
by Thos. Nugent, z vols., 1812 ; also by Symonds, Roscoe,
and others
227. Remarkable versatility of Leonardo da Vinci .... 535
VASARI Vitede1 p& eccelenti pittor^ etc. ; trans, by Mrs. Fos-
ter, Bohn Library, II, 366 sgq.
228. Kindly disposition of Raphael ......... S36
Ibid. Ill, 61 s$.
229. Michael Angelo and the popes : his character and aims 537
Ibid. V, 253, 257 sq.t 293, 312 sq., and 335
230. Michael Angelo's fiery impetuosity ....... 54 J
VIGNERO, as quoted by Mrs. Foster, V, 242, note.
READINGS IN
EUROPEAN HISTORY
CHAPTER I
THE HISTORICAL POINT OF VIEW
It is clear that all our information in regard to past
events and conditions must be derived from evidence of
some kind. This evidence is called the source. Some-
times there are a number of good and reliable sources
for an event, as, for example, for the decapitation of
Charles I, or for the march of Napoleon into Russia.
Sometimes there is but a single, unreliable source, as, for
instance, in the case of the burial of Alaric in a river bed.1
For a great many important matters about which we
should like to know there are, unfortunately, no written
sources at all, and we can only guess how things were.
For example, we do not know what the Germans were
doing before Caesar came into contact with them and
took the trouble to give a brief account of them. We
can learn but little about the bishops of Rome before
the time of Constantine, for few references to them have
come down to us.
Few, however, of those who read and study history secondary
ever come in contact with the primary, or first-hand sources'
1 See below, p. 43,
j
2 Readings in Eiiropean History
sources ; they get their information at second hand. It
is much more convenient to read what Gibbon has to
say of Constantine than to refer to Eusebius, Eutropius,
and other ancient writers from whom he gained his
knowledge. Moreover, Gibbon carefully studied and com-
pared all the primary sources, and it may be urged that
he has given a truer, fuller, and more attractive account
of the period than can be found in any one of them.
His Decline and Fall of 'the Roman Empire is certainly
a work of the highest rank; but, nevertheless, it is only a
report of others' reports. It is therefore not a primary
but a secondary source.
Most of the historical knowledge current among us
is not, however, derived from even secondary sources,
such as Gibbon and similar authoritative writers, but
comes from the reading of text-books, encyclopedias,
stories, dramas, and magazine articles. Popular manuals
and articles are commonly written by those who know
little or nothing of the primary sources ; they are conse-
quently at least third hand, even when based upon the
best secondary accounts. As a matter of fact, they are
usually patched together from older manuals and articles,
and may be four, five, or six removes from the original
source of knowledge.
It is well known that the oftener a report passes from
mouth to mouth the less trustworthy and accurate does
it tend to become. Unimportant details which appeal
to the imagination will be magnified, while fundamental
considerations are easily forgotten, if they happen to
be prosaic and commonplace. Historians, like other
men, are sometimes fond of good stories and may be
led astray by some false rumor which, once started into
The Historical Point of View 3
circulation, gets farther and farther from the truth with
each repetition.
For example, a distinguished historian of the Church, Sad examp
Cardinal Baronius, writing about 1600, made the state- ^f^Sfoi
ment, upon very insufficient evidence, that, as the year the year io»
1000 approached, the people of Europe generally believed
that the world was about to come to an end. Robertson,
a very popular Scotch historian of the eighteenth cen-
tury, repeated the statement and went on to describe the
terrible panic which seized upon sinful men as the awful
year drew on. Succeeding writers, including some very
distinguished ones, accepted and even elaborated Rob-
ertson's account. About thirty years ago, however, a
French scholar pointed out that there was really no ade-
quate basis for this strange tale. To the chroniclers of
the time the year 1000 was clearly no more portentous
than 997 or 1003. This story of the panic, which passed
current as historical fact for some three hundred years,
offers an excellent illustration of the danger of relying
upon secondary sources.1
One of the first questions then to ask upon taking
up an historical work is, Where did the writer obtain
his information ? Has he simply copied his statements where did
. , "*e writer
from the more easily accessible works in ms own Ian- obtain his
guage, however unreliable and out of date they may be ; mformatk)n
or has he, dissatisfied with such uncertain sources, famil-
iarized himself with the most recent researches of the
distinguished scholars in his field, in whatever language
they may have been written ; or, still better, has he him-
self made a personal study of the original evidence which
1 See an interesting account of this matter by Professor George L.
Burr in The American Historical Review, Vol. VI, pp. 429 sqq*
4 Readings in European History
has come down to us of the events and conditions which
he discusses ? *
For example, a little book or essay on Charlemagne
might be written after reading Hodgkin's Charles the
Great, West's Alcuiny and one or two other easily acces-
sible books on the subject. On the other hand, the writer
might turn to the great French and German treatises on
Charlemagne's reign and acquaint himself with all the
articles which have appeared on the subject in histori-
cal magazines or in the transactions of learned societies.
Every conscientious historian would wish, however, to
go still farther and see the evidence with his own eyes
and draw his own conclusions. He would turn to the
sources themselves and carefully read the Annals of the
Monastery of Lorsch, the life of Charlemagne by his
secretary, Einhard, and the so-called Annals of Einhard.
He would also scrutinize all the numerous laws passed
in Charlemagne's reign and consult all the writers of the
time who refer to the emperor or to public events. In
this way he would master all that the past has handed
down to us upon this subject and would know all that is
to be known about the matter. The most reliable his-
torian, therefore, is one who examines the sources for
himself, but who at the same time takes advantage of
the suggestions, criticisms, and explanations which have
been made by other scholars who have also studied the
original documents.
No improvement in the methods of historical instruc-
tion in our high schools and colleges bids fair to produce
better results than the plan of bringing the student into
contact with the first-hand accounts of events, or, as
they are technically termed, the primary sources.
The Historical Point of View 5
This term may perhaps call up in the minds of some
the vision of a solitary stoop-shouldered, spectacled en-
thusiast, engaged in painfully deciphering obscure Latin
abbreviations on yellow parchment. But it is a mis-
take to conclude that the primary sources are always
difficult to get at, dull, and hard to read. On the con-
trary, they are sometimes ready to hand, and are often
more vivid and entertaining than even the most striking
descriptions by the pen of gifted writers like Gibbon or
Macaulay.
The best secondary authorities stand to the sources
somewhat as the' description of a work of art or of a
masterpiece of literature stands to the original. Just
as we cannot afford to ignore the picture itself, or the
great poem or drama, and confine ourselves to some one
else's account of it, so in our historical Vork we ought
to grasp every opportunity of examining for ourselves
the foundations upon which history rests.
It may, of course, be urged that the trained historian,
after acquainting himself with the men and the circum-
stances of a particular period, can make better use of the
sources than any relatively unskilled student. But, admit-
ting the force of this argument, there is, nevertheless, so
much to be learned from a study of the original accounts
that cannot be reproduced by the most skilled hand,
that no earnest student or reader should content himself
with second-hand descriptions when primary sources are
available.
The sources are unconsciously molded by the spirit
of the time in which they were written. Every line
gives some hint of the period in which the author lived
and makes an impression upon us which volumes of
6 Readings in European History
second-hand accounts can never produce. The mere
information, too, comes to us in a form which we do not
easily forget. The facts sink into our memory.
One who actually talked with Attila, or who witnessed
the capture of- Jerusalem by the crusaders, is clearly
more likely to excite our interest than a writer of our
own day, however much he may know of the king- of
the Huns or of the first crusade. It makes no great
impression upon us to be told that the scholars of Dante's
time had begun to be interested once more in the ancient
learning of the Greeks and Romans ; but no one can for-
get Dante's own poetic account of his kindly reception
in the lower regions by the august representatives of
pagan literature, — Homer, Horace, Ovid, and Lucan, —
people "with eyes slow and grave, of great authority in
their looks," who "spake seldom and with soft voices."
Moreover, the study of the sources enables us to some
extent to form our own opinions of the past, so that we
need, not rely entirely upon mere manuals, which are
always one, and generally two or three, removes from
the sources themselves. When we get at the sources
themselves we no longer merely read and memorize; we
begin to consider what may be safely inferred from the
statements before us and so develop the all-important
faculty of criticism. We are not simply accumulating
facts but are attempting to determine their true nature
and meaning.
The power to do this is not alone necessary to schol-
arly work; it is ef the utmost importance as well in deal-
ing with the affairs of everyday life. To take a single
illustration : one cannot fail to see from a study of
the sources that Luther was exceedingly unfair to his
The Historical Point of View 7
enemies and ascribed their conduct to evil motives when
they were acting quite consistently and according to
what they considered the truth. His opponents, on the
other hand, treated him with equal unfairness and pro-
claimed him a wicked and profligate man because he
refused to accept their views.
We meet precisely the same unfairness nowadays, as,
for instance, in the case of a municipal election, where
each party speaks only evil of the other. It is, however,
not so hard to look impartially at the motives and con-
duct of men who lived long ago as it is to be fair-minded
in matters which interest us personally very deeply. By
cultivating sympathy and impartiality in dealing with the
past we may hope to reach a point where we can view
the present coolly and temperately. In this way really
thoughtful, historical study serves to develop the very
fundamental virtues of sympathy, fairness, and caution
in forming our judgments.1
Even as lately as a hundred years ago the path to the Former
sources of European history was still a thorny one. The ?j theway
manuscripts of historical importance were often scattered <& osbls
xruumscri|rt;
about in innumerable small collections, chiefly in the
monasteries. The documents were stacked up in dark
rooms, damp cellars, and dusty garrets. They were often
carelessly transcribed, full of blunders, and illegible except
to those specially versed in the art of deciphering ancient
handwriting. There were usually no catalogues and
nothing to guide the investigator to the material of which
1 A fuller discussion of this matter will be found in the excellent
introduction to Historical Sources in Schools (a report drawn up by
Professor C. D. Hazen and others for the New England Teachers
Association), The Macmillan Company, 1902, 60 cents.
8 Readings in European History
he was in search. He was forced to travel from place to
place and turn over masses of worthless or irrelevant
matter in the uncertain quest for the little which might
be useful to him.
But all this is changed. The scholar may now sit at
a convenient desk in a comfortable, well-lighted library ;
he has a clearly printed book before him, the text of
which has been established by a comparison of all the
known manuscripts of the work in question. These
have been collated by an expert; errors have been elimi-
nated, and difficult passages annotated. The work has
been carefully analyzed and supplied with an index, so
that one may discover in a few moments just those
paragraphs which have to do with the subject in hand.
The task of rendering the sources available has been
a long and painful one, and has been going on for three
or four hundred years. As early as the sixteenth cen-
tury scholars began to bring together the mediaeval
chronicles and print them in convenient collections. In
the time of Louis XIV a group of Benedictine monks
in France won new distinction for their ancient order
by publishing several admirable series and by preparing
treatises to facilitate historical research.
The nineteenth century witnessed a development of
the critical scientific spirit which has made it necessary
to reprint many sources that had appeared previously in
a defective form. Moreover, thousands of volumes of
precious material hitherto available only in manuscript
have been added to our resources.
The most notable of the many collections is that which
has been in course of publication in Germany since 1826,
— the Afonumenta G~erwaniae Historic^ Begun under
TJie Historical Point of View 9
the auspices of an historical society, it was, upon the
death of Pertz, the original editor, placed under the super-
vision of a government commission (1875). The volumes
published since that date have established a standard of
the highest excellence.1
In England many volumes of historical material have
been issued since 1858 under the direction of the Master
of the Rolls, and constitute the so-called " Rolls Series/'
France, Italy, Austria, Belgium, and other European
countries have each their series, great and small. Some
of these enjoy the support of the government, but the
greater part of them are due to the enterprise of his-
torical societies or individual scholars.2
So rapidly are the sources being printed that it is no Research m
longer necessary in most fields of historical research to j^J^a
rely, as formerly, upon the manuscripts in the European '*&*'&
libraries and archives. Some, at least, of our very best m the great
university and public libraries now contain many of the tbe United
great collections of printed sources, and it is possible to states.
carry on satisfactory historical research in some fields in
Boston or New York as well as in London or Paris.3
It would be useless to enumerate the names of these Examples of
many series, even of the very important ones, for it is
impossible to infer from the general title of an exten-
r & . , calreseardu
sive set what particular works and documents it con-
tains. Moreover, the modern publication, investigation,
1 For a description of the Monumenta see below, pp. 262 sq.
2 See Bourne, The Teaching of History, Chapter II, for a brief
account of the enterprises in this field. A fuller account is given by
Wattenbach, Deutschlands GeschichtsqueUen^ " Einleitung," pp. 1-40.
8 Such collections of material, whether in the original languages or
in English translation, as may be especially recommended for college
libraries, will be found mentioned at the end of this volume.
IO
Readings in European History
Bibliogra-
phies of
sources.
Potthast's
Wegweiscr.
Bibliogra-
phies for
particular
countries.
and criticism of the sources have led to the preparation
of a number of indispensable works of reference which
do not aim to deal directly with history but to serve as a
guide to those in search of the material upon which the
historian must rely. A very few of the most noteworthy
will be mentioned here as illustrations of the apparatus
necessary in all professional historical study.
To learn what the sources are and where they may
be found is the first requisite of historical investigation.
A French writer, Langlois, has published a very useful
bibliography of historical bibliographies,1 — a catalogue
of the best lists of sources and of historical treatises.
Such lists are very numerous and often voluminous.
The most useful and scholarly is Potthast's Wegweiser,
or "guide/' in two stout volumes.2 The compiler has,
with infinite patience, sought to bring together in an
alphabetical list the sources for the history of western
Europe from the year 400 to 1500, and to state when
and where they have been printed. One anxious to learn
whether there has been a new critical edition of a partic-
ular chronicle, or whether there are any lives of St. Boni-
face, or Gregory VII, or Frederick Barbarossa, written by
those who lived in their times, can obtain the desired
information from Potthast, as well as a list of modern
works relating to the topic under consideration.
Admirable guides exist for the study of particular coun-
tries. German scholars have compiled a list 8 of all the
1 Langlois, Manuel de bibliographic historique^ Part I, " Instruments
bibliographiques," 2d ed., Paris, 1901, 4 fr.
2 Wfgweiser durch die Geschichtswerke des Europaischen Mitttl-
alters bis Jfoo, 2 vols., 2d ed., Berlin* 1895-1896, M. 26.50.
8 Dahlrnann-Waitz, Quelhnkunde der deutschen Geschichte, 6th ed.,
Gottingen, 1894, M. 12.
The Historical Point of View 1 1
important books and articles relating to the history of
their own country from the time of Tacitus to the
present day. A still better and more extensive work
by Molinier and others is in course of publication for
the history of France.1 Of course the history both of
France and of Germany is so closely associated with that
of other European countries that the above-mentioned
guides are very valuable for the student of general Euro-
pean affairs. A similar collection of titles has been
prepared by Professor Charles Gross for England.2
After discovering the sources it is essential to deter- criticism <*
mine their character and reliability. There are special thesources-
treatises upon this important subject.3 The best and
most generally useful is perhaps Wattenbach's Histori-
cal Sources for Germany during the Middle Ages,4 in
which the various writers and their works are thoroughly
discussed. Molinier gives many useful hints in his great
bibliography referred to above. A discussion of the his-
torical writers of the Middle Ag,es is given in Early
Chroniclers of Europe? I know of no other work of the
kind available in English except that of Flint, who, in
his interesting History of the Philosophy of History?
1 Les sources de Vhistoire de France^ des origines aux guerres d^Italie
(1494); — to be continued to 1815 — 5 vols., Paris, 1901 sqq.t 5 fr. a
volume.
2 Sources of English History, Longmans, 1901, $5.00.
8 For brief accounts of the results of modern criticism of the sources
see the Introduction to Henderson's History cf Germany in the Middle
AgeS) and Bury's Introduction to his edition of Gibbon, pp. 45 sqq.
4 Deutschlands Geschichtsquellen im Mittelalter bis stur Mitte des i^ten
Jahrkundert, 2 vols., 6th ed., 1893-1894, M. 20. (Vol. I of a ;th edition
appeared in 1904.)
6 England by Gairdner, France by Masson, and Italy by Balzani.
Society for the Promotion of Christian Knowledge, 3 vols., London,
1883-1888. 6 Charles Scribner's Sons, 1894, $4.00.
12
Readings in European History
Methods of
historical
research ;
Bernheim's
manual.
Du Cange's
Dictionary
of Medieval
Latin.
Giry's
Manual of
Diplomatics.
takes up in turn the writers dealing with France, espe-
cially in modern times. Bury, in the appendices which
he has added to his edition of Gibbon's Decline and
Fall of the Roman Empire, mentions and criticises briefly
many sources. Indeed, it is not at all uncommon in
modern scientific histories to find similar discussions.
By far the most important treatise upon the use of the
sources and the methods of historical investigation is that
of Bernheim.1 Every one proposing to devote himself
to historical research should be thoroughly familiar with
this remarkable work. No other single volume contains
such a wealth of valuable information in regard to almost
all branches of knowledge which directly concern the
historical student. Suggestive, but far less exhaustive
than Bernheim's manual, is the Introduction to the Study
of History by Langlois and Seignfcbos.2
For an explanation of the many troublesome terms
and expressions used in mediaeval writings one should
turn to the monumental Dictionary of Mediaeval Latin
originally compiled by Du Cange and first issued in
1 678.8 In successive editions, later scholars have added
many terms which Du Cange overlooked, but one is still
often disappointed not to find words he would like to
have explained.
For all matters relating to public and private docu-
ments, decrees, papal bulls, methods of dating, etc.
1 Lekrbuch der historischen Methods und der Geschichtsphilosophie,
mit Nackwets der urichtigsten Quellen und Hilfsmittel zum Studium der
Gesckichte, 3d and 4th eds., Leipzig, 1903, M. 17.
2 New York, Henry Holt, $2.25. The French original, however, costs
but 3 fr.
8 Glossarium mediae et infimat latinitatis, 7 vols., Paris, 1840-1850.
This edition, which may be had for about $40, is preferable to a more
recent reprint which appeared 1883-1887.
The Historical Point of Vieiu 1 3
Giry's Manual of Diplomatics1 is the most useful modern
work.
Of the historical atlases the most generally used is Historical
that edited by Droysen,2 but Schrader's 3 is excellent and atlases'
contains a number of important special maps and plans
as well as an index. A truly admirable and very inex-
pensive collection of historical maps may be found in
Putzger's cheap and unassuming Historical School Atlas*
This is in many ways as useful as Droysen, and in some
respects actually superior to the more elaborate work.
While but few of the aids to historical research are
here given, those mentioned are of the utmost impor-
tance by reason of the range and accuracy of the informa-
tion which they furnish and of the ease with which they
can be consulted. No really advanced work in history
can be carried on without their aid. Many other useful
works of the same class may be found in the lists given
by Bernheim in the manual spoken of above.
1 Manuel de diplomatique* Paris, 1894, 20 fr.
3 Allgemeiner historischtr Handailas^ mit erlauterndem Text, Leipzig,
M, 25.
8 Atlas de gtograpkie historique^ sous la direction de F. Schrader,
Paris, Hachette, 35 fr.
The only really adequate atlas in English is the Historical Atlas ef
Modern Europe, edited by R. L. Poole (Clarendon Press, $38.50), which
is unfortunately far more expensive than the equally satisfactory German
and French works of the same class.
* ¥\te%tf$>HistorisckerSchul-Atla5i edited by Baldanras and Schwabe.
An American edition of this may be had, accompanied by an English
translation of the German forms of the geographical names, New York,
Lemcke and Biichner, $i .00. A new school Atlas if European History ^
edited by Professor Dow, is announced by Henry Holt.
CHAPTER II
WESTERN EUROPE BEFORE THE BARBARIAN INVASIONS
I. SOME RESEMBLANCES BETWEEN THOUGHTFUL PAGANISM
AND CHRISTIANITY
The philosopher and statesman, Seneca (d. A.D. 65),
who lived in the time of Nero, in his little book on
Benefits speaks thus of the bounty of God :
1. Seneca on Doth not God bestow all benefits upon us ? From whence
God's gifts then hast thou all those things whereof thou art possessed ?
oman- which thou givest ? which thou deniest ? which thou keep-
est? which thou takest unjustly? From whence come the
infi'niteness of things that delight the eye, affect the ear,
and please the understanding? . . . From whence have
we so many trees, bearing sundry sorts of savory fruit, so
many wholesome herbs, for the maintenance of our health,
such variety of meats, strong for all seasons through the
whole year, so that an idle sluggard may pick up without
effort sufficient sustenance upon the earth to feed and nourish
him ? . . .
If a man should give thee money, and fill thy coffer
(for that seemeth a great thing in thy sight) thou wouldst
term it a benefit. And thinkest thou it no favor, that
God hath hidden so many metals in the earth, spread so
many rivers on the sands, which floating, discover ingots of
massy gold, silver, brass, and iron, which he hath hidden
everywhere ; that he hath given thee means and knowledge
to find it out, by setting marks of his covert riches on the
upper face of the earth ? If a man should give thee a house
enriched with marble pillars, if the cover thereof were re-
splendent, and painted with gold and goodly colors, thou
14
Western Europe before the Barbarian Invasions 1 5
wouldst highly esteem this present of his : God hath builded
thee a great palace, without any danger or fear of falling
down, wherein- thou seest not little pieces, smaller than the
chisel itself wherewith they were carved, but entire huge
masses of precious stone, all fastened and fashioned after
divers manners, the least piece whereof maketh thee wonder
at the beauty of the same : the roof whereof shineth after one
sort by day and after another by night : and wilt thou then
deny that thou hast received any benefit at all ? ...
It is Nature, saith one, that communicateth and giveth me
all these things. But understandest thou not that in speaking
after this manner, thou only changest the name of God ? For
what else is Nature but God, a divine being and reason, which
by his searching assistance resideth in the world, and all the
parts thereof ? . . .
To bestow a favor in hope to receive another, is a con- Seneca on m*-
temptible and base usury. How badly soever thy former seffish &***£*
favors have fallen out, yet persevere thou in bestowing others.
They are best hoarded in the hands of the ungrateful, whom
either shame, or occasion, or imitation, may at length fashion
to be grateful. Persevere continually, and cease not to be
bountiful : accomplish that good work which thou hast begun,
and perform the duty of a good man. Relieve this man with
thy goods, another with thy credit; that man by thy favor,
this with thy good counsels and wholesome precepts.
Some idea of the resemblance between the beliefs of 2.
the Stoics and those of the Christians may be obtained
from the teachings of Epictetus, a slave who for many
years belonged to a member of Nero's household. By
some whim of his master's, Epictetus was given a good
education, and after his master's death he taught phi-
losophy at Rome. He himself wrote nothing, but a
devoted pupil of his — Arrian — has left us a conscien-
tious account of his teachings, which represent the most
elevated form of stoicism.
i6
Readings in European History
Attitude of
the Stoics
toward the
evils of life.
Like the
Christians,
Epictetus
held that all
men were
brothers, for
all were
God's chil-
dren.
The attitude of the Stoic towards the evils of life is
clearly expressed in the following passage :_
When you are going in to any great personage, remember
that another also from above sees what is going on, and that
you ought to please him above all others. He then who sees
from above asks you : In the schools what used you to say
about exile, and bonds, and death, and disgrace? I used to
say that they are things indifferent (neither good nor bad).
What then do you say of them now ? Are they changed at
all ? No. Are you changed then ? No. Tell me then what
things are indifferent? The things which are independent
of the will. Tell me, also, what follows from this. The
things which are independent of the will are nothing to me,
Tell me also- about the Good ; what did you hold it to be ? A
will such as we ought to have and also a right use of things
about us. And our aim, what is it ? To follow thee. Do
you say this now also ? I say the same now also.
Then go in to the great personage boldly and remember
these things; and you will see what a youth is who has
studied these things when he is among men who have not
studied them. . . .
If the things are true which are said by the philosophers
about the kinship between God and man, what else remains
for men to do than what Socrates did ? Never say, in reply
to the question, To what country do you belong? that you are
an Athenian, or a Corinthian, but that you are a citizen of
the world. ... He who has observed with intelligence the
administration of the world, and has learned that the great-
est and the supreme and the most comprehensive community
is that which is composed of men and God, . . . why should
not such a man call himself a citizen of the world, why not
a son of God, and why should he be afraid of anything which
happens among men ? Is kinship with the emperor or with
any other of the powerful in Rome sufficient to enable us to
live in safety, and above contempt and without any fear at
all ? - But to have God for your maker, and father, and guard-
ian, shall not this release us from our sorrows and fears ?
Western Europe before the Barbarian Invasions 1 7
The Thoughts of the emperor Marcus Aurelius, a 3. The
collection of notes which he made for his own private of Marcas
use, is one of the most famous and stimulating books Aurelius-
which Roman writers have handed down to us. It is
easily obtainable and every one should possess a copy.
A single extract will serve to illustrate its character :
Begin the morning by saying to thyself, I shall meet with
the busybody, the ungrateful, arrogant, deceitful, envious,
unsocial. These are so by reason of their ignorance of what
is good and evil. But I who have seen the nature of the
good, that it is beautiful, and of the bad, that it is ugly, and
the nature of him who does wrong, that he is akin to me, not
only of the same blood and origin, but that he participates
in the same intelligence and the same portion of the divinity,
I can neither be injured by any of those I meet, for no one
can fix on me what is ugly, nor can I be angry with my kins-
man, nor hate him. For we are made for cooperation, like
feet, like hands, like eyelids, like the rows of the upper and
lower teeth. To act against one another then is contrary to
nature; and it is acting against one another to be vexed and
to turn away. . . .
If thou workest at that which is before thee, following
right reason seriously, vigorously, calmly, without allowing
anything else to distract thee, but keeping thy divine part
pure, as if thou shouldest be bound to give it back immedi-
ately ; if thou boldest to this, expecting nothing, fearing noth-
ing, but satisfied with thy present activity according to nature,
and with heroic truth in every word and sound which thou
utterest, thou wilt live happy. And there is no man who is
able to prevent this.
It should not be forgotten, however, that there were
a great many fundamental differences between the pagan
religions and Christianity. These have been admirably
stated by Mr. Lecky in his well-known History of
European Morals.
18
Readings in European History
4. Important
contrasts
between
Christianity
and the
pagan
religions.
Moral teach-
ing the duty
of the
Christian
priest.
The chief objects of Pagan religions were to foretell the
future, to explain the universe, to avert calamity, to obtain
the assistance of the gods. They contained no instruments
of moral teaching analogous to our institution of preaching,
or to the moral preparation for the reception of the sacra-
ment, or to confession, or to the reading of the Bible, or to
religious education, or to united prayer for spiritual benefits.
To make men virtuous was no more the function of the priest
than of the physician. On the other hand, the philosophic
expositions of duty [such as those given above] were wholly
unconnected with the religious ceremonies of the temple.
The high moral teachings of the philosophers, like
Seneca, Epictetus, and Marcus Aurelius, had doubtless
been brought to the attention of a considerable number
of educated people through the discussions of the rhetori-
cians. Some sects, like the Pythagoreans, recommended
religious ceremonies for the purpose of purifying the
mind, and among the Oriental religions (such as the
worship of Mithras), which were introduced at Rome
under the Empire, certain rites were to be found which
closely resembled those of the Christians.
But it was the distinguishing characteristic of Christianity
that its moral influence was not indirect, casual, remote,
or spasmodic. Unlike all Pagan religions, it made moral
teaching a main function of its clergy, moral discipline the
leading object of its services, moral dispositions the neces-
sary condition of the due performance of its rites. By the
pulpit, by its ceremonies, by all the agencies of power it pos-
sessed, it laboured systematically and perseveringly for the
regeneration of mankind. Under its influence, doctrines
concerning the nature of God, the immortality of the soul,
and the duties of man, which the noblest intellects of antiq-
uity could barely grasp, have become the truisms of the
village school, the proverbs of the cottage and of the alley.
Western Europe before the Barbarian Invasions 19
II. THE EARLY CONCEPTION OF A CATHOLIC
(I.E. UNIVERSAL) CHURCH
It was not unnatural that differences of opinion should
develop among the early Christians in regard to particu-
lar religious beliefs and practices. This led to the forma-
tion of sects similar to the various denominations which
exist in Protestant lands to-day. This want of agreement
seemed a terrible thing to those who felt that there could
be but one true faith handed down from Christ through
the apostles, and consequently one Catholic or Universal
Church outside of which there could be no salvation.
They accordingly denounced all who departed from the
generally accepted (i.e. orthodox) beliefs as heretics
who were destroying the unity of the Church by their
perversity.
This conception of one all-embracing Church to which
all should be forced to belong was accepted by the
Roman emperors after Constantine, and prevailed all
through the Middle Ages. It was earlier clearly set
forth by Cyprian, bishop of Carthage, who died in 258.*
The old enemy of mankind was vanquished and overcome 5. The
at the advent of Christ's kingdom. He saw his idols for- Catholic «r
saken and his fanes and temples deserted for the altars of ctot&as
Christ ; so he devised new wiles by which he might deceive conceived
the unwary Christian under the very name of Christianity ?7^pdaH
itself. He invented heresies and schisms; and by these he units of
hath overthrown the faith, corrupted the truth, and broken
the unity of the Church. Those whom he cannot keep back
in the darkness of the old way, he entraps and deceives by
error in the new path. He snatches men from the Church
1 A description of the martyrdom of Cyprian, who was beheaded
during a persecution of the Christians, may be found in Translations
and Reprints, Vol. IV, No, I.
2O Readings in European History
herself; and while they think they have now drawn near to
the light and have escaped the night of heathenism, he casts
over them in their ignorance yet other shades, so that they
call themselves Christians, and yet do not abide in the
Gospel and the precepts and the law of Christ. They think
they have the light, and yet walk in the darkness. . . .
Our Lord said to Peter : " I also say unto thee, That thou
art Peter, and-upon this rock I will build my church ; and the
gates of hell shall not prevail against it. And I will give
unto thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven : and what-
soever thou shalt bind on earth shall be bound in heaven ;
and whatsoever thou shalt loose on earth shall be loosed in
heaven/' He thus erected his Church upon one [founda-
tion].1 And though after his resurrection he gave equal
powers to all the apostles, saying, "As my Father hath sent
me, even so send I you. . . . Receive ye the Holy Ghost:
Whosesoever sins ye remit, they are remitted unto them ; and
whosesoever sins ye retain, they are retained," nevertheless,
that he might manifest unity he established one Church, and
by his own authority determined that in its origin this unity
should proceed from one [source or person]. . . .
He who holds not this unity of the Church, does he believe
that he holds the faith ? He who struggles against the Church
and resists her, does he believe that he is a member of the
Church ? . * . The episcopate is one : it is shared among
individuals, yet each possesses the entire authority.2 The
Church also is one, though she is widely extended among
the multitude. As there are many rays of the sun, but one
light ; and many branches of a tree, but one strength lying
in its tenacious root ; and since from one spring flow many
streams, yet the unity is preserved in the source. Separate
a ray of the sun from its body of light, its unity does not
permit a division of the light ; break a branch from the
tree, when broken it will not be able to bud; cut off the
stream from its fountain, and that which is cut off dries up.
1 Super unum aedificat ecclesiam.
* Episcopatas unus est, cuius a singulis in solidum pars tenetur.
Western Europe before the Barbarian Invasions 2 1
Thus the Church sheds forth her rays over the whole world ;
yet it is one light which is everywhere diffused. . . .
Whoever is separated from the Church is separated from Denuncia-
the promises of the Church ; nor can he who forsakes the
Church of Christ attain to the rewards of Christ. He is
a stranger ; he is profane ; he is an enemy. He can no
longer have God for his father who has not the Church for
his mother. If any one could escape who was outside the
ark of Noah, then he also may escape who shall be outside
of the Church. . . . These heretics appoint themselves
prelates without proper ordination, and assume the name
of bishops, although no one gives them the episcopate. . . .
They sit in the seat of pestilence, are plagues and spots of
the faith, deceiving with serpent's tongue and artful in cor-
rupting the truth, vomiting forth deadly poisons from pesti-
lential tongues; whose speech doth creep like a cancer,
-whose discourse forms a deadly poison in the heart and
breast of every one. . . .
Though such a man should suffer death for confessing
the name of Christ, his guilt is not washed away by blood,
nor is the grievous and inexpiable sin of discord wiped out
by suffering. He who is without the Church cannot be
a martyr. He cannot reach the kingdom of heaven. . . .
Though they are given over to the flames and burn in the
fires ; though cast to the wild beasts, they lay down their lives,
this shall not be a crown of faith, but a punishment of faith-
lessness. Such a man may be killed, but not crowned. . . ,
III. THE CHURCH AND THE ROMAN EMPERORS
In spite of the fact that the Roman emperors per- e. Edict <rf
mitted the greatest variety of worship within their vast GateriHS
realm and showed no disposition to compel their sub- first granted
toieratkm
jects to think alike upon religious matters, they viewed to the
Christianity with the most cruel suspicion almost from OHfefcfea*-
its first appearance. Christians were assumed to be
22 Readings in European History
hostile to the government, and were consequently treated
with the utmost harshness. Even the wisest and best
emperors, such as Trajan and Marcus Aurelius, ordered
that any one should be condemned to death who was
convicted of bearing" the name of Christian.1
Christians were first put upon a legal footing with
adherents of the various pagan religions by Emperor
Galerius in the year 3ii.2 His edict reads as follows:
Amongst our other measures for the advantage of the
Empire, we have hitherto endeavored to bring all things
into conformity with the ancient laws and public order of the
Romans. We have been especially anxious that even the
Christians, who have abandoned the religion of their ances-
tors, should return to reason. For they have fallen, we
know not how, into such perversity and folly that, instead
of adhering to those ancient institutions which possibly
their own forefathers established, they have arbitrarily made
" laws of their own and collected together various peoples
from, various quarters.
After the publication, on our part, of an order command-
ing the Christians to return to the observance of the ancient
customs, many of them, it is true, submitted in view of the
danger, while many others suffered death. Nevertheless,
since many of them have continued to persist in their opin-
ions and we see that in the present situation they neither
1 Christians were not, however, to be sought out by the government
officials and could only be tried when accusation was brought against
them by some definite person. A series of extracts illustrating the
extent and character of the early persecutions of the Christians is to
be found in Translations and Reprints* Vol. IV, No. I.
2 A German scholar, Seeck, has pretty conclusively shown that the
so-called Edict of Milan, by which Constantine was long supposed to
have rescued the Christians frcfm persecution, was not really an edict
at all, but a letter addressed by Constantine 's colleague, .Licinius, to
some government official hi the East, commanding him to see that the
edict o<£ Gaterras. was carried out in a thorough manner. See Zsit-
&*rcfccngescfaKkfe, VoL XIII, pp. 381 spg.
Western Europe before the Barbarian Invasions 23
duly adore and venerate the gods nor yet worship the god
of the Christians, we, with our wonted clemency, have judged
it wise to extend a pardon even to these men and permit
them once more to become Christians and reestablish their
places of meeting ; in such manner, however, that they shall
in no way offend against good order. We propose to notify
the magistrates in another mandate in regard to the course
that they should pursue.
Wherefore it should be the duty of the Christians, in
view of our clemency, to pray to their god for our welfare,
for that of the Empire, and for their own, so that the Empire
may remain intact in all its parts, and that they themselves
may live safely in their habitations.
When under Theodosius II a collection of the laws 7. The
of the Roman Empire was published (438), the edicts
which had been issued by Constantine and the succeed-
ing emperors in regard to the Christian religion, — the
privileges of the clergy, the status of heretics, etc., —
were conveniently brought together in the last book of &*ian Ce§e,
the new code. The very first title, On the Catholic Faith9
makes it clear that the government would tolerate no
one who disagreed with the particular form of Christian
belief which the state chose to sanction.
We desire that all those who are under the sway of our The Roman
clemency shall adhere to that religion which, according to
his own testimony, coming down even to our own day, the on* t
blessed apostle Peter delivered to the Romans, namely, the the view of
doctrine which the pontiff Damasus [bishop of Rome] and ^^^
Peter, bishop of Alexandria, a man of apostolic sanctity, tbeOaadl
accept. According to the teachings of the apostles and of
the Gospel we believe in one Godhead of the Father, Son,
and Holy Ghost, the blessed Trinity, alike in majesty.
We ordain that the name of Catholic Christians shall apply
to all those who obey this present law. All others we judge
to be mad and demented; we declare them guilty of the
Readings in European History
The clergy
to be
exempted
from public
burdens j
but only the
poor in this
world's goods
to be
admitted to
the clergy.
infamy of holding heretical doctrine ; their assemblies shall
not receive the name of churches. They shall first suffer
the wrath of God, then the punishment which in accordance
with divine judgment we shall inflict [A.D. 380].
The emperors showed themselves ready to exempt the
orthodox clergy from the various taxes and other public
burdens imposed by the state, but upon condition that
only poor men should become clerics. No decurion, that
is to say one who was rich enough to assume the heavy
responsibilities which the government threw upon the
wealthier class in the cities, might join the clergy.
Those who exercise the functions of divine worship, that
is to say those who are called clerics {_deriri^, shall be
exempt from all public burdens, lest otherwise they might
be called away from their sacred duties through some one's
malicious interference [A.D, 319].
Immunity from public burdens is to be granted neither
by custom nor upon any one's plea that he is a clergyman ;
nor may persons join the order of the clergy easily or in
too great numbers. But when a cleric dies another shall be
chosen in his stead. He shall not be of decurion rank by
descent, nor possess sufficient means easily to bear the
public burdens. Should doubt arise between a city and the
clergy in regard to any candidate, if justice indicates that he
should bear the public burdens and he should appear, either
by descent or owing to his patrimony, to.be suitable for the
rank of decurion, he shall leave the clergy and be turned
over to the city. For it is proper that the rich should bear
the burdens of the world and that the poor should be sup-
ported by the wealth of the Church [A.D. 326].
From public burdens and from every disquietude of
°^ °^ce al* caries shaM be free» and their sons shall
continue *n the Church If they are not subject to public
responsibilities [A.D. 349].
Western Europe before the Barbarian Invasions 25
We decree that all priests, deacons, subdeacons, exorcists, Exemption
lectors, and doorkeepers, likewise all who are in higher orders, from
shall be free from personal taxes1 [A.D. 377].
In every city, in every town, hamlet, and burg, whoever, The power of
according to the spirit of the Christian law, shall have the empire
sincerely striven to bring home to all its supreme and ^^ined
peculiar merits shall enjoy permanent protection. We ctergy.
should rejoice and be exceeding glad in the faith, knowing
that our empire is maintained more by religion than by
officials or by the labor and sweat of the body [A.D. 361].
Inasmuch as we have learned that certain clergymen and Christians
others who minister to the Catholic faith have been corn- nottobe
pelled by men of other religions to celebrate the lustral sac- observe
rifices, we hereby ordain that, should any one maintain that heathen rites.
those who keep the most holy law should be forced to
observe the rites of another's superstition, such an one shall,
if his station permits, be beaten with rods. If his rank
forbid this punishment, he shall be condemned to a heavy
fine which shall fall to the state [A.D. 323].
Every one shall have the right, when he is dying, to leave Bequests to
so much of his goods as he will to the holy and Catholic
Church . . . [A.D. 321].
It is right that clerics, whether they be bishops, priests, Judicial
deacons, or those of lower rank, ministers of the Christian
law, should be accused only before a bishop — unless there
is some reason why the case should be considered elsewhere
[A.D. 412].
Minor civil cases and those where church rites were
involved were also to be tried by ecclesiastics. These
provisions were the beginning of benefit of clergy and
of the vast jurisdiction of the mediaeval Church.
1 Church lands were, however, by no means to be exempted from the
land tax, nor were the clergy to engage in trade on any considerable scale
without paying the tax to which lay tradesmen were subject.
Readings in European History
None but the
orthodox
clergy to
enjoy
privileges.
Manichaeans
to be' prose-
cuted.
Privileges which are granted on religious grounds should
be confined to those who observe the law. We will that
heretics and schismatics should not only be excluded from
such privileges, but that they should be subject to various
burdens [A.D. 326].
Whenever an assembly of Manichseans1 is discovered, let
their teachers be heavily fined. Those who are in attend-
ance should be cast out from among their fellow-men as
infamous and discredited. The houses or dwelling places
in which their profane doctrines are taught should be con-
fiscated by the government [A.D. 372],
Clerics adhering to the Eunomian or Montanist super-
stition shall be excluded from all intercourse with any city
or town. Should any of these heretics sojourning in the
country attempt to gather the people together or collect an
assembly, let them be sent into perpetual exile. . . .
We command that their books, which contain the sub-
stance of their criminal teachings, be sought out with the
utmost care and burnt with fire under the eyes of the magis-
trates. Should any one perchance be convicted of conceal-
ing, through deceit or otherwise, and of failing to produce,
any work of this kind, let him know that as the possessor
of harmful books written with criminal intent he shall suffer
capital punishment [A.D. 398].
Various dis- Here we find the same spirit of active and cruel
rei^ous intolerance which appears in the mediaeval
laws, notably the thirteenth century. Other edicts pro-
vide that certain heretics — e.g. the Manichaeans —
should lose the right to bequeath and inherit property.
Illegal bequests of heretics were to revert to the public
treasury. Heretics were to be heavily fined, and in some
cases were excluded from the army. Slaves might be
Heretical
books to be
sought out
and burned.
1 This Manichsean heresy was revived in the later Middle Ages, See
the account of the Albigenses in History of Western Europe, p. 221.
Western Europe before the Barbarian Invasions 27
beaten into the orthodox faith. One edict (407) deprives
convicted Manichseans of the right of buying, selling, or
entering into any contract, on the ground that " this kind
of man has nothing in common with other men, either in
customs or laws/' Even the dead, if they be proved to
have been tainted with Manichsean heresy, are to have
their wills invalidated. In 409 the following edict was
issued :
Lest the Donatists and other deluded heretics and those Laws against
who, like the Jews and the Gentiles (commonly called heretics to be
" pagans "), cannot be brought into the communion of the ^^ed.
Catholic religion, should conclude that the force of the laws
formerly directed against them had declined, let all the
magistrates take note that those provisions of the law are
to be faithfully observed, and that they should not hesitate
to enforce all that we have decreed against the heretics.
A later title of the Theodosian Code is devoted to Provisk»s
"pagans, sacrifices, and temples." The temples were ^J^^f6
first ordered to be destroyed in the towns, later in the to pagans,
country. Heavy fines were to be inflicted upon those
who dared to offer sacrifices to the old heathen gods.
Pagans were excluded by law from judicial and adminis-
trative offices, although it seems impossible that this
measure could have been strictly carried out. In 423
we find a law declaring that, although pagans deserved
to suffer capital punishment, they were required only to
surrender their property to the government and go into
exile. It is noteworthy, however, that far less attention
is given to the pagans than to the Manichseans and
the various Christian sects, like the Arians, Montanists,
Donatists, and others, who ventured to differ from the
theological opinions sanctioned by the government.
28
Readings in European History
8. Sarvian's
comparison
of the
Romans
with the
barbarians
(e«. 440).
IV. COMPARISON BETWEEN THE LOT OF THOSE WITHIN THE
EMPIRE AND THOSE WHO LIVED AMONG BARBARIANS
It was inevitable that thoughtful observers should be
struck with the contrast between the habits and govern-
ment of the Romans and the customs of the various
barbarian peoples. Tacitus, the first to describe the
manners and institutions of the Germans with care, is
frequently tempted to compare them with those of the
Empire, often to the obvious disadvantage of the latter.1
We have two other notable comparisons of a much later
date : the first by a fervid Christian, the other by a judi-
cious writer, who was probably a pagan.
Salvian, a Christian priest, writing about 440, under-
took in his book Of God's Government to show that the
misfortunes of the time were only the divinely inflicted
punishments which the people of the Empire had brought
upon themselves by their wickedness and corruption.
He contends that the Romans, who had once been vir-
tuous and heroic, had lapsed into a degradation which
rendered them, in spite of their civilization and advan-
tages, far inferior to the untutored but sturdy barbarians.
In what respects can our customs be preferred to those
of the Goths and Vandals, or even compared with them ?
And first, to speak of affection and mutual charity (which,
our Lord teaches, is the chief virtue, saying, " By this shall
all men know that ye are my disciples, if ye have love one
to another"), almost all barbarians, at least those who are
of one race and kin, love each other, while the Romans per-
secute each other. For what citizen does not envy his fellow- .
citizen ? What citizen shows to his neighbor full charity ?
1 The very important little work of Tacitus on Germany, the Ger-
m&nia, has been published in Translations and Reprints, Vol. VI,
No. 3.
Western Europe before the Barbarian Invasions 29
[The Romans oppress each other with exactions] nay,
not each other : it would be quite tolerable, if each suf-
fered what he inflicted. It is worse than that ; for the
many are oppressed by the few, who regard public exactions
as their own peculiar right, who carry on private traffic under
the guise of collecting the taxes. And this is done not only
by nobles, but by men of lowest rank ; not by judges only,
but by judges' subordinates. For where is the city — even
the town or village — which has not as many tyrants as it
has curials ? . . . What place is there, therefore, as I have
said, where the substance of widows and orphans, nay even
of the saints, is not devoured by the chief citizens?
None but the great is secure from the devastations of
these plundering brigands, except those who are themselves
robbers.
[Nay, the state has fallen upon such evil days that a man why Roman
cannot be safe unless he is wicked] Even those in a position objects
to protest against the iniquity which they see about them ^^g^^
dare not speak lest they make matters worse than before, barbarians.
So the poor are despoiled, the widows sigh, the orphans are
oppressed, until many of them, born of families not obscure,
and liberally educated, flee to our enemies that they may no
longer suffer the oppression of public persecution. They
doubtless seek Roman humanity among the barbarians,
because they cannot bear barbarian inhumanity among the
Romans. And although they differ from the people to
whom they flee in manner and in language ; although they
are unlike as regards the fetid odor of the barbarians'
bodies and garments, yet they would rather endure a for-
eign civilization among the barbarians than cruel injustice
among the Romans.
So they migrate to the Goths, or to the Bagaudes, or to
some other tribe of the barbarians who are ruling every-
where, and do not regret their exile. For they would rather
live_/r<?<? under an appearance of slavery than live as captives
under an appearance of liberty. The name of Roman citi-
zen, once so highly esteemed and so dearly bought, is now
a thing that men repudiate and flee from. . . .
30 Readings in European History
It is urged that if we Romans are wicked and corrupt,
that the barbarians commit the same sins, and are not so
miserable as we. There is, however, this difference, that if
the barbarians commit the same crimes as we, yet we sin
more grievously. ... All the barbarians, as we have already
said, are pagans or heretics. The Saxon race is cruel, the
Franks are faithless, the Gepidae are inhuman, the Huns are
unchaste, — in short, there is vice in the life of all the bar-
barian peoples. But are their offenses as serious as ours ?
Is the un chastity of the Hun so criminal as ours ? Is the
faithlessness of the Frank so blameworthy as ours? Is
the intemperance of the Alemanni so base as the intemper-
ance of the Christians? Does the greed of the Alani so
merit condemnation as the greed of the Christians ? If the
Hun or the Gepid cheat, what is there to wonder at, since
he does not know that cheating is a crime ? If a Frank
perjures himself, does he do anything strange, he who
regards perjury as a way of speaking, not as a crime ?
9. Conver- About the time that Salvian was writing, the imperial
discus* government at Constantinople dispatched an embassy to
with a Attila, the king of the Huns. One of the imperial mes-
Greek living ^ . n - - . . .
among the sengers, Pnscus, has left a very interesting account of
barbarians j^js experiences. He tells, among other things, of a con-
versation that he had with a former inhabitant of the
Roman Empire who declared that life among the bar-
barians had many advantages. As Priscus was waiting
for his audience with Attila, he says :
A man whom, from his- Scythian dress, I took for a bar-
barian, came up and addressed me in Greek, with the word
" Hail ! " I was surprised at a Scythian l speaking Greek.
For the subjects of the Huns, swept together from various
lands, speak, beside their own barbarous tongue, either Hun-
nic or Gothic, or — as many as have commercial dealings
1 Prisons seems to use this term " Scythian " as almost synonymous
•with barbarian.
Western Europe before the Barbarian Invasions 3 1
with the western Romans — Latin ; but none of them speak
Greek readily, except captives from the Thracian or Illyrian
seacoast ; and these last are easily known to any stranger
by their torn garments and the squalor of their head, as
men who have met with a reverse. This man, on the con-
trary, resembled a well-to-do Scythian, being well dressed,
and having his hair cut in a circle after Scythian fashion.
Having returned his salutation, I asked him who he was
and whence he had come into a foreign land and adopted
Scythian life. When he asked me why I wanted to know,
I told him that his Hellenic speech had prompted my curi-
osity. Then he smiled and said that he was born a Greek
and had gone as a merchant to Viminacium, on the Danube,
where he had stayed a long time, and married a very rich
wife. But the city fell a prey to the barbarians, and he was
stripped of his prosperity, and on account of his riches was
allotted to Onegesius [a Hunnish leader] in the division of
the spoil, as it was the custom among the Scythians for the
chiefs to reserve for themselves the rich prisoners. Having
fought bravely against the Romans and the Acatiri, he had
paid the spoils he won to his master, and so obtained free-
dom. He then married a barbarian wife and had children,
and had the privilege of partaking at the table of Onegesius.
He considered his new life among the Scythians better
than his old life among the Romans, and the reasons he
urged were as follows : " After war the Scythians live at
leisure, enjoying what they have got, and not at all, or very
little, disturbed. The Romans, on the other hand, are in
the first place very liable to be killed, if there are any hos-
tilities, since they have to rest their hopes of protection <m
others, and are not allowed, by their tyrants, to use arms.
And those who do use them are injured by the cowardice o£
their generals, who cannot properly conduct wan
" But the condition of Roman subjects in time of peace is
far more grievous than the evils of war, for the exaction of
the taxes is very severe, and unprincipled men inflict injuries
on others because the laws are practically not valid against
all classes. A transgressor who belongs to the wealthy
Advantages
of living
among the
barbarians.
Readings in European History
Priscus
defends
the Roman
government.
classes is not punished for his injustice, while a poor man,
who does not understand business, undergoes the legal
penalty, — that is, if he does not depart this life before the
trial, so long is the course of lawsuits protracted, and so
much money is expended on them. The climax of misery
is to have to pay in order to obtain justice. For no one will
give a hearing to the injured man except he pay a sum of
money to the judge and the judge's clerks."
In reply to this attack on the empire, I asked him to be
good enough to listen with patience to the other side of the
question. " The creators of the Roman Republic," I said,
" who were wise and good men, in order to prevent things
from being done at haphazard, made one class of men
guardians of the laws, and appointed another class to the
profession of arms, who were to have no other object than
to be always ready for battle, and to go forth to war without
dread, as though to their ordinary exercise, having by prac-
tice exhausted all their fear beforehand. Others again were
assigned to attend to the cultivation of the ground, to sup-
port themselves and those who fight in their defense by
contributing the military corn supply. ... To those who
protect the interests of the litigants a sum of money is paid
by the latter, just as a payment is made by the farmers to
the soldiers. Is it not fair to support him who assists and
requite him for his kindness ? . . .
"Those who spend money on a suit and lose it in the end
cannot fairly put it down to anything but the injustice of
their case. And as to the long time spent on lawsuits, that
is due to anxiety for justice, that judges may not fail in
passing accurate judgments by having to give sentence
offhand; it is better that they should reflect, and conclude
the case more tardily, than that by judging in a hurry they
should both injure man and transgress against the Deity,
the institutor of justice. . . .
"The Romans treat their slaves better than the king of
the Scythians treats his subjects. They deal with them as
fathers or teachers, admonishing them to abstain from evil
and follow the lines of conduct which they have esteemed
Western Europe before the Barbarian Invasions 33
honorable ; they reprove them for their errors like their own
children. They are not allowed, like the Scythians, to inflict
death on their slaves. They have numerous ways of con-
ferring freedom ; they can manumit not only during life, but
also by their wills, and the testamentary wishes of a Roman
in regard to his property are law."
My interlocutor shed tears, and confessed that the laws
and constitution of the Romans were fair, but deplored that
the officials, not possessing the spirit of former generations,
were ruining the state.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
The books here mentioned are selected with a view to explaining A. Refer-
those conditions in the later Roman Empire some conception of which
is essential to an understanding of the Middle Ages. Almost all the
accounts of Roman society deal with the period of the later Republic
and the early Empire.1
Conditions upon the Eve of the Barbarian Invasions: For these
the best work in English is, DILL, Roman Society in the Last Century of
the Western Empire. See especially Book II, "Society of the West**;
Book III, " The Failure of the Administration and the Ruin of the
Middle Class as revealed in the Theodosian Code." See also BRYCE,
The Holy Roman Empire, Chapter II, " The RomjRi Empire before the
Invasions of the Barbarians."
Relations between Paganism and Christianity: DILL, Book I,
"The Tenacity of Paganism," and GIBBON, Chapter XXVIII (BURY'S
edition, Vol. Ill, pp. 188-215), "The Final Destruction of Paganism."
Literature and the Text-Books which the Middle Ages inherited
from the Later Empire: DILL, Book V, "Characteristics of Roman
Education and Culture in the Fifth Century." See also references
to Taylor, in section B, below.
Economic Conditions: CUNNINGHAM, Western Civilization, Vol. I,
Book III, Chapter III, u The Roman Empire."
BURY, A History of the Later Roman Empire, A .D. 395-800, Book I, B. Add*
Chapters III-IV, " The Elements of Disintegration within the Roman
Empire" and ** The Administration of the Empire."
1 The most notable of these is Friedlander, Darstellungen aus der Sitten-
geschichU Roms in. der Zett von Augustus bis zum Ausgang der
2 vols., 7th ed., Leipzig, 1901.
34 Readings in European History
For the religious conditions : HATCH, The Influence of Greek Thought
upon the Christian Church; REN AN, The Influence of Rome on the Devel-
opment of the Catholic Church ; FARRAR, Seekers after God, for the
teachings of Seneca, Epictetus, and Marcus Aurelius ; BURY, Book I,
Chapters I-II, " Christianity and Paganism " and " The Influence of
Christianity on Society "; LECKY, History of European Morals from
Augustus to Charlemagne, Vol. II, Chapter IV (opening) ; TAYLOR, Classi-
cal Heritage of the Middle Ages, Chapter II, gives an admirable account
of the passing of the antique man into the mediaeval man.
For the general intellectual and moral transition, see, above all,
TAYLOR, Chapters II I- V, " Phases of Pagan Decadence," " The Antique
Culture," and " Pagan Elements Christianized in Transmission.'* The
bibliographical notes at the end of Taylor's volume are very full and
useful in this field. See also GLOVER, Life and Letters in the Fourth
Century, Cambridge, England, 1901.
C. Materials A remarkable account of the general conditions, especially in Gaul,
f&r advanced immediately preceding the barbarian invasions maybe found in FUSTEL
DE CouLANGES, Histoire des institutions de Vancienne France (Paris,
1891), Vol. II, «• L'invasion germanique," pp. 1-244. Histoire de France
depuis les origines jusqifa la Revolution, edited by LAVISSE, Vol. I,
Part II, also describes Gaul under the Roman Empire. A shorter account
is given in LAVISSE ET RAMBAUD, Histoire Generate, Vol. I, Chapter I,
" Le Monde remain* For the religious situation : BOISSIER, La Fin du
paganism, 2 vols., Paris, 1891, and MARTHA, Les Moralists sous r empire
romain, Paris, 1894.
A clear and most excellent analysis of the literary works in the West
from the third centary to the time of Charlemagne may be found in
Vol. I of EBERT, Allgemeine Geschichte der Literatur des Mittelalters im
Abtndlande, 3 vols., Leipzig, 1880-1889. There is a French translation
of this admirable work, Histoire gtnlrale de la literature du moyen &ge>
Paris, 1883-1889,
For the economic conditions, see, especially, LEVASSEUR, Histoire des
classes owrtires want iffy (2 vols., 2d ed., Paris, 1901, 25 fr.),
Boole I, especially Chapter III, on slaves and the villa,
References for the highly important history of the law will be found
at tfee enjd of Chapter III; those for the development of the Christian
Ch*rc& oader the Roman Emnire, at the close of Chapter IV.
CHAPTER III
THE GERMAN INVASIONS AND THE BREAK-UP OF THE
ROMAN EMPIRE
I. THE MOVEMENTS OF THE HUNS FORCE THE WEST GOTHS
ACROSS THE DANUBE INTO THE ROMAN EMPIRE, A.D. 376
The retired soldier, Ammianus Marcellinus, writing
not more than ten or fifteen years after the battle of
Adrian ople, thus describes the Huns and the passage
of the Goths into the Empire.
The people called Huns, barely mentioned in ancient
records, live beyond the sea of Azof, on the border of the
Frozen Ocean, and are a race savage beyond all parallel.
At the very moment of birth the cheeks of their infant
children are deeply marked by an iron, in order that the
hair, instead of growing at the proper season on their faces,
may be hindered by the scars ; accordingly the Huns grow
up without beards, and without any beauty. They all have
closely knit and strong limbs and plump necks ; they are of
great size, and low legged, so that you might fancy them
two-legged beasts, or the stout figures which are hewn out
in a rude manner with an ax on the posts at the end of
bridges.
They are certainly in the shape of men, however uncouth,
and are so hardy that they neither require fire nor well fla-
vored food, but live on the roots of such herbs as they get
in the fields, or on the half-raw flesh of any animal, which
they merely warm rapidly by placing it between their own
thighs and the backs of their horses.
They never shelter themselves under roofed houses, but
avoid them, as people ordinarily avoid sepulchers as things
35
10. Descrip-
tion by
Kaicelliatis
of the HUBS
and of the
movements
of the Goths,
Readings in European History
The Goths
decide to
cross the
Danube.
not fit for common use. Nor is there even to be found
among them a cabin thatched with reeds ; but they wander
about, roaming over the mountains and the woods, and
accustom themselves to bear frost and hunger and thirst
from their very cradles. . . .
There is not a person in the whole nation who cannot
remain on his horse day and night. On horseback they
buy and sell, they take their meat and drink, and there
they recline on the narrow neck of their steed, and yield to
sleep so deep as to indulge in every variety of dream.
And when any deliberation is to take place on any weighty
matter, they all hold their common council on horseback.
They are not under kingly authority,1 but are contented with
the irregular government of their chiefs, and under their
lead they force their way through all obstacles. . . .
None of them plow, or even touch a plow handle, for they
have no settled abode, but are homeless and lawless, perpet-
ually wandering with their wagons, which they make their
homes ; in fact, they seem to be people always in flight. . . .
This active and indomitable race, being excited by an
unrestrained desire of plundering the possessions of others,
went on ravaging and slaughtering all the nations in their
neighborhood till they reached the Alani. . . .
[After having harassed the territory of the Alani and
having slain many of them and acquired much plunder, the
Huns made a treaty of friendship and alliance with those
who survived. The allies then attacked the German peoples
to the west] In the meantime a report spread far and wide
through the nations of the Goths, that a race of men, hitherto
unknown, had suddenly descended like a whirlwind from the
lofty mountains, as if they had risen from some secret recess
of the earth, and were ravaging and destroying everything
which came in their way.
And then the greater part of the population resolved to flee
and to seek a home remote from all knowledge of the new
1 The Huns in AttHays time had a king and appear to have lived in
bouses aad huts. See account given by Priscus below, pp. 46 sqq.
The Gentian Invasions
37
News of the
ioo¥€ incuts
of the Goths
reaches the
barbarians; and after long deliberation as to where to fix
their abode, they resolved that a retreat into Thrace was the
most suitable for these two reasons : first of all, because it is
a district most fertile in grass ; and secondly, because, owing
to the great breadth of the Danube, it is wholly separated
from the districts exposed to the impending attacks of the
invaders.
Accordingly, under the command of their leader Alavivus,
they occupied the banks of the Danube, and sent ambassa-
dors to the emperor Valens, humbly entreating to be received
by him as his subjects. They promised to live quietly, and
to furnish a body of auxiliary troops if necessary.
While these events were taking place abroad, the terrify-
ing rumor reached us that the tribes of the north were
planning new and unprecedented attacks upon us ; and that
over the whole region which extends from the country of Roman go*-
the Marcomanni and Quadi to Pontus, hosts of barbarians enunent
composed of various nations, which had suddenly been
driven by force from their own countries, were now, with
all their families, wandering about in different directions on
the banks of the river Danube.
At first this intelligence was lightly treated by our people,
because they were not in the habit of hearing of any wars
in those remote districts till they were terminated either by
victory or by treaty.
But presently the belief in these occurrences grew stronger
and was confirmed by the arrival of ambassadors, who, with
prayers and earnest entreaties, begged that their people, thus
driven from their homes and now encamped on the other
side of the river, might be kindly received by us.
The affair now seemed a cause of joy rather than of fear,
according to the skillful flatterers who were always extolling
and exaggerating the good fortune of the emperor. They
congratulated him that an embassy had come from the
farthest corners of the earth, unexpectedly offering him a
large body of recruits ; and that, by combining the strength
of his own people with these foreign forces, he would have an
army absolutely invincible. They observed further that the
Readings in European History
WithValens1
permission
great num-
bers of Goths
pour into
the Empire.
The Goths
are misused
by the
payment for military reinforcements, which came in every
year from the provinces, might now be saved and accumu-
lated in his coffers and form a vast treasure of gold.
Full of this hope, he sent forth several officers to bring
this ferocious people and their carts into our territory. And
such great pains were taken to gratify this nation which was
destined to overthrow the Empire of Rome, that not one
was left behind, not even of those who were stricken with
mortal disease. Moreover, so soon as they had obtained
permission of the emperor to cross the Danube and to culti-
vate some districts in Thrace, they poured across the stream
day and night, without ceasing, embarking in troops on
board ships and rafts and on canoes made of the hollow
trunks of trees. . . .
In this way, through the turbulent zeal of violent people,
the ruin of the Roman Empire was brought about. This, at
all events, is neither obscure nor uncertain, that the unhappy
officers who were intrusted with the charge of conducting
the multitude of the barbarians across the river, though they
repeatedly endeavored to calculate their numbers, at last
abandoned the attempt as hopeless. The man who would
wish to ascertain the number might as well (as the most
illustrious of poets says) attempt to count the waves in
the African sea, or the grains of sand tossed about by the
zephyrs. . . .
At that period, moreover, the defenses of our provinces
were much exposed, and the armies of barbarians spread
over them like the lava of Mount Etna. The imminence
of our danger manifestly called for generals already illus-
trious for their past achievements in war ; but nevertheless, as
if some unpropitious deity had made the selection, the men
who were sought out for the chief military appointments
were of tainted character. The chief among them were
Lupicinus and Maximus, — the one being count of Thrace,
the other a leader notoriously wicked, — both men of great
igooraace and rashness.
:, Jtod tfeeir treacherous oovetousness was the cause of all
oar disasters. „ . . For when the barbarians who had been
The German Invasiojis
39
conducted across the river were in great distress from want
of provisions, those detested generals conceived the idea of a
most disgraceful traffic $ and having collected dogs from all
quarters with the most insatiable rapacity, they exchanged
them for an equal number of slaves, among whom were
several sons of men of noble birth. . . .
After narrating the events which led up to the battle
of Adrianople, and vividly describing the battle itself,
Ammianus thus records the death of the emperor Valens:
So now, with rage flashing in their eyes, the barbarians Battfeof
pursued our men, who were in a state of torpor, the warmth
of their veins having Heserted them. Many were slain with-
out knowing who smote them ; some were overwhelmed by
the mere weight of the crowd which pressed upon them;
and some died of wounds inflicted by their own comrades.
The barbarians spared neither those who yielded nor those
who resisted. . . .
Just when it first became dark, the emperor, being among
a crowd of common soldiers as it was believed, — for no
one said either that he had seen him or been near him, —
was mortally wounded with an arrow, and, very shortly after,
died, though his body was never found. For as some of
the enemy loitered for a long time about the field in order
to plunder the dead, none of the defeated army or of the
inhabitants ventured to go to them.
II. How THE WEST GOTHS BECAME ARIAN CHRISTIANS;
HOW ALARIC TOOK ROME IN 410
The following account is by Jordanes,^ himself a Goth, 11. j«a»a
but unlike most of his people not an Arian, but an ortho-
dox Christian. He wrote about 551, nearly a century
and a half after the events which he here narrates :
The West Goths [terrified by the victories of the Huns ity.
over the East Goths] requested Emperor Valens to grant
4<D Readings in European History
them a portion of Thrace or Moesia south of the Danube
in which to settle. They promised to obey his laws and
commands and, in order still further to gain his confidence,
they engaged to become Christians if only the emperor
would send to them teachers who knew their language.
When Valens heard this he readily agreed to a plan which
he might himself have proposed. He received the Goths
into Moesia and erected them, so to speak, into a sort of
rampart to protect his empire against the other tribes.
Now, since Valens was infected with the heresy of the
Arians and had closed all the churches which belonged to
our party [i.e. the orthodox], he sent the Goths preachers
of his own infection. These missionaries poured out for
the newcomers, who were inexperienced and ignorant, the
poison of their own false faith. So the West Goths were
made Arians rather than Christians by Emperor Valens.
Moreover, in their enthusiasm they converted their kinsmen,
the East Goths and the Gepidae, and taught them to respect
this heresy. They invited all nations of their own tongue
everywhere to adopt the creed of this sect.
We have seen how, according to Ammianus Marcel-
linus, the forces of the emperor maltreated the poor
Goths and drove them to revolt.
When news of this reached the emperor Valens at
Antioch, he hastened with an army into Thrace. Here it
came to a miserable battle in which the Goths conquered.
The emperor fled to a peasant's hut not far from Adrianople.
The Goths, according to the custom of the raging enemy,
set fire to the buildings, having no idea that there was an
emperor hidden in the little hut, and so he was consumed
in his kingly pomp.1 This was in accordance with God's
1Zosimas, a pagan historian, probably of the fifth century, also
reports that Valens perished in a hamlet which had been set on fire
bytibe enemy. Jordanes* tone in speaking of the death of Valens is but
<*fce^ tfee fiKwiy indications of the bitterness of feeling with which the
€a*beik ChxisBans viewed the Arians,
The German Invasions
judgment that he should be burned with fire by them, since
when they asked for the true faith he misled them with
false teaching and changed for them the fire of love into the
fire of hell.
After the great and glorious victory, the West Goths set
themselves to cultivate Thrace and the Dacian river valley
as if it were their native soil of which they had just gained
possession.
[There they remained, hostile to the Empire, and a per-
petual menace. Finally Theodosius the Great, the brave
and stern, the wise and liberal, ended the war between the
Goths and the Romans by a treaty. By his presents and
his friendly bearing, he won the friendship of Athanaric,
king of the West Goths, and invited him to go to Constanti-
nople.]
When the West Goth entered the royal city he was
astounded. " Now I see what I have often heard without
believing — the glory of this great city/' Looking here and
there, he admired the site of the city, and the number of
ships, and the magnificent walls. He saw people of many
nations, like a stream flowing from different sources into
one fountain. He marveled at the martial array of the
soldiers and exclaimed, "Doubtless the emperor is a god
of this earth, and whoever has raised his hand against him
is guilty of his own blood."
A few months later, Athanaric, upon whom the emperor
heaped his favors, departed from this world, and the emperor,
because of his affection for Athanaric, honored him almost
more in death than he had done in life, gave him worthy
burial, and was himself present beside the bier at the funeral.
After the death of Athanaric, all his army remained in
the service of the emperor Theodosius, submitted to the
Roman power, and formed, as it were, one body with its
soldiers. They resembled the allies whom Constantine had
had, who were called FocdtratL
After Theodosius, who cherished both peace and the
Gothic people, had departed this life, his sons [Honorius
and Arcadius], through their lives of indulgence, began to
The king of
the West
Goths visits
Constanti-
nople.
Alaric leads
the West
Gofosiatoo
Italy,
42 Readings in European History
L.
bring ruin down upon their empires and withdrew from their
allies, the Goths, the accustomed gifts. The Goths soon
grew disgusted with the emperors, and since they were fear-
ful lest their bravery in war should decline by too long a
period of peace, they made Alaric their king. ... So,
since the said Alaric was chosen king, he took counsel with
his fellows and declared to them that it was preferable to
conquer a kingdom through one's own force rather than to
live in peace under the yoke of strangers.
He thereupon took his army and advanced, during the
consulate of Stilicho and Aurelianus, through Pannonia and
Sirmium into Italy. This country was so completely deprived
of forces that Alaric approached without opposition to the
bridge over the Candiano, three miles from the imperial city
of Ravenna. . . .
The Goths sent messengers to the emperor Honorius,
who was at Ravenna, requesting that they might be per-
mitted to settle quietly in Italy. Should they be allowed to
do this, they would live as one people with the Romans ; other-
wise they would try which people could expel the other,
the victor to remain in control. But the emperor Honorius,
fearing both suggestions, "took counsel with his senate how
they might rid Italy of the Goths. He at last concluded to
assign the distant provinces of Gaul and Spain to the West
incorrect Goths.1 He had, indeed, already nearly lost these districts,
for they had been devastated by an incursion of Genseric,
king of the Vandals. If Alaric and his people could succeed
in conquering the region, they might have it as their home.
[The Goths agreed to this, but on their way thither were
treacherously attacked by Stilicho, the emperor's father-in-
law (402). The Goths, however, -held their own in the battle
1 The brief account which Jordan es here gives of the eight or ten
years that Alaric spent in northern Italy before finally marching upon
Rome is probably incorrect. Historians naturally prefer to rely upon
tfee pagan historian Zosimus, who probably lived a generation or two
eaz&et ttsaa Jordanes and who gives a very detailed account of the
mcmsneatsof tfee West Goths. He says nothing of the emperor's offer-
ing GaaL and Spain to the barbarians-
The German Invasioiis
43
which followed. They turned back, full of wrath, towards
Italy, and wasted the northern part of the peninsula during
the following years ; then moved south into Tuscany.]
Finally they entered the city of Rome and sacked it at
Alaric's command. They did not, however, set fire to the
city, as is the custom of the wild peoples, and would not
permit that any of the holy places should be desecrated.
They then proceeded in'to Campania and Lucania, which
they likewise plundered, and came then to Britii. . . .
Alaric, the king of the West Goths, also brought hither
the treasures of all Italy which he had won by plunder, and
determined to cross from here over to Sicily and thence to
Africa, which would offer him a final abode. But a number
of his ships were swallowed up by that fearful sea, and
many were Injured ; for man is unable to carry out his wishes
when they are opposed to God's will.
While Alaric, discouraged by this misfortune, was con-
sidering what he should do, he was struck down by an early
death and departed this world. His followers mourned the
loss of him they had so dearly loved. They diverted the
river Busento from its ordinary bed near the town of Con-
sentia — this river, it may be added, brings salubrious
water from the foot of the mountains to the town — and
had a grave dug by captives in the middle of the channel.
Here they buried Alaric, together with many precious
objects. Then they permitted the water to return once
more to its old bed. Moreover, in order that the place
might never be found, they killed all those who had helped
dig the grave.
The Goths transferred the rule to Atavulf, a relative of
Alaric's, and a man of fine figure and lofty spirit, who, although
he was not distinguished for his size, was remarkable for
his figure and face. When Atavulf had assumed the rule
he turned back again to Rome, and what had been left there
from the first sack was now swept clean away, as a field
might be devastated by grasshoppers. He robbed not only
individuals of their wealth in Italy, but he also took that
of the state, and Emperor Honorius was able in no way
Sack erf
Rome by
the West
Goths, 410.
Jordanes
telk of the
death and
burial of
Alaric.
44
Readings in European History
12. St.
tements
tion wrought
by tte bar-
barians.
to restrain him.1 He even led away prisoner from Rome
Placidia, the sister of Honorius, and daughter of Emperor
Theodosius by his second wife.
[Later he married Placidia and strengthened the Gothic
cause by this royal alliance. He then moved on to Gaul,
where he engaged in a struggle with the other barbarians.]
The deep impression which the influx of barbarians
and t'ie SaC'C °* R°me ma^e uP°n One °* t'ie most ^s"
tinguished scholars of the time is apparent from several
passages in the writings of St. Jerome (d. A.D. 420).
Nations innumerable and most savage have invaded all
Gaul. The whole region between the Alps and the Pyre-
nees, the ocean and the Rhine4 has been devastated by the
Quadi, the Vandals, the Sarmati, the Alani, the Gepidae,
the hostile Heruli, the Saxons, the Burgundians, the Ale-
manni and the Pannonians. O wretched Empire ! Mayence,
formerly so noble a city, has been taken and ruined, and in
the church many thousands of men have been massacred.-
Worms has been destroyed after a long siege. Rheims, that
powerful city, Amiens, Arras, Speyer, Strasburg,2 — all have
seen their citizens led away captive into Germany. Aquitaine
and the provinces of Lyons and Narbonne, all save a few
towns, have been depopulated; and these the sword threatens
without, while hunger ravages within. I cannot speak witlj-
out tears of Toulouse, which the merits of the holy Bishop
Exuperius have prevailed so far to save from destruction.
Spain, even, is in daily terror lest it perish, remembering the
invasion of the Cimbri ; and whatsoever the other provinces
have suffered once, they continue to suffer in their fear.
* This alleged second sack of Rome is probably a gross exaggeration,
as will appear below. Jordanes is our sole authority for the strange
burial of Alaric, and there is no particular reason to suppose that he is
any nearer the truth in this matter than in the many instances where he
can be shown to be in contradiction with more trustworthy writers.
* Tfee names of modern cities here used are not in all cases exact
equivalents for the regions mentioned by Jerome.
The German Invasions
45
I will keep silence concerning the rest, lest I seem to
despair of the mercy of God. For a long time, from the
Black Sea to the Julian Alps, those things which are ours
have not been ours ; and for thirty years, since the Danube
boundary was broken, war has been waged in the very midst
of the Roman Empire. Our tears are dried by old age.
Except a few old men, all were born in captivity and siege,
and do not desire the liberty they never knew. Who could
believe this? How could the whole tale be worthily told?
How Rome has fought within her own bosom not for glory,
but for preservation — nay, how she has not even fought,
but with gold and all her precious things has ransomed
her life
Who could believe [Jerome exclaims in another passage]
that Rome, built upon .the conquest of the whole world,
would fall to the ground? that the mother herself would
become the tomb of her peoples? that all the regions of
the East, of Africa and Egypt, once ruled by the queenly
city, would be filled with troops of slaves and handmaidens ?
that to-day holy Bethlehem should shelter men and women
of noble birth, who once abounded in wealth and are now
beggars ?
In regard to the conflicting impressions which we
'derive from the writers of the time, Mr. Dill in his Roman
Society makes the following sensible observations:
It is probable that the slaughter and material damage
inflicted by Alaric have been exaggerated. The ancient
authorities give very different accounts of the marten
According to some, there was wholesale massacre, and sena-
tors were tortured and put to death in large numbers ; the
city was ravaged with fire, and most of the great works of
art were destroyed. On the other hand, Orosius,1 writing
only a few years after the sack, states that, while some
buildings were burned down, Alaric gave orders to his sol-
diers to content themselves with plunder and to abstain
i See below, p. 58.
13. DiH's
criticism
of our isfeff-
matiaera
regard ta
tfcesacfc
of Rome.
46 Readings in European History
from bloodshed. Jordanes even asserts that the Goths did
not set fire to any buildings, and that by Alaric's command
they confined themselves to pillage. The probabilities of the
case are all in favour of the less tragic view of the catas-
trophe. The three days, during which the Goths remained
within the walls, were short enough for the collection of
the enormous spoil which Alaric carried off in his southward
march. . . . Even if Alaric had not been restrained by
policy from a wholesale and wanton destruction of great
masterpieces of art, his Goths could not have wrought such
havoc in so short a time.
Rubhus But the most convincing argument is derived from the
Namatianus, poem of Rutilius Namatianus, who, as he r^ids a reluctant
Lrty fifth*1"5 farewell [six years after Rome's sack by Alaric] to the city
century, says which he regards with a passionate love and reverence, sees
°£*jng of only the crowded monuments of her glory, and has his eyes
tionoTRome dazzled by the radiance of her glittering fanes. . . . The
by the Goths, temples of the gods are still standing in their dazzling radi-
ance under the serene Italian sky. The cheers of the spec-
tators in the circus reach his ears as his ship still lingers
in the Tiber. He feels a passionate regret at quitting " this
fair queen of the world," so mighty, so merciful, so bounte-
ous, whose visible splendour is only the faint symbol of her
worldwide and godlike sway. Certainly there is here no
querulous and faint-hearted lamentation over a crushing and
appalling disaster. The troubles of the time, referred to in
a few vague phrases, are treated as merely vicissitudes of
fortune, such as Rome has known before, and from which
she has always risen with renewed vitality.
III. ATTILA AND THE HUNS
14. PriacTia A description has already been given of the Huns
when they first drove the Goths into the Empire.1
Seventy years after the battle of Adrianople, Priscus,2
ita$. wfeo actually visited the Huns and conversed with Attila,
1 See above, pp. 35 sff. *See above, p. 30.
The German 'Invasions 47
received a very different impression of the people from
that given by Ammianus Marcellinus. We may how-
ever infer that the Huns had been a good deal changed
by their contact with the European peoples.
Priscus and a companion, Maxim, were sent by the Ro-
man government with messages to Attila in 448. Priscus
first tells of their long journey from Constantinople to
Scythia, the territory then occupied by the Huns north
of the lower Danube. After some difficulty the mes-
sengers obtained a first interview with Attila. Then, as
the king of the Huns was about to move northward, he
and his companion determined to follow him. After de-
scribing the incidents of their journey and their arrival
at a large village, Priscus continues:
Attila's residence, which was situated here, was said to Attila's fine
be more splendid than his houses in other places. It was house-
made of polished boards, and surrounded with wooden
inclosures, designed not so much for protection as for
appearance* sake. The house of the chieftain Onegesius
was second only to the king's in splendor and was also
encircled with a wooden inclosure, but it was not adorned
with towers like that of the king. Not far from the inclos-
ure was a large bath built by Onegesius, who was the second
in power among the Scythians. The stones for this bath
had been brought from Pannonia, for the barbarians in this
district had no stones or trees, but used imported material
The next day I entered the inclosure of Attila's palace,
bearing gifts to his wife, whose name was Kreka, She had
three sons, of whom the eldest governed the Acatiri and the
other nations who dwell in Pontic Scythia. Within the
inclosures were numerous buildings, some of carved boards
beautifully fitted together, others of straight planed beams,
without carving, fastened on round wooden blocks which
rose to a moderate height from the ground. Attila's wife
lived here ; and, having been admitted by the barbarians at
48 Readings in European History
the door, I found her reclining on a soft couch. The floor
of the room was covered with woolen mats for walking on.
A number of servants stood round her, and maids sitting
on the floor in front of her embroidered with colors linen
cloths intended to be placed over the Scythian dress for
'ornament. Having approached, saluted her, and presented
the gifts, I went out and walked to the other houses, where
Attila was, and waited for Onegesius, who, as I knew, was
with Attila. . . .
I saw a number of people advancing, and a great com-
motion and noise, Attila' s egress being expected. And he
came forth from the house with a dignified strut, looking
round on this side and on that. He was accompanied by
Onegesius, and stood in front of the house ; and many
persons who had lawsuits with one another came up and
received his judgment. Then he returned into the house
and received ambassadors of barbarous peoples. . . .
A banquet at [We were invited to a banquet with Attila at three
Attila's. o'clock.] When the hour arrived we went to the palace,
along with the embassy from the western Romans, and
stood on the threshold of the hall in the presence of Attila.
The cupbearers gave us a cup, according to the national
custom, that we might pray before we sat down. Having
tasted the cup, we proceeded to take our seats, all the
chairs being ranged along the walls of the room on either
side. Attila sat in the middle on a couch ; a second couch
was set behind him, and from it steps led up to his bed,
which was covered with linen sheets and wrought coverlets
for ornament, such as Greeks and Romans used to deck
bridal beds. The places on the right of Attila were held
chief in honor ; those on the left, where we sat, were only
second. . . .
[First the king and his guests pledged one another with
the wine.] When this ceremony was over the cupbearers
retired, and tables, large enough for three or four, or even
more, to sit at, were placed next the table of Attila, so that
eadi could take of the food on the dishes without leaving
its seat Tbe attendant of Attila first entered with a dish
The German Invasions
49
full of meat, and behind him came the other attendants
with bread and viands, which they laid on the tables. A
luxurious meal, served on silver plate, had been made ready
for us and the barbarian guests, but Attila ate nothing but
meat on a wooden trencher. In everything else, too, he
showed himself temperate ; his cup was of wood, while to the
guests were given goblets of gold and silver. His dress, too,
was quite simple, affecting only to be clean. The sword he
carried at his side, the latchets of his Scythian shoes, the
bridle of his horse were not adorned, like those of the other
Scythians, with gold or gems or anything costly.
When the viands of the first course had been consumed,
we all stood up, and did not resume our seats until each one,
in the order before observed, drank to the health of Attila in
the goblet of wine presented to him. We then sat down,
and a second dish was placed on each table with eatables
of another kind. After this course the same ceremony was
observed as after the first. When evening fell torches were
lit, and two barbarians coming forward in front of Attila
sang songs they had composed, celebrating his victories and
deeds of valor in war.
IV. How POPE LEO THE GREAT SAVED ROME FROM
ATTILA
Prosper, a Christian chronicler, writing about' 455,
gives the following simple account of Leo's famous inter-
view with the king of the Huns three years before :
Now Attila, having once more collected his forces which 15. Pn»-
had been scattered in Gaul [at the battle of Chalons], took ^^"^
his way through Pannonia into Italy. ... To the emperor meeting af
and the senate and Roman people none of all the proposed keo tfee
plans to oppose the enemy seemed so practicable as to send ^ttaatS*)
legates to the most savage king and beg for peace. Our most
blessed Pope Leo — trusting in the help of God, who never
fe^ls the righteous in their trials — undertook the task, accom-
panied by Avienus, a man of consular rank, and the prefect
Readings in European History
16. Later
account of
Leo's inter-
mention.
(Somewhat
condensed.)
Trygetius. And the outcome was what his faith had fore-
seen ; for when the king had received the embassy, he was
so impressed by the presence of the high priest that he
ordered his army to give up warfare and, after he had
promised peace, he departed beyond the Danube.
In a life of Leo the Great by some later author, whose
name is unknown to us, the episode as told by Prosper
has been developed into a miraculous tale calculated to
meet the taste of the time :
Attila, the leader of the Huns, who was called the scourge
of God, came into Italy, inflamed with fury, after he had
laid waste with most savage frenzy Thrace and Illyricum,
Macedonia and Moesia, Achaia and Greece, Pannonia and
Germany. He was utterly cruel in inflicting torture, greedy
in plundering, insolent in abuse. ... He destroyed Aquileia
from the foundations and razed to the ground those regal
cities, Pavia and Milan ; he laid waste many other towns,1
and was rushing down upon Rome.
Then Leo had compassion on the calamity of Italy and
Rome, and with one of the consuls and a large part of the
Roman senate he went to meet Attila. The old man of
harmless simplicity, venerable in his gray hair and his
majestic garb, ready of his own will to give himself entirely
for the defense of his flock, went forth to meet the tyrant
who was destroying all things. He met Attila, it is said,
in the neighborhood of the river Mincio, and he spoke to the
grim monarch, saying: " The senate and the people of Rome,
once conquerors of the world, now indeed vanquished, come
before thee as suppliants. We pray for mercy and deliver-
ance. O Attila, thou king of kings, thou couldst have no
greater glory than to see suppliant at thy feet this people
before whom once all peoples and kings lay suppliant. Thou
hast subdued, O Attila, the whole circle of the lands which
it was granted to the Romans, victors over all peoples, to
1 Tlas is, of course, an exaggeration. Attila does not seem to have
destroyed the buildings, even in Milan and Pavia,
The German Invasions 51
conquer. Now we pray that thou, who hast conquered others,
shouldst conquer thyself. The people have felt thy scourge;
now as suppliants they would feel thy mercy."
As Leo said these things Attila stood looking upon his
venerable garb and aspect, silent, as if thinking deeply.
And lo, suddenly there were seen the apostles Peter and
Paul, clad like bishops, standing by Leo, the one on the right
hand, the other on the left. They held swords stretched out
over his head, and threatened Attila with death if he did not
obey the pope's command. Wherefore Attila was appeased
by Leo's intercession, — he who had raged as one mad. He
straightway promised a lasting peace and withdrew beyond
the Danube.
V. CLOVIS AND THE FRANKS
The history of the Franks was written about a cen- n. Gregory
tury after the time of Clovis by Gregory, bishop of Tours.
The following extracts give some notion of this valuable Mstoryof
source, upon which a great part of our knowledge of the
Merovingian period rests l :
At this time [A.D. 486] the army of Clovis pillaged many The incident
churches, for he was still sunk in the errors of idolatry. The of thfi. vase
soldiers had borne away from a church, with all the other * 1SSOnS*
ornaments of the holy ministry, a vase of marvelous size
and beauty. The bishop of this church sent messengers to
the king, begging that if the church might not recover any
other of the holy vessels, at least this one might be restored.
The king, hearing these things, replied to the messenger:
" Follow thou us to Soissons, for there all things that have
been acquired are to be divided. If the lot shall give me
this vase, I will do what the bishop desires."
When he had reached Soissons, and all the booty had
been placed in the midst of the army, the king pointed to
this vase, and said : " I ask you, O most valiant warriors,
not to refuse to me the vase in addition to my rightful part"
1 See below, p. 60.
5 2 Readings in European History
Those of discerning mind among his men answered, " O
glorious king, all things which we see are thine, and we our-
selves are subject to thy power ; now do what seems pleasing
to thee, for none is strong enough to resist thee." When
they had thus spoken one of the soldiers, impetuous, envious,
and vain, raised his battle-ax aloft and crushed the vase
with it, crying, " Thou shalt receive nothing of this unless a
just lot give it to thee." At this all were stupefied.
The king bore his injury with the calmness of patience,
and when he had received the crushed vase he gave it to the
bishop's messenger; but he cherished a hidden wound in his
breast. When a year had passed he ordered the whole army
to come fully equipped to the Campus Martius and show their
arms in brilliant array. But when he had reviewed them all
he came to the breaker of the vase, and said to him, " No
one bears his arms so clumsily as thou ; for neither thy spear,
nor thy sword, nor thy ax is ready for use." And seizing his
ax, he cast it on the ground. And when the soldier had bent
a little to pick it up the king raised his hands and crushed
his head with his own ax. " Thus," he said, " didst thou to
the vase at Soissons."
The conver- [Clovis took to wife Clotilde, daughter of the king of the
sionofCtovis Burgundians. Now Clotilde was a Christian. When her
first son was born] she wished to consecrate him by bap-
tism, and begged her husband unceasingly, saying, "The
gods whom thou honorest are nothing; they cannot help
themselves nor others; for they are carved from stone, or
from wood, or from some metal. The names which you have
given them were of men, not of gods, — like Saturn, who is
said to have escaped by flight, to avoid being deprived of
his power by his son ; and like Jupiter himself, foul perpe-
trator of all uncleanness. . . . What power have Mars and
Mercury ever had? .They are endowed with magical arts
rather than divine power.
"The God who should be worshiped is he who by his
word created from nothingness the heavens and the earth,
tfee sea and all that in them is ; he who made the sun to
The German Invasions 53
shine and adorned the sky with stars ; who filled the waters
with creeping things, the land with animals, the air with
winged creatures ; by whose bounty the earth is glad with
crops, the trees with fruit, the vines with grapes; by
whose hand the human race was created ; whose bounty
has ordained that all things should give homage and service
to man, whom he created."
But when the queen had said these things, the mind of
Clovis was not stirred to believe. He answered: " By the
will of our gods all things are created and produced. Evi-
dently your god can do nothing, and it is not even proved
that he belongs to the race of gods."
Meantime the faithful queen presented her son for bap-
tism. She had the church adorned with tapestry, seeking
to attract by this splendor him whom her exhortations had
not moved. But the child whom they called Ingomer, after
he had been born again through baptism, died in his white
baptismal robe. Then the king reproached the queen bit-
terly. " If the child had been consecrated in the name of
my gods he would be alive still. But now, because he is
baptized in the name of your god, he cannot live." . . .
After this another son was born to him, and called in
baptism Clodomir. He fell very ill. Then the king said :
" Because he, like his brother, was baptized in the name of
Christ, he must soon die." But his mother prayed, and by
God's will the child recovered.
The queen unceasingly urged the king to acknowledge
the true God, and forsake idols. But he could not in any
wise be brought to believe until a war broke out with the
Alemanni. Then he was by necessity compelled to confess
what he had before willfully denied.
It happened that the two armies were in battle, and
there was great slaughter. Clovis1 army was near to utter
destruction. He saw the danger ; his heart was stirred ; he
was moved to tears, and he raised his eyes to heaven, say-
ing : ** Jesus Christ, whom Clotilde declares to be the son
of the living God, who it is said givest aid to the oppressed,
and victory to those who put their hope in thee, I beseech the
54 Readings in European History
glory of thy aid. If thou shalt grant me victory over these
enemies and I test that power which people consecrated to
thy name say they have proved concerning thee, I will believe
in thee and be baptized in thy name. For I have called
upon my gods, but, as I have proved, they are far removed
from my aid. So I believe that they have no power, for
they do not succor those who serve them. Now I £all
upon thee, and I long to believe in thee — all the more that
I may escape my enemies."
When he had said these things, the Alemanni turned their
backs and began to flee. When they saw that their king
was killed, they submitted to the sway of Clovis, saying:
" We wish that no more people should perish. Now we
are thine/' When the king had forbidden further war, and
praised his soldiers, he told the queen how he had won the
victory by calling on the name of Christ.
Then the queen sent to the blessed Remigius, bishop of
the city of Rheims, praying him to bring to the king the
gospel of salvation. The priest, little by little and secretly,
led him to believe in the true God, maker of heaven and
earth, and to forsake idols, which could not help him nor
anybody else.
But the king said : " Willingly will I hear thee, O father ;
but one thing is in the way — that the people who follow me
are not content to leave their gods. I will go and speak to
them according to thy word."
When he came among them, the power of God went
before him, land before he had spoken all the people cried
out together: "We cast off mortal gods, O righteous king,
and we are ready to follow the God whom Remigius tells us
is immortal,"
These things were told to the bishop. He was filled
with joy, and ordered the font to be prepared. The streets
were shaded with embroidered hangings ; the churches were
adorned with white tapestries, the baptistery was set in
order, the odor of balsam spread around, candles gleamed,
all tl*e temple of the baptistery was filled with divine
... Tihen th** Irincr r-rfc-nf^ccprl f-K** C±r\A ^m-nii-w-vtia.*-**- ;*-»
The German Invasions. .55
the Trinity, and was baptized in the name of the Father,
and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, and was anointed
with the sacred chrism with the sign of the cross of Christ.
Of his army there were baptized more than three thousand.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
General Accounts: ADAMS, Civilisation during the Middle Ages* A. Refer
pp. 65-88 and 137-146; BRYCE, Holy Roman Empire* Chapter III, ences.
pp. 1 4-33 j HENDERSON, Germany in the Middle Ages, pp. 15-40; DILL,
Roman Society, Book IV, Chapter I, pp. 285-302, " The General Char-
acter of the Invasions " ; Chapter II, pp. 303-345, " Roman Feeling about
the Invasions"; Chapter III, pp. 342-382, "Relations of the Romans
with the Invaders."
The West Goths : EMEB.TON, Introduction to the Middle Ages*
Chapter III, pp. 22-34; GIBBON, Decline and Fall of the Roman
Empire (BURY'S edition), Vol. Ill, Chapter XXVI, pp. 69-132, " Cross-
ing of the Eastern Frontier and Battle of Adrianople"; Vol. Ill, Chap-
ters XXX-XXXI, pp. 240-356, on the Invasion of the West.
The Huns: EMERTON, pp. 41-47; GIBBON, Vol. Ill, Chapters
XXXIV-XXXV, pp. 416-479.
Odoacer: EMERTON, pp. 48-52 ; GIBBON, Vol. IV, Chapter XXXVI,
pp. 1-56 ; OMAN, European History, from 476 to grS, Chapter I, pp. i-iS.
The Ostrogoths : EMERTON, pp. 52-57; GIBBON, Vol. IV, Chapter
XXXIX, pp. 170-203; OMAN, Chapter II, pp. 19-32.
Justinian : GIBBON, Vol. IV, Chapter XL, pp. 205-267, "Character and
Policy"; Vol. IV, Chapters XLI and XLIII, pp. 270-338 and 388-431,
on the Conquests in the West ; OMAN, Chapters V and VI, pp. 65-1 10.
The Lombards: EMERTON, pp. 57-59; GIBBON, Vol. V, Chapter
XLV, first part, pp. 1-30 ; OMAN, pp. 180-198 and 272-288.
The Franks: ADAMS, Growth of the French Nation, pp. 22-38;
EMERTON, pp. 60-72 ; GIBBON, Vol. IV, Chapter XXXVIII, pp. 98-120;
OMAN, pp. 55-64, "Clovis"; pp. 111-127 and 158-180, "The Mero-
vingians"; pp. 256-271, "Mayors of the Palace."
German Laws and Customs: ADAMS, Civilization, Chapter V,
pp. 89-106; EMERTON, pp. 12-21 and 73-91 ; GIBBON, Vol. IV, Chapter
XXXVIII, pp. 122-140; HENDERSON, Short History of Germany,
pp. 1-21.
The Germania of TACITUS, Translations and Reprints* Vol. VI,
No. 3. Selections from, in COLBY, Sources of English History* pp.
9-1 1 ; KENDALL, Source Book of English History, pp. 4-11.
56 Readings in European History
The Salic Law: HENDERSON, Historical Documents of the Middle
Ages, pp. 176-189.
Formulae for Trials and Ordeals : HENDERSON, Historical Documents,
pp. 314-319 j Translations and Reprints, Vol. IV, No. 4, pp. 3-22.
B. Addi-
tional read-
ing in
English.
English ver-
sions of the
HODGKIN, Italy and her Invaders, 8 vols. The fullest and most
scholarly treatment in English, with many valuable extracts from sources.
Dynasty of Theodosius and Theodoric the Goth. Two useful books by
the same author, giving in brief form some of the results reached in his
larger work.
VILLARI, The Barbarian Invasions of Italy, 2 vols. An animated
and graphic narrative of events down to Charlemagne, with extracts
from the sources, intended to interest the general reader.
GREGOROVIUS, History of Rome in the Middle Ages, Vols. I and II.
An able discussion of the period, particularly as regards the city of
Rome.
BURY, History of the Later Roman Empire, 2 vols. The best sur-
vey of conditions in the Empire, especially in the East.
McCABE, St. Augustine, His Life and Times. An attractive and
sympathetic sketch of the great church father and his contempo-
raries.
AMMIANUS MARCELLINUS, History of Rome?- translated by Yonge
(I?ohn Library).
ST. AUGUSTINE, The City of God.
Examples of the charming letters of Apollinaris Sidonius are given
by Hodgkin, Vol. II, pp. 304-373 (see below, pp. 58 sqq.).
The Letters of Cassiodorus? translated by Hodgkin, London, 1886.
Materials
' advanced
WlETERSHElM, Gcschichte der Vblkerwanderung^ 2 vols., Leipzig,
n. d. (1880?). This second edition has been completely recast and
revised by Felix Dahn, who has devoted his life to this field of history.
Volume I deals with the Romans and barbarians before the coming
of the Huns. The second volume, which takes np the invasions of the
Goths, Franks, etc., with its critical notes and exhaustive bibliography, is
certainly the best guide to the period for the advanced student.
DAHN'S own voluminous Urgeschichte der germanischen und romani-
schen Volker^ vols., 1881-1889 (Oncken's series), covering the early his-
tory of the Germans and their movements to the death of Charlemagne,
is in general parallel to Hodgkin. It is supplied with illustrations and
The German Im'asions
57
GEBHARDT, Handbuck derdentschen Geschichte^ 2 vols., 2ded., 1901,15
a very condensed history of Germany, — a species of elaborate syllabus
prepared by a number of specialists, who give full references to the
latest monographs and discussions. It devotes a good deal of space to
the Germans before and during the invasions.
FUSTEL DE CoULANGES, Histoire des institutions politiques de ?an-
cienne France^ Vol. II, " L'invasion germardque et la fin de Temp'tre,"
Paris, 1891. A brilliant statement of fresh investigations by which the
author sought to prove that France owed much more to the Romans
and much less to the German barbarians than German scholars had
admitted.
Histoire de France depziis Us origins* jusqifa la Revolution, edited
by LAVISSE, Vol. II, Part I (1903), is the most recent and readable gen-
eral review of the Merovingian period.
The laws of the various German peoples — Franks, West Goths,
Burgundians, Lombards, etc, — which were written down during the
invasions and afterwards, throw a great deal of light upon the customs,
institutions, and ideals of the barbarians. The most complete but not
very critical texts of these laws are to be found in the Monumenta.
Of the histories of law and institutions which make use of this mate-
rial, the clearest and most available are : ESMEIN, Cours ilementaire
d*histoire du droit fran$ai$, 4th ed., Paris, 1901, 10 fr,; R. SCHRODER,
Lehrbuck der deutschen Rcchtsgesckickte, 4th ed., Leipzig, 1902, M. 22 ;
VlOLLET, Histoire des institutions politiques et administratiz'es de la
France^ 3 vols., Paris, 1890-1903. Pleasantly written and supplied with
plentiful references. In these works one finds incorporated such inves-
tigations as those of Waltz and Brunner, who have written exhaustive
works on the institutions of the Frankish period.
The sources of information for the long period of four hundred years
which elapsed between the battle of Adrianople and the accession of
Charlemagne are very meager and unsatisfactory.
Gibbon, after recounting the first great victory of the Goths over the
Roman army, as described by Ammianus Marcellinus, says : " It is not
without the most sincere regret that I must now take leave of an accurate
and faithful guide, who has composed the history of his own times with-
out indulging the passions which usually affect the mind of a contem-
porary. Ammianus Marcellinus, who terminates his useful work with
the defeat and death of Valens, recommends the more glorious subject
of the ensuing reign to the youthful vigour and eloquence of the rising
generation. The rising generation was not disposed to accept his advice
or to imitate his example ; and in the study of the reign of Theodosius
Unsatisfac-
tory charac-
ter of the
sources for
the barba-
rian inva-
sions.
Gibbon OQ
Ammiaaus
Readings in European History
Augustine's
City of God.
Orosius and
his History
directed
against the
Pagans.
Salvian's
Government
of God.
ApoHinaris
Sidontas and.
hislattos.
we are reduced to illustrate the partial narrative of Zosimus 1 by the
obscure hints of fragments and chronicles, by the figurative style of
poetry or panegyric, and by the precarious assistance of the ecclesiasti-
cal writers who, in the heat of religious faction, are apt to despise the
profane virtues of sincerity and moderation. Conscious of these disad-
vantages, which will continue to involve a considerable portion of the
decline and fall of the Roman Empire, I shall proceed with doubtful
and timorous steps." 2
Instigated by the capture of Rome by Alaric and the West Goths,
ST. AUGUSTINE composed his famous work, The City ofGod^ to prove that
the disaster could not, as the pagans urged, be reasonably attributed to
the anger of the heathen gods who had been deserted for the God of the
Christians.
OROSIUS, a disciple and ardent admirer of Augustine, undertook
further to confound the pagans by reviewing the whole history of the
past with the aim of showing that mankind had in all ages suffered
from terrible calamities and disasters. Human trouble was no new
thing ; so it was absurd, he maintained, to cast the blame for the dis-
orders of the time upon the Christians and their religion. His Seven
Books of History directed against the Pagans was one of the most popu-
lar books of the Middle Ages and greatly affected later writers. The
facts were, however, selected and presented with the purpose of proving
his gloomy thesis, and only the latter chapters of the work, which closes
with the year 417, have any historical value, for they relate to the
writer's own time, about which little is known.
There is a cheap and excellent edition of Orosius published by Teub-
ner, 1889. The work is to be found in MIGNE, Patrologia Latina,
Vol. XXXI, and, better, in the Corpus scriptorum ecclesiasticorum Lati-
norum, Vol. V.
A specimen has already been given (see pp. 28 sqq. above) of SALVIAN'S
Eight Books on the Government of God, written about 450. This is not
a history, nor an impartial description of the social conditions of the
time, since the writer is tempted to paint them in too dark 'colors, and,
conversely, to give too cheerful a view of the habits and conduct of
the barbarians, whom he believed God had sent to punish the civilized
world for its monstrous iniquities.
APOLLINARIS SIDONIUS, an amiable contemporary of Salvian's, took
a much less gloomy view of the situation than he. The ancestors of
* See above, p. 42, note.
* Bqry>s edition, VoL III, p. 122. An amusing but none the less valuable
deatrnciation «f tfee sources for the period of the invasions may be found in
N, Italy axd her Invaders, VoL II, pp. 299-305.
The German Invasions
59
Sidonius had held high offices under the Roman emperors. He was
born in Lyons about 430. He received a good education, made many
friends, became bishop of Averni, died of a fever about 489, and left to
posterity a great number of letters which give a lively idea of the world
in which he lived.
«' Sometimes we think of the hundred years between Theodosius and
Theodoric as wholly filled with rapine and bloodshed. Sometimes we
carry back into the fifth century the thick darkness which hung over the
intellectual life of Merowingian France or Lombard Italy. In both
these estimates we are mistaken. A careful perusal of the three volumes
of the letters and poems of Sidonius reveals to us the fact that in Gaul,
at any rate, the air still teemed with intellectual life, that authors were
still writing, amanuenses still transcribing, friends complimenting or
criticising, and all the cares and pleasures of literature filling the minds
of large classes of men just as though no empires were sinking and no
strange nationalities were suddenly rising around them" (HoDGKiN,
Italy and her Invaders, Vol. II, p. 305). For an extract from a letter of
Sidonius, see below, pp. 1 50 sg,
The numerous Lives of the saints, although a very uncritical kind of
biography, are sometimes helpful to the historical student. The best
known of those for the fifth century is the Life of Severinus (d. 482),
a missionary who labored in Noricum among the Germans on the
Danube. His biography was prepared by his disciple Eugisippus in 511.
(Text in the Afonumenta Germaniae Historica. New edition in the octavo
edition of the Monumenta; translation in the Geschichtschreiber der deut-
schen Vorzeit?)
CASSIODORUS (ca. 477-ra. 57o),Theodoric's minister, was the chief liter-
ary promoter of the sixth century. He edited a Tripartite History made
up of extracts from three ecclesiastical historians, — Sozomenus, Socrates,
and Theodoret, — who had written in Greek a hundred years before.
This compilation comes down to 441. Cassiodorus also wrote a history
of the Goths, which has unfortunately been lost. But most important of
all is his own vast correspondence, which forms an invaluable source
for the period. (Text of the Letters, Variorum (fpistalarvm) L&ri
JT/7, edited by Mommsen in the Monumenta. Hodgkin has published
a condensed English translation.)
We have an abridgment of Cassiodorus' lost History of the Gotks
made by the illiterate Jordanes about 551. Here for the first time the
ancient religious legends of the Germans and the tales of their heroes
found their way into Latin. (See above, pp. 39 sqg.)
i For a description of the Monumenta and its various divisions and offshoots,
see below, pp. 262 sq.
Lives of the
saints,
especially
that of
Severinus.
Cassiodoms,
Hisforia
Trifarttia.
Jordaaes.
6o
Readings in European History
Procopius
and his
history of
the -wars of
Justinian.
Gregory of
Tours and
his Ten
Books of
Prankish
History.
One historical work at least was produced in the sixth century which
possesses some of the fine traits of the classical Greek writers. PROCO-
PIUS had little in common with the crude and unlettered Jordanes. In
his History of his Own Time, which closes with the year 559, he gives
an excellent account of Justinian's wars with the Persians, Goths, and
Vandals. (See Bury's Gibbon, Vol. IV, p. 5 1 3.) (Procopius is rather inac-
cessible. It is published with a Latin translation in the Corpus scrip-
torum historiae Bysantinae, Bonn, 1833-1838. A new edition of the
Gothic wars may be had with an Italian translation by Compare tti,
Rome, 1895 '•*?•* a complete edition, edited by Haury, is announced by
Teubner.)
As Cassiodorus was spending his last days in a monastery of southern
Italy, where he brought his long life to an end, GREGORY OF TOURS
(540-594) was beginning his celebrated history of the Franks, without
which we should know practically nothing of Clovis and the earlier
Merovingian period. Gregory's position as bishop of Tours gave him
a very important place in the Frankish kingdoms, and he had ample
opportunity to become acquainted with prominent men, to familiarize
himself with public affairs, and to talk with the many pilgrims who
flocked to the revered shrine of St. Martin of Tours.
The first of his Ten Books of Prankish History hastily reviews the
history of the world down to the death of St. Martin of Tours in 397.
The two following books deal with Clovis and his successors. The
remaining books, constituting the great body of the work and bringing
the story down to 591, are really a history of his own time. Here
Gregory made use apparently almost altogether of oral tradition and his
own observations, for he himself must have witnessed, or had personal
knowledge of, many of the things which he narrates.
Gregory had little knowledge of the ancient writers, as he himself
freely confesses; his language is grammatically very incorrect, but is
simple and direct, and is supposed by some to have nearly approached
the spoken Latin of the period. As an ardent orthodox churchman, he
hated the Arian Burgundians and West Goths, and too freely condoned
the treacherous and bloody deeds of Clovis and others, whom he held
to be God's instruments for the extension of the true Church. Yet in
spite of his ignorance and his enthusiasm for his particular form of
Christianity, Gregory's book remains the chief and almost sole historical
monument of the Merovingian period. Moreover, he rarely fails to gain
his readers' confidence by his unmistakable sincerity and his directness
and freedom from artificiality. (Editions in the Monumenta Gemianiae
; also in the Collection de Textes pour servir b Fltude de
The Gentian Invasions
61
Fkistoire, 1886-1893. Translation in Gcschichtsckreiber. The text with
a French translation is published by the Societe de 1'histoire de France.)
The only historical work dealing with the Franks in the seventh
century which has come down to us is that which passes for convenience
under the name of FREDEGARIUS THE SCHOOLMASTER, although there
is no reason to suppose that a man of that name wrote it. Indeed,
three writers who probably lived in Burgundy would seem to have been
responsible for the only valuable part of the work, which covers the
period from Gregory of Tours to the year 660. In the following
century, under the inspiration of the brother of Charles Martel, the
chronicle of Fredegarius was continued by three other successive
writers, who brought it down to the year 768. (Text in the JTonu-
menta, in Geschichtschreiber^ and Guizot, Collection de Jlemoires.)
The Lombards found their historian in PAULUS WARNEFRIDI, com-
monly called Paul the Deacon, bom about 725 in northern Italy. He
was teacher and friend of the Lombard princess Adelperga and became
so distinguished as an historian that Charlemagne summoned him to join
the literary circle of his court. His history of the Lombards closes with
the year 744. (In the Monument* ; also in the octavo edition of the
Monumenta and in the Geschichtschreiber^
Full accounts of the sources mentioned above and of the other
materials will be found hi Wattenbach and in Molinier (see above,
p. n). For BEDE'S History of the English Church 'and The Lrves of the
Saints which throw light on the conversion of the Germans, see close of
Chapter V.
The imagi-
nary school-
master
Fredegarius
and his
chronicle.
Faulus Dia-
conus (d. fa.
800;, and
his history erf
the Lom-
bards.
CHAPTER IV
Threefold
nature of
the papal
claims.
Peter's
sojourn
at Rome.
THE RISE OF THE PAPACY
I. THE BISHOP OF ROME AND THE HEADSHIP OF THE
CHURCH
The claim 6f the bishop of Rome to be the divinely
ordained head of the Christian Church has always rested
upon three main assumptions : (i) that Peter was desig-
nated by Christ as the chief of the apostles, (2) that
Peter was the first bishop of Rome, and lastly (3) that he
handed down to succeeding bishops of Rome the powers
which he himself enjoyed. The following extracts illus-
trate the nature of these claims and the arguments
adduced in support of them.
In the New Testament there is indirect evidence of
Peter's sojourn in Rome. The First Epistle of Peter
closes with the words, " The church that is at Babylon
. . . saluteth you," Since there is no reason to think
that a Christian community existed at Babylon, it has
generally been assumed that Rome is here meant. This
appears to be a justifiable interpretation, for the early
Christians were wont to denounce Rome as a very
Babylon of wickedness.1
Very little has been preserved which casts any light
on the position of the bishop of Rome for a century
1 Further evidence for Peter's presence in Rome is adduced from the
"New Testament. See, among other writers, LANGEN, Geschichte der
remischen. &trche, pp. 40 sqq.
62
The Rise of the Papacy 63
after Peter's death, which probably occurred during the
persecution of the Christians under Nero (A.D. 64) or
not long after.1
Irenaeus, who became bishop of Lyons in 177 and
who died about 202, in a work directed against the vari-
ous heresies which prevailed, emphasizes the purity and %tof the
authority of the beliefs handed down in the Roman Rome.
Church. He would put to confusion all those who dis-
sented from the orthodox belief
by bringing forward that tradition derived from the apos-
tles of the very great, the very ancient, and universally known
church, founded and organized at Rome by the two most
glorious apostles, Peter and Paul. This is the faith preached
to men which comes down to our own times through the
succession of the bishops. . . . And it is a matter of neces-
sity that every church should agree with this church, on*
account of its preeminent authority.2 . . .
1 About the year 95 a letter, ascribed to Clement — who, according to
later tradition, was bishop of Rome — was dispatched from the Roman
Church to that at Corinth. This speaks of the martyrdom of Peter and
Paul, in enumerating the noble examples of Christian heroes tv furnished
in our own generation." It also reproves the Corinthian Church for
deposing certain churchmen, and so seems to assume a species of supe-
riority. A few years later (probably in 107) Ignatius of Antioch wrote
to the Church at Rome that he was on his way to the capital to suffer
martyrdom. His letter begins : " To the church which is beloved and
enlightened by the will of Him that willeth all things, . . . which presides
in the place of the region of the Romans, worthy of God, worthy of
honor, worthy of the highest happiness, worthy of praise, worthy of
obtaining her every desire, worthy of being deemed holy, presiding in
love, is named from Christ, and from the Father," etc. To some scholars
these passages seem to indicate the early supremacy of the Roman
Church. To others they appear too vague to prove more than a natural
preeminence of the Christian community of the capital, -which had num-
bered Peter and Paul among its many martyrs.
2 This rather vague and much discussed passage reads, Ad kanc
enim ecdesiam propter potiorem principalitatem necesse est omnem eon-
venire ecdesiam.
64.
Readings in European History
19. Tertul-
Kan (ca.n5o-
CO. 220}
dwells upon
tfee special
of the apos-
tle ckorch
The blessed apostles, having founded and built up the
church, committed the office of bishop into the hands of
Linus. Of this Linus, Paul makes mention in the Epistles to
Timothy. To him succeeded Anacletus ; and after him in
the third place from the apostles, Clement was assigned the
bishopric. This man, since he had seen the blessed apostles
and had been conversant with them, might be said to have
the preaching of the apostles still echoing in his ears and
their traditions before his eyes. Nor was he alone in this,
for there were still many remaining who had received instruc-
tions from the apostles. In the time of this Clement, no
small dissension having occurred among the brethren at
Corinth, the Church in Rome dispatched a most powerful let-
ter to the Corinthians,1 exhorting them to peace, renewing
their faith, and declaring the tradition which it had lately
received from the apostles. . . .
To this Clement succeeded Evaristus. Alexander fol-
lowed Evaristus; then, sixth from the apostles, Sixtus was
appointed ; after him Telesphorus, who was gloriously mar-
tyred; then Hyginus; after him Pius ; then after him Ani-
cetus. Soter having succeeded Anicetus, Eleutherius does
now in the twelfth place from the apostles hold the inherit-
ance of the episcopate. In this order and by this succes-
sion, the ecclesiastical tradition from the apostles and the
preaching of the truth have come down to us, and this is
most abundant proof that there is one and the same vivify-
ing faith which has now been preserved in the Church from
the apostles until now and handed down in truth.
Tertullian, presbyter at Carthage, a vigorous writer of
the second and early third century, thus speaks of the
churches founded by the apostles :
Come now you who would profitably direct your curiosity
toward the interests of your salvation, run over the apostolic
churches in which the chairs of the apostles still preside in
3 See note i on preceding page.
The Rise of the Papacy 65
their places, where their own authentic letters are still read,
bringing back their voice and the face of each. If you hap-
pen to be near Achaia, you have Corinth ; if you are not far
from Macedonia, you have Philippi and Thessalonica. If
you can turn toward Asia, you have Ephesus. If you live
near Italy, you have Rome, from whence comes the authority
in our own case.
How happy is this church on which apostles poured forth
all their teachings along with their blood! where Peter
endures a passion like his Lord's! where Paul wins his
crown in a death like John's, where the Apostle John was
plunged — but uninjured — into boiling oil, and then sent
to his island exile ! See what she has learned and taught
and the fellowship she has enjoyed with even [our] churches
in Africa.
Later Tertullian joined the sect of the Montanists, who Later Ter-
were regarded as heretics by the Roman Church. In his
treatise "On Modesty" he protests scornfully against claims of
the powers claimed by the bishop of Rome. He learns, of Rome,
he says, that " the sovereign pontiff, that is, the bishop
of bishops," has issued a certain edict of which he can
in no way approve. He then proceeds to inquire whence
the bishop of Rome "usurps" this right.
If because the Lord said to Peter, " upon this rock will
I build my church,1' " to thee have I given the keys of the
heavenly kingdom," or " whatsoever thou shalt have bound
or loosed on earth shall be bound or loosed m the heavens,"
you, therefore, presume that the power of binding and loos-
ing has come down to you, that is, to every church akin to
Peter, what sort of man are you, subverting and wholly
changing the manifest intention of the Lord, who conferred
this right upon Peter personally. " On /to," he says, " will I
build my church," and **I will give to thee the keys," not to the
church ; and "whatsoever thou shalt have loosed or bound,"
not what they shall have loosed or bound.
66
Readings in European History
20. Cyprian
on the
danger of
appeals to
the bishop
of Rome
(252).
21. The
Council of
Nicsea
mentions
the bishop
of Rome
among the
archbishops.
The attitude of Cyprian toward the bishop of Rome
and the bishops in general has already been shown.1
There are, however, certain interesting passages in his
letters in regard to the matter in hand. For example,
certain persons having withdrawn from' the unity of the
Church and set up a bishop of their own, Cyprian says
of them :
They dare to appeal to the throne of Peter, and to the
chief church whence priestly unity takes its source. . . . But
we have all agreed — as is both fair and just — that every
case should be heard there where the crime has been com-
mitted; and a portion of the flock has been assigned to
each individual pastor, which he is to rule and govern, hav-
ing to give an account of his deeds to the Lord. It certainly
behooves those over whom we are placed not to run about,
nor to break up the harmonious agreement of the bishops
with their crafty and deceitful rashness, but there to plead
their cause, where they may be able to have both accusers
and witnesses to their crime.
It was almost inevitable that the bishops in the vari-
ous great cities of the Empire should be conceded a cer-
tain preeminence over the bishops about them. In this
way the office of archbishop, or metropolitan, developed.
The first distinct, legal recognition of the rights of the
archbishops is found in the famous sixth canon of the
Council of Nicaea (325).
The old custom in Egypt, Libya, and the Pentapolis shall
continue to be observed, so that the bishpp of Alexandria
shall exercise authority over all these regions, for the bishop
of Rome enjoys a similar right Similarly in Antioch and in
the other provinces the churches shall retain their preroga-
tives. Moreover let it be known that should any one have
1 See above, pp, 19 sqq.
The Rise of the Papacy 67
become bishop without the approval of the metropolitan,
this great council has ordained that such an one shall not
be regarded as a bishop. . . .
The council says nothing of a single head of the Distinction
Church having jurisdiction over all the other bishops. JJ^J^ **
And here it is necessary to notice a very important but the bishop
often neglected distinction between (i) the moral and
religious supremacy accorded to the bishop of Rome,
and (2) the recognition of his right to be the supreme of the
director of the whole church government. As the head Church-
of the venerated church at Rome, and as the successor
of the two most glorious of the apostles, who had con-
firmed with their blood the teachings which they had
handed down to their successors, the bishop of Rome
doubtless seemed to the prelates assembled at Nicaea,
as he had seemed to Irenasus and Cyprian, chief among
the bishops. Yet there is no indication in the acts of
the Council of Nicaea that as an officer in the Church the
bishop of Rome enjoyed any greater or wider jurisdic-
tion than other metropolitans, such as the archbishop of
Alexandria or of Antioch.
Nevertheless, the bishop of Rome was destined to be The Council
recognized in the West both as spiritual and govern-
mental head of the Church. The Council of Sardika, condemned
bishops to
eighteen years after the Council of Nicaea, decreed that appeai to
should any bishop believe that he had been unjustly
condemned and deposed by a synod, he should have
the privilege of appealing to the bishop of Rome, If
the latter decided that the case should be reconsidered,
he should order a new trial by other judges.
There is evidence that the Roman church and its
bishops had from the earliest times been consulted by
68
Readings in European History
22. The
decretal of
the first
authentic
example of
a papal
decree.
The bishop
of Rome
assumes his
right to issue
decrees bind-
ing upon
other
bishops.
other churches when dissension arose, and that the
rulings of Rome enjoyed the greatest authority. But
the earliest extant example of an authoritative order
addressed to the Church in general by a bishop of Rome
is the famous " Decretal JJ1 of Pope Siricius, issued sixty
years after the Council of Nicsea.
A bishop of Spain had submitted a number of ques-
tions to the bishop of Rome. These Siricius decides in
detail, and then closes his letter as follows :
I believe that I have now given a sufficient answer to
the various questions which you have referred to the Roman
church as to the head of your body. Now we would stimu-
late you, our brother, more and more carefully to observe the
canonsand adhere to the decretals l which have been ordained.
Moreover, we would have you bring to the attention of all
our fellow-bishops those things which we have written in
reply to your questions, not only to those bishops who are
within your dioceses, but to all the Carthaginians, Bseticans,
Lusitanians, and Gallicians,2 as well as to those in the neigh-
boring provinces. Let all the matters which have been duly
settled by us be transmitted to them through letters from
you. For although no priest of God is likely to remain in
ignorance of the decrees of the Apostolic See and the vener-
able decisions of the canons, it will be more expedient and
more to the glory of the ancient station which you occupy if
those general orders which I have addressed to you individu-
ally should be brought through you to the attention of all our
brethren. In this way those things which have been ordained
by us with the utmost circumspection and caution, after due
1 The term *« decretal," applied to papal ordinances, is derived from
epistola* decretales, i.e. letters which authoritatively established some
point. The acts of the councils are usually called "canons," i.e.
"rales."
* Sirichis is addressing the bishop of Tarragona. The regions here
enumerated included the rest of the Spanish peninsula.
The Rise of the Papacy 69
deliberation and by no means hastily, shall be permanently
observed, and thus all possibility of those excuses which
might otherwise reach us shall be removed.
St. Jerome, however, in spite of the veneration which
he often expressed for the Church of Rome, does not
always appear to recognize the supremacy of the bishop
of Rome over the other bishops.
The church at Rome is not to be considered as one thing 23. St.
and the rest of the churches throughout the world as another. Jeromc <d-
Those of Gaul and Britain, Africa, Persia, and India, as well ^titt^*
as the various barbarous nations, adore one Christ and ofaiitfae
observe a single rule of truth. If you are looking for author-
ity, the world is surely greater than the city of Rome. Where-
ever there is a bishop, whether at Rome or Eugubium, at
Constantinople, Rhegium, or Alexandria, his rank and priest-
hood are the same. Neither the power that riches bring nor
the humility of poverty makes a bishop higher or lower in
rank. All are successors of the apostles. . . , Why urge
the custom of a single city?
Leo the Great gives the following clear statement of
nature and grounds of the pope's claim to be head
of the whole Church.
... A single person, Peter, is appointed from the whole 24. A ser-
world as a leader in the calling of all peoples, and is placed
above all the other apostles and the fathers of the Church.
Although there are many priests among the people of God, headship,
and many pastors, Peter should of right rule all of those
whom Christ himself rules in the first instance. Great and
marvelous, my dear brethren, is the participation in its own
power which it has pleased the Divine Excellency to grant to
this man. And such powers as it granted to other leaders
in common with Peter were granted only through Peter. Our
Lord, indeed, asked all the apostles what men said of him, but
so long as it.was left to all to reply, so long was the hesitation
yo Readings in European History
of human ignorance clearly displayed. But when the opin-
ion of the apostles was asked, he who was first in apostolic
dignity was the first to reply; who when he had answered,
"Thou art the Christ, the Son of the living God," Jesus said
to him, "Blessed art thou, Simon Bar-jonah: for flesh and
blood hath not revealed it unto thee, but my Father which is
in heaven " 1; — that is to say, thou art blessed for this reason,
for my father has taught thee, neither has mere earthly opin-
ion misled thee, but thou art instructed by a heavenly inspi-
ration. ... I am the foundation than which none other can
be established ; yet thou too art a rock \_pet cra] because thou
art made firm by my strength, so that those things which I
have in virtue of my power thou shalt have in common with
me by participation. "And upon this rock I will build my
church ; and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it." . . .
And he said to the blessed Peter, " I will give unto thee
the keys of the kingdom of heaven : and whatsoever thou
shalt bind on earth shall be bound in heaven : and what-
soever thou shalt loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven."
The right to this power passed also to the other apostles, and
the provisions of this ordinance went forth to all the leaders
of the Church. Still it was not in vain that what was made
known to all was especially recommended to one. For this
power was intrusted expressly to Peter, since Peter was
placed as a model before all the rulers of the Church. Peter's
prerogative remains and everywhere his judgment goes forth
in equity. For never is severity too great nor forgiveness
too lax where nothing is bound nor loosed except the blessed
Peter bind or loose it.
Just before his passion, which was about to shake the
apostles* constancy, the Lord said to Simon, " Simon, Simon,
behold, Satan asked to have you, that he might sift you as
wheat: but I made supplication for thee, that thy faith fail
not : and do thou, when once thou hast turned again, stab-
lish thy brethren," 2 that you should not enter into tempta-
tion. The danger of the temptation to yield to fear was
1 Matthew xvi. 16-17. 2 Lake xxii. 31-32.
The Rise of the Papacy j \
common to all the apostles and all alike needed the aid of
divine protection, since the devil desired to confound and
ruin them all. Yet the Lord took special care of Peter and
prayed especially that Peter might have faith, as if the state
of the others would be more secure if the mind of their chief
was not overcome. In Peter, therefore, the strength of all
was confirmed and the aid of divine grace so ordered that
the strength which was granted to Peter by Christ was in
turn transmitted through Peter to the apostles.
Since, therefore, beloved brethren, we behold this protec-
tion divinely appointed to us, we may properly and justly
rejoice in the merits and dignity of our leader, sending up
thanks to our eternal King and Redeemer, our Lord Jesus
Christ, for giving such power to him whom he made the head
of the whole Church : so that if anything, even in our own
days, is rightly done by us and rightly ordained, it should be
properly attributed to the influence and guidance of him to
whom it was said: "When once thou hast turned again,
stablish thy brethren." To whom, moreover, his Lord, after
his resurrection, when Peter had three times professed his
eternal love, said mystically three times, " Feed my sheep," l
Like a faithful shepherd, he has beyond a doubt fulfilled his
Lord's command, confirming us by his exhortations, and
never ceasing to pray for us that we be not overcome by
any temptation. . . .
[Elsewhere Leo says :] Although the priests enjoy a com- Leo on the
mon dignity, they are not all on the same footing, since even
among the blessed apostles, who were alike in honor, there
was a certain distinction in authority. AH were alike chosen,
but it was given to one that he should be preeminent among
the others. Upon this model the distinction among the
bishops is based, and it is salutarily provided that all should
not claim the right to do all things, but in each province
there should be one who should have the first word among
his brethren. Again, in the greater cities others are appointed
to greater responsibilities. Through these the oversight of
1 John xxi.
Readings in European History
25. The
edict of the
emperor
Valentinian
recognizing
the suprem-
acy of the
bishop of
Rome (445).
26. Letter
of Pope
GelasiusI
to Emperor
Aaastasius
on the
eftfre
spiritual
the whole Church is concentrated in one see, that of Peter,
and from this head there should never be any dissent.
The following edict was issued by the western
emperor, during Leo's pontificate :
Since, then, the primacy of the Apostolic See is estab-
lished by the merit of St. Peter (who is the chief among the
bishops), by the majesty of the city of Rome, and finally by the
authority of a holy council,1 no one, without inexcusable pre-
sumption, may attempt anything against the authority of that
see. Peace will be secured among the churches if every one
recognize his ruler.
[After a reference to the independent action of certain
prelates of Gaul, the edict continues.] Lest ^even a slight
commotion should arise in the churches, or 'the religious
order be disturbed, we herewith permanently decree that
not only the bishops of Gaul, but those of the other prov-
inces, shall attempt nothing counter to ancient custom with-
out the authority of the venerable father \_papa\ of the
Eternal City. Whatever shall be sanctioned by the author-
ity of the Apostolic See shall be law to them and to every
one else ; so that if one of the bishops be summoned to the
judgment of the Roman bishop and shall neglect to appear,
he shall be forced by the moderator2 of his province to
present himself. In all respects let the privileges be main-
tained which our deified predecessors have conferred upon
the Roman church.
The pope's view of the natural superiority of the spir-
itual over the temporal power finds a clear expression
in the following remarkable letter of Gelasius I (494).
. . . There are two powers, august Emperor, by which this
world is chiefly ruled, namely, the sacred authority of the
priests and the royal power. Of these, that of the priests
is the more weighty, since they have to render an account
for even the kings of men in the divine judgment. You are
1 That of Sardika : see above, p. 67. 2 An imperial official.
The Rise of the Papacy 73
also aware, dear son, that while you are permitted honorably
to rule over human kind, yet in things divine you bow your
head humbly before the leaders of the clergy and await from
their hands the means of your salvation. In the reception
and proper disposition of the heavenly mysteries you rec-
ognize that you should be subordinate rather than superior
to the religious order, and that in these matters you depend
on their judgment rather than wish to force them to follow
your will.
If the ministers ©f religion, recognizing the supremacy
granted you from heaven in matters affecting the public
order, obey your laws, lest otherwise they might obstruct
the course of secular affairs by irrelevant considerations,
with what readiness should you not yield them obedience
to whom is assigned the dispensing of the sacred mysteries
of religion. Accordingly, just as there is no slight danger
in the case of the priests if they refrain from speaking when
the service of the divinity requires, so there is no little risk
for those who disdain — which God forbid — when they should
obey. And if it is fitting that the hearts of the faithful should
submit to all priests in general who properly administer divine
affairs, how much the more is obedience due to the bishop
of that see which the Most High ordained to be above all
others, and which is consequently dutifully honored by the
devotion of the whole Church.
II. GREGORY THE GREAT AND HIS TIMES
Times of emergency call forth great men — men at least, 27.
if not great in relation to the true intellectual, moral, and
spiritual dignity of man, great in relation to the state and
to the necessities of their age; engrossed by the powerful
and dominant principles of their time, and bringing to the
advancement of those principles surpassing energies of
character, inflexible resolution, the full conviction of the
wisdom, justice, and holiness of their cause, in religious
affairs of the direct and undeniable sanction of God. Such
74
Readings in European History
28. Sad
state of the
western
world as
depicted in
tfee letters
efGregray
&e Great.
was Gregory I, to whom his own age and posterity have
assigned the appellation of the Great.
Now was the crisis in which the Papacy must reawaken
its obscured and suspended life. It was the only power which
lay not entirely and absolutely prostrate before the disasters
of the times, — a power which had an inherent strength, and
might resume its majesty. It was this power which was most
imperatively required to preserve all which was to survive
out of the crumbling wreck of Roman civilization.
To Western Christianity was absolutely necessary a
centre, standing alone, strong in traditionary reverence, and
in acknowledged claims to supremacy. Even the perfect
organization of the Christian hierarchy might in all human
probability have fallen to pieces in perpetual conflict: it
might have degenerated into a half secular feudal caste
with hereditary benefices, more and more entirely subserv-
ient to the civil authority, a priesthood of each nation or
each tribe, gradually sinking to the intellectual or religious
level of the nation or tribe. . . .
It is impossible to conceive what had been the confusion,
the lawlessness, the chaotic state of jthe middle ages, without
the mediaeval Papacy ; and of the mediaeval Papacy the real
father is Gregory the Great. In all his predecessors there
was much of the uncertainty and indefmiteness of a new
dominion. Christianity had converted the Western world —
it had by this time transmuted it : in all except the Roman
law, it was one with it. Even Leo the Great had something
of the Roman dictator. Gregory is the Roman altogether
merged in the Christian bishop.
The calamities of the times, especially the coming
of "the most unspeakable Lombards," as he com-
monly calls them, convinced Gregory that the end of
the world was near at hand. In a letter written to a
fellow-bishop shortly after he reluctantly became pope,
he gives a dark picture of the world and of his heavy
responsibilities :
The Rise of the Papacy
75
Gregory to Leander, bishop of Seville :
With all my heart I have wished to answer you better,
but the burden of my pastoral calls so overpowers me that
I would rather weep than speak, — as your reverence un-
doubtedly gathers from the very character of my corre-
spondence when I am remiss in addressing one whom I
warmly love. In fact, so beaten about am I by the billows
in this corner of the world, that I can in no wise bring to
harbor the ancient, rolling ship at whose helm I stand
through God's mysterious dispensation.
Now the waves break over us from the front, now at the
side the foaming mountains of the sea swell high, now in.
the rear the tempest pursues us. Beset by all these perils,
I am forced first to steer directly in the face of the storm,
again to swerve the vessel and to receive obliquely the onset
of the waters. I groan, because I know that if I am negli-
gent the bilge water of vice is deepening, and that if the
storm assails us furiously at that instant the decaying planks
forebode shipwreck. Fearful, I remember that I have lost
my quiet shore of peace, and sighing I gaze toward the land
which, while the wind of circumstances blows contrarily, I
cannot gain. So, dearest brother, if you love me, stretch
forth the hand of prayer to me amid these floods, and, as
you aid me in my troubles, thus as a reward shall you come
forth more valiantly from yours. . . .
[Of all the signs described by our Lord as presaging the
end of the world], some we see already accomplished ; the
others we dread as close upon us. For we now see that
nation rises against nation, and that they press and weigh
upon the land in our own times as never before in the annals
of the past. Earthquakes overwhelm countless cities, as we
often hear from other parts of the world. Pestilence we
endure without interruption. It is true that as yet we do
not behold signs in the sun and moon and stars; but that
these are not far off we may infer from the changes in the
atmosphere. Before Italy was given over to be desolated
by the sword bf a heathen foe, we beheld fiery ranks in
Signs that
the end of
the world is
at hand.
(From one
of Gregory's
Sermtns.)
A reference,
perhaps, to
tbeaorwa
boreals.
Readings in European History
29. How a
monk daied
to have gold
in bis
possession.
(Prom
Gregory's
Dialogues.)
heaven, and even the streaming blood of the human race as
it was afterwards spilt.
Gregory's Dialogues, a collection of the lives of holy
men, was for centuries, probably, the most popular of his
works. Two examples of his accounts of the saints and
the miracles which they performed will be found in the
following chapter. The incident given below sheds light
upon Gregory's life as abbot of a monastery.
There was in my monastery a certain monk, Justus by
name, skilled in medicinal arts. . . . When he knew that
his end was at hand, he made known to Copiosus, his brother
in the flesh, how that he had three gold pieces hidden away.
Copiosus, of course, could not conceal this from the breth-
ren. He sought carefully, and examined all his brother's
drugs, until he found the three gold pieces hidden away
among the medicines. When he told me this great calamity
that concerned a brother who had lived in common with us,
I could hardly hear it with calmness. For the rule of this
our monastery was always that the brothers should live in
common and own nothing individually.
Then, stricken with great grief, I began to think what I
could do to cleanse the dying man, and how I should make
his sins a warning to the living brethren. Accordingly, having
summoned Pretiosus, the superintendent of the monastery,
I commanded him to see that none of the brothers visited the
dying man, who. was not to hear any words of consolation.
If in the hour of death he asked for the brethren, then his
own brother in the flesh was to tell him how he was hated
by the brethren because he had concealed money ; so that
at death remorse for his guilt might pierce his heart and
cleanse him from the sin he had committed.
When he was dead his body was not placed with the
bodies of the brethren, but a grave was dug in the dung pit,
and his body was flung down into it, and the three pieces of
gold he had left were cast upon him, while all together
cried, "Thy money perish with thee!" . . .
The Rise of the Papacy
77
When thirty days had passed after his death, my heart
began to have compassion on my dead brother, and to
ponder prayers with deep grief, and to seek what remedy
there might be for him. Then I called before me Pretiosus,
superintendent of the monastery, and said sadly : "It is a long
time that our brother who died has been tormented by fire,
and we ought to have charity toward him, and aid him so
far as we can, that he may be delivered. Go, therefore, and
for thirty successive days from this day offer sacrifices for
him. See to it that no day is allowed to pass on which the
salvation-bringing mass \_hostia~] is not offered up for his abso-
lution."1 He departed forthwith and obeyed my words.
We, however, were busy with other things, and did not How the
count the days as they rolled by. But lo! the brother sp^oft^
who had died appeared by night to a certain brother, even ^on™ ^
to Copiosus, his brother in the flesh. When Copiosus saw saved by the
him he asked him, saying, "What is it, brother? How art
thou ? " To which he answered : " Up to this time I have
been in torment; but now all is well with me, because
to-day I have received the communion." This Copiosus
straightway reported to the brethren in the monastery.
Then the brethren carefully reckoned the days, and it
was the very day on which the thirtieth oblation was made
for him. Copiosus did not know what the brethren were
doing for his dead brother, and the brethren did not know
that Copiosus had seen him ; yet at one and the same time
he learned what they had done and they learned what he
had seen, and the vision and the sacrifice harmonized. So
the fact was plainly shown forth how that the brother who
had died had escaped punishment through the salvation-
giving mass.
Among the works of Gregory the Great, none was
more highly esteemed than his great Commentary on
the Book of Job, — his Moralia* as he entitled it.
mrttefloo*
1 This is, perhaps, the earliest clear reference to masses for the souls
of the dead.
Readings in European History
The Scrip-
tures taken
in their
literal sense
are fitted for
the simple-
minded, but
there is a
deeper alle-
gorical mean-
ing for the
wise.
Gregory's
ill health.
Gregory
justifies bis
»egtectof
work is prefaced by a letter to a friend who had urged
him to undertake it. In spite of the burden of his other
responsibilities, Gregory, relying upon God's aid, resolved
to attempt to give the deeper allegorical meaning as well
as the literal explanation.
For as the Word of God, by the mysteries which it con-
tains, exercises the understanding of the wise, so it often
nourishes the simple-minded by what presents itself on the
outside. It presenteth in open day that wherewith the little
ones may be fed ; it keepeth in secret that whereby men of
a loftier range may be held in wondering suspense. It is,
as it were, a kind of river, if I may so liken it, which is both
shallow and deep, wherein both the lamb may find a footing
and the elephant float at large. . . .
This exposition being such as I have described, I have
transmitted it to your Blessedness for your inspection, not
because I have carried it out as worthily as I should, but
because I remember that I promised it at your request. In
which whatsoever your Holiness may discover that is languid
or unpolished, let it be excused, since, as is well known, I
was ill when I prepared it. When the body is worn out
with sickness, the mind being also affected, our efforts to
express ourselves grow weak.
For many years now I have been afflicted with frequent
pains in the bowels, and the powers of my stomach being
broken down, I am at all times and seasons weakly. Under
the influence of fevers, slow, but in constant succession, I
draw my breath with difficulty. . . . And perchance it was
by Divine Providence designed that I, a stricken one, should
set forth Job stricken, and that, through being scourged
myself, I should the more perfectly enter into the feelings
of one that was scourged. . . .
I beg, moreover, that in going through the statements of
this work you would not seek the foliage of eloquence
therein; for by the sacred oracles the vanity of a barren
wordiness is purposely debarred those that treat thereof.
The Rise of the Papacy 79
. . . Hence that art of speaking which is conveyed by rules A reaction
of worldly training I have despised to observe ; for as the ag**118* *&«
tenor of this epistle also will tell, I do not escape harsh^ S^ary
sounding consonants, nor do I avoid barbarisms, and I pay bombast,
little attention to rhetorical situations and arrangements,
and the cases of propositions. For I account it very far from
meet to submit the words of the divine oracle to the rules
of Donatus1; neither are these observed by any of the
translators thereof, in the authoritative text of Holy Writ.
Now as my exposition takes its origin from thence, it is
plainly meet that this production, like a kind of offspring,
should wear the likeness of its mother.
The manner of this allegorical interpretation, so pop- An example
ular throughout the Middle Ages, may be illustrated by
Gregory's commentary on the statement that Job pos- tion-
sessed, among other property, "five hundred yoke of
oxen and five hundred she asses."
We have said above that by the number fifty, which is
completed by seven weeks and the addition of an unit, rest
is signified, and by the number ten the sum of perfection
is set forth. Now, forasmuch as the perfection of rest is
promised to the faithful, by multiplying fifty ten times, we
arrive at five hundred. But in Sacred Writ the title of
oxen sometimes represents the dullness of the foolish sort,
and sometimes the life of well-doers. For because the
stupidity of the fool is represented by the title of an ox,
Solomon says rightly, " He goeth after her straightway, as
an ox goeth to the slaughter." Again, that the life of every
laborer is set forth by the title of oxen, the precepts of
the Law are a testimony, which enjoined through Moses,
" Thou shalt not muzzle the ox when he treadeth out the
corn." And this again is declared in plain words, " The
labourer is worthy of his hire."
1 A grammarian, St. Jerome's teacher, who wrote the elementary
grammar most widely used during the Middle Ages.
8o Readings in European History
By the title of asses, too, we have represented sometimes
the unrestrained indulgence of the wanton, sometimes the
simple-mindedness of the Gentiles ; for the inertness of fools
is imaged by the designation of asses, as where it is said
through Moses, "Thou shalt not plough with an ox and an
ass together." As though he said, " Do not associate fools
and wise men together in preaching, lest by means of him
who has no power to accomplish the work you hinder him
who has abundant power." The unrestrained indulgence of
the wanton is likewise set forth by the appellation of asses,
as the prophet testifies when he says, "whose flesh is as
the flesh of asses."
Again, by the title of asses is shown the simplicity of the
Gentiles. Hence, when the Lord went up to Jerusalem, he
is related to have sat upon a young ass. For what is it for
him to come to Jerusalem sitting upon an ass, except taking
possession of the simple hearts of the Gentiles to conduct
them to the vision of peace, by ruling and ordering them ?
And this is shown by one passage, and that a very easy
one, in that both the workmen of Judea are represented by
oxen, and the Gentile peoples by an ass, when it is said
by the prophet, "The ox knoweth his owner, and the ass
his master's crib." For who appears as the ox saving the
Jewish people, whose neck was worn by the yoke of the Law ?
And who was the ass but the Gentile world, which was like
a brute animal readily seduced by every deceiver, for he did
not resist by exercise of reason ?
31. Greg- The modern reader who may not find either the
Dialogues or the Moralia to his taste will, nevertheless,
agree that few works exhibit a deeper insight into human
in his character and motives than Gregory's Pastoral Charge,
in which he discourses on the difficult position of the
bishops :
It is hard for a preacher who is not loved, however right
may be his warnings, to be heard gladly. He, therefore,
The Rise of the Papacy
Si
Thepreache
should make
himself
beloved, but
not seek
popularity
for its
own sake.
who is over others ought to study to be loved, that he
may be heard ; and yet not to seek his own popularity for
itself, lest he be found by a secret usurpation in thought to
oppose him whom by his office he appeareth to serve. This
Paul well signifieth, when he maketh manifest to us the
secrets of his desires, saying, u Even as I please all men in
all things " ; who nevertheless saith again, " If I yet pleased
men, I should not be the servant of Christ." Paul therefore
pleaseth and pleaseth not, because in that he desireth to
please, he seeketh not that he himself, but that through him
the Truth, should please men.
The spiritual guide ought also to know that vices for the Vices cloak
most part feign themselves to be virtues. For niggardliness
often cloaketh itself under the name of frugality ; and lavish-
ness, on the other hand, hideth itself under the title of
bounty. Often an inordinate forgiveness is thought to be
kindness, and unbridled wrath is reckoned the virtue of
spiritual zeal. Often headlong action is supposed to be the
efficiency of speed, and slowness apes the deliberation of
seriousness.
Hence the ruler of souls must needs distinguish with
watchful care between virtues and vices; lest either nig-
gardliness take possession of his heart, and he be delighted
to appear frugal in his distributions; or when a thing is
lavishly expended, he should boast himself as bountiful in
showing mercy; or by forgiving that which he ought to
smite, he should drag his subjects to eternal punishments;
or by smiting ruthlessly that which is wrong, he do more
grievous wrong himself; or by unreasonably hastening that
which might have been done duly and seriously, he should
render it of no esteem; or by putting off the merit of a good
action, he should change it for the worse.
Inasmuch, then, as we have shown what manner of man Many
the pastor ought to be, let us now make known after what
manner he teacheth. For, as Gregory Nazianzen of rever-
end memory hath taught long before us, one and the same
82
Readings in European History
exhortation is not suited to all, because all are not bound
by the same manner of character. For ofttimes the things
which profit some are bad for others. Inasmuch as for the
most part the herbs also which feed some animals kill others;
and a gentle whistling which stilleth horses setteth dogs
astir; and the medicine which abateth one disease giveth
force to another; and the bread which strengthened the life
of the vigorous putteth an end to that of babes.
The speech, therefore, of teachers ought to be fashioned
according to the condition of the hearers, that it may both
be suited to each for his own needs, and yet may never
depart from the system of general - edification. For what
are the attentive minds of the hearers but, as I may so say,
certain strings stretched tight on a harp which he that is
skillful in playing, to the end that he may produce a tune
which shall not be at variance with itself, striketh in various
ways? And therefore the strings give back harmonious
melody because they are beaten with one quill indeed but
not with one stroke. Whence also every teacher, to the end
that he may edify all in- the one virtue of charity, ought
to touch the hearts of his hearers out of one system of
teaching but not with one and the same address.
A. Refer-
ences.
B. Addi-
tional read-
ing in
English.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
General Accounts: EMERTON, Introduction^ pp. 93-109; ADAMS,
Civilization, Chapter IX, pp. 92-1 13 ; B&MONT and MONOD, pp. 1 15-124.
Gregory the Great : GIBBON, Vol. V, Chapter XLV, end, pp. 25-32 ;
OMAN, pp. 198-203.
NEWMAN, Manual of Church History, Vol. I. Covering the whole
period before the Protestant Revolt. The most useful recent introduc-
tion to the subject, with good bibliographies.1
•
l The innumerable histories of the Church are all of them somewhat unsatis-
factory from the standpoint of the ordinary historical student who turns to them
for an account of the general development of the Church and the rise of the
papacy. He is Kkely to be especially confused and impeded by the frequent and
often highly technical discussions of heresies and doctrinal controversies which
have abrays had an irresistible charm for ecclesiastical writers. Nevertheless the
The Rise of the Papacy 83
MILMAN, History of Latin Christianity. First published in 1856;
consequently rather old, but scholarly, readable, and fair-minded, so that
it is still deservedly popular as a fuller treatment. For Gregory the
Great, see Book III, Chapter VII.
ALZOG, Manual of Universal Church History -, 3 vols. The most
careful and scholarly general account from a Catholic standpoint to be
had in English.
HATCH, Growth of Church Institutions. A brief but excellent
account of the evolution of certain prominent features in church
organization.
SCHAFF, History of the Christian Church, Vols. I-IV to Gregory VII.
Vol. V has never appeared. Vols. VI and VII relate to the Protestant
Revolt. A voluminous but well-written treatise, where the student will
find special topics fully and interestingly treated. It was written a
generation later than Milman's volumes referred to above.
RiviNGTON, LUKE, The Primitive Church and the See of Peter. A
discussion by a Catholic of the position of the bishops of Rome in the
early Church.
MANN, Lives of the Popes in the Early Middle Ages, A.D. 590-793,
2 vols. The most careful and recent treatise on the papacy during this
period.
BARNEY, Gregory the Great. A condensed account of Gregory's
life and times, followed by a summary of his works.
SCHAFF-HERZOG, A Religious Encyclopedia, 4 yols., 1891. Based
upon the great German Realencyklopadie mentioned below.
ADDIS and ARNOLD, A Catholic Dictionary^ containing some account
of the doctrine, discipline, rites, ceremonies, councils, and religious orders
of the Catholic Church, zd ed., London, 1884. These dictionaries are a
•great aid to the historical student in looking up special topics and in
discovering the exact meaning of technical terms.
MoELLER, History of the Christian Ckurch, Vols. I and II. This is a C.
rather poor £ nglish translation of a very condensed bat highly scbolariy
and valuable German manual, which takes careful account of all the
recent discussions, especially those which have appeared in German
periodicals and monographs. The best work of reference in this fieki.
GIESELER, Ecclesiastical History, 5 vols. A scanty outline accom-
panied by voluminous footnotes in which long and important passages
church histories are indispensable, and by consulting the tables of contents one
can easily discover the sections which bear upon the matters in which the reader
is interested.
84 Readings in European History
from the sources are given. This renders it especially useful to one who
has not a large library at his disposal.
HERGENRUTHER, JOSEPH, Cardinal, Allgcmeine JZirchengeschichte,
3d ed., 1884-1886 (4th ed., edited by Kirsch, Vol. I, 1902, carrying the
history down to the seventh century). The work of a distinguished
Catholic authority.
Realencyklopadie fiir protestantise he Theologie und Kirche. Begriln-
det von _/". J. Iferzog. A third carefully revised edition of this all-
important ecclesiastical encyclopedia is being issued under the editor-
ship of Hauck. Vols. I-XI 1 1, over half the work, have appeared. Leipzig,
1896 sfff.
Kirckenlexikon oder Bncyklopddie der ICatholischen 77ieologie undihre
Hilfs-wissenschaften. Second edition edited by Hergenrother and
Kauler, 12 vols. and separately bound index, Freiburg, 1882-1901.
Both of the above are of the utmost value to the student of general
history, who should turn to them for special topics and bibliographies.
MlKBT, CARI-, QueHen, zur Geschichte des Papsthums, 2d ed., 1903.
A very useful selection of documents given in the original Latin.
LANGEN, Geschichte der Romischen JFzrc/ie, 4 vols., Bonn. 1881-1893.
Coming down to Innocent III. Probably.the best detailed history of
the popes. It claims to be written exclusively from the sources.
HEFELE, Cenciliengeschichte, 2d ed., 1873-1890 : Vols. I— VI reach
the opening of the fifteenth chapter (Vol. VII has not appeared in the
second edition; Veils. VIII and IX are a continuation by Cardinal
Hergenrother). The classical history of the Christian councils, written
by a remarkable Catholic scholar.
HARNACK, History of 'Dogma, 7 vols. (Boston, $17. 50) ; original German
edition, under the title Lehrbuch der Dogmenge schichte^ 3 vols., 3d ed., 1894—
1897, M. 52.50. Although a technical work dealing with a phase of the,
past in which the historical student is not commonly much interested, he
should have some acquaintance, at least, with this truly astounding
production or a great authority in the field of church history. The
breadth and scholarship of the treatment cannot fail to make a deep
impression upon even a casual reader.
MlGNE, Patrologia Latina* 221 vols., Paris, 1844—1866. Migne was
a Parisian publisher who conceived the bold plan of bringing together
into one great uniform series all the writings relating to the Church,
its doctrines and history from Tertullian to Innocent III. While the
editions that he used have in some cases been superseded, the collection
nevertheless contains a wealth of material which even the best libraries
are fcatcHy likely to have in any other form. A list of all the works
The Rise of the Papacy 85
included in the Patrologia may be found in POTTHAST'S iregweisfr,
pp. xciv sqq.
Corpus scriptorum ecclesiasticorum Latinorum, Vienna, 1866 sqq.
This series, issued under the auspices of the Vienna Academy, is still
in the course bf publication, and is only to include the ecclesiastical
writers previous to the seventh century. It naturally supersedes the
older editions reprinted in MZGNE'S Patrologia.
Ante-Nicene Fathers ; 10 vols.; Ntcene and Post- Accent Fathers, two
series in 12 vols. each. A scholarly English translation, -with excellent
notes, of the more important patristic writings, to the time of Gregory
the Great.
The chief sources for the history of the papacy to Gregory's time are The sources.
the lives of the popes in the Liber pontificalis, and their letters, espe-
cially those of Leo the Great and of Gregory himself.
The Liber pontificalis has given rise to a great deal of discussion
among scholars. It contains brief, fragmentary accounts of all the
bishops of Rome from Peter down. Many of the lives would hardly
fill a page of this volume. Just how the collection grew up, no one
knows. According to Duchesne, the earliest part was got into its
present form shortly after Theodoric's death, and then accounts of the
succeeding popes were added from time to time, bringing the collection
down to the latter part of the ninth century.
Modem editions : DUCHESNE, Liber pontificalis •, published in the
Bibliothtq-ue des Scales d^Atklnes et de Romey 1886-1892. MOMMSEN
has edited the most important part of the collection, down to 715 in the
Momtmenta Germaniae Historica. An older edition in MlGNE, Patro-
logia Latina, CXXVII-CXXIX. It is there attributed, as formerly, to
Anastasius Bibliothecarius, a writer of the ninth century.
As for the letters of the popes, many will be found in MIGNE ; those
of Leo I in Vol. LUI and of Gregory I in Vol. LXXVII. The best edW
tion of Gregory I*s letters is in the Monumenfa Germaniae ffisterica.
An invaluable guide to the history of the papacy is JAFFE, Regesta
pontificum, ad ed., edited by Wattenbach and others, 1885-1888. This
is a register of all the acts, edicts, and letters of the successive bishops
of Rome. It is as complete an official diary as it was possible to recon-
struct. An analysis is usually given of all the more important papers,
and then a list is added of the various printed collections where the
documents may be found in full. But all the information that it was
possible to find for the five centuries which elapsed between the times
of St. Peter and the accession of Gregory I fills but 140 pages, white
Gregory's own pontificate alone occupies 75 pages.
CHAPTER V
32. Jerome's
plea for the
life of soli-
tude (373).
Family ties
and obliga-
tions should
not stand in
the way of
the monastic
.life.
Eteligfatsof
tfae hermit.
THE MONKS AND THE CONVERSION OF THE GERMANS
I. THE MONASTIC ATTITUDE OF MIND
One of the earliest and most eloquent pleas for mo-
nasticism is found' in a well-known letter of St. Jerome's,
who himself led the life of a monk for many years. He
thus urges on a friend, first the duty, then the beauty, of
a hermit's existence.
Though your little nephew twine his arms around your
neck; though your mother, with disheveled hair and tear-
ing her robe asunder, point to the breast with which she
nourished you ; though your father fall down on the thresh-
old before you, pass on over your father's body. Fly with
tearful eyes to the banner of the cross. In this matter
cruelty is the only piety. . . . Your widowed sister may
throw her gentle arms around you. . . . Your father may
implore you to wait but a short time to bury those near to
you, who will soon be no more. Your weeping mother may
recall your childish days, and may point to her shrunken
breast and to her wrinkled brow. Those around you may
tell you that all the household rests upon you. Such chains
as these the love of God and the fear of hell can easily
break. You say that Scripture orders you to obey your
parents, but he who loves them more than Christ loses his
soul. The enemy brandishes a sword to slay me. Shall I
think of a mother's tears ?
[When once his friend has cast off the responsibilities of
the world he will discover that the desert is full of attrac-
tions.] O solitude, whence are brought the stones of the
city of the Great King! O wilderness rejoicing close to
86
The Monks and the Conversion- of the Germans 87
God ! What would you, brother, in the world, — you that
are greater than the world? How long are the shades of
roofs to oppress you ? How long the dungeon of a city's
smoke ? Believe me, I see more of light 1 How refreshing
to cast off the things that oppress the body and fly away into
the pure sparkling ether !
Do you fear poverty ? Christ called the poor " blessed."
Are you terrified at labor? No athlete without sweat is
crowned. Do you think of food? Faith fears not hunger.
Do you dread the naked ground for limbs consumed with
fasts? The Lord lies with you. Does the thought of
unkempt locks disturb you? Your head is Christ. Does the
infinite vastness of the desert affright you? In the mind
walk abroad in Paradise. So often as you do this there will
be no desert Does your skin roughen without baths?
Who is once washed in Christ needs not to wash again. In
a word, hear the apostle as he answers: "The sufferings of
the present time are not worthy to be compared with the glory
which shall be revealed in us ! " You are too pleasure-loving,
brother, if y6u wish to rejoice in this world and hereafter to
reign with Christ !
The spirit of rigorous monasticisrn is admirably ex-
pressed by a monk of the sixteenth century, as follows :
First of all, carefully excite in yourself an habitual affec- 33. Tha
tionate will in all things to imitate Jesus Christ. If any- ff^gff^
thing agreeable offers itself to your senses, yet does not at as describes
the same time tend purely to the honor and glory of God,
renounce it and separate yourself from it for the love of
Christ, who all his life long had no other taste or wish than
to do the will of his Father, whom he called his meat and
nourishment. For example, you take satisfaction in hearing
of things in which the glory of God bears no part. Deny
yourself this satisfaction : mortify your wish to listen. You
take pleasure in seeing objects which do not raise your mind
to God: refuse yourself this pleasure, and turn away your
eyes. The same with conversations and all other things.
88 Readings in European History
Act similarly, so far as you are able, with all the operations of
the senses, striving to make yourself free from their yokes.
The radical remedy lies in the mortification of the four
great natural passions, joy, hope, fear, and grief. You must
seek to deprive these of every satisfaction and leave them,
as it were, in darkness and the void. Let your soul, therefore,
turn always :
Not to what is most easy, but to what is hardest ;
Not to what tastes best, but to what is most distasteful ;
Not to what most pleases, but to what disgusts ;
Not to matter of consolation, but to matter for desolation
rather ;
Not to rest, but to labor ;
Not to despise the more, but the less ;
Not to aspire to what is highest and most precious, but
to what is lowest and most contemptible ;
Not to will anything, but to will nothing ;
Not to seek the best in everything, but to seek the worst,
so that you may enter for the love of Christ into a complete
destitution, a perfect poverty of spirit, and an absolute
renunciation of everything in this world.
Embrace these practices with all the energy of your soul
and you will find in a short time great delights and unspeak-
able consolations.
Professor William James has set forth the various
feelings which lie at the basis of asceticism in the fol-
lowing remarkable passages :
34. A modem Where to seek the easy and the pleasant seems instinctive
psyckoto- — and instinctive it appears to be in man ; any deliberate
o^eascetic tendency to pursue the hard and painful as such and for
spirit. (Pwm their own sakes might well strike one as purely abnormal.
Nevertheless, in moderate degrees it is natural and even
usual to human nature to court the arduous. It is only the
extreme manifestations of the tendency that can be regarded
as a paradox, . . . Some men and women, indeed, there
are wfeo can live on smiles and the word " yes " forever.
The Monks and the Coimersion of the Germans 89
But for others (indeed for most), this is too tepid and
relaxed a moral climate. Passive happiness is slack and
insipid, and soon grows mawkish and intolerable. Some
austerity and wintry negativity, some roughness, danger,
stringency, and effort, some " no I no ! " must be mixed in, to
produce the sense of an existence with character and texture
and power. ...
Asceticism may be a mere expression of organic hardihood,
disgusted with too much ease.
Temperance in meat and drink, simplicity of apparel,
chastity, and non-pampering of the body generally, may be
fruits of the love of purity, shocked by whatever savors of
the sensual.
They may also be fruits of love, that is, they may appeal
to the subject in the light of sacrifices which he is happy in
making to the Deity whom he acknowledges.
Again, ascetic mortification and torments may be due to
pessimistic feelings about the self, combined with theo-
, logical beliefs concerning expiation. The devotee may feel
that he is buying himself free, or escaping worse sufferings
hereafter by doing penance now.
In psychopathic persons, mortifications may be entered
on irrationally, by a sort of obsession or fixed idea which
comes as a challenge and must be worked off, because only
thus does the subject get his interior consciousness feeling
right again.
Finally, ascetic exercises may in rarer instances be
prompted by genuine perversions of the bodily sensibility,
in consequence of which normally pain-giving stimuli are
actually felt as pleasures.
II. THE DEVIL AND HIS WICKED ANGELS
The following- passages give some idea of the religious
world in which the monks and missionaries lived, and the
views of the next world which they inculcated in the
minds of the newly converted barbarians.
Readings in European History
35. The
pagan gods
only devils
in disguise.
(From the
Dialogues
of Gregory
the Great,
condensed.)
Belief in
miracles
and ever-
present
demons.
36. St. Gall
demons.
(From the
Ufa of St. Golf
(45J30) by an
anonymous
writer.)
Andrew, by God's mercy bishop of Fondi, was a man of
most holy life, but the ancient enemy of mankind sought to
tempt him, by causing him to think evil thoughts.
Now one day a certain Jew was coming to Rome from
Campania, and he traveled by the Appian Way. When
he reached the hill of Fondi he saw that the day was dark-
ening toward evening, and he did not know at all where
he might sleep. He was near a temple of Apollo, and he
decided to stay there.
He feared the sacrilegious character of the place, so,
though he had not the faith of the cross, he took care to pro-
tect himself with the sign of the cross. In the middle of the
night he was disturbed by the very fear of solitude, and lay
awake. Suddenly he looked up, and saw a crowd of evil
spirits. He who was in authority over the rest took his
place in the midst of them and began to discuss the deeds
of each spirit, and to ask how much evil each one had
accomplished.
One of the spirits told how he had caused Bishop Andrew,
to think an unholy thought. Then the evil spirit and enemy
of the human race exhorted that spirit to carry out what he
had begun in Andrew's soul.
Then the spirit who commanded the rest ordered his fol-
lowers to find out who had presumed to sleep in that temple.
But the Jew made the sign of the cross, and all the throng
of evil spirits, crying out " Woe, woe ! " disappeared.
[St. Columban and St. Gall came, about the year 610, to a
village near the Lake of Constance called Bregenz, where
they had heard that there might be opportunity to serve
God.] There the brethren's hands made ready a dwelling,
and the holy Columban fervently prayed to Christ in behalf
of that place.' The superstitious pagans worshiped three
idols of gilded metal, and believed in returning thanks to
them rather than to the creator of the world.
So Columban, the man of God, wished to destroy that
Superstition, and told Gall to talk to the .people, since he
himself excelled in Latin, but not in the language of that
The Jlfonfes and the Conversion of the Germans 91
tribe. The people gathered at the temple for their wonted
festival ; but they were attracted by the sight of the stran-
gers, not, however, by reverence for the divine religion.
When they were assembled, Gall, the elect of God, fed their
hearts with honeyed words, exhorting them to turn to their
Creator, and to Jesus Christ the Son of God, who opened
the gate of heaven for the human race, sunk in indifference
and uncleanness.
Then before them all he broke in pieces with stones the
enthroned idols, and cast them into the depths of the lake.
Then part of the people confessed their sins and believed,
but others were angry and enraged, and departed in wrath ;
and Columban, the man of God, blessed the water and sanc-
tified the place, and remained there with his followers three
years. . . .
Some time after, in the silence of the night, Gall, the elect
of God, was laying nets in the water, and lo ! he heard the
demon of the mountain top calling to his fellow who dwelt
in the depths of the lake. The demon of the lake answered,
" I am here"; he of the mountain returned: "Arise, come
to my aid I Behold the aliens come, and thrust me from
my temple. Come, come ! help me to drive them from our
lands." The demon of the lake answered : " One of them
is upon the lake, whom I could never harm. For I wished
to break his nets, but see, I am vanquished and mourn.
The sign of his prayer protects him always, and sleep never
overcomes him."
Gall, the elect of God, heard this, and fortified himself
on all sides with the sign of the cross, and said to them :
** In the name of Jesus Christ, I command you, leave this
place, and do not presume to harm any one here," And be
hastened to return to the shore, and told his abbot what he
had heard.
When Columban, the man of God, heard this, he called the
brethren together in the church, and made the accustomed
sign (the cross). Before the brethren could raise their
voices, the voice of an unseen being was heard, and wail-
ing and lamentation echoed from the mountain top. So the
Readings in European History
37. Martin,
a hermit,
resists the
terrors of
the devil.
(From
Gregory's
Dialogues.)
malicious demons departed with mourning, and the prayer of
the brethren arose as they sent up their supplications to God.
Gregory the Great tells the following tale in his
Dialogues to illustrate the manner in which the devil
was wont to harass those who sought to avoid worldly
temptations by seeking solitude :
In Campania, upon Mt. Marsicus, a venerable man called
Martin lived for many years the solitary life, shut up in a
very small cave. Many of us knew him, and were witnesses
of his deeds. I myself have heard much of him both from
Pope Pelagius, my predecessor, and from other religious
men who related anecdotes of him. His first miracle was
this: hardly had he established himself in the cleft of the
mountain, when from the very rock which was hollowed out
to make his narrow cave burst forth a stream of water just
sufficient to supply the daily need of the servant of God, and
there was never too much or too little. . . .
But the ancient enemy of mankind envied the man's
strength, and labored with his wonted skill to drive him
forth from the cave. For he entered into the beast that
is his friend — the serpent — and sought to make the monk
afraid, and to drive him from his dwelling. He came at
twilight, and stretched himself out before the holy man
when he was praying, and lay down with him when he went
to rest.
The holy man was entirely unafraid. He would hold to
the serpent's mouth his hand or his foot, and say to him,
"If thou hast leave to smite me, I do not say thee nay."
After these things had taken place continually for three years,
on a certain day the ancient enemy of mankind, vanquished
by such great endurance, groaned ; and the serpent let him-
self glide over the steep mountain side to a precipice. And
the flame that went out from him burned all the trees in that
place. Almighty God constrained him to burn the mountain
side, and so compelled him to show forth the great virtue of
the man from whom he had departed, conquered.
The Monks and the Conversion of the Germans 93
III. PURGATORY, HELL, AND HEAVEN
At this time [Bede writes] a memorable miraple, and like to 38. Descrip-
those of former days, was wrought in Britain ; for, to the end tiollof
that the living might be saved from the death of the soul, a he&f^d7'
certain person, who had been some time dead, rose again to heaven,
life, and related many remarkable things he had seen ; some ^StaSS/1
of which I have thought fit here briefly to take notice of. History of
There was a master of a family in that district of the Er>9land)
Northumbrians which is called Cunningham, who led a reli-
gious life, as did also all that belonged to him. This man
fell sick, and his distemper daily increasing, being brought
to extremity, he died in the beginning of the night; but in
the morning early he suddenly came to life again, and sat
up, upon which all those that sat about the body weeping
fled away in a great fright : only his wife, who loved him best,
though in a great consternation and trembling, remained with
him. He, comforting her, said, "Fear not, for I am now
truly risen from death, and permitted again to live among
men; however, I am not to live hereafter as I was wont, but
from henceforward after a very different manner."
Then rising immediately, he repaired to the oratory of the
little town and, continuing in prayer till day, immediately
divided all his substance into three parts, one whereof he
gave to his wife, another to his children, and the third,
belonging to himself, he instantly distributed among the poor.
Not long after he repaired to the monastery of Melrose, which
is almost inclosed by the winding of the river Tweed, and
having been shaven, went into a private dwelling which the
abbot had provided, where he continued till the day of his
death in such extraordinary contrition of mind and body
that, though his tongue had been silent, his life declared that
he had seen many things* either to be dreaded or coveted,
which others knew nothing of.
Thus he related what he had seen. " He that led me had Va*» of
a shining countenance and a bright garment, and we went
on silently, as I thought, towards the northeast Walking
on, we came to a vale of great breadth and depth, but of
94 Readings in European History
infinite length ; on the left it appeared full of dreadful flames ;
the other side was no less horrid for violent hail and cold
snow flying in all directions ; both places were full of men's
souls, which seemed by turns to be tossed from one side to
the other, as it were by a violent storm ; for when the wretches
could no longer endure the excess of heat, they leaped into
the middle of the cutting cold; and finding no rest there,
they leaped back again into the middle of the unquenchable
flames.
"Now whereas an innumerable multitude of deformed
spirits were thus alternately tormented far and near, as far
as could be seen, without any intermission, I began to think
that this perhaps might be hell, of whose intolerable flames
I had often heard talk. My guide, who went before me,
answered to my thought, saying, * Do not believe so, for this
is not hell, as you imagine.*
Vision of the " When he had conducted me, much frightened with that
mouth of hell. ^orr[^ spectacle, by degrees, to the farther end, on a sudden
I saw the place begin to grow dusk and filled with darkness.
When I came into it, the darkness, by degrees, grew so thick
that I could see nothing besides it and the shape and gar-
ment of him that led me. As we went on through the shades
of night, on a sudden there ^appeared before us frequent
globes of black flames, rising, as it were, out of a great pit,
and falling back again into the same.
" When I had been conducted thither, my leader suddenly
vanished, and left me alone in the midst of darkness and
this horrid vision, whilst those same globes of fire, without
intermission, at one time flew up and at another fell back
into the bottom of the abyss; and I observed that all the
flames, as they ascended, were full of "human souls, which,
like sparks flying up with smoke, were sometimes thrown
on high, and again, when the vapor of the fire ceased,
dropped down into the depth below. Moreover, an insuffer-
able stench came forth with the vapors, and filled all those
dark places.
" Having stood there a long time in much dread, not know-
ing what to do, which way to turn, or what end I might
The JMonks and the Conversion of f/ic Germans 95
expect, on a sudden I heard behind me the noise of a most
hideous and wretched lamentation, and at the same time a
loud laughing, as of a rude multitude insulting captured
enemies. When that noise, growing plainer, came up to me,
I observed a gang of evil spirits dragging the howling and
lamenting souls of men into the midst of the darkness, whilst
they themselves laughed and rejoiced.
"Among those men, as I could discern, there was one shorn
like a clergyman, also a layman, and a woman. The evil
spirits that dragged them went down into the midst of the
burning pit ; and as they went down deeper, I could no longer
distinguish between the lamentation of the men and the laugh-
ing of the devils, yet I still had a confused sound in my ears.
" In the meantime some of the dark spirits ascended from
that flaming abyss, and, running forward, beset me on all
sides, and much perplexed me with their glaring eyes and
the stifling fire which proceeded from their mouths and
nostrils ; and they threatened to lay hold on me with burn-
ing tongs, which they had in their hands ; yet they durst not
touch me, though they frightened me. Being thus on all
sides inclosed with enemies and darkness, and looking about
on every side for assistance, there appeared behind me, on
the way that I came, as it were, the brightness of a star shin-
ing amidst the darkness, which increased by degrees, and
came rapidly towards me : when it drew near, all those evil
spirits that had sought to carry me away with their tongs
dispersed and fled.
" He whose approach put them to flight was the same that
had led me before; who, turning then towards the right,
began to lead me, as it were, towards the southeast, and hav-
ing soon brought me out of the darkness, conducted me into
an atmosphere of clear light.
" While he thus led me in open light, I saw a vast wall
before us, the length and height of which, in every direction,
seemed to be altogether boundless. I began to wonder why
we went up to the wall, seeing no door, window, or path
through it. When we came to the wall, we were presently,
I know not by what means, on the top of it, and within it was
96 Readings in European History
a vast and beautiful field, so full of fragrant flowers that the
odor of its delightful sweetness immediately dispelled the
stench of the dark furnace, which had penetrated me through
and through.
"So great was the light in this place that it seemed to
exceed the brightness of the day, or of the sun in its merid-
ian height. In this field were innumerable assemblies of
men in white and many companies seated together rejoicing.
As he led me through the midst of these happy people,
I began to think that this might, perhaps, be the kingdom
of heaven, of which I had often heard so much. He an-
swered to my thought, saying, ' This is not the kingdom of
heaven, as you imagine/
vision of "When we had passed those mansions of blessed souls
and gone farther on, I discovered before me a much more
beautiful light, and heard therein sweet voices of persons
singing ; and so wonderful a fragrancy proceeded from the
place that the other, which I had before thought most deli-
cious, then seemed to me but very indifferent, even as that
extraordinary brightness of the flowery field, compared with
this, appeared mean and inconsiderable. When I began to
hope we should enter that delightful place, my guide on a
sudden stood still j and then, turning round, led me back by
the way we came.
" When we returned to those joyful mansions of the souls
in white, he said to me, ' Do you know what all these things
are which you have seen ? ' I answered that I 4id not ; and
then he replied, l That vale you saw, so dreadful for its con-
suming flames and cutting cold, is the place in which the souls
of those are tried and punished who, delaying to confess
and amend their crimes, at length have recourse to repent-
ance at the point of death, and so depart this life; but
nevertheless because they, even at their death, confessed and
repented, they shall all be received into the kingdom of
heaven at the day of judgment by the prayers, alms, and
fasting of the living, and more especially by masses.
" * That iiery and stinking pit which you saw is the mouth
of bell, into which whosoever falls shall never be delivered
The Monks and the Conversion of the Germans 97
to all eternity. This flowery place, in which you see these
most beautiful young people, so bright and gay, is that
into which the souls of those are received who depart the
body in good works, but who are not so perfect as to deserve
to be immediately admitted into the kingdom of heaven ;
yet they shall all, at the day of judgment, see Christ and
partake of the joys of his kingdom ; for whoever are perfect
in thought, word, and deed, as soon as they depart the body
immediately enter into the kingdom of heaven ; in the neigh-
borhood whereof that place is, where you heard the sound
of sweet singing, with the fragrant odor and bright light.
" ' As for you, who are now to return to your body and live
among men again, if you will endeavor nicely to watch your
actions, and to direct your speech and behavior in right-
eousness and simplicity, you shall, after death, have a place
of residence among these joyful troops of blessed souls ; for
when I left you for a while, it was to know how you were to
be disposed of.* When he had said this to me I much
abhorred returning to my body, being delighted with the
sweetness and beauty of the place I beheld and with the
company of those I saw in it. However, I durst not ask
him any questions; but in the meantime, on a sudden, I
found myself alive among men."
IV. THE CONVERSION OF ENGLAND, AS DESCRIBED
BY BEDE
In the year of our Lord 582, Maurice, the fifty-fourth 39. Tfee
emperor -from Augustus, ascended the throne and reigned ani?al »
twenty-one years. In the tenth year of his reign, Gregory, *"* ***
a man renowned for learning and behavior, was promoted seat by
to the apostolic see of Rome, and presided over it thirteen
years, six months, and ten days. He, being moved by
divine inspiration, about the one hundred and fiftieth year Hade's
after the coming of the English into Britain, sent the servant
of God, Augustine, and with him several other monks who
feared the Lord, to preach the word of God to the English
nation. . . .
Readings in European History
King Ethel-
bert meets
the Roman
missionaries.
[Augustine, with his companions, arrived in Britain.]
The powerful Ethelbert was at that time king of Kent;
he had extended his dominions as far as the great river
Humber, by which the southern Saxons are divided from
the northern. On the east of Kent is the large Isle of
Thanet, containing, according to the English way of reckon-
ing, six hundred families, and divided from the other land
by the river Wantsum, which is about three furlongs across
and fordable only in two places, for both ends of it run into
the sea.
In this island landed the servant of our Lord, Augustine,
and his companions, being, as is reported, nearly forty men.
They had, by order of the blessed Pope Gregory, brought
interpreters of the nation of the Franks, and sending to
Ethelbert, signified that they were come from Rome, and
brought a joyful message, which most undoubtedly assured
to all that took advantage of it everlasting joys in heaven,
and a kingdom that would never end with the living and
true God.
The king, having heard this, ordered them to stay in that
island where they had landed and that they should be fur-
nished with all necessaries till he should consider what to do
with them. For he had heard of the Christian religion,
having a Christian wife, of the royal family of the Franks,
called Bertha, whom he had received from her parents upon
condition that she should be permitted to practice her reli-
gion with the bishop, Luidhard, who was sent with her to
preserve the faith.
Some days later the king came into the island and, sitting
in the open air, ordered Augustine and his companions to
be brought into his presence. For he had taken precaution
that they should not come to him in any house, lest, accord-
ing to an ancient superstition, if they practiced any magical
arts they might impose upon him, and so get the better of
him. But they came furnished with divine, not with magic,
power, bearing a silver cross for their banner, and the image
of our Lord and Saviour painted on a board; and singing
the litany, they offered up their prayers to the Lord for the
The Plonks and the Conversion of the Germans 99
eternal salvation both of themselves and of those to whom
they came.
When Augustine had sat down, pursuant to the king's com- Augustine
mands, and preached to him and his attendants there present *ounds a
the word of life, the king answered thus : " Your words and
promises are very fair, but they are new to us and of uncer-
tain import, and I cannot approve of them so far as to
forsake that which I have so long followed with the whole
English nation. But because you are come from far into
my kingdom, and, as I conceive, are desirous to impart to us
those things which you believe to be true and most bene-
ficial, we will not molest you, but give you favorable enter-
tainment and take care to supply you with the necessary
sustenance; nor do we forbid you to preach and gain as
many as you can to your religion."
Accordingly, he permitted them to reside in the city of Augustine
Canterbury, which was the metropolis of all his dominions, peaches to
and pursuant of his promise, besides allowing them suste- S"
nance, did not refuse them the liberty to preach. . . .
As soon as they entered the dwelling place assigned them,
they began to imitate the course of life practiced in the primi-
tive church : applying themselves to frequent prayer, watch-
ing, and fasting ; preaching the word of life to as many as
they could ; despising all worldly things, as not belonging to
them ; receiving only their necessary food from those they
taught ; living themselves in all respects conformably to what
they prescribed to others, and being always disposed to
suffer any adversity, and even to die for that truth which
they preached. In short, several believed and were bap-
tized, admiring the simplicity of their innocent life and the
sweetness of their heavenly doctrine.
There was on the east side of the city a church dedicated
to St. Martin, built whilst the Romans were still in the island,
wherein the queen, who, as has been said before, was a
Christian, used to pray. In this they first began to meet, to
sing, to pray, to say mass, to preach, and to baptize, till the
king, being converted to the faith, allowed them to preach
openly and to build or repair churches in all places.
zoo Readings in European History
When he among the rest, induced by the unspotted life
of these holy men and their delightful promises, which, by
many miracles, they proved to be most certain, believed and
was baptized, greater numbers began daily to flock together
to hear the word and, forsaking their heathen rites, to asso-
ciate themselves, by believing, to the unity of the Church
of Christ.
The great sagacity and practical good sense of
Gregory the Great are exhibited in his instructions
to the missionaries.
40. Pope When Almighty God shall bring you to the most reverend
Gregory's Bishop Augustine, our brother, tell him what I have, after
tDMUwnS* mature deliberation on the affairs of the English, determined
sionariesin upon, namely, that the temples of the idols in that nation
Engfcnd OUght not to be destroyed, but let the idols that are in them
be destroyed ; let holy water be made and sprinkled in the
said temples ; let altars be erected, and relics placed. For
if those temples are well built, it is requisite that they be
converted from the worship of devils to the service of the
true God; that the nation, seeing that their temples are not
destroyed, may remove error from their hearts and, knowing
and adoring the true God, may the more familiarly resort to
the places to which they have been accustomed.
And because they have been used to slaughter many oxen
in the sacrifices to devils, some solemnity must be substituted
for them on this account, as, for instance, that on the day of
the dedication, or of the nativities of the holy martyrs whose
relics are there deposited, they may build themselves huts of
the boughs of trees about those churches which have been
turned to that use from temples, and celebrate the solemnity
with religious feasting, no more offering beasts to the devil,
but killing cattle to the praise of God in their eating, and
returning thanks to the Giver of all things for their suste-
nance ; to the end that, whilst some outward gratifications are
permitted them, they may the more easily consent to the
inward consolations of the grace of God.
The Monks and the Conversion of the Germans 101
For there is no doubt that it is impossible to efface every- The heathen
thing at once from their obdurate minds, because he who shouki **
endeavors to ascend to the highest place rises by degrees ^j^jSjJ*
or steps and not by leaps. Thus the Lord made himself waned from
known to the people of Israel in Egypt ; and yet he allowed
them to use the sacrifices which they were wont to offer
to the devil in his own worship, commanding them in
his sacrifice to kill beasts to the end that, changing their
hearts, they might lay aside one part of the sacrifice, whilst
they retained another; that whilst they offered the same
beasts which they were wont to offer, they should offer them
to God, and not to idols, and thus they would no longer
be the same sacrifices.
Bede relates the story of the conversion of Northum-
bria to the Roman Catholic form of faith, as follows :
[Edwin, king of Northumbria, urged by his Christian 41. Bede's
wife, Ethelberga, and by the bishop Paulinus,] answered acc0*'****
that he was both willing and bound to receive the new faith
which the bishop taught, but that he \\ ished, nevertheless, to*
confer about it with his principal friends and counselors,
to the end that, if they also were of his opinion, they might
all be cleansed together in Christ, the Fountain of Life.
Paulinus consenting, the king did as he had said ; for, hold-
ing a council with the wise men, he asked of every one in
particular what he thought of the new doctrine and the new
worship that was preached.
To which the chief of his own priests, Coin, immediately
answered: "O king, consider what this is which is now
preached to us ; for I verily declare to you that the religion
which we have hitherto professed has, as far as I can learn,
no virtue in it. For none of your people has applied him-
self more diligently to the worship of our gods than I ; and
yet there are many who receive greater favors from you, and
are more preferred than I, and who are more prosperous in
all their undertakings. Now if the gods were good for any-
thing, they would rather forward me, who have been more
IO2 Readings in European History
careful to serve them. It follows, therefore, that if upon
examination you find those new doctrines which are now
preached to us better and more efficacious, we should imme-
diately receive them without any delay."
Another of the king's chief men, approving of Coifi's words
and exhortations, presently added : " The present life of
man, O king, seems to me, in comparison with that time
which is unknown to us, like to the swift flight of a sparrow
through the room wherein you sit at supper in winter amid
your officers and ministers, with a good fire in the midst,
whilst the storms of rain and snow prevail abroad; the spar-
row, I say, flying in at one door and immediately out at
another, whilst he is within is safe from the wintry storm ;
but after a short space of fair weather he immediately van-
ishes out of your sight into the dark winter from which he
has emerged. So this life <5f man appears for a short space,
but of what went before or what is to follow we are utterly
ignorant. If, therefore, this new doctrine contains some-
thing more certain, it seems justly to deserve to be followed."
The other elders and king's counselors, by divine inspira-
tion, spoke to the same effect. But Coifi added that he
wished more attentively to hear Paulinus discourse concern-
Ing the God whom he preached. So the bishop having
spoken by the king's command at greater length, Coifi, hear-
ing his words, cried out : " I have long since been sensible
that there was nothing In that which we worshiped, because
the more diligently I sought after truth in that worship, the
less I found it. But now I freely confess that such evident
truth appears in this preaching as can confer on us the gifts
of life, of salvation, and of eternal happiness. For which
reason I advise, O king, that we instantly abjure and set fire
to those temples and altars which we have consecrated with-
out reaping any benefits from them."
In short, the king publicly gave his permission to Paulinus
to preach the gospel, and, renouncing idolatry, declared that
he received the faith of Christ: and when he inquired of the
high priest who should first profane the altars and temples
of their idols, with the inclosures that were about them, the
The Monks and the Conversion of the Germans 103
high priest answered, " I ; for who can more properly than
myself destroy those things which I worshiped through igno-
rance, for an example to all others, through the wisdom which
has been given me by the true God ? "
Then immediately, in contempt of his former superstitions,
he desired the king to furnish him with arms and a stallion,
and mounting the latter, he set out to destroy the idols ; for
it was not lawful before for the high priest either to carry
arms or to ride on any beast but a mare. Having, therefore,
girt on a sword and carrying a spear in his hand, he mounted
the king's stallion and proceeded to the idols. The multitude,
beholding him, concluded he was distracted ; but he lost no
time, for as soon as he drew near the temple he profaned the
same, casting into it the spear which he held. And rejoicing
in the knowledge of the worship of the true God, he com-
manded his companions to destroy the temple, with all its
inclosures, by fire.
This place where the idols were is still shown, not far
from York, to the eastward, beyond the river Derwent, and
is now called Godmundhigham ; where the high priest, by
the inspiration of the true God, profaned and destroyed the
altars which he had himself consecrated.
The Roman monks, sent by Gregory the Great, found 43. '
that the Christian missionaries from Ireland observed betweemtfce
Easter at a different time from that appointed by the R«w»
ym$ *TMflp
Roman church. After years of controversy it was agreed
that a synod should be held where the difficulty might be
settled. Bede thus describes the arguments advanced
by both sides and the victory of the Roman party:
[Bishop Colman spoke for the Scots (i.e. Irish) and said:]
" The Easter which I keep I received from my elders, who
sent me hither as bishop ; all our forefathers, men beloved
of God, are known to have kept it after the same manner;
and that this may not seem to any contemptible or worthy to
be rejected, it is the same which St. John the Evangelist, the
104
Readings in European History
The ting's
decision in
feror of the
Roman
Church.
disciple beloved of our Lord, with all the churches over which
he presided, is recorded to have observed." . . .
Then Wilfrid was ordered by the king to speak for the
Roman practice : " The Easter which we observe we saw
celebrated by all at Rome, where the blessed apostles, Peter
and Paul, lived, taught, suffered, and were buried ; we saw
the same done in Italy and in France, when we traveled
through those countries for pilgrimage and prayer. We
found that Easter was celebrated at one and the same time
in Africa, Asia, Egypt, Greece, and all the world, wherever
the Church of Christ is spread abroad, through the various
nations and tongues ; except only among these and their
accomplices in obstinacy, I mean the Picts and the Britons,
who foolishly, in these two remote islands of the world, and
only in part even of them', oppose all the rest of the uni-
verse. . . .
*' You certainly sin if, having heard the decree of the apos-
tolic see, and of the universal Church, and that the same is
confirmed by Holy Writ, you refuse to follow them ; for,
though your fathers were holy, do you think that their small
number, in a corner of the remotest island, is to be preferred
before the universal Church of Christ throughout the world ?
And though that Columba1 of yours (and, I may say, ours
also, if he was Christ's servant) was a holy man and power-
ful in miracles, yet should he be preferred before the most
blessed prince of the apostles, to whom our Lord said, * Thou
art Peter, and upon this rock I will build my church ; and
the gates of hell shall not prevail against it. And I will
give unto thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven ' ? "
When Wilfrid had spoken thus, the king said, " Is it true,
Colman, that these words were spoken to Peter by our Lord? "
He answered, " It is true, O king ! " Then said he, " Can
you show any such power given to your Columba ? " Colman
answered, " None." Then added the king, " Do both of you
agree that these words were principally directed to Peter,
1 An Irish missionary (d. 597) ; not to be confused with St. Colnmban,
wfeo carried the gospel to the Franks.
The Monks and the Conversion of the Germans 105
and that the keys of heaven were given to him by our Lord? M
They both answered, *' We do." Then the king concluded,
"And I also say unto you, that he is the doorkeeper, whom
I will not contradict, but will, as far as I know and am able,
in all things obey his decrees, lest when I come to the gates
of the kingdom of heaven there should be none to open them,
he being my adversary who is proved to have the keys."
The king having said this, all present, both great and small,
gave their assent and, renouncing the more imperfect insti-
tution, resolved to conform to that which they found to be
better.
V. BONIFACE AND THE CONVERSION OF GERMANY
The following documents make clear the close relations
between Boniface and the papacy.
Gregory, servant of the servants of God, to the devout priest
Boniface :
Knowing that thou hast from childhood been devoted to
sacred letters, and that thou hast labored to reveal to un-
believing people the mystery of faith, ... we decree in
the name of the indivisible Trinity, through the unshaken
authority of Peter, chief of the apostles, whose doctrine it
is our charge to teach, and whose holy see is in our keeping,
that, since thou seemest to glow with the salvation-bringing
fire which our Lord came to send upon the earth, thou
shalt hasten to whatsoever tribes are lingering in the error
of unbelief, and shalt institute the rites of the kingdom of
God. . . . And we desire thee to establish the discipline
of the sacraments, according to the observance of our holy
apostolic see.
Gregory, pope^ to our well-beloved bishops established in Bavaria
and Alemannia :
... It is fitting that ye recognize our brother a'nd fellow-
bishop, Boniface, as our representative, and that ye receive
him with due honor in the name of Christ. And ye shall
maintain the ministry of the Church with the Catholic faith
43. Boaiface
statedly
Ptpe Greg-
cxynta
preach tfce
gospel t*
tbeheathes
tribes <7*9)
(coodesaed).
44. Gregory
IE appoints
Boniface the
presiding
bishop ia
Germany
<723).
io6
Readings in European History
45. Oath
taken by
Boniface to
the pope
(722).
46. How
Boniface
destroyed
the oak of
Thor. (Prom
Willibald's
Life of
Boniface,
written
before 786.)
according to the custom and precepts of the holy Catholic
Apostolic Church ; . . . And ye shall abhor the rites of the
heathen, and the teaching of those coming from Britain and
of false heretical priests. . . .
I, Boniface, bishop by the grace of God, promise to you,
the blessed Peter, chief of the apostles, and to thy vicar,
the blessed Pope Gregory, and to his successors, by the
Father and the Son and the Holy Ghost, the indivisible
Trinity, and by this thy most holy body, that, God helping
me, I will maintain all the belief and the purity of the holy
Catholic faith, and I will remain steadfast in the unity of this
faith in which the whole salvation of Christians lies, as is
established without doubt.
I will in no wise oppose the unity of the one universal
Church, no matter who may seek to persuade me. But as I
have said, I will maintain my faith and purity and union with
thee and the benefits of thy Church, to whom God has given
the power to loose and to bind, and with thy vicar and his
successors, in all things. And if it comes to my knowledge
that priests have turned from the ancient practices of the
holy fathers, I will have no intercourse nor connection with
them ; but rather, if I can restrain them, I will. If I cannot,
I will at once faithfully make known the whole matter to my
apostolic lord.1
Majiy of the people of Hesse were converted [by Boniface]
to the Catholic faith and confirmed by the grace of the spirit :
and they received the laying on of hands. But some there
were, not yet strong of soul, who refused to accept wholly the
teachings of the true faith. Some men sacrificed secretly,
some even openly, to trees and springs. Some secretly
practiced divining, soothsaying, and incantations, and some
openly. But others, who were of sounder mind, cast aside
all heathen profanation and did none of these things ; and it
, 1 This oath follows almost word for word that taken to the pope by
the bishops in the immediate vicinity of Rome, who were under his
special control
The Monks and the Conversion of the Germans 107
was with the advice and consent of these men that Boniface
sought to fell a certain tree of great size, at Geismar, and
called, in the ancient speech of the region, the oak of Jove
[i.e. Thor].
The man of God was surrounded by the sen-ants of God.
When he would cut down the tree, behold a great throng of
pagans who were there cursed him bitterly among themselves
because he was the enemy of their gods. And when he had
cut into the trunk a little way, a breeze sent by God stirred
overhead, and suddenly the branching top of the tree was
broken off, and the oak in all its huge bulk fell to the ground.
And it was broken into four parts, as if by the divine will,
so that the trunk was divided into four huge sections without
any effort of the brethren who stood by. When the pagans
who had cursed did see this, they left off cursing and, believ-
ing, blessed God. Then the most holy priest took counsel
with the brethren : and he built from the wood of the tree
an oratory, and dedicated it to the holy apostle Peter.
The following account of the founding of the famous
monastery of Fulda was written by Sturmi's disciple Eigil,
who was abbot of Fulda during the years 8 18 to 822.
[The holy and venerable archbishop Boniface came to 47-Hcwth*
Bavaria, and turned many people to the gospel of Christ
Among them a certain boy, Sturmi, son of noble and Chris-
tian parents, followed the teaching of Boniface and was
ordained priest.] For almost three years he fulfilled the
duties of the priesthood, preaching and baptizing among the uf**fst.
people. Then by the inspiration of God the purpose came
into his soul to chasten himself by the straiter life and the
hardships of the wilderness. He sought counsel thereupon
from Boniface, — his master in the spirit, — who, when he
understood Sturmi, knew that this purpose was inspired of
God and rejoiced that God had designed to lead him by his
grace. He gave Sturmi two companions, and when he had
prayed and blessed them all he said: "Go forth into that
solitude which is called Bochonia and seek a place meet for
io8
Readings in European History
[Somewhat
condensed.]
Sturmi starts
forth alone
to discover
a proper
site for the
the servants of God to dwell in. For God is able to prepare
for his servants a place in the wilderness."
And so those three went forth into the wilderness and
entered into places solitary and rough, and saw almost noth-
ing but heaven and earth and great trees; and they prayed
Christ fervently that he would direct their feet in the path
of peace. On the third day they came to the place which
even to this day is called Hersfeld ; and when they had seen
and explored the region round about, they asked Christ that
the place might be blest to the dwellers therein. On the
very spot where the monastery now stands they built poor
huts of the bark of trees. There they tarried many days,
serving God with holy fasts and watching and prayer. . . .
Then after some time spent in holy meditation Sturmi
returned to the bishop, and described the lay of the land and
the course of the streams, and the hills and valleys. . . .
Boniface heard him attentively, and answered : " I fear to
have you dwell in this place which ye have found because
a barbarous race lives close by, for, as thou knowest, the fell
Saxons are near at hand. Wherefore seek a dwelling in the
wilderness farther away and higher up the stream, where ye
may remain without danger."
Then the holy man Sturmi returned to his companions.
With two brethren he entered a boat and traveled along the
river Fulda, spying out the land, but they found no place
which pleased them. So Sturmi went again to Boniface and
said, "For many days did we sail along the river Fulda,
but we found nothing that we would dare to praise to you."
And the holy bishop saw that God had not yet revealed the
place which he had chosen.
Sturmi returned to the cell which had now been built in
a place above Hersfeld. Here he saluted the brethren and
reported to them what the holy bishop had counseled. Then
after resting a little he mounted his ass and set forth alone,
commending his journey to Christ, who is the way, the truth,
and the life. All alone, sitting upon his ass, he began his
journey through the vast places of the wilderness. He
eagerly explored the region and observed with quick eye the
The blanks and the Conversion of the Germans 1 09
mountains and the hills and the plains, the springs and tor-
rents and rivers. With psalms always upon his lips, he
prayed to God with groaning, his soul lifted up to heaven.
And wherever night found him, there he rested; and he
hewed wood with the sword which he bore in his hand, and
laid it in a circle, and set it on fire to protect his ass, lest the
wild beasts which were there in great numbers might devour
him. For himself, he made on his forehead the sign of the
cross of Christ, in the name of God, and rested in safety. . . .
Once as he had paused at sunset, and was busied with
preparing for the night, he heard a sound as of a living crea-
ture, but whether it was man or beast he knew not. . . . Then
because the man of God did not wish to cry out, he struck
a hollow tree with the sword he bore in his hand. And
verily when the man had heard the sound of the blow he
came thither, and spoke to Sturmi. And when the man of
God asked him whence he came, he answered that he came
from Wetteran and led in his hand the horse of Ortis, his
lord. So they talked together and stayed there together
that night. Now the man had a full acquaintance with the
solitudes of the forest, and when the man of God made known
to him what was in his mind and what he would fain do, he
began to tell him the names of the places, and to show him
how the torrents and springs did flow. ... At sunrise they
blessed each the other, and straightway the secular man went
upon his way to Grapfelt. , - „
£ And Sturmi also went on his- way till he reached the tor-
rent that even to this day is called Grezzibach.] He saw
how the land lay, and what was the nature of the soil, and he
tarried there a little space. And then he went back a little
way and came to the place already made ready and blessed
by God, even the place where the holy monastery [of Fulda]
now stands. When he had come thither straightway the holy
man Sturmi ^ras filled with exceeding great joy, for he knew
that through the merits and prayers of the holy bishop Boni-
face the place had been revealed to him by God.
Then on the second day the man of God came again to
Hersfeld and found his brethren there calling upon God with
110
Readings in European History
[This para-
graph is
condensed.]
Boniface
procures a
charter
from King
Carloman
for Fulda.
The building
of the
monastery.
fervent prayers. He told them of the place he had found
and bade them make ready to go thither with him. But
Sturmi went straightway to the holy bishop Boniface to tell
him how he had found a place for the brethren to dwell in.
Together they rejoiced and gave God thanks and held sweet
converse about the life and conversation of monks. Then
did the bishop let Sturmi go back to his wilderness, while he
went to the palace of Carloman, the king, to gain from him
a grant of the place Sturmi had chosen.
When Boniface came before the king, he said to him:
" We have found in the wilderness called Bochonia, beside
the river named Fulda, a place meet for the servants of God
to dwell in, where before us no man has dwelt. It is under
your sway, and we do beg of your beneficence to give us
this place, so that we may be enabled to serve God under
your protection." . . . Then did the king before all the lords
of his palace give over to the bishop the place he had asked
for, saying, " This place which thou seekest on the bank of
the river Fulda I give over whole and entire from my law to
the law of God — from that place in all directions in a circle
four thousand paces toward east and west and north and
south, ye shall hold the region."
Then the king gave command that a charter be written to
this end, and he sealed it with his own hand.
In the year of the incarnation of Christ 744, in the first
month, the twelfth day of the month, while the brothers Car-
loman and Pippin were reigning over the Frankish people,
did Sturmi arise, in the name of God, and with seven breth-
ren he did go to the place where now the monastery stands.
They prayed to the Lord Christ that he would ever protect and
defend them by his power; and, serving God in sacred psalms
and in fasts, vigils, and prayers by day and by night, they did
busy themselves cutting down the forests and clearing the
ground by their own labor so far as strength was»given them.
When two months had passed by, and a multitude of men
were gathered together, the reverend archbishop Boniface
came unto them ; and when he looked and saw the conven-
ience and great resources of the place, he exulted in the
The Plonks and the Conversion of the Germans I \ I
Holy Spirit, giving thanks and praising Christ because he
had deigned to bestow upon his servants such a lodge in the
wilderness. . . .
And the brethren decided to follow the rule of the holy [Condensed.]
father Benedict. They spent many years in hoFy pursuits ;
and the number of brethren in the monastery grew greater,
for many men gave themselves and all that they had to serve
God there. And the holy bishop was zealous to visit them
from time to time ; and he had compassion upon their
poverty, and gave them some lands to furnish them neces-
sary food.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
The Monks: ADAMS, Civilization,^. 131-136; EMERTOK, Intrcduc- A. Refer-
tion, Chapter XI, pp. 135-149; GIBBON, Vol. IV, Chapter XXXVII, ™iVJ-
PP- 57-75-
The Benedictine Rule: Selections in FLING, European History
Studies •, Vol. II, No. 6, pp. 94-9*?. The most complete translation is
in HENDERSON, Select Docttments, pp. 274-314. Monastery Charters:
FLING, pp. 91-94; HENDERSON, pp. 329-333.
The Conversion of the Saxons : BEMONT and MONOD, pp. 124-132 ;
GARDINER, Students History of England, pp. 37-52 ; GREEN, Short
History of the English People (larger edition), Chapter I, section 3, pp. 1 7-
36 ; TERRY, History of England, pp. 34-49 ; GEE and HARDY, Documents
of English Church History, pp. 2-15; Old Scuth Leaflets, No. 113; KEN-
DALL, Soitrce Boob of English History, pp. 14-16; GREEN, pp. 38-41.
Missionaries to the Continent : Life of St. Columban^ written in the
seventh century. Translations and Reprints, Vol. II, No. 7. Very valu-
able and interesting.
MONTALEMBERT, The Afonks of the West, 6 vols. The best and B» Addi-
fullest discussion of the subject, attractive on account of the writer's tional yc<*d-
enthusiasm and literary style. See especially Introduction, Chapters II, '** ™^
III, and IV, on the nature of monastkism and its services to Christen-
dom ; Books II and III on the precursors of Benedict in the East and
West; Book IV on Benedict; Book VII on St. Columban ; and Books
VIII-XIV on the establishment of the Church in Britain.
SMITH, T. G., Christian Monasticism from the Fourth to the Ninth
Centuries. A brief survey of the same field.
HARNACK, Monasticism. An admirable philosophical comparison of
the spirit of eastern and western monasticism.
1 1 2 Readings in European History
TAYLOR, The Classical Heritage of the Middle Ages, Chapter VII. An
eloquent description of the character of monasticism and its founders.
Good general chapters on the origin and spread of monastic institu-
tions are to be found in works already mentioned. NEWMAN, Manual
of Church Hrstory, Chapter III, sections loand 11; SCHAFF, History of
the Christian Church, Vol. IV, Chapter II; MlLMAN, History of Latin
Christianity^ Book III, Chapter VI, on Western Monasticism in Gen-
eral ; Book IV, Chapters III and IV, Conversion of England; Book IV,
Chapter V, Conversion of the Germans.
HERON, The Celtic Church in Ireland. The story of the work of
St. Patrick, with an account of the sources of his life.
POOLE, Illustrations of the History of Medi&ual Thought, Introduc-
tion. A valuable summary of the work of the Irish schools.
The Fathers for English Readers. This series contains reliable, short,
and convenient biographies of St. Jerome and St. Boniface.
CUTTS, Augustine of Canterbury, and MASON, The Mission of St.
Augustine according to the Original Documents, furnish and discuss the
material for the life of the missionary to England.
COOKE, The Life and Work of St. Columba, an interesting narrative
of the labors of the "Apostle of Caledonia" (d. 598), who planted the
Celtic church on the shores of Scotland.
ADAMNANUS, Vita S. Columbae, edited with a translation by Fowler.
An excellent edition of one of the very few absolutely contemporary
lives of an early mediaeval saint. One of the few sources for conditions
in Ireland and Scotland during this period.
BEDE, Ecclesiastical History, translated by Giles (Latin and English
on opposite pages). The great authority for the beginnings of the
English Church. A type of the best early .mediaeval historian. (For
recent edition, see below, section C.)
C. Materials ZocKLER, Askese und Monchthum, Frankfurt, 1897. Well arranged
for advanced an(j contains full references to the whole literature of asceticism.
*' HATJCK, Kirchengeschichte Deutschlands, 3 vols., Leipzig, 1896-1898 ;
coming down to I r 22. Vol. I gives the most detailed and careful account
of the Christian missions in Germany to the death of Boniface.
Bentdicti JRegula, edited by Woelfflin (Teubner). A critical edition
of the text.
BEDE, Opera Historica, edited by Plummer, 2 vols., Clarendon Press,
1896. The most elaborate and scholarly edition of this important
scarce. A cheaper edition is edited by Holder, Freiburg, 1890, M. 4.50.
The Plonks and the Corners ion of the Germans 1 1 3
The chief sources for the monastic life and the missions are the The Lives of
Lives of the Saints. These are usually very unsatisfactory, for they the Saints,
were in most cases written, or rewritten, long after the death of those
whose history they tell. Moreover, their authors did not write with a
view of describing in detail the situation and conduct of their heroes.
The main object was to edify the reader, or to glorify the founder of a
monastery by reciting the miracles he performed. Every saint must,
like Elijah, raise the dead or, like Jesus, heal the sick, walk on the
waves, quiet tempests, and predict future events, (See Molinier, 94 sqq*,
and Wattenbach, ;th ed., 124 sqq?)
The greatest collection of the Lives of the Saints is the vast Ada Acta Sant-
Sanctorum, begun by the Jesuit, Bolland, in 1643. Although no less than
sixty-two folio volumes have appeared in the past two hundred and sixty-
five years, the series is not completed, and is now carried on with con-
scientious care by a group of Jesuit scholars, commonly known as the
BoIIandists, from the father of their enterprise.
The lives are not arranged historically, that is, in the order in whkh
the saints lived, but follow the order of the saints' " days " as they
appear hi the church calendar.1 Hence under January 5, for example, we
find men as widely separated in time as St. Telesphorus (d. about 139),
Simeon Stylites (d. 460), Edward the Confessor (d. 1066), and a certain
St. Gerlach (d about 1570).
A new and perhaps overcritical edition of the more important lives
for the history of the Merovingian period, is in the course of publication
in the Monumenta.
Of the Lives of the Saints for our period, the following in the Afenu-
menta may be especially noted : That of St. Caesarius of Aries <d. 542)
was written almost immediately after his death ; Life of St. Columba by
ADAMNANUS, a contemporary (see above, section B}\ Life cfSt. Colum-
ban by the monk JONAS (see above, section B}\ Life of St. Gall, written
in its original form before the end of the eighth century ; WILLIBALD,
Life cf St. Boniface, written before 786; Life of St. Sturmi, abbot of
Fulda (d. 779), by a succeeding abbot, EIGIL (d. 822) (see extracts given
above, pp. 107 sgg.). German translations of the Lives of St Gall, Boni-
face, Sturmi, and others of this period may be found in the Gesckiefo-
sckreiber der deutscken Vorzeit
A very remarkable and weighty source is a colkctioa of the letters
of Boniface and his successor, Lull, in the Mmumenta.
i The festival or "natal" day of a saint is usually the anniversary of his
death,— his true birthday into eternal fife.
CHAPTER VI
Singular
origin of the
Koran, the
Bible of the
Mohamme-
dans.
CHARLES MARTEL AND PIPPIN
I. THE KORAN
Mohammed apparently suffered from a certain nervous
disorder which is often accompanied by hallucinations.
When about forty years of age, as he was engaged in
meditation upon a solitary mountain near Mecca, the
angel Gabriel appeared to him and uttered five verses,
— the first of the revelations from heaven which were
to compose the Koran. Similar messages came to him
from time to time during his periods of nervous excite-
ment. These he revealed to his friends and converts,
who committed them to memory and, in some cases,
wrote them down. It is probable that the prophet him-
self could neither read nor write.
At the time of his death no collection had as yet been
made of these inspired utterances ; they had only been
recorded piecemeal on palm leaves, skins, shoulder blades
of animals, and, above all, in the hearts of his followers.
The early caliphs, realizing that the Book of God might
otherwise be speedily lost, ordered that a man who had
acted as Mohammed's amanuensis should collect and
arrange the text. A second and more careful edition,
made in 660, was sent to all the chief cities in the
Mohammedan empire and has remained the authorita-
tive text among all Mohammedans down to the present
day.
"4
Charles Martel and Pippin 1 1 5
The revelations were strung together without regard
to the order in which Mohammed received them and
with little or no attention to their contents. The longer
surahs or chapters come first and then the short ones,
although chronologically the shorter were the earlier.
It is therefore not unnatural that the Koran should be
confused and often obscure, and in an English version
it is hard to perceive much of the marvelous eloquence
which recommends it to the Arab mind.
It is chiefly made up of repeated assertions of God's
unity and greatness and of the futility and wickedness
of the worship of idols. There are frequent references
to the last judgment, to heaven and its delights, to hell
and the fate of those who stubbornly refuse to accept the
Koran as the word of God, and Mohammed as his prophet.
Many episodes from the Old and New Testaments are
given here and there, such as the stories of Abraham, of
Joseph, of Moses, of the birth of Jesus. Mohammed
could hardly have been acquainted with the Bible at
first hand, but must have gathered his knowledge of it
from the Jews and Christians settled in Arabia. The
Koran also embodies popular sayings and favorite
legends current among the desert tribes long before the
time of Mohammed. Some important rules of conduct
are also laid down.
" Mohammed had not lived among the sheepfolds in
vain, and spent long solitary nights gazing at the silent
heaven and watching the dawn break over the mountains, character.
This earliest portion of the Koran is one long blazonry
of nature's beauty. How can you believe in aught but
the One omnipotent God when you see this glorious world
around you and this wondrous tent ot heaven above you ?
ii6 Readings in European History
is Mohammed's frequent question to his countrymen.
'All things in heaven and earth supplicate him; then
which of the bounties of the Lord will ye deny?' . . .
" In conclusion, let us banish from our minds any con-
ception of the Koran as a code of laws, or a systematic
exposition of a creed. It is neither of these. Let us
only think of a simple enthusiast confronted with many
and varied difficulties, and trying to meet them as best
he could by the inward light that guided him. The
guidance was not perfect, we know, and there is much
that is blameworthy in Mohammed; but whatever we
believe of him, let it be granted that his errors were
not the result of premeditated imposition, but were the
mistakes of an ignorant, impressible, superstitious, but
nevertheless noble and great man."
In the Name of God, the Compassionate, the Merciful
48. Passages Praise be to God, the Lord of the Worlds !
from the The Compassionate, the Merciful !
Koran. The __. . f , - . -
opening King of the day of judgment !
prayer. Thee we worship, and Thee we ask for help.
Guide us in the straight way,
The way of those to whom Thou art gracious ;
Not of those upon whom is Thy wrath, nor of the erring.
Tfae angel In the name of the merciful and compassionate God.
e^STthe That is the bo°kl! there is no doubt therein; a guide to
divineWord, tne pi°us» who believe in the unseen, and are steadfast in
which he prayer, and of what we have given them expend in alms ;
who believe in what is revealed to thee, and what was
revealed before thee, and of the hereafter they are sure.
These are in guidance from their Lord, and these are the
1 Namely, the book -which Gabriel, the speaker, is revealing.
Charles Martel and Pippin 117
Verily, those who misbelieve, it is the same to them if ye
warn them or if ye warn them not, they will not believe.
God has set a seal upon their hearts and on their hearing ;
and on their eyes is dimness, and for them is grievous woe.
There are, indeed, those among men who say, " We believe
in God and in the last day"; but they do not believe. They
would deceive God and those who do believe ; but they
deceive only themselves and they do not perceive. In their
hearts is a sickness, and God has made them still more
sick, and for them is grievous woe because they lied. . . .
And if ye are in doubt of what we have revealed unto our
servant, then bring a chapter like it, and call your witnesses
other than God if ye tell truth. But if ye do it not, and ye
shall surely do it not, then fear the fire, whose fuel is men
and stones, prepared for misbelievers. But bear the glad
tidings to those who believe and work righteousness, that
for them are gardens beneath which rivers flow. Whenever
they are provided with fruit therefrom they say, "This is
what we were provided with before, and they shall be pro-
vided with the like ; and there are pure wives for them
therein, and they shall dwell therein for aye." . . .
In the Name of God, the Compassionate, the Merciful
Have we not made the earth as a bed ? God's beao-
And the mountains as tent-pegs ? tiful irorld.
And created you in pairs,
And made you sleep for rest,
And made the night for a mantle,
And made the day for bread-winning,
And built above you seven firmaments,
And put therein a burning lamp,
And sent down water pouring from the squeezed clouds
To bring forth grain and herb withal,
And gardens thick with trees ?
Lo ! the Day of Decision is appointed —
The day when there shall be a blowing of the trumpet, and
ye shall come in troops,
1 1 8 Readings in European History
And the heavens shall be opened, and be full of gates,
And the mountains shall be removed, and turn into mist.
Verily hell lieth in wait,
The goal for rebels,
To abide therein for ages ;
They shall not taste therein coolness nor drink,
Save scalding water and running sores, —
A meet reward !
Verily they did not expect the reckoning,
And they denied our signs with lies ;
But everything have we recorded in a book : —
Description When the earth shall be shaken in a shock,
rf the Hiss An£ the mountains shall be powdered in powder.
rf heaven ... ^ . J
md the And become like flying dust,
aains of hell. And ye shall be three kinds.
Then the people of the right hand — what people of good
omen!
And the people of the left hand — what people of ill omen !
And the outstrippers, still outstripping : —
These are the nearest [to God],
In gardens of delight ;
A crowd of the men of yore,
And a few of the latter days ;
Upon inwrought couches,
Reclining thereon face to face.
Youths ever young shall go unto them round about
With goblets and ewers and a cup of flowing wine, —
Their heads shall not ache with it, neither shall they be
confused ;
And fruits of their choice,
And flesh of birds to their desire ;
And damsels with bright eyes like hidden pearls, —
A reward for what they have wrought.
They shall hear no folly therein, nor any sin,
Bet only the greeting, " Peace ! peace ! "
Charles Martel and Pippin
119
And the people of the right hand — what people of good
omen!
Amid thornless lote-trees,
And bananas laden with fruit,
And shade outspread,
And water flowing,
And fruit abundant,
Never failing, nor forbidden, . . .
But the people of the left hand — what people of ill omen ! —
Amid burning wind and scalding water,
And a shade of black smoke,
Not cool or grateful !
Verily before that they were prosperous ;
But they persisted in the most grievous sin,
And used to say,
" When we have died, and become dust and bones, shall we
indeed be raised again,
And our fathers, the men of yore,"
Say : Verily those of yore and of the latter days
Shall surely be gathered to the trysting-place of a day which
is known.
Then ye, O ye who err and call it a lie,
Shall surely eat of the tree of Zakkum,
And fill your bellies with it,
And drink upon it scalding water, —
Drink like the thirsty camel : —
This shall be their entertainment on the Day of Judgment !
We came out with the prophet, with a part of the army,
and a man passed by a cavern in which was water and ver-
dure, and he said in his heart, " I shall stay here, and retire
from the world." Then he asked the prophet's permission
to live in the cavern ; but he said, " Verily I have not been
sent on the Jewish religion, nor the Christian, to quit the
delights of society; but I have been sent on the religion
inclining to truth, and that which is easy, wherein is no diffi-
culty or austerity, I swear by God, in whose hand is my life,
that marching about morning and evening to fight for religion
Fighting for
the faith
better than
prayers.
(From the
traditional
sayings of
Mohammed
not included
in the
Koran.)
120
Readings in European History
is better than the world and everything that is in it : and
verily the standing of one of you in the line of battle is better
than supererogatory prayers performed in your house for
sixty years.
49. The
weakness
of the later
Merovingian
kings.
(FromEin-
hard's
Life of the
fmperor
Charles.)
II. How PIPPIN, THE FIRST OF THE CAROLINGIAN LINE,
BECAME KING OF FRANCE
The Franks in olden times were wont to choose their kings
from the family of the Merovingians. This royal line is con-
sidered to have come to an end in the person of Childeric III,
who was deposed from the throne by command of Stephen,
the Roman pontiff; his long hair was cut off and he was
thrust into a monastery.
Although the line of the Merovingians actually ended with
Childeric, it had nevertheless for some time previously been
so utterly wanting in power that it had displayed no mark of
royalty except the empty kingly title.
All the resources and power of the kingdom had passed
into the control of the prefects of the palace, who were called
the "mayors of the palace," 1 and who employed the supreme
authority. Nothing was left to the king. He had to con-
tent himself with his royal title, his flowing locks, and long
beard. Seated in a chair of state, he was wont to display an
appearance of power by receiving foreign ambassadors on
their arrival, and, on their departure, giving them, as if on
his own authority, those answers which he had been taught
or commanded to give.
Thus, except for his empty title, and an uncertain allow-
ance for his subsistence, which the prefect of the palace used
to furnish at his pleasure, there was nothing that the king
could call his own, unless it were the income from a single
farm, and that a very small one, where he made his home,
and where such servants as were needful to wait on him con-
stituted his scanty household. When he went anywhere he
traveled in a wagon drawn by a yoke of oxen, with a rustic
1 Maiores domus.
Charles Martcl and Pippin 1 2 1
oxherd for charioteer. In this manner he proceeded to the
palace, and to the public assemblies of the people held every
year for the dispatch of the business of the kingdom, and he
returned home again in the same sort of state. The admin-
istration of the kingdom, and every matter which had to be
undertaken and carried through, both at home and abroad,
was managed by the mayor of the palace.
In the year of the Incarnation of our Lord, 750,* Pippin 50. Pope
sent ambassadors to Pope Zacharias to ask his opinion in z*^**?*9
the matter of the kings of the Franks, who, though of the the corona-
royal line, and called kings, enjoyed in truth no power in the tioa of
realm except that official documents were issued in their
name. Otherwise they were destitute of power, and did only £*
what the mayor of the palace told them. *f ******•>
Only upon the day when the people, according to ancient
usage, were wont to bring gifts to their sovereign on the
March Field, did the king, surrounded by the army, sit in
his chair, the mayor of the palace standing before him, and
proclaim such laws as had been established by the Franks.
The next day he returned home, and stayed there during the
remainder of the year.
Pope Zacharias, therefore, in virtue of apostolic authority,
told the ambassadors that he judged it better and more
advantageous that he should be king and be called king
who had the power rather than he who was falsely called
king.
The said pontiff accordingly enjoined the king and the
people of the Franks that Pippin, who already exercised
the regal power, should be called king and raised to the
throne.
And this was done by St. Boniface, the archbishop, who
anointed him king in the city of Soissons. And so it came
about that Pippin was called king, while Childeric, falsely
called king, was shaven and sent to the monastery.
1 It appears from other sources that it was in 752— not 750 — that
Pippin received the kingly crown from the hand of Boniface.
122
Readings in European History
51. The
coronation
of Pippin by
the pope.
(From
Einhard's
Anna/8.)
(753) • • • In this year Pope Stephen [the successor of
Zacharias] came to King Pippin in the town which is called
Kiersey, to beg protection for himself and the Roman church
from the attacks of the Lombards. . . .
(754) Pope Stephen, after King Pippin had assured him
that he would defend the Roman church, consecrated him to
the honor of the royal dignity, and with him his two sons, Karl
and Carloman ; and the pope spent that winter in Francia.
52. A letter
of Pape
Stephen m
describing
tie atroci-
ties of the
Lombards
(796).
III. THE LOMBARDS, POPE STEPHEN, AND KING PIPPIN
Pope Stephen was driven, as we have seen, by the
threatening attitude of the Lombards to visit the court
of Pippin in search of help. The Prankish king, with
the approbation of his councilors, made an expedition to
Italy in 755, defeated the Lombards, and forced Aistulf,
their king, to promise that he would return all the terri-
tory about Rome and never invade the region again. Yet
Pippin had hardly recrossed the Alps when Aistulf broke
his treaty and attacked Rome. The pope then appealed
- to Pippin, in successive letters, describing the devastation
wrought by the Lombards and the desperate plight of
the city. Of these letters the following is a sample:
Pope Stephen to the most excellent lord> Pippin, our son and
kinsman in the spirit^ King of the Franks and Patrician
of the Romans :
Woeful and bitter is the distress in which we find our-
selves ; our difficulties and anxieties are constantly increas-
ing and call forth floods of tears. "Who could witness such
tribulations and not mourn ? Who could listen to our calam-
ities and not bewail ? . . .
We must believe, however, most Christian and excellent
son, that all our sorrows are known to your Highness: how
the treaties of peace have been broken by the accursed King
Aistulf, how none of the stipulations have been observed even
C/iarles 3Iartcl and Pippin 1 23
when confirmed by the most solemn oath, how the Lombards
have desolated all our lands and committed many murders.
And now thou knowest, O most excellent son and spiritual
kinsman, thou knowest what we would say with many tears
and much sorrow of heart.
The very first of January all the army of this same Aistulf,
king of the Lombards, gathered from the confines of Tuscany,
against the city of Rome, and encamped close to the gate
of the blessed apostle Peter and the gate of St. Pancratius
and the Ostian gate. Then Aistulf himself joined his army,
with further reinforcements, and pitched his tents beside
the Salarian gate and other gates. And he drew up his
army and said to us Romans : ** Open to me the Salarian gate
that I may enter the city ; and deliver your pontiff into my
hands. Then I will have mercy upon you. If you do not
these things, I will destroy your walls, and put you to the
sword. And I will see who can deliver you out of my
hands." . . .
They have wasted with fire and sword, far and wide, all
the lands outside the city, and have burned the churches of
God, and have cast the most holy images of the saints into
the fire, and destroyed them. And they have put that holy
treasure, the body of our Lord Jesus Christ, into their own
polluted vessels and, sated with abundance of meat, they ate
this blessed treasure. The altar cloths and other ornaments
of the churches of God — oh, too infamous to tell! — they
bore away and used for their own purposes.
The monks, servants of God, who dwelt in mountains for
the praise of God, they beat with many blows, and many of
them they cut to pieces. And they seized nuns and recluses
dedicated from their earliest years to the cloister, and sub-
jected them to the most cruel abuses, so that some of them
were seen to perish. They have cut off vines well-nigh to
the roots, and have altogether destroyed the harvests. There
is no chance of safety for the household of our holy church,
nor for any one indeed who remains in the city of Rome. . . .
Now for five and fifty days they have besieged and sur-
rounded on every side this afflicted city of Rome ; and this
124 Readings in European History
wicked Aistulf will kill us all with one sword. For so he
has sworn with rage, and has cast this in our teeth : " Behold,
you were surrounded by us and could not escape out of our
clutches. Now let the Franks come and wrest you from our
grasp." . . . Therefore hear me, O son — hear and help us.
Behold, now is the time to save us. Save us lest we perish,
O most Christian king !
BIBLIOGRAPHY
A. Refer- General Discussion of the Work of Charles Martel and Pippin:
ences. ADAMS, Civilization, pp. 146-154.
Charles Martel: EMERTON, Introduction, Chapter X, pp. 114-134;
HENDERSON, Germany in the Middle Ages, pp. 40-46; OMAN, Chap-
ter XVII, pp. 289-299.
The Arabs — their Original Character : GIBBON, Vol. V, Chapter L,
first part, pp. 311-332.
Mohammed: BEMONT and MONOD, Chapter X, pp. 135-147; GIB-
BON, Vol. V, Chapter L, latter part, pp. 333-396.
Arab Conquests and Civilization : GIBBON, Vol. V, Chapter LI,
pp. 397-494 ; MUNRO, History of the Middle Ages, Chapter IX, pp.
86-94-
Pippin: EMERTON, Chapter XII, pp. 150-179; HENDERSON, pp.
46-56; OMAN, Chapter XIX, pp. 322-334.
B. Addi- GILMAN, The Saracens (with an excellent bibliography at the end) ;
ttonal read- AMEER ALT, The Life and Teachings of Mohammed and A Short ffis-
& lish tory °f^e Saracens. Two recent and interesting studies from the point
of view of an enlightened Oriental writer. MUIR, Life of Mahomet and
Annals of the Early Caliphate. The former is the most thorough treat-
ment in English ; the latter deals with the fifty years following Moham-
med's death.
MILMAN, Book IV, Chapters I-II.
The whole Koran has been carefully translated by E. H. PALMER,
2 vols., 1880; but most readers will derive far more pleasure and profit
from the extracts given in STANLEY LANE-POOLE, Speeches and Table
Talk of the Prophet Mohammad, — a most charming little book, which
helps one to feel the beauty of the poetical passages of the Koran.
HODGKIN, Italy and her Invaders, Vol. VII, Book VIII, Chapters
Ill-XL
Charles Martcl and Pippin 1 25
GREGOROVIUS, Vol. II, Book IV, Chapters I-III.
KITCHIN, History of France^ Vol. I, Book II, Part I, Chapters I-II.
The history of Mohammed and the movements of the Arabs hardly C.
belong to the field of European history, and the sources are in general /** od
available only for those who read Arabic. Three recent foreign works '"
may be added to the list given above.
MULLER, A., Der Islam im Morgen- und Abendland, 2 vols., Berlin,
1885-1887 (Oncken Series).
OELSNER, Konig Pippin v&Jahrbucher der dcutschcn Geschichte^ 1882.
GUYARD, STANISLAS, La Civilisation Musulmane.
For the sources of the history of the early Carolingian rulers, see
bibliography at the close of the following chapter.
CHAPTER VII
53. Charle-
magne's
personal
appearance
and habits.
(FromEin-
hard's Life
of Charles.)
CHARLEMAGNE
I. CHARLEMAGNE, THE MAN
Charles was large and robust, of commanding stature and
excellent proportions, for it appears that he measured in
height seven times the length of his own foot. The top of
his head was round, his eyes large and animated, his nose
somewhat long. He had a fine head of gray hair, and his
face was bright and pleasant ; so that, whether standing or
sitting, he showed great presence and dignity. Although
Ms neck was thick and rather short, and his belly too promi-
nent, still the good proportions of his limbs concealed these
defects. His walk was firm, and the whole carriage of his
body was manly. His voice was clear, but not so strong as
his frame would have led one to expect.
His health was good until the last four years of his life,
when he was attacked with frequent fevers, and latterly
walked lame on one foot. Even then he relied more on his
own judgment than on the advice of physicians, whom he
almost hated because they used to recommend him to leave
off roasted meats, which he preferred, and to accustom
himself to boiled.
He took constant exercise in riding and hunting, which
was natural for a Frank, since scarcely any nation can be
found to equal them in these pursuits. He also delighted
in the natural warm baths, frequently exercising himself by
swimming, in which he was very skillful, no one being able
to outstrip him. It was on account of the warm baths at
Aix-la-Chapelle that he built his palace there and lived there
constantly during the last years of his life and until his
death. . . .
126
Charlemagne
127
He wore the dress of his native country, that is, the
Frankish; next his body a linen shirt and linen drawers;
then a tunic with a silken border, and stockings. He bound
his legs with garters and wore shoes on his feet. In the
winter he protected his shoulders and chest with a vest made
of the skins of otters and sable. He wore a blue cloak, and
was always girt with his sword, the hilt and belt being of
gold and silver. Sometimes he wore a jeweled sword, but
he did so only on great festivals or when receiving foreign
ambassadors.
He thoroughly disliked the dress of foreigners, however
fine; and he never put it on except at Rome — once at the
request of Pope Adrian, and again, a second time, to please
Adrian's successor, Pope Leo. He then wore a long tunic,
chlamys, and shoes made after the Roman fashion. On
festivals he used to walk in processions clad in a garment
woven with gold, and shoes studded with jewels, his cloak
fastened with a golden clasp, and wearing a crown of gold
set with precious stones. At other times his dress differed
little from that of a private person.
In his eating and drinking he was temperate ; more par-
ticularly so in his drinking, for he had the greatest abhor-
rence of drunkenness in anybody, but more especially in
himself and his companions. He was unable to abstain
from food for any length of time, and often complained that
fasting was injurious to him. On the other hand, he very
rarely feasted, only on great festive occasions, when there
were very large gatherings. The daily service of his table
consisted of only four dishes in addition to the roast meat,
which the hunters used to bring in on spits, and of which he
partook more freely than of any other food.
While he was dining he listened to music or reading.
History and the deeds of men of old were most often read.
He derived much pleasure from the works of St. Augustine,
especially from his book called Tht City of God. He par-
took very sparingly of wine and other drinks, rarely taking
at meals more than three draughts. In summer, after the
midday repast, he would take some fruit and one draught,
preference
in dress.
Tastes and
128
Readings in European History
Charle-
magne's
knowledge of
the ancient
languages.
Alcuin.
Charle-
magne never
learned to
write.
and then, throwing aside his clothes and shoes as at night,
he would repose for two or three hours. He slept at night
so lightly that he would break his rest four or five times, not
merely by awaking, but even getting up.
While he was dressing and binding on his sandals, he
would receive his friends ; and also, if the count of the pal-
ace announced that there was any case which could only be
settled by his decision, the suitors were immediately ordered
into his presence, and he heard the case and gave judgment
as if sitting in court. And this was not the only business
that he used to arrange at that time, for he also gave orders
for whatever had to be done on that day by any officer or
servant.
He was ready and fluent in speaking, and able to express
himself with great clearness. He did not confine himself to
his native tongue, but took pains to learn foreign languages,
acquiring such knowledge of Latin that he could make an
address in that language as well as in his own. Greek he
could better understand than speak. Indeed, he was so pol-
ished in speech that he might have passed for a learned
man.
He was an ardent admirer of the liberal arts, and greatly
revered their professors, whom he promoted to high honors.
In order to learn grammar, he attended the lectures of
the aged Peter of Pisa, a deacon ; and for other branches
he chose as his preceptor Albinus, otherwise called Alcuin,
also a deacon, — a Saxon by race, from Britain, the most
learned man of the day, with whom the king spent much
time in learning rhetoric and logic, and more especially
astronomy. He learned the art of determining the dates
upon which the movable festivals of the Church fall, and with
deep thought and skill most carefully calculated the courses
of the planets.
Charles also tried to learn to write, and used to keep his
tablets and writing book under the pillow of his couch, that
when he had leisure he might practice his hand in forming
letters; but he made little progress in this task, too long
deferred and begun too late in life.
Charlemagne
129
II. CHARLEMAGNE AND THE SAXONS
Now the Saxon race was cruel and very dangerous to all,
and was much given over to pagan observances. But King
Charles, always faithful to God, because he was most Chris-
tian, began to take thought how he might seek to win this
people for Christ. He took counsel with the servants of
God and besought their prayers that they might obtain their
desire from God. Then he gathered a great army, and after
he had called upon the name of Christ, he marched into
Saxony. He took with him a host of priests and abbots, so
that this race which, from the beginning of the world, had
been bound by the chains of demons might bow to the yoke
of the sweet and gentle Christ by believing in the holy
doctrines.
When the king had come into the land of the Saxons, he
succeeded, partly by war, partly by persuasions, partly even
by gifts, in turning great numbers of the people to the faith
of Christ. And before long he divided the whole province
into episcopal dioceses, and gave the servants of God
authority to teach and to baptize.
At the beginning of the year [782], when supplies were
plentiful and the army could be led into the field, the king
decided to go into Saxony and to hold there a general assem-
bly, as he was used to do ever}7 year in Francia. He crossed
the Rhine at Cologne, and with the whole Frankish army
came to the source of the Lippe, where he made a camp and
remained for many days. He there heard and dismissed the
ambassadors sent by Sigfried, king of the Danes, and those
who had come from Caganus and Juggurus, chiefs of the
Huns, to seek peace.
When the assembly was dissolved, and he had betaken
himself across the Rhine into Gallia, Widukind, who had
fled to the Northmen, returned to his fatherland, and with
vain hopes aroused the Saxons to rebellion. In the mean-
time it was reported to the king that the Sorabi Slavs, who
1 See above p. 107.
54. Tbe
abbot of
Fnlda de-
clares that
Charle-
magne con-
quered the
Saxons in
carder to
bring them
toCfcrist.
{Fromtbe
55. The re-
bell** of
Widatead.
(Fraathe
so-called
130 Readings in European History
inhabit the region between the Elbe and the Saale, had
invaded the lands of the Thuringians and Saxons, their
neighbors, on a plundering expedition and had sacked and
burned several places. He immediately summoned his three
ministers, — Adalgis, his chamberlain; Geilo, his constable;
and Woradus, the head of the palace, — ordered that they
should take with them East Franks and Saxons and chastise
forthwith the audacity of the unruly Slavs.
When the leaders of this force learned, upon entering the
Saxon territory, that the Saxons, by Widukind's advice, were
about to wage war on the Franks, they abandoned the cam-
paign against the Slavs, and with the forces of the East
Franks pushed forward to the place where they had heard
the Saxons were massed. Count Theodoric, a kinsman of
the king, hastened to join them in Saxony with all the forces
he could collect hurriedly in Ripuaria after news reached
him of the Saxon revolt. ...
Then they all pushed forward to a mountain {^situated on
the southern bank of the river Weser], called Suntal. The
camp of the Saxons lay on the northern side of this moun-
tain. In this place Theodoric pitched his camp, while the
leaders of the East Franks crossed the Weser and encamped
on the river bank, to the end that they might easily join
the forces of Theodoric and so surround the mountain.
Then did the leaders of the East Franks take counsel
together: for they feared that the glory of victory might be
given to Theodoric, if they had him with them in this battle.
So they decided to attack the Saxons without him. They
accordingly armed themselves, and each man rushed forward
with his utmost speed, as fast as his horse could carry him,
as if they were pursuing and plundering a fleeing foe rather
than attacking an enemy drawn up in line of battle.
But the Saxons stood before their camp ready to meet
the onslaught ; and because the attack was ill planned it
was ill fought. When they gave battle the Franks were sur-
rounded by the Saxons and almost all of them were slain.
Those who made good their escape fled for refuge, not to
the camp whence they had gone forth, but to the camp of
Charlemagne
Theodoric, which was on the other side of the mountain.
The Frankish loss was greater than mere numbers, for two
of the ambassadors, Adalgis and Geilo, were killed, also
four counts, and twenty other noble and distinguished men,
together with those who followed them, because they would
rather die with them than live after them.
When the king heard of this disaster he decided not to
delay, but made haste to gather an army, and marched into
Saxony. There he called to his presence the chiefs of the
Saxons, and inquired who had induced the people to rebel.
They all declared that Widukind was the author of the trea-
son, but said that they could not produce him because after
the deed was done he had fled to the Northmen.
But the others who had carried out his will and committed
the crime they delivered up to the king to the number of four
thousand and five hundred ; and by the king's command they
were all beheaded in one day upon the river Aller in the place
called Verden. When he had wreaked vengeance after this
fashion, the king withdrew to the town of Diedenhofen for
winter quarters, and there he celebrated the Nativity of our
Lord and Easter as he was wont to do.
The mas-
sacre of
III. How CHARLEMAGNE WAS MADE EMPEROR
A.D. 799
As Pope Leo [HI] was riding from the Lateran in Rome
to service in the church of St. Lawrence, called " the Grid-
iron," he fell into an ambush which the Romans had set
for him in the neighborhood of this church. He was
dragged from off his horse and, as some would have it, his
eyes put out, his tongue cut off, and he was then left lying
in the street, naked and half dead. Afterward the insti-
gators of this deed ordered that he should be taken into the
monastery of the holy martyr Erasmus to be cared for.
His chamberlain Albinus succeeded, however, in letting him
down over the wall at night, whereupon Duke Winigis of
Spoleto, who had hurried to Rome on hearing of this deed
cfCbazie-
magae*s
coraatkK
as emperor.
(From the
so-called
Annals of
Einhard.)
Maltreat-
ment of Pope
Leo by the
Romans.
Readings in European History
Charlemagne
reinstates
Pope Leo.
of sacrilege, took him into his charge and carried him to
Spoleto.
When the king [Charlemagne] received news of this occur-
rence, he gave orders that the Roman pope, the successor of
St. Peter, should be brought to him, with all due honor. He
did not, however, give up on this account the expedition into
Saxony which he had undertaken. He held a general assem-
bly at a place called Lippeham, on the Rhine ; he then crossed
the river and pushed on with his entire army to Paderborn,
where he set up his camp and awaited the pope. In the
meantime he sent his son Charles, with a part of the army,
to the Elbe to settle certain matters with the Wilzer and
Abodrites and to receive into his charge certain of the North
Saxons.
While he was awaiting his son's return, the pope arrived,
was honorably received, and remained several days with him.
After he had laid before the king ail the reasons for his
coming, he was accompanied back to Rome by the king's
ambassadors and reinstated in his authority there.
After the pope's departure, the king remained several days
longer and finished his business with Daniel, ambassador of
the Patrician Michael of Sicily. He received also the sad
news of the undoing of Gerold and Eric ; the one, Gerold,
governor of Bavaria, lost his life in a battle with the Huns
and was buried in Reichenau; the other, Eric, after many
battles and brilliant victories, met his death through the
treachery of the inhabitants of Tersat,1 a town of Liburnia.
When affairs in Saxony had been as well ordered as time
would permit, the king returned again to Francia.
In the winter, which was spent in Aix-la-Chapelle, came
Count Wido, count and governor of the border land of
Brittany, who, during this year, and in alliance with other
counts, had traversed the whole territory of the Bretons, and
now brought to the king the arms of the dukes who had
submitted themselves, with their several names inscribed
thereon. It appeared at that time as if that whole country
1 Near Fiume.
Charle magne 133
was completely subjugated; and so it would have been had
not the fickleness of its faithless people soon changed all
this, as usual.
Trophies of victory were also brought which had been
taken from Moorish robbers killed on the island of Majorca.
The Saracen, Azant governor of Oska, sent to the king the
keys of that city, together with other gifts, and promised to
give the town over to him whenever opportunity should offer.
Moreover, a monk came from Jerusalem, bringing to the
king the blessing of the Patriarch and certain relics from
the place of the resurrection of our Lord. The king spent
Christmas in his palace at Aix-Ia-Chapelle. When the monk
desired to return home, he gave him, as a companion,
Zacharias, a priest of his palace, and sent, besides, pious
gifts to the holy places.
A.D. 800
When spring came again, about the middle of March, the
king left ALx-la-Chapelle and journeyed toward the coast of
Gaul. Of! this coast, which was being devastated by the
piratical Northmen, he built and manned a fleet. Easter he
celebrated in St. Riquier at the shrine of St. Richard. From
here he traveled along the coast to the city of Rouen,
where he crossed the Seine and betook himself to Tours in
order to perform his devotions at the shrine of St. Martin.
On account of the illness of his wife, Luitgarda, who died
and was buried here, he was forced to remain some days in
this place; she died on the 4th of June. From here he re-
turned, by way of Orleans and Paris, to Aix-la-Chapelle ;
early in August he reached Mayence, where he held a diet
and announced his intended journey to Italy.
From Mayence he went with his army to Ravenna, where
he stayed only seven days and whence he dispatched his
son Pippin, with the army, into the country of Beneventum.
He and his son left Ravenna together, but at Ancona they
parted company and he betook himself to Rome.
On the very day of his arrival Pope Leo went to meet him
at Nomentum. He received the pope with great reverence,
1 34 Readings in European History
and they dined together. Then he remained behind while the
pope returned to the city in order that he might be waiting
to receive him the next morning on the steps of St. Peter's,
together with the bishops and all the clergy.
When he appeared and dismounted from his horse, the
pope received him with gratitude and thanksgiving and con-
ducted him into the church, while all the people glorified
God in hymns of praise. This was on the 24th day of
November. Seven days later, the king publicly proclaimed,
in an assembly which he had called together, all the reasons
why he had come to Rome, and thenceforth he labored
daily to carry out all that he had come to do.
He began with the most serious and difficult matter,
namely, the investigation into the offenses of which the pope
had been accused. But since no one could be found who was
willing to substantiate the charges, the pope, carrying the
Gospels in his hand, mounted the pulpit in St. Peter's and
before all the people, and in the name of the Holy Trinity,
took an oath to clear himself from the crimes imputed to him.
On the same day Zacharias, the priest whom the king had
dispatched to Jerusalem, arrived at Rome with two monks
sent to the king by the Patriarch. By way of a blessing,
they brought with them the keys to the sepulcher of our Lord
and to the place of Calvary, together with an ensign. The
king received them graciously, kept them as his guests for
some days, and when they were ready to return, dismissed
them with gifts.
A,D. 801
On the most holy day of the birth of our Lord, the king
went to mass at St. Peter's, and as he knelt in prayer before
the altar Pope Leo set a crown upon his head, while all the
Roman populace cried aloud, " Long life and victory to
the mighty Charles, the great and pacific Emperor of the
Romans, crowned of God ! " After he had been thus
acclaimed, the pope did homage to him, as had been the
custom with the early rulers, and henceforth he dropped the
title of Patrician and was called Emperor and Augustus. . . ,
Charlemagne
or fine for
refusing to
join the
army (Sor).
Concerning
deserters.
IV. CHARLEMAGNE'S WAY OF RAISING TROOPS
The following provisions are taken from three differ-
ent capitularies issued after Charlemagne became
emperor.
If any free man, out of contempt for our command, shall 57- The
have presumed to remain at home when the others go to
war, let him know that he ought to pay the full hari bannum
according to the law of the Franks, — that is, sixty s&Itii.
Likewise, also, for contempt of single capitularies which we
have promulgated by our royal authority, — that is, any one
who shall have broken the peace decreed for the churches
of God, widows, orphans, wards, and the weak shall pay the
fine of sixty solidL
If any one shall have shown himself so contumacious or
haughty as to leave the army and return home without the
command or permission of the king, — that is, if he is guilty
of what we call in the German language herisliz? — he him-
self, as a criminal, shall incur the peril of losing his life, and
his property shall be confiscated for our treasury.
Every free man who has four mansi* of his own property,
or as a benefice from any one, shall equip himself and go
to the army, either with his lord, if the lord goes, or with his
count. He who has three mansi of his own property shall
be joined to a man who has one mansus, and shall aid him
so that he may serve for both. He who has only two mansi
of his own property shall be joined to another who likewise
has two mansi, and one of them, with the aid of the other,
shall go to the army. He who has only one mansus of his
own shall be joined to one of three men who have the same
and shall aid him, and the latter shall go alone; the three
who have aided him shall remain at home.
Concerning going to the army : the count in his county 59. Hatare
under penalty of the ban, and each man under penalty of jjj^fj^"
tkearmy.
1 This capitulary was addressed to Charlemagne's officials in Italy.
* A martsvs contained about 135 acres.
58. The
wealthier
landholders
are 'reqnired
to go to the
army in
person; the
poorer, t»
help equip*
soldier (8oS).
136
Readings in European History
60. Charle-
letter to
Abbot Ful-
rad, sum-
moning him
to join the
master.
sixty solidi^ shall go to the army, so that they come to the
appointed muster at that place where it is ordered. And the
count himself shall see in what manner they are prepared ;
that is, each one shall have a lance, shield, bow with two
strings, and twelve arrows. And the bishops, counts, and
abbots shall oversee their own men and shall come on the
day of the appointed muster and there show how they are
prepared.
The equipments of the king shall be carried in carts, also
the equipments of the bishops, counts, abbots, and nobles of
the king ; flour, wine, pork, and victuals in abundance, mills,
adzes, axes, augers, slings, and men who know how to use
these well. And the marshals of the king shall add stones
for these on twenty beasts of burden, if there is need. And
each one shall be prepared for the army and shall have plenty
of all utensils. And each count shall save two parts of the
fodder in his county for the army's use, and he shall main-
tain good bridges and good boats.
In the name of the Father, Son, and Holy Spirit, Charles,
serene and august, crowned by God great and pacific Em-
peror, and by God's mercy King of the Franks and the Lom-
bards, to Fulrad the Abbot :
Be it known to you that we have decided to hold our
general assembly for this year in the eastern part of Saxony,
on the river Bode, at the place which is called Strassfurt.
Wherefore we do command thee that thou come to this
place with thy full quota of men, well armed and equipped,
on the fifteenth day before the Kalends of July, which is
seven days before the feast of St. John the Baptist. Then
shalt thou come to the aforesaid place, with thy men ready,
so that thou canst go in military array in any direction
whither our command shall send thee.
Thou shalt have arms and gear, and warlike instruments,
and food and clothing. Each horseman shall have a shield,
lance, sword, dagger, bow, and quivers with arrows. In the
carts ye shall have implements of divers kinds: axes, planes,
augers, boards, spades, iron shovels, and other tools of which
Charlemagne 137
an army has need. In the carts you must also have sup-
plies of food for three months, dating from the time of the
assembly, and arms and clothing for a half year. We order
you to attend carefully to all these things so that you may
proceed peacefully to the aforesaid place. For through
whatever part of our realm your journey bhall take you, you
shall not presume to take anything but fodder, food, and
water. Let the men of each one of your vassals march
along with the carts and horsemen, and let the leader always
be with them until they reach the aforesaid place, so that
the absence of a lord may not give to his men an opportunity
of doing evil. . . .
V. CHARLEMAGNE'S INCOME FROM HIS FARMS
We desire that each steward shall make an annual state- 61.
ment of all our income, giving an account of our lands culti-
vated by the oxen which our own plowmen drive and of our
lands which the tenants of farms ought to plow ; of the pigs,
of the rents, of the obligations and fines; of the game taken « earlier.
in our forests without our permission ; of the various composi-
tions ; of the mills, of the forest, of the fields, of the bridges
and ships ; of the free men and the districts under obligations
to our treasury ; of markets, vineyards, and those who owe
wine to us; of the hay, firewood, torches, planks, and other
kinds of lumber; of the waste lands; of the vegetables, mil-
let, panic; of the wool, flax, and hemp; of the fruits of the
trees; of the nut trees, larger and smaller; of the grafted
trees of all kinds ; of the gardens ; of the turnips ; of the
fish ponds; of the hides, skins, and horns; of the honey
and wax ; of the fat, tallow, and soap ; of the mulberry wine,
cooked wine, mead, vinegar, beer, and wine, new and old; of
the new grain and the old ; of the hens and eggs ; of the
geese ; of the number of fishermen, workers in metal, sword
makers, and shoemakers ; of the bins and boxes ; of the turn-
ers and saddlers ; of the forges and mines, — that is, of iron,
lead, or other substances; of the colts and fillies. They
shall make all these known to us, set forth separately and in
138 Readings in European History
order, at Christmas, so that we may know what and how
much of each thing we have.
The greatest care must be taken that whatever is prepared
or made with the hands, — that is, bacon, smoked meat, sau-
sage,1 partially salted meat, wine, vinegar, mulberry wine,
cooked wine, garum,2 mustard, cheese, butter, malt, beer,
mead, hone}r, wax, flour, — all should be prepared and made
with the greatest cleanliness.
Each steward on each of our domains shall always have,
for the sake of ornament, peacocks, pheasants, ducks, pig-
eons, partridges, and turtle-doves.
In each of our estates the chambers shall be provided
with counterpanes, cushions, pillows, bedclothes, coverings
for the tables and benches; vessels of brass, lead, iron, and
wood; andirons, chains, pothooks, adzes axes, augers, cut-
lasses, and all other kinds of tools, so that it shall never be
necessary to go elsewhere for them, or to borrow them. And
the weapons which are carried against the enemy shall be
well cared for, so as to keep them in good condition; and
when they are brought back they shall be placed in the
chamber.
For our women *s work they are to give at the proper time,
as has been ordered, the materials, — that is, the linen, wool,
woad, vermilion, madder, wool combs, teasels, soap, grease,
vessels, and the other objects which are necessary.
Of the kinds of food not forbidden on fast days, two thirds
shall be sent each year for our own use, — that is, of the vege-
tables, fish, cheese, butter, honey, mustard, vinegar, millet,
panic, dried and green herbs, radishes, and, in addition, of
the wax, soap, and other small products ; and let it be re-
ported to us, by a statement, how much is left, as we have
said above; and this statement must not be omitted as in
the past, because after those two thirds we wish to know
how much remains.
1 Some of the many names of products here given are of uncertain
saning.
2 A kirwl of drink made of salt fish-
Charlemagne 1 39
Each steward shall have in his district good workmen,
namely, blacksmiths, a goldsmith, a silversmith, shoemakers,
turners, carpenters, sword makers, fishermen, foilers, soap
makers, men who know how to make beer, cider, perry, or
other kind of liquor good to drink, bakers to make pastry
for our table, net makers who know how to make nets for
hunting, fishing, and fowling, and other sorts of workmen too
numerous to be designated.
VI. CHARLEMAGXE'S IDEALS OF GOVERNMENT
In the elaborate instructions for the missi we have
the fullest statement of the tasks of government which
devolved upon Charlemagne, and of the various offenses
which he foresaw and for which he deemed it especially
necessary to provide.
The most serene and most Christian lord emperor Charles 62. Extracts
has chosen from his nobles the wisest and most prudent men, fn*^_|*[e
archbishops and some of the other bishops also, together capitulary
with venerable abbots and pious laymen, and has sent them forthe*/**/
throughout his whole kingdom; through them he would have *• *"
all the various classes of persons mentioned in the following
sections live strictly in accordance with the law. Moreover,
where anything which is not right and just has been enacted
in the law, he has ordered them to inquire into this most
diligently and to inform him of it ; he desires, God granting,
to reform it
And let no one, through cunning craft, dare to oppose or
thwart the written law, as many are wont to do, or the judi-
cial sentence passed upon him; or to do injury to the
churches of God, or the poor, or the widows, or the wards,
or any Christian. But all shall live entirely in accordance
with God's precept, justly and under a just rule, and each
one shall be admonished to live in harmony with his fellows
in his business or profession. The canonical clergy ought
to observe in every respect a canonical life without heeding
140
Readings in European History
General
duties of
the missi.
All required
to take an
oath of fidel-
ity to Charle-
emperor.
What the
oath to the
emperor
included.
base gain; nuns ought to keep diligent watch over their
lives ; laymen and the secular clergy ought rightly to observe
their laws without malicious fraud ; and all ought to live in
mutual charity and perfect peace.
And let the missi themselves make a diligent investigation
whenever any man claims that an injustice has been done to
him by any one, just as they desire to deserve the grace of
omnipotent God and to keep their fidelity pledged to him, so
that in all cases, everywhere, they shall, in accordance with
the will and fear of God, administer the law fully and justly
in the case of the holy churches of God and of the poor, of
wards and widows, and of the whole people. And if there
shall be anything of such a nature that they, together with
the provincial counts, are not able of themselves to correct it
and to do justice concerning it, they shall, without any reser-
vations, refer this, together with their reports, to the judgment
of the emperor. The straight path of justice shall not be
impeded by any one on account of flattery or gifts, or on
account of any relationship, or from fear of the powerful.
Concerning the fidelity to be promised to the lord emperor:
he has commanded that every man in his whole kingdom,
whether ecclesiastic or layman, each according to his vow
and occupation, shall now pledge to him as emperor the
fidelity which he has previously promised to him as king;
and all of those who have not yet taken any oath shall do
likewise, down to those who are twelve years old.
And that it shall be announced to all in public, so that
each one may know, how great and how many things are com-
prehended in that oath; not merely, as many have thought
hitherto, fidelity to the lord emperor as regards his life, and
not introducing any enemy into his kingdom out of enmity,
and not consenting to, or concealing another's faithlessness
to him; but that all may know that this oath contains in itself
the following meaning:
First, that each one voluntarily shall strive, in accordance
with his knowledge and ability, to live entirely in the holy
service of God in accordance with the precept of God and in
Charlemagne 141
accordance with his own promise, because the lord emperor
is unable to give to all individually the necessary care and
discipline.
Secondly, that no man, either through perjury or any other
wile or fraud, or on account of the flattery or gift of any
one, shall refuse to give back or dare to abstract or conceal
a serf of the lord emperor, or a district, or land, or anything
that belongs to him ; and that no one shall presume, through
perjury or other wile, to conceal or abstract his fugitive serfs
belonging to the rise, who wrongly and fraudulently claim
that they are free.
That no one shall presume to rob or in any way do
injury fraudulently to the churches of God, or to widows or
orphans or pilgrims; for the lord emperor himself, after
God and his saints, has constituted himself their protector
and defender.
That no one shall dare to lay waste a benefice of the lord
emperor, or to make it his own property.
That no one shall presume to neglect a summons to war
from the lord emperor ; and that no one of the counts shall
be so presumptuous as to dare to excuse any one of those
who owe military service, either on account of relationship,
or flattery, or gifts from any one.
That no one shall presume to impede in any way a ban
or command of the lord emperor, or to dally with his uork,
or to impede or to lessen or in any way to act contrary to his
will or commands. And that no one shall dare to neglect to
pay his dues or tax.
That no one, for any reason, shall make a practice in
court of defending another unjustly, either from any desire
of gain when the cause is weak, or by impeding a just judg-
ment by his skill in reasoning, or by a desire of oppressing
when the cause is weak. . . .
The oath to the emperor should include the observance of
all those things mentioned above.
Bishops and priests shall live according to the canons and Duties of the
shall teach others to do the same. prelates.
142
Readings In European History
Duties of
the monks.
Tfeedergy
Bishops, abbots, and abbesses, who are in charge of others,
shall strive with the greatest devotion to surpass those sub-
ject to them in this diligence and shall not oppress those
subject to them with a harsh rule of tyranny, but with sincere
love shall carefully guard the flock committed to them with
mercy and charity and by the examples of good works. . . .
The monks shall live sincerely and strictly in accordance
with the rule, because we know that any one whose good
will is lukewarm is displeasing to God, as John bears wit-
ness in the Apocalypse : " I would thou wert cold or hot.
So then because thou art lukewarm, and neither cold nor
hot, I will spew thee out of my mouth/7 Let them in no
way usurp to themselves secular business. They shall not
have leave to go outside of their monastery at all, unless
compelled by a very great necessity; but the bishop in whose
diocese they are shall take care in every way that they do
not get accustomed to wandering outside of the monastery.
But if it shall be necessary for a monk to go outside in obe-
dience to a command, this shall be done with the counsel
and consent of the bishop. Such persons shall be sent out
with a certificate, that there may be no suspicion of evil in
them and that no evil report may arise from them.
To manage the property and business outside of the mon-
astery, the abbot, with the permission and counsel of the
bishop, shall appoint some person who is not a monk, but
another of the faithful. Let the monks wholly shun secular
gain or a desire for worldly affairs ; for avarice or a desire for
this world ought to be avoided by all Christians, but espe-
cially by those who claim to have renounced the world and
its lusts. Let no one presume in any way to incite strife or
controversies, either within or without the monastery. But
if any one shall have presumed to do so, he shall be cor-
rected by the most severe discipline of the rule, and in such
a manner that others shall fear to commit such actions. Let
them entirely shun drunkenness and feasting, because it is
known to all that these give rise to lust. . . .
Let no bishops, abbots, priests, deacons, or other mem-
bers of the clergy presume to keep dogs for hunting, or
Charlemagne
hawks, falcons, and sparrow hawks, but each shall observe
fully the canons or rule of his order. If any one shall pre-
sume to violate this order, let him know that he shall lose his
office; and in addition he shall suffer such punishment for
his offense that the others will be afraid to appropriate such
things for themselves. . . .
And we command that no one in our whole kingdom shall All *hall pro-
dare to deny hospitality either to rich or poor, or to pil- >'idefor^
grims ; that is, no one shall deny shelter and fire and water stranger>
to pilgrims traversing our country in God's name, or to any
one traveling for the love of God or for the safety of his
own soul. If, moreover, any one shall wish to serve them
farther, let him expect the best reward from God, who him-
self said, "And whoso shall receive one such little child in
my name receiveth me "; and elsewhere, " I was a stranger,
and ye took me in."
Concerning messengers coming from the lord emperor:
the counts and tentcnarii shall provide most carefully, as
they desire the grace of the lord emperor, for the missi who
are sent out, so that they may go through their provinces
without any delay. The emperor commands all, everywhere,
to see to it that the missi are not hindered anywhere, but are
sent forward with the utmost dispatch and provided with
such things as they may require. . . .
In our forests no one shall dare to steal our game. This
has already been many times forbidden : we now again strictly
forbid it for the future. If one would keep his fidelity pledged
to us, let him take heed to his conduct. . . .
Finally, we desire that all our commands should be made
known throughout our whole realm by means of the missi
now sent forth, whether these commands be directed to those
connected with the Church — bishops, abbots, priests, dea-
cons, canons, monks or nuns — with a view of securing the
observance of our ban or decrees, or whether we would duly
thank the citizens for their good will, or request them to
furnish aid, or to correct some matter. . . .
The counts
to aid the
missi.
No one to
disturb the
royal game.
Various pur-
poses of the
orders sent
out by the
mis si.
144
Readings in European History
63. Charle-
magne's
letter on the
dangers of
ignorance.
VII. CHARLEMAGNE'S ANXIETY TO IMPROVE EDUCATION
Charlemagne's attitude toward the ignorance of many
of the churchmen of his time and his appreciation of
the advantages of elementary education are most fully
expressed in a famous letter written some time between
780 and 800.
Charles, by the grace of God, King of the Franks and Lombards
and Patrician of the Romans, to Abbot Baugulf, and to all
the congregation, also to the faithful committed to you, we
hare directed a Iwing greeting by our messengers in the name
of omnipotent God:
Be it known, therefore, to your Devotion pleasing to God,
that we, together with our faithful, have considered it to be
expedient that the bishoprics and monasteries intrusted by
the favor of Christ to our government, in addition to the rule
of monastic life and the intercourse of holy religion, ought to
be zealous also in the culture of letters, teaching those who
by the gift of God are able to learn, according to the capacity
of each individual; .so that just as the observance of the
monastic rule imparts order and grace to moral conduct,
so also zeal in teaching and learning may do the same for
the use of words, so that those who desire to please God
by living rightly should not neglect to please him also by
speaking correctly. For it is written, "Either from thy
words thou shalt be justified, or from thy words thou shalt
be condemned."
Although it is better to do the right than know it, neverthe-
less knowledge should precede action. Therefore, each one
ought to study what he would accomplish, so that the mind
may the better know what ought to be done, if the tongue
utters the praises of omnipotent God without the hindrances
of errors. For if errors should be shunned by all men, so
much the more ought they to be avoided, as far as possible,
by those who are chosen for the very purpose that they may
be the servants of truth.
Charlemagne 145
Yet, in recent years, when letters have been written to tis
from various monasteries to inform us that the brethren who
dwelt there were offering up in our behalf holy and pious
prayers, we noted in most of these letters correct thoughts
but uncouth expressions ; for what pious devotion dictated
faithfully to the mind, the tongue, uneducated on account of
the neglect of study, was not able to express without error.
We, therefore, began to fear lest perchance, as the skill in
writing was wanting, so also the wisdom for understand-
ing the Holy Scriptures might be much less than it rightly
ought to be. And we all know well that, although errors of
speech are dangerous, far more dangerous are errors of the
understanding.
Therefore, we exhort you not only not to neglect the
study of letters, but also with most humble mind, pleasing
to God, to pursue it earnestly in order that you may be
able more easily and more correctly to penetrate the mys-
teries of the divine Scriptures. Since, moreover, figures of
speech, tropes, and the like are found in the sacred pages, it
cannot be doubted that in reading these one will understand
the spiritual sense more quickly if previously he shall have
been fully instructed in the mastery of letters. Such men
truly are to be chosen for this work as have both the will and
the ability to learn and a desire to instruct others. And
may this be done with a zeal as great as the earnestness
with which we command it
One of the chapters addressed to the clergy in a
general "admonition" issued in 789 supplements the
preceding letter as follows :
. . . Let the ministers of the altar of God adorn their 64. Ctato-
ministry by good manners, and likewise the other orders ^jj^s^JJ
who observe a rule, and the congregations of monks. We schools be
implore them to lead a jusj and fitting life, just as God established
himself commanded in the gospel. "Let your light so ^^g
shine before men, that they may see your good works, and and in tie
glorify your Father which is in heaven," so that by our
146 Readings in European History
example many may be led to serve God. Let them join and
associate to themselves not only children of servile condi-
tion, but also sons of freemen. And let schools be estab-
lished in which boys may learn to read. Correct carefully
the Psalms, the signs in writing, the songs, the calendar,
the grammar, in each monastery or bishopric, and the
Catholic books; because often men desire to pray to God
properly, but they pray badly because of the incorrect books.
And do not permit mere boys to corrupt them in reading
or writing. If there is need of writing the Gospel, Psalter,
and Missal, let men of mature age do the writing with all
diligence.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
A. Refer- General Summary of the Work of Charlemagne : ADAMS, Civiliza-
tion, pp. 154-169.
The Conquests: BEMONT and MONOD, pp. 179; EMERTON, Intro-
duction, Chapter XIII, pp. 180-213 and 232-235; HENDERSON, Germany
in the Middle Ages, pp. 56-70 ; Short History of Germany, pp. 26-30 ;
OMAN, Chapters XX-XXI, pp. 335-368.
Capitulary for the Saxons : Translations and Reprints, Vol. VI,
No. 5, pp. 2-5,
The Revival of the Empire : BEMONT and MONOD, p. 203 ; BRYCE,
Holy Roman Empire^ Chapters IV- V, pp. 34-75; EMERTON, pp. 214-
227 ; HENDERSON, Germany in the Middle Ages^ pp. 71-79 ; Short His-
tory of Germany* pp. 30-35 ; MUNRO, History of the Middle Ages, pp. 9-
18; OMAN, pp. 369-379.
Division of the Empire in 806 : Translations and Reprints, Vol. VI,
No. 5, pp. 27-33.
The Revival of Culture : BEMONT and MONOD, pp. 203-206 ; EMER-
TON, pp. 227-232 ; HENDERSON, Germany in the Middle Ages, pp. 79-
8l ; Short History of Germany, pp. 35-38; OMAN, pp. 379-382.
Letter of Alcuin on Education : COLBY, .Sources of English History \
pp. 16-19.
DAVIS, Charlemagne, 1900.
MOMBBRT, A History of Charles the Great. A scholarly and inter-
eating work, with a good discussion Sf the sources.
HODGKIN, Italy and her Invaders, Vol. VII, Book VIII, Chapters
XHI-XIV, and Vol. VIII. A short account by the same author may
befoand in bis Charles the Great.
CliarlcmagtK
147
The intellectual conditions are discussed in MTLUNGER, Schools cf
Charles the Great^ and WESI, Alatin.
EINHARD, Life of Charlemagne* translated by Turner, An inexpen-
sive English %ersion of thi> extraordinary little work.
KITCHIN, History *f France* Book II, Part II, Chapter III.
GREGOROVIUS, Rome in the MiadU Ages, Vol. II, Book IV, Chapters
IV-VII, and Vol. Ill, Book V, Chapter I.
MORLEY, MeJiaral Tales* Parts I and II, furnishes examples of the
romances which in later years wo\e themselves about the name of
the great emperor.
EBERT (see above, p. 34), Vol. II, Book IV, gives an excellent
account of the literary activity of Charlemagne's time.
LAVISSE. Histeire de France, Vol. II, Part I.
LAMPRECHT, Deutsche Geschichte, Vol. II, Book V, Chapters I-II.
GEBHARXVT (see above, p. 57), where the reader will find references
to the abundant literature on this subject in German.
ABEL and SIMSON, Jakrbucher der deutschen Gt'schichtt* " Unter Karl
dem Grossen," 2 vols., 1866-1883. The most exhaustive technical treat-
ment (see below, pp. 261 sq*),
RlCHTER, Annalfn der deutscken Gtschichte im Mittefalter, Vol. II,
"The Carolingian Period," iSSf-iSS; (see below, p. 262).
MATHEWS. Select Medieval Documents (1892), pp. 9-14, gives brief
extracts from the Latin text of documents important for the history of
the Church and the Empire.
In the times of Charles Martel and Pippin a new kind of histori-
cal source makes its appearance, — the annals. These had a peculiar
origin.
The day upon which the great Christian festival of Easter fell each
year was a matter of the utmost importance to all the monasteries and
churches ; but the time varies in such a way that it is little wonder that
the monks and churchmen of the eighth century were commonly unable to
master the rules for determining the recurrence of the festival. Tables
of the dates of Easter were therefore prepared and were welcomed every-
where. The wide margins invited a brief record opposite each year, of
some occurrence which had made the year memorable in the particular
abbey or the neighboring region.
Rude and trivial as these entries often were, they tended to grow
fuller as the eighth century advanced, and now serve to establish the
dates of many important events. These scanty histories were, however,
C. bfattnalt
for athant(J
'
The sources.
Origiaofti*
148
Readings in European History
The Royal
Annals.
Annals of
Einhari
The capitu-
laries.
often taken from monastery to monastery, copied, combined, and con-
tinued in Mich a way that errors and inconsistencies crept in which have
greatly puzzled scholars in our own day.
The annals are sometimes named from the abbey where a copy was
found, although, as in the case of the Greater Annals of Lorsck^ they
may not have originated there ; or they may be named for the person
who discovered a copy, or from the region to which they oftenest refer
and where it is assumed that they were written.
By far the most important of the annals for Charlemagne's time are
the so-called Royal Annals. These were apparently drawn up by per-
sons who resided at the king's court; for the writers were evidently
devoted to the interests of the reigning family, and were in a position
to follow closely the course of public events. The Royal Annals cover
the period from 741 to 829 and are the work of several chroniclers. In
the first place, some unknown ecclesiastic undertook, apparently about
787, to bring together as full an account as he could of the deeds of
Charlemagne's house since the death of Charles Martel (741). This
was the origin of the so-called Greater Annals of Lorsch. These were
later brought down to 801. The work was then rewritten in better
Latin and considerably modified, and a continuation was added, bring-
ing the history down to 829.
This revision, together with the continuation, was long attributed to
Einhard, Charlemagne's secretary, but many scholars now agree in
thinking that if Einhard had a hand in the work at all he was only
one of several writers.
See a discussion of the annals in general in WATTENBACH, pp. 154
sqq. ; for the Royal Annals^ pp. 210 sqq. See also MOLINIER, pp. 211-
215 and 224 sqq. (The text of the various early annals including the Royal
is in M&nvmenta Germaniae Historica. A better edition of the Royal
Annals in octavo edition (1895) ! translation in the Geschichtschreiber.}
The laws, the so-called capitularies, issued by Charlemagne, are of
great importance to one who wishes to form an idea of his government
and the conditions within his empire. There is a recent edition of the
capitularies in the Monumenta^ edited by BORETIUS, 1883 sq.
EIN HARD'S Vita Caroli may be found in the octavo edition of the
Monumenta ; also edited by HOLDER, Freiburg, 1882 (60 Pf.). For Eng-
Hsh translation, see above, section B. " Einhard," says Ranke, " enjoyed
singular good fortune in finding in his great contemporary the most
worthy sobject for an historical work. Out of gratitude he erected a
to one to whom he was peculiarly indebted for his early
thereby provided that he himseH should be remembered
for all tJiae."
Charlemagne 149
The Codex Caroltnus is a collection, made by Charlemagne's orders,
of the letters addressed to him and his father by the popes. < It may be
found in JAFFE, Bibtiotheta rerum Germamcarum and better in the
Monitmenta.)
From the diverting tales of Charlemagne, told by the Monk of The Monk
St. Gall, seventy \ears after the emperor's death, we can form an idea °* ^tj ^aM
of the fabulous proportions which that hero had alread) assumed in
the minds of posterity. (In the ^f^*numcnta; newer edition in TAFK&
Bibhotkeca rernm German tea rum , Vol. IV ; translated in the Gesckickt-
schreiber and in Guizot's Cclltcfion*)
GASTON* PARIS, Histoire pvetoque d* Charlemagne* gives a scientific
analysis of the origin and development r»f the mediatval Carolingian
legend.
The best source for Alcuin's life and work is his correspondence,
edited by JAFFE, Bibliotheca rerum Germane-arum^ Vol. VI.
CHAPTER VIII
THE DISRUPTION OF CHARLEMAGNE'S EMPIRE
I. THE NORTHMEN
For centuries the German peoples of the North har-
assed the coasts of the North Sea and often extended
their invasions far inland. In one of the letters of
Apollinaris Sidonius * we have a vivid picture of the
Saxons about the time that they were getting their
foothold in England in the middle of the fifth century.
At the end of a long letter to a friend, Sidonius says :
S5. Apotli- Behold, when I was on the point of concluding this epistle,
wiis Sido- jn wnich [ have already chattered on too long, a messenger
icribestfee suddenly arrived from Saintonge with whom I have spent
some hours in conversing about you and your doings. He
aftirms that you have just sounded your trumpet on board
the fleet, and that, combining the duties of a sailor and a
soldier, you are roaming along the winding shores of the
ocean, looking out for the curved pinnaces of the Saxons.
When you see the rowers of that nation you may at once
make up your mind that every one of them is an arch-pirate ;
with such wonderful unanimity do all at once command, obey,
teach, and learn their one chosen business of brigandage.
For this reason I ought to warn you to be more than ever
on your guard in this warfare.
Our enemy is the most truculent of all enemies. Unex-
pectedly he attacks ; when expected he escapes ; he despises
those who seek to block his path, he overthrows those who
are off their guard ; he always succeeds in cutting off the
1 See above, pp. 58 sq.
150
The Disruption of Charkniagm V Empire \ 5 1
enemy whom he follows, while he never fails when he
desires to effect his own escape. Moreover, to these men
a shipwreck is capital practice rather than an object of
terror. The dangers of the deep are to them not casual
acquaintances but intimate friends. For since a tempest
throws the invaded off their guard and prevents the invaders
from being descried from afar, they hail with joy the crash
of waves on the rocks, which gives them their best chance of
escaping from other enemies than the elements.
The Monk of St. Gall l gives us some idea of the atti-
tude of the Northmen toward the rites of the Christian
religion.
Speaking of the Northmen, I will illustrate their esteem 6
for the faith, and for baptism, by telling an anecdote of the ™"*a!*P"
days of our grandfathers. This terrible people, who had tbeMwfc
stood in awe of the great Emperor Charles and paid him <rfSt.GalPa
tribute, continued after his death to exhibit to his son Louis c**rf«» **•
[the Pious] the respect they had shown his father. After a ^**-)
time the pious emperor had compassion upon their ambas-
sadors, and asked them whether they would accept the
Christian faith. They answered that they were ready to
obey him in all things, always and everywhere. He then
commanded that they be baptized in his name of whom the
learned Augustine said : " If there were no Trinity, the
Truth itself would not have said, 'Go ye therefore, and
teach all nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father,
and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.' "
The Northmen were treated like adopted sons by the
chief lords of the court. They received from the king's
closet the white baptismal robe, and from their sponsors
the Frankish dress — costly garments, and weapons, and
ornaments.
This custom was followed for a long time. The North-
men came year after year in even greater numbers, not for
Christ's sake, but for worldly gain. They did not come now
1 See above, p. 149.
152
Readings in European History
The Norse
man's idea
. Operas
as ambassadors ; but as submissive vassals they hastened at
the holy Eastertide to do homage to the emperor. Finally
one year they came fifty strong. The emperor asked them
whether they would be baptized. They assented, and he
commanded that they be straightway sprinkled with holy
water. There were not enough linen robes, so the emperor
had more garments cut out and sewed up roughly like a bag
or towel.
One of these robes was suddenly put upon one of the
oldest of the Northmen. He looked at it awhile with crit-
ical eyes, and grew not a little angry. Then he said to the
emperor : " I have been baptized here twenty times before,
and every time I was clad in the best and whitest garments;
and now you give me a sack which befits a swineherd rather
than a warrior. I have given up my own garments and would
be ashamed of my nakedness if I cast aside this one also,
else I would leave thy robe to thee and thy Christ."
In the extracts from the Annals given below there are
P*entv °* sad pictures of the Northmen as pirates and
cruel invaders, but to gain an idea of how they viewed
themselves, we must turn to the Norse sagas. About
the time that Charles the Fat was bargaining with the
Northmen in France, many belonging to the same race
were streaming over from Norway to Iceland. Here
it was that the Norse literature sprang up — the sagas,
or tales, which still delight the reader in something
the same way that Homer does. Of these sagas the
finest is perhaps The Story of Burnt Njal, who lived
in the time of Otto the Great. The famous tale opens
as follows :
There was a man named Mord whose surname was Fiddle ;
**e was the son of Sigvat the Red, and he dwelt at the
"Vale" in the Rangrivervales. He was a mighty chief,
and a great taker up of suits, and so great a lawyer that no
The Disruption of Charlemagne s Emfirt 153
judgments were thought lawful unless he had a hand in
them. He had an only daughter named Unna. She was a
fair, courteous, and gifted woman, and was thought the best
match in all the Rangrivervales.
Now the story turns westward to the Broadfirth dales,
where, at Hauskuldstede, in Laxriverdale, dwelt a man
named Hauskuld, who was Dalakoll's son, and his mother's
name was Thorgerda. He had a brother named Hrut, who
dwelt at Hrutstede ; he was of the same mother as Hauskuld,
but his father's name was Heriolf. Hrut was handsome,
tall and strong, well skilled in arms, and mild of temper;
he was one of the wisest of men — stern towards his foes,
but a good counselor on great matters.
It happened once that Hauskuld bade his friends to a
feast, and his brother Hrut was there, and sat next him.
Hauskuld had a daughter named Hallgerda, who was play-
ing on the floor with some other girls. She was fair of face
and tall of growth, and her hair was as soft as silk ; it was
so long, too, that it came down to her waist. Hauskuld
called out to her, " Come hither to me, daughter," So she
went up to him, and he took her by the chin, and kissed
her ; and after that she went away.
Then Hauskuld said to Hrut, ** What dost thou think of
this maiden ? Is she not fair ? " Hrut held his peace.
Hauskuld said the same thing to him a second time, and
then Hrut answered, u Fair enough is this maid, and many
will smart for it, but this I know not, whence thief's eyes
have come into our race." Then Hauskuld was wroth, and
for a time the brothers saw little of each other.
[Gunnar, who is one of the chief personages in the story, G
has been on a successful sea-roving expedition, during which
he has shown much prowess and won much booty. Before
returning home he visits Denmark, where the fame of his
deeds has preceded him. He is summoned to the court of
King Harold, Conn's son, who offers to get him a wife and
to raise him to great power if he will settle down there.]
Gunnar thanked the king for his offer and said, " I will first
of all sail back to Iceland to see my friends and kinsfolk."
154 Readings in European History
"Then thou wilt never come back to us," says the king.
'" Fate will settle that, Lord," says Gunnar.
Gunnar gave the king a good long-ship, and much goods
besides, and the king gave him a robe of honor and golden-
seamed gloves, and a fillet with a knot of gold on it, and a
Russian hat.
Gunnar woos [On his return to Iceland Gunnar visited the Althing, the
Haiigerda. annual general assembly of the people.] It happened one
day that Gunnar went away from the Hill of Laws and
passed by the booths of the men from Mossfell; then he
saw a woman coming to meet him, and she was in goodly
attire ; but when they met she spoke to Gunnar at once.
He took her greeting well, and asked what woman she might
be. She told him that her name was Haiigerda, and said
that she was the daughter of Hauskuld, DalakollTs son. She
spoke up boldly to him, and bade him tell her of his voyages ;
and he said that he would not gainsay her a talk. Then
they sat them down and talked. She was so clad that she
had on a red kirtle, and had thrown over her a scarlet cloak
trimmed with needlework down to the waist. Her hair came
down to her bosom, and was both fair and full. Gunnar was
clad in the scarlet clothes which King Harold, Gorm's son,
had given him; he had also the golden ring on his arm
which Earl Hacon had given him.
So they talked long out loud, and at last it came about
that he asked whether she were unmarried. She said, so
it was, " and there are not many that would run the risk of
that." " Thinkest thou none good enough for thee ? " " Not
that," she says, " but I am said to be hard to please in hus-
bands." " How wouldst thou answer were I to ask for thee ? "
"That cannot be in thy mind/' she says. "It is, though,"
says he. ** If thou hast any mind that way, go and see my
father." After that they broke off their talk.1
1 Haiigerda proved to be a wicked and altogether heartless woman,
who finally brought Gunnar, whom she marries, to his death by refus-
ing to give him a lock of her beautiful hair to replace his bowstring
, he was hard beset by his enemks.
The Disruption of Charlemagne's Empire 155
II. STRUGGLES BETWEEN THE SON'S OF Louis THE Pious
(840) Louis [the German], the emperor's son, took pos-
session of the part of the Empire lying beyond the Rhine
as if it were his by right. He won the support of many
East Franks by his prudent conduct, and marched through
Alemannia to Frankfort. The emperor, learning this, was
forced to return from Aquitaine, leaving his business there
unfinished. He sent his brother Druogo, the archchaplain,
Count Albert, and many others before him to guard the west
bank of the Rhine; then he himself followed and celebrated
Easter at Aix-la-Chapelle. About this time, night after night,
a strange glow appeared in the air, in fashion like a beam, in
the southeast, and another arising from the northwest. The
two joined together and formed a cone and presented an
appearance like clotted blood at the zenith.
After Easter the emperor gathered an army and pursued
his son through Thuringia up to the frontiers of the bar-
barians. He drove him out of the imperial territory and
forced him to make a difficult march homeward to Bavaria
through the land of the Slavs. The emperor himself set
all things in order in that region, and then returned to the
royal town of Salz, and celebrated there the Rogation Days
and the festival of our Lord's Ascension. On the very day
before the Ascension of our Lord, i.e. on the twelfth of
May, there was an eclipse of the sun at about the seventh
and eighth hour — so completely was the sun obscured that
the stars were seen and the color of things on earth was
changed.
In these days the emperor fell 511 and began to waste
away. He was taken on a ship down the Main to Frank-
fort, and from there after a few days to an island in the
Rhine near Ingilenheini. His illness steadily increased
upon him, and on the twentieth of June he ended his life.
His body was brought to the city of Metz and buried with
all due honor in the basilica of St. Arnulf the Confessor.
Lothaire, who came from Italy too late [to see his father],
was accepted by the Franks to rule over them in his father's
68. The
death of
Louis the
Picas and
the strife
between his
sons. (From
the A**alx
Lothaire
accepted by
the Franks as
their rater.
156 Readings in European History
stead. For men say the dying emperor had designated him
as the one who should hold after him the helm of the state,
and had sent him the royal insignia — the scepter of the
Empire and the crown.
Lothaire's brothers did not agree, however, to this arrange-
ment, and they made ready to rebel against him. He went
with his army to the precincts of Mayence, and there his
brother Louis marched to meet him with a strong follow-
ing of East Franks. They, however, agreed together to
postpone decisive action until another time; and Lothaire
marched northward to meet Charles [the Bald]. Meantime
Louis bound to his cause by an oath of fidelity the East
Franks, the Alemannians, the Saxons, and the Thuringians.
(841) Meanwhile Lothaire placed garrisons along the
Rhine and prepared to secure the east bank against an inva-
sion from the west. He heard, through a messenger, of
Louis' hostile measures, and, giving up pursuing Charles,
he turned about, and at the beginning of the month of April
crossed the Rhine secretly at Worms with all his army.
Louis was betrayed by some of his followers and, almost
surrounded by the army of Lothaire, he was forced to retreat
to Bavaria.
The emperor placed guards whom he believed he could
trust in those regions, and then turned his energy and his
forces once more against Charles, who had already planned
to establish a camp beyond the Maas. Louis was sum-
moned to aid Charles and came by way of Alemannia.
There the counts to whom Lothaire had intrusted the de-
fense of that region met Louis with an army. They gave
battle on the thirteenth of May. Count Adalbert, who had
stirred up the strife, was killed; and with him a countless
number of men were laid low.
Louis, victor in this encounter, crossed the Rhine and
hastened toward Gaul to aid his brother Charles. The three
brothers met in Auxerre, near Fontenay. They could not
agree to divide the Empire because Lothaire, who wished to
be sole monarch, was opposed to it So they agreed that
The Disruption of Char L magnet Emfirc 157
the case should be decided by the power of the sword and so
proved by the judgment of God. On the twenty-fifth of June
a great battle was fought between them, and the blood shed
on both sides was so great that the present age remembers
no such carnage among the Frankish people before. On the
same day Lothaire began a retreat to his city of Aix-Ia-
Chapelle. Louis and Charles seized his camp and collected
and buried the bodies of their slain. They then parted ;
Charles remained in the west and Louis went in the month
of August to the royal town Salz.
Lothaire again collected his forces from all sides. He
went to Mayence and ordered the Saxons, with his little
son Lothaire, to meet him at Speyer. He himself crossed
the Rhine, intending to pursue his brother Louis to the
confines of the outlying nations. He returned to Worms,
unsuccessful. He celebrated there the marriage of his
daughter, and then marched toward Gaul to subdue Charles.
He spent the whole winter in fruitless effort and strife and
then returned to Aix. On the twenty-fifth of December a
comet appeared in the sign of Aquarius.
(843) Lothaire and Louis dwelt each in the confines of his 69. The
own kingdom and kept the peace. Charles was marching ^?aajf!l
about Aquitaine. ... In the terrible and increasing calam- Jp^^ ^
ities of the time and the general devastation, many men in
various parts of Gaul were forced to eat a kind of bread
made of earth and a little flour. It was an abominable
crime that men should be reduced to eat earth, when the
horses of those who were devastating the land were plenti-
fully supplied with fodder.
Pirates of the Northmen's race came to the city of Nantes.
They killed the bishop and many of the clergy and laity,
both men and women, and plundered the city. Then they
marched away to lay waste the land of lower Aquitaine.
Finally they reached a certain island [Rhe', near Rochelle],
and took thither from the mainland materials to build them
houses; and they settled there for the winter as if it were a
fixed habitation.
158 Readings in European History
The treat)- Charles betook himself to a rendezvous with his brothers,
of Verdun. an(j jojned them at Verdun; and there they divided the land
among them. Louis had as his portion everything beyond
the Rhine, and on this side of the Rhine the cities and dis-
tricts of Speyer, Worms, and Mayence. Lothaire received
the territory between the Rhine and the Scheldt to their emp-
tying into the sea, besides Cambria, Hennegau, Lomatsch-
gau, and the provinces on the left bank of the Maas, and
further on to the place where the Saone joins the Rhone, and
the counties along the Rhone on both banks to the sea.
The other lands to the confines of Spain they ceded to
Charles. When each had given his oath to the others they
parted.
III. A MELANCHOLY GLIMPSE OF THE CONDITIONS IN
THE NINTH CENTURY
The Annals of Xanten give us a terrible impression of
the disorder and gloom which prevailed in the Prankish
kingdoms, owing to the civil wars and the devastations
of the Northmen. The portion here given was probably
written as the events occurred.
70. An ex- (844) Pope Gregory departed this world and Pope Sergius
tract from followed in his place. Count Bernhard was killed by
Charles. Pippin, king of Aquitaine, together with his son
and the son of Bernhard, routed the army of Charles, and
there fell the abbot Hugo. At the same time King Louis
advanced with his army against the Wends, one of whose
kings, Gestimus by name, was killed; the rest came to
Louis and pledged him their fidelity, which, however, they
broke as soon as he was gone. Thereafter Lothaire, Louis,
and Charles came together for council in Diedenhofen, and
after a conference they went their several ways in peace.
(845) Twice in the canton of Worms there was an earth-
quake ; the first in the night following Palm Sunday, the
second in the holy night of Christ's Resurrection. In the
T/tc Disruption cf C/iarkmagnSs Empire I 59
same year the heathen broke in upon the Christians at
many points, but more than twelve thousand of them were
killed by the Frisians. Another party of invaders devas-
tated Gaul ; of these more than six hundred men perished.
Yet owing to his indolence Charles agreed to give them many
thousand pounds of gold and silver if they would leave Gaul,
and this they did. Nevertheless the cloisters of most of the
saints were destroyed and many of the Christians were led
away captive.
After this had taken place King Louis once more led a
force against the Wends. When the heathen had learned
this they sent ambassadors, as well as gifts and hostages, to
Saxony, and asked for peace. Louis then granted peace
and returned home from Saxony, Thereafter the robbers
were afflicted by a terrible pestilence, during which the chief
sinner among them, by the name of Reginheri, who had
plundered the Christians and the holy places, was struck
down by the hand of God. They then took counsel and threw
lots to determine from which of their gods they should seek
safety; but the lots did not fall out happily, and on the
advice of one of their Christian prisoners that they should
cast their lot before the God of the Christians, they did so,
and the lot fell happily. Then their king, by the name of
Rorik, together with all the heathen people, refrained from
meat and drink for fourteen days, when the plague ceased,
and they sent back all their Christian prisoners to their
country.
(846) According to their custom the Northmen plun-
dered Eastern and Western Frisia and burned the town of
Dordrecht, with two other villages, before the eyes of Lo-
thaire, who was then in the castle of Nimwegen, but could
not punish the crime. The Northmen, with their boats
filled with immense booty, including both men and goods,
returned to their own country.
In the same year Louis sent an expedition from Saxony
against the Wends across the Elbe. He personally, how-
ever, went with his army against the Bohemians, whom we
160 Readings in European History
call Beu-winitha, but with great risk. . . . Charles advanced
against the Britons, but accomplished nothing.
At this same time, as no one can mention or hear without
great sadness, the mother of all churches, the basilica of the
apostle Peter, was taken and plundered by the Moors, or
Saracens, who had already occupied the region of Beneven-
turn. The Saracens, moreover, slaughtered all the Christians
whom they found outside the walls of Rome, either within
or without this church. They also carried men and women
away prisoners. They tore down, among man^_others^the
altar of the blessed Peter, and their crimes from day to day
bring sorrow to Christians. Pope Sergius departed life this
year.
(847) After the death of Sergius no mention of the
apostolic see has come in any way to our ears. Rabanus
£Maurus], master and abbot of Fulda, was solemnly chosen
archbishop as the successor of Bishop Otger, who had died.
Moreover the Northmen here and there plundered the
Christians and engaged in a battle with the counts Sigir and
Liuthar. They continued up the Rhine as far as Dordrecht,
and nine miles farther to Meginhard, when they turned
back, having taken their booty.
(848) On the fourth of February, towards evening, it light-
ened and there was thunder heard. The heathen, as was
their custom, inflicted injury on the Christians. In the same
year King Louis held an assembly of the people near May-
ence. At this synod a heresy was brought forward by a few
monks in regard to predestination. These were convicted
and beaten, to their shame, before all the people. They were
sent back to Gaul whence they had come, and, thanks be to
God, the condition of the church remained uninjured.
(849) While King Louis was ill his army of Bavaria took
its way against the Bohemians. Many of these were killed
and the remainder withdrew, much humiliated, into their own
country. Tbe heathen from the North wrought havoc in
The Disruption of Ckarfcmagnes Empire 161
Christendom as usual and grew greater In strength ; but it
is revolting to say more of this matter.
(850) On January ist of that season, in the octave of the
Lord, towards evening, a great deal of thunder was heard
and a mighty flash of lightning seen : and an overflow of water
afflicted the human race during this winter. In the follow-
ing summer an all too great heat of the sun burned the earth.
Leo, pope of the apostolic see, an extraordinary man, built
a fortification round the church of St. Peter the apostle.
The Moors, however, devastated here and there the coast
towns in Italy. The Norman Rorik, brother of the above-
mentioned younger Heriold, who earlier had lied dishonored
from Lothaire, again took Dordrecht and did much evil
treacherously to the Christians. In the same year so
great a peace existed between the two brothers — Emperor
Lothaire and King Louis — that they spent many days
together in Osning [Westphalia] and there hunted, so that
many were astonished thereat ; and they went each his way
in peace.
(851) The bodies of certain saints were sent from Rome
to Saxony, — that of Alexander, one of seven brethren, and
those of Romanus and Emerentiana. In the same year
the very noble empress, Irmingard by name, wife of the
emperor Lothaire, departed this world. The Normans
inflicted much harm in Frisia and about the Rhine. A
mighty army of them collected by the river Elbe against the
Saxons, and some of the Saxon towns were besieged, others
burned, and most terribly did they oppress the Christians*
A meeting of our kings took place on the M aas.
(852) The steel of the heathen glistened ; excessive heat ;
a famine followed. There was not fodder enough for the
animals. The pasturage for the swine was more than
sufficient.
(853) A great famine in Saxony so that many were forced
to live on horse meat.
1 62 J\.t* tit /ings hi Eiirofian History
(854) The Normans, in addition to the very many evils
which they were everywhere inflicting upon the Christians,
burned the church of St. Martin, bishop of Tours, where his
body rests.
(855) In the spring Louis, the eastern king, sent his
son of the same nuime to Aquitaine to obtain possession of
the heritage of his uncle Pippin.
(856) The Normans again chose a king of the same
name as the preceding one, and related to him, and the
Danes made a fresh incursion by sea, with renewed forces,
against the Christians.
(857) A greit sickness, accompanied by swelling of the
bladder, prevailed among the people. This produced a ter-
rible foulness, so that the limbs were separated from the
body even before death came.
(858) Louis, the eastern king, held an assembly of the
people of his territory in Worms.
(859) On the first of January, as the early mass was being
said, a single earthquake occurred in Worms and a triple
one in Mayence before daybreak.
(860) On the fifth of February thunder was heard. The
king returned from Gaul after the whole empire had gone to
destruction, and was in no way bettered.
(86 1 ) The holy bishop Luitbert piously furnished the
cloister which is called the Freckenhorst with many relics of
the saints, namely, of the martyrs Boniface and Maximus,
and of the confessors Eonius and Antonius, and added a
portion of the manger of the Lord and of his grave, and like-
wise of the dust of the Lord's feet as he ascended to heaven.
In this year the winter was long and the above-mentioned
kings again had a secret consultation on the above-men-
tioned island near Coblenz, and they laid waste everything
round about.
Thi Disruption of Charkmagncs Emfirc 163
IV. How THE NORTHMEN- HARRIED FKAXKLANP AND
LAID SIEI;K 10 PAKI-
^882) . . . The Northmen in the month of October in-
trenched themselves At Conde, and horribly devastated the
kingdom of Carloman.1 while King Charles with his army
took his stand on the Somnie at liarleux. The Xorthmen
ceased not from rapine and drove all the inhabitants who
were left beyond the Somme. . . ,
[King Carloman gave them battle] and the Franks were
victorious and killed nigh a thousand of the Xorthmen.
Yet they were in no wise discomfited by this battle. . . .
They went from Conde back to their ships, and thence laid
waste the whole kingdom with fire and sword as far as the
Oise. They destroyed houses, and razed monasteries and
churches to the ground, and brought to their death the ser-
vants of our holy religion by famine and sword, or sold
them beyond the sea. They killed the dwellers in the land
and none could resist them.
Abbot Hugo, when he heard of these calamities, gathered
an army and came to aid the king. When the Northmen
came back from a plundering expedition ... he, in com-
pany with the king, gave them chase. They, however,
betook themselves to a wood, and scattered hither and yon,
and finally returned to their ships with little loss. In this
year died Hinckmar, archbishop of Rheims, a man justly
esteemed by all.
(883) ... In the spring the Northmen lett Conde and
sought the country along the sea. Here they dwelt through
the summer; they forced the Flemings to flee from their
lands, and raged everywhere, laying waste the country with
fire and sword. As autumn approached, Carloman, the king,
took his station with his army in the canton of Yithman at
Mianai, opposite Lavier, in order to protect the kingdom.
The Northmen at the end of October came to Lavier with
cavalry, foot soldiers, and all their baggage. Ships, too, came
1 Son of Charles the Bald. See History of Western Europe^ p. 96.
71. How the
Horthmev
harried
Fraadaaa*
beritged
Paris <88a-
886^. (From
the AftKoJi
164 JR.C€i€?ings in European History
from the sea up the Sornme and forced the king and his
whole army to flee and drove them across the river Oise.
The invaders went into winter quarters in the city of Amiens
and devastated all the land to the Seine and on both sides
of the Oise, and no man opposed them ; and they burned
with fire the monasteries and churches of Christ. . . .
(884) At this time died Engelwin, bishop of Paris, and
the abbot Gauzelin was put in his stead. The Northmen
ceased not to take Christian people captive and to kill them,
and to destroy churches and houses and burn villages.
Through all the streets lay bodies of the clergy, of laymen,
nobles, and others, of women, children* and suckling babes.
There was no road nor place where the dead did not lie ;
and all who saw Christian people slaughtered were filled
with sorrow and despair.
Meanwhile, because the king was still a child, all the
nobles came together in the city of Compiegne to consider
what should be done. They took counsel, and decided to
send to the Northmen the Dane Sigfried, who was a Chris-
tian and faithful to the king, and the nephew of Heoric the
Dane, that he might treat with the nobles of his people and
ask them to accept tribute money and leave the kingdom.
He accordingly undertook to carry out the task assigned
to him, went to Amiens, and announced his mission to the
leaders of the Northmen. After long consultations and
much going to and fro, these decided to impose upon the
king and the Franks a tribute of twelve thousand pounds
of silver, according to their manner of weighing. After both
parties had given hostages, the people who dwelt beyond the
Oise were secure in some degree. They enjoyed this security
from the day of the Purification of St. Mary until the month
of October.
The Northmen, however, made raids in their accustomed
manner beyond the Scheldt, and laid waste all things with
fire and sword, and totally destroyed churches, monasteries,
cities and villages, and put the people to slaughter. After
the holy Easter festival the collection of the tribute began,
The Disritpii&n of Charlemagne's Empire 1 65
and churches and church property were ruthlessly plun-
dered. At last, the whole sum being finally brought together,
the Franks assembled with a view of resisting the North-
men should they break their pledges, but the Xormans
burned their camp and retreated from Amiens. . . .
(885 ) [In December of this same year Carloman was acci-
dentally killed while on a boar hunt.] As soon as Emperor
Charles [the Fat] received tidings of this, he made a hasty
journey and came to Pontion ; and all the men of Carlo-
man's kingdom went to him there and submitted to his
sway. . . .
On the twenty-fifth of July the whole host of the North-
men forced their way to Rheims. Their ships had not yet
come, so they crossed the Seine in boats they found there,
and quickly fortified themselves. The Franks followed them.
All those who dwelt in Neustria and Burgundy gathered to
make war upon the Northmen. But when they gave battle
it befell that Ragnold, duke of Maine, was killed, with a
few others. Therefore all the Franks retreated in great
sorrow and accomplished nothing.
Thereupon the rage of the Northmen was let loose upon
the land. They thirsted for fire and slaughter : they killed
Christian people and took them captive and destroyed
churches ; and no man could resist them.
Again the Franks made ready to oppose them, not in
battle, but by building fortifications to prevent the passage
of their ships. They built a castle on the river Oise at the
place which is now called Pontoise, and appointed Aletram-
nus to guard it. Bishop Gauzelin fortified the city of Paris.
In the month of November the Northmen entered the
Oise, and besieged the castle the Franks had built. They
cut off the water supply from the castle's garrison, for it
depended on the river for water and had no other. Soon
they who were shut up in the castle began to suffer for lack
of water. What more need be said ? They surrendered
on condition that they be allowed to go forth unharmed.
After hostages had been exchanged, Aletrainnus and his
1 66 Readings in European History
men went to Beauvais. The Northmen burned the castle and
carried off all that had been left by the garrison, who had
been permitted to depart only on condition that they would
leave everything behind except their horses and arms.
The North- Elated with victory, the Northmen appeared before Paris,
men besiege and at once attacked a tower, contident that they could take
Paris> it quickly because it was not yet fully fortified. But the
Christians defended it manfully and the battle raged from
morning till evening. The night gave a truce to righting
and the Northmen returned to their ships. Bishop Gauze-
lin and Count Odo worked with their men all night long to
strengthen the tower against assaults. The next day the
Northmen returned and -tried to storm the tower, and they
fought fiercely till sunset. The Northmen had lost many of
their men and they returned to their ships. They pitched
a camp before the city and laid siege to it and bent all their
energies to capture it. But the Christians fought bravely
and stood their ground.
(886) On the sixth of February those in the city suffered
a severe reverse. The river rose and washed away the
Little Bridge. When the bishop heard of this disaster he
sent brave and noble men to guard the tower, so that they
might begin to rebuild the broken bridge when morning
broke. The Northmen knew all that had happened. They
arose before sunrise, hurried with all their forces to the
tower, surrounded it on all sides so that no reinforcements
could reach the garrison, and tried to take the tower by
storm.
The guard resisted valiantly, and the clamor of the multi-
tude arose to heaven. The bishop was on the city wall with
all the inhabitants. The people wept and groaned because
they could not aid their own. The bishop commended them
all to Christ because there was nothing else that he could
do. The Northmen tried to break in the gate of the tower
and finally set fire to it Those who were within, weakened
by wounds, were conquered by fire; and to the shame of
Christianity, they were killed in divers ways and cast into
The Disruption of Charlemagne $ Empire 167
the river. The Northmen then destroyed the tower; and
afterward they ceased not to assault the city itself.
The bishop was heartbroken over this heavy loss. He
straightway sent to Count Herkenger and begged him to
go at once to Germany and ask Henry, duke of Austrasia,
to aid him and the Christian people. Herkenger hastened
to carry out the mission intrusted to him, and persuaded
Henry to come with an army to Paris. He, however, ac-
complished nothing there and soon returned to his own
country.
Then Gauzelin, who sought in all possible ways to help
the Christian people, decided to come to a friendly under-
standing with Sigfried, king of the Danes, to secure the
deliverance of the city from siege.
Unhappily, while negotiations were going on, the bishop
fell into sore infirmity. He ended his life and was buried
in his city. The Northmen were aware of his death; and
before it was announced to the citizens, the Northmen pro-
claimed from the gates that the bishop was dead. The
people were exhausted by the siege and overwhelmed by the
death of their father; they lost courage and abandoned
themselves to sorrow. But Odo, the illustrious count, gave
them renewed strength with his brave words.
The Northmen ceased not to attack the city daily ; many
were killed and still more were disabled by wounds, and
food began to give out in the city. At this time Hugo, the
venerable abbot, departed this life and was buried in
the monastery of St. German Antisdoro. Odo saw how the
people were falling into despair, and he went forth secretly
to seek aid from the nobles of the kingdom, and to send
word to the emperor that the city would soon be lost unless
help came. When Odo returned to Paris he found the
people lamenting his absence. Nor did he reenter the city
without a remarkable incident. The Northmen had learned
that he was coming back, and they blocked his way to the
gate. But Odo, though his horse was killed, struck down
his enemies right and left, forced his way into the city, and
brought joy to the anxious people. . . .
168
Readings in European History
Charles the
Fat makes a
shameful
treaty with
the North-
[The siege had lasted eight months when the emperor
came to relieve the city.] It was in the autumn that he
appeared before Paris with a very strong army. . . . But he
did not force them to raise the siege. He made terms with
them and signed a shameful treaty. He promised to pay a
ransom for the city, and gave them leave to march unopposed
into Burgundy, to plunder it during the winter.
A. Refer-
fmcts.
B. A4&
Bngtok.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
General Summary of Events and Conditions : ADAMS, Civilization^
pp. 170-179; HENDERSON, Short History of Germany > Vol. I, pp. 38-48.
Louis the Pious: BEMONT and MONOD, pp. 211-215; EMERTON,
Mediaval Europe-, pp. 3-24 ; HENDERSON, Germany in the Middle Agfst
Chapter VI, pp. 82-99; OMAN, Chapter XXIII, pp. 383-404.
The Division of the Empire in 817 : HENDERSON, Historical Docu-
ments* pp. 201-206.
The Process of Disruption: B^MONT and MONOD, pp. 215-240;
EMERTON, pp. 24-40; HENDERSON, Germany in the Middle Ages, Chapter
VII, pp. 100-116; OMAN, Chapters XXIV-XXV, pp. 405-445.
The Strasburg Oath : EMERTON, pp. 26-28 ; MUNRO, p. 20.
The Treaty of A*y : HENDERSON, Historical Dofuments^ pp. 206, 207.
Amolf of Carinthia : EMERTON, pp. 90-94 ; OMAN, Chapter XXVII,
pp. 468-472.
The Norman Invasions: MUNRO, Chapter IV, pp. 33-39; GIBBON,
Vol VI, part of Chapter LVI, pp. 173-193.
KRARY, The Vikings in Western Christendom. The most complete
accoont of the Norman raids during the period of the later Carolingians.
JOHNSON, Tke Normans. A good general narrative covering the
history of all Norman settlements in southern Earope.
There are no books in English dealing especially with the fortunes
of the Empire during these years. The reader must turn to chapters in
the large works: GREGOROVIUS, Rome in the Middle Ages, Vol. Ill,
Book V, Chapters II-VI ; KITCHIN, History of France, Vol. I, Book II,
Part XI, Chapters IV-V; MILMAN, Latin Christianity, Vols. II and III,
Book V, Chapters II-VII and IX.
POOLS, Illustrations ttf Mtdiaval Tkntg&t, Chapters I and II, furnish
an admirable account of certain especially enlightened thinkers and
reformers of the ninth century.
The Disruption of CharUmagne s Empire 169
LAMPRECHT, Deutsche Geschichte* Vol. II, Book V, Chapter III. C,
RICHTER, Annalen der deutschen Geschichtt, Vol. II, Carolingian f
Period, Part II (see below, p. 262). ****?'
SlMSON, Jahrbucher des Frankischen Retches unter Ludvng dim Frvm-
men, 1874-1876 (see below, pp. 261 s$.).
LAVISSE, Histoire de France, Vol. II, Part I
EBERT, Allgemeine Geschithte der Literatur des Mittelalttrx, Vol. II,
Book V.
Three lives of Louis the Pious by contemporaries of his have come The source*,
down to us (in the Monuments ; Gesckicktschreiber* Vol. XIX ; GuizoT,
Collection, Vol. Ill), but more remarkable than any of these is :
NITHARD, Four Books of History ; dealing with the civil wars (840-
843) following the death of Louis the Pious. The author is noteworthy
for his grasp of his subject and clear presentation. He is the first lay-
man among the historical writers of the Middle Ages. {Octavo edition
of the Monument*; Gesfhichttchreiber^ Vol. XX; Guizor, Collect***,
Vol. III.)
The Annals of Fulda, coming down to 901. A continuation for the
East Prankish kingdom of the Annals of Lorsck or Royal Annals* men-
tioned above, p. 1 48. Einhard is supposed by some to be the writer who
brought the work down to 838 ; it was then continued to 863 by Radoif,
the confessor of Louis the German. See extract given above, pp. 1 55
sqq. (Octavo edition of the Monumenta ; Gfschichtschreiber, Vol. XXIII.)
The Annals of St. Bertin (741-882). The continuation for the West
Frankish kingdom of the Royal Annals, — the latter part written as
the events occurred. Hinckmar, the famous archbishop of Rheims,
carried on the work for a time. One of the very best sources for the
period. (Octavo edition of the Monumen (a ; Gfttkuktstkrefttr* Vol.
XXIV; Guizor, Collection, Vol. IV.)
The Annals of St. Vaast (874-900). Excellent for the end oC the
century. See extracts given above, pp. 163 jyy . (M***mr*ta ; Gtstkickt
tckrei&er, Vol. XXIV.)
The Annals vf Xanten, usefal for the period 831-873. A contempo-
rary record by various hands, probably drawn up in the archbishopric
of Cologne. See extracts given above, pp. 158 Jff. (Afonrnmtnto ;
Gesckifktsckrt&er, Vol. XXIII.)
Chronicle of REGINO OF PR# M to the year 906. The writer was a
well-educated and intelligent churchman ; his style is simple and his
attempt to preface the history of his own time by a history of the world
is one of the very earliest examples of the mediaeval "chronicle," which
now begins to take the place of the less pretentious annals. See above,
I/O Readings in European ffisto?y
pp. 147 sq. His work was much used by succeeding writers. (Octavo
edition of the Afonumenta ; G£schichtschreibery Vol. XXVII.)
HINCMAR OF RHEIMS, £>e Ordine Palatii. An explanation of the
organization and functions of government as understood by one of the
most active public men of the time. (Edited, with French translation,
by PROU, Biblxothtyuf de r&olc des kautts etudes, Vol. LVIII, 1885;
also by KRAUSE, in Fontcs juris Germanic* antiqui in usnm sckolarum^
1894.)
For the literature relating to the papacy and the canon law, see close
of Chapter XII, pp. 264 jy
CHAPTER IX
FEUDALISM
I. THE OLDER INSTITUTION^ WHICH SERVE TO EXPLAIN
FEUDALISM
The blank forms (formula) used in drawing up legal
contracts are a great aid to the student of history, for
they do not apply to a single case only, but indicate the
habits of the time. Some examples of the formulae illus-
trating the arrangements which underlay feudalism are
here given.1
A. — Grants of Immunity from the Visits of the King's Officials
We believe that it increases the great strength of our 72. F«rwla
realm, if with benevolent deliberation we concede opportune 5!Jj!!£L*fL
benefits to certain churches, — or to certain other specified « bishop.
parties, — and under God's protection write them down to
endure permanently. Therefore, may your Zeal know that
we have seen fit upon petition to grant such a benefit, for
our eternal reward, to that apostolic man, Lord , bishop
of the city of ; that in the vills belonging to the church of
that lord, which he is seen to have at the present time, either
by our gift or that of any one else, or which in the future
godly piety shall wish to add to the possessions of that holy
place, no public judge shall at any time presume to enter,
for the hearing of causes or for the exaction of payments,
but the prelate himself, or his successors in God's name
1 1 have been greatly aided In the preparation of this chapter by
Professor Cheyney*s " Documents Illustrative of Feudalism." Transla-
tions an* Rtprint** Vol. IV, No. 3.
171
172 Readings in European History
shall be able to rule over these possessions as enjoying
complete immunity.
We decree, therefore, that neither you, nor your subordi-
nates, nor your successors, nor any public judicial power
shall presume at any time to enter upon the vills of the same
church anywhere in our kingdom, either those granted by
royal bounty, or by that of private persons, or those which
shall in future be granted; either for the purpose of settling
disputes, or to exact fines for any cause, or to obtain lodg-
ing, entertainment, or sureties. But whatever the treasury
might expect from fines or otherwise, either from freemen,
serfs, or others within the fields or boundaries of the afore-
said church, or dwelling upon its lands — this revenue we
surrender, for our future welfare, in order that it may be
applied to the expenses of the same church by the hand of
those ruling it, forever.
And what we, in the name of God and for the remedy of
our soul and that of our children after us have granted from
full devotion, let not the royal sublimity itself, nor the reck-
less cupidity of any of the magistrates be tempted to violate.
And in order that the present decree may, by the aid of
God, remain inviolate now and hereafter, we have ordained
that this be certified by the subscription of our hand.
73. FtcBolA Therefore, may your Greatness (or Perseverance) know
«Tft*4nhpritk that We ^aVe Seen ^ t0 conce<*e kv our rea<ty will to
, an illustrious man, the vill named , situated
in the district of , completely, with its whole proper
boundary, as it has been possessed by ., or by
our treasury, or is possessed at this present time. Where-
fore, by this our present command, we have decreed forever
that the person aforesaid should have the above-mentioned
vill, in its entirety, with the lands, houses, buildings, villeins,
slaves, vineyards, woods, fields, meadows, pastures, waters or
watercourses, gristmills, additions, appurtenances, including
any class of men who are subjected to our treasury who
dwell there; in entire immunity, and without the entrance
of any one of the judges for the purpose of exacting fines
Feudalism 173
for any kind of case. He shall have, hold, and possess it in
proprietary right and without expecting the entrance of any
of our judges ; and may with our good will leave it to his
posterity, by the aid of God, or to whom he will; by our per-
mission he shall hereafter be free to do with it what he will.
And in order that this concession may be observed the more
strictly, we have determined that it should be corroborated
below with our own hand.
B. — The Bcnefidum
I, , in the name of God. I have settled in my mind 74.
that I ought, for the good of my soul, to make a gift of
something from my possessions, which I have therefore
done. And this is what I now hand over, in the district
named , in the place named , all those possessions of
mine which my father left me there at his death, and which,
as against the claims of my brothers, or as against those of
my co-heirs, legitimately fell to me in the division ; together
with those possessions which I was able afterward to add to
them. I grant these possessions in their entirety: that is to
say, the courtyard, the buildings, slaves, houses, lands culti-
vated and uncultivated, meadows, woods, waters, mills, etc.
These, as I have before said, with all the things adjacent
or appurtenant to them, I hand over to the church, which
was built in honor of St. , or to the monastery which is
called , where Abbot is acknowledged to rule regu-
larly over God's flock; on these conditions, viz.: that so long
as life remains in rny body I shall receive from you the pos-
sessions above described as a benefice for usufruct, and the
due payment I will make to you and your successors each
year, that is the sum of . And my son shall have the same
possessions for the days of his life only, and shall make the
above-named payment; and if my children should survive roe,
they shall have the same possessions during the days of their
life and shall make the same payment; and if God shall give
me a son from a legitimate wife, he shall have the same posses-
sions for the days of his life only, after the death of whom
Readings in European History
The fend
gran back
by the
chwchor
the same possessions with all their improvements shall return
to your part to he held forever. Should it accordingly be
my fate to beget sons from a legitimate marriage, these shall
hold the same possessions after my death, making the above-
named payment, during the time of their lives.1 If not, how-
ever, these same possessions shall, after my death, without
tergiversation of any kind, by right of your authority, revert
to you, to be retained forever.
If any one, however, — which I do not believe will ever
occur, — if I myself or any other person shall wish to impeach
the validity of this grant, in opposition to the truth, may his
deceit in no way succeed. For his bold attempt let him pay
to the aforesaid monastery double the amount which his dis-
ordered rapacity has been prevented from abstracting ; and,
moreover, let him be liable to the royal authority for a pay-
ment of gold equal to ; moreover, let the present charter
remain inviolate with all that it contains, with the witnesses
below.
Done at , publicly, those who are noted below being
present, together with the remaining innumerable multitude
of people.
In the name of God, I, Abbot , with our commis-
sioned brethren. Since it is not unknown how you, ,
by the suggestion of divine exhortation, did grant to the
monastery , to the church which is known to be con-
structed in honor of St. , where we, by God's author-
ity, exercise our pastoral care, all your possessions which you
appeared to have in the district named, in the vill named,
which your father on his death bequeathed to you there,
or which by your own labor you were able to gain there, or
which as against your brother or against , a co-heir, a
just division gave you, with courtyard and buildings, gar-
dens and orchards, with various slaves, and such and such
houses, meadows, woods, lands cultivated and uncultivated,
and with adl the dependencies and appurtenances belonging
1 Probably a choice was supposed to be made among these several
almost identical provisions in regard to the rights of children.
Feudalism 175
to itt which it would be extremely long to enumerate, in all
their completeness.
But afterwards, at your request, it has seemed proper to
us to cede to you the same possessions to be held for usu-
fruct ; and you will not neglect to pay henceforth annually
the due censum, to wit, . And if God should give you
a son by your legal wife, he shall have the same posses-
sions for the days of his life only, and shall not presume to
neglect the above-named payment ; and similarly your sons
which you are seen to have at present shall do for the days
of their life ; after the death of whom ail the possessions
above named shall revert to us and our successors perpetu-
ally. Moreover, if no sons shall have been begotten by you,
immediately after your death, without any troublesome con-
tention, the property shall revert to the rulers or guardians
of the above-named church forever.
Nor may any one, either ourselves or our successors, suc-
ceed in a rash attempt to nullify these arrangements, but
just as present circumstances call for the pncaria in ques-
tion, so may the agreement endure unchanged which we, with
the consent of our brothers, have decided to corroborate.
Done at , in the presence of and of others,
whom it is needless to enumerate. Seal of the said abbot
who has ordered this precaria to be made.
C. — Commendation
To that magnificent Lord , I, . Since it is known 75. A POT*
familiarly to all how little I have whence to feed and clothe
myself, I have therefore petitioned your Piety, and your
good will has permitted me to hand myself over or com-
mend myself to your guardianship, which I have thereupon
done ; that is to say, in this way, that you should aid and
succor me as well with food as with clothing, according as
I shall be able to serve you and deserve it.
And so long as I shall live I ought to provide service and
honor to you, suitably to my free condition ; and I shall not
during my lifetime have the ability to withdraw from your
176
Readings in European History
76. Formal
acceptance
of a follower
by his lord
in the
ceutury.
power or guardianship, but must remain during the days of
my life under your power or defense. Wherefore it is proper
that if either of us shall wish to withdraw himself from these
agreements, he shall pay shillings to his companion,
and this agreement shall remain unbroken.
Wherefore it is fitting that they should make or confirm
between themselves two letters drawn up in the same form
on this matter ; which they have thus done.
It is right that those who offer to us unbroken fidelity
should be protected by our aid. And since , a faith-
ful one of ours, by the favor of God, coming here in our
palace with his arms, has seen fit tcTswear trust and fidelity
to us in our hand, therefore we herewith decree and com-
mand that for the future , above mentioned, be
reckoned among the number of the antrustions [i.e. fol-
lowers]. And if any one perchance should presume to kill
him, let him know that he will be judged guilty of his weregild
of six hundred shillings.
ctegeit
ttaftrf.
II. THE GRANTING OF FIEFS
77. Bow cee To all who shall sec the present letters •, the Official of Auxerre,
wfe» «*B6d greeting in the Lord :
t«. tett it Let all know, that standing in our presence, William de la
For£t, knight, and Agnes, his wife, asserting firmly that they
hold and possess in free allod the property noted below;
namely: the arpent of vines, situated in the vineyard of
Chablis, in the place which is called the Close, between the
vines of William Berner, on the one side, and the vines of
the late Pariot, on the other. . . . [The charter continues
to describe some twenty pieces of vineyard, meadow, and
arable land, certain houses, and rents in wine and grain, the
property being situated apparently in six different villages,]
Also their houses situated at Chablis which formerly be-
looged to the late Peter Venator, knight ; likewise three
measures of wine annually due to the aforesaid William and
bis wife, as is stated, in tfce priory of Dyem, — in short, all
Feudalism 177
the above-mentioned property which the said Agnes is said
to hold directly and hereditarily, together with all other things
which they possessed and held in free allod, as they claim,
and still hold and possess within the boundaries of Chablis,
of Chichiac, of Milli, of Ponche, of Bena, and of Chapelle, —
in short, the direct and hereditary holdings of the same Agnes
wherever they may be within the same boundaries, and what-
soever, by their common consent and will, after previous
deliberation, they have placed altogether in the fee of the
church of St. Martin of Tours, and for the future have wished
to hold and possess firmly in fee from the said church.
They promise on their fealty personally offered that they
hold and will hold for the future, from the said church in
fee, the things aforesaid and enumerated above, with all other
things which they hold and possess within the said bounda-
ries, wherever and whatsoever they may be ; and in future,
by reason of the same property, will provide feudal service
to the same church as they ought to provide it, just as others
holding in fee are accustomed to hold and are bound to give
or provide. . . .
Given A.D. 1267, Wednesday after the Ascension of the
Lord.
I, Thiebault, count palatine of Troyes, make known to
those present and to come, that I have given in fee to
Jocelyn d'Avalon and his heirs the manor which is called
Gillencourt, which is of the castellany of La Ferte' sur
Aube; and whatever the same Jocelyn shall be able to
acquire in the same manor I have granted to him and bis
heirs in augmentation of that fief. I have granted, moreover,
to him that in no free manor of mine will I retain men who
are of this gift. The same Jocelyn, moreover, on account
of this has become my liegeman, saving, however, his alle-
giance to Gerard d'Arcy, and to the lord duke of Burgundy
and to Peter, count of Auxerre,
Done at Chouaude, by my own witness, in the year of
the Incarnation of our Lord 1200, in the month of January.
Given by the hand of Walter, my chancellor.
178
Readings in European History
79. Record
of a grant
made by
Abbot Faii-
ttesto
Robert, a
knight.
80. The
cooatof
Ciampagae
gnats a
ftrftotie
Beanrais
81. Poos of
Maet-Saiat-
Jwrabe-
naarftbe
owatessorf
Champagne
feyaccept-
Aef.
Abbot Faritius also granted to Robert, son of William
Mauduit, the land of four hides in Weston which his father
had held from the former's predecessor, to be held as a fief.
And he should do this service for it, to wit : that whenever
the church of Abingdon should perform its knight's service
he should do the service of half a knight for the same church ;
that is to say, in castle ward, in military service beyond and
on this side the sea, in giving money in proportion to the
knights on the capture of the king, and in the rest of the
services which the other knights of the church perform. He
also did homage to the same abbot This land previously
did the service of three weeks yearly only.
In the name of the holy and undivided Trinity, Amen.
I, Louis, by the grace of God king of the French, make
known to all present as well as to come, that at Mante, in
our presence, Count Henry of' Champagne conceded the fief
of Savigny to Bartholomew, bishop of Beauvais, and his
successors. And for that fief the said bishop has made
promise and engagement for one knight, and justice and
service to Count Henry; and he has also agreed that the
bishops who shall come after him will do likewise. In order
that this may be understood and known to posterity, we have
caused the present charter to be corroborated by our seal.
Done at Mante, in the year of the Incarnate Word 1167;
present in our palace those whose names and seals are ap-
pended : seal of Count Thiebault, our steward ; sqal of Guy,
the butler; seal of Matthew, the chamberlain ; seal of Ralph,
the constable. Given by the hand of Hugh, the chancellor.
I, Pens of Mont-Saint-Jean, make known to all, both pres-
ent and future, that since I have long been the man of my
beloved Lady Blanche, countess of Champagne, for twenty
pounds assigned to the fair at Bar, and since later both the
countess and my dear lord have added other twenty pounds
assigned to the same fair and gave me three hundred pounds
in cash, — I swore by the saints that I would in good faith
aid them and their heirs with my people and fortifications.
Feudalism 1 79
If necessary I will fight especially against Erard of Brienne
and Philippa his wife, and against Adelaide, queen of Cyprus,
and her heirs, and against all who would aid them ; except
that should the said countess or count or their people be
against Milo of Noyers, my sister's husband, in his castle of
Noyers or elsewhere in his lands, neither I nor my people
shall be held to go thither. If, however, the said Milo or
his people set upon the countess or the count or their
people, we shall be held to defend them and their lands with
all our might.
It is also to be known that my heir who shall hold Charnia-
cum shall also have the fief above mentioned of forty pounds.
That all this shall be held valid, I corroborate what has
here been written with the impression of my seal. Done in
the year of grace 1219, in the month of June.
We, Regnault de Fauquemont, knight, lord of Bournes 82.
and of Sitter, make known to all by these presents, that we
have become liegeman of the king of France, our lord> and
to him have made faith and homage because of one thousand
livres of Tours of income which he has given to us during our
life, to be drawn from his treasury at Paris. And we have (136*)
promised to him and do promise by these presents to serve
him loyally and well in his wars and otherwise against all
men who may live and die, in the form and manner in which
a good and loyal subject ought to serve his sovereign lord.
In testimony of which we have put our seal to these present
letters. Given at Paris, the i5th day of June, the year 1380.
III. CEREMONY OF DOING HOMAGE ANB SWEARING FEALTY
Through the whole remaining part of the day those who as. Hw tfce
had been previously enfeoffed by the most pious Count
Charles did homage to the [new] count, taking up now again
their fiefs and offices and whatever they had before right-
fully and legitimately obtained. On Thursday, the seventh
of April, homages were again made to the count, being com-
pleted in the following order of faith and security.
180 Readings in European History
First they did their homage thus. The count asked the
vassal if he were willing to become completely his man, and
the other replied, *'I am willing"; and with hands clasped,
placed between the hands of the count, they were bound to-
gether by a kiss. Secondly, he who had done homage gave
his fealty to the representative of the count in these words,
" I promise on my faith that I will in future be faithful to
Count William, and will observe my homage to him com-
pletely against all persons, in good faith and without deceit."
And, thirdly, he took his oath to this upon the relics of the
saints. Afterward the count, with a little rod which he held
in his hand, gave investitures to all who by this agreement
had given their security and accompanying oath.
84. Tbe In the name of the Lord, I, Bernard Atton, viscount of
Carcassonne, in the presence of my sons, Roger and Tren-
cavel, and of Peter Roger of Barbazan, and William Hugo,
toffee " and Raymond Mantellini, and Peter de Vitry, nobles, and
J|*!*** of many other honorable men, who had come to the monas-
tf Gntase tery of St. Mary of Grasse in honor of the festival of the
august St. Mary. Since Lord Leo, abbot of the said monas-
tery, asked me, in the presence of all those above mentioned,
to acknowledge to him the fealty and homage for the castles,
manors, and places which the patrons, my ancestors, held
from him and his predecessors and from the said monastery
as a iief, and which I ought to hold as they held, I have made
to the lord abbot Leo acknowledgment and done homage
as I ought to do.
Therefore, let all present and to come know that I, the said
Bernard Atton, lord and viscount of Carcassonne, acknowl-
edge verily to thee, my Lord Leo, by the grace of God abbot
of St. Mary of Grasse, and to thy successors, that I hold and
ought to hold as a fief, in Carcassonne, the following : that
is to say, the castles of Confoles, of L^ocque, of Capendes
(which is otherwise known as St. Martin of Sussagues); and
die manors of Mairac, of Albars, and of Musso ; also, in the
valley of Aquitaine, Rieux, Traverina, H^rault, Archas, Ser-
vians, Villatritoes, Tansiraus, Piresler, and Cornelles,
Feudalism 181
Moreover, I acknowledge that I hold from thee and from
the said monastery, as a fief, the castle of Termes in Nar-
bonne ; and in Minerve, the castle of Ventaion, and the
manors of Cassanolles, and of Ferral and Aiohars ; and in
Le Roges, the little village of Longville ; for each and all
of which I render homage and fealty with hands and mouth
to thee, my said Lord Abbot Leo and to thy successors; and
I swear upon these four gospels of God that I will always
be a faithful vassal to thee and to thy successors and to St.
Mary of Grasse in all things in which a vassal is required to
be faithful to his lord ; and I will defend thee, my lord, and
all thy successors, and the said monastery, and the monks
present and to come, and the castles and manors and all
your men and. their possessions against all malefactors and
invaders, of my own free will and at my own cost, and so
shall my successors do after me ; and I will give to thee
power over all the castles and manors above described, in
peace and in war, whenever they shall be claimed by thee or
by thy successors.
Moreover, I acknowledge that, as a recognition of the
above fiefs, I and my successors ought to come to the said
monastery at our own expense, as often as a new abbot
shall have been appointed, and there do homage and return
to him the power over all the fiefs described above. And
when the abbot shall mount his horse, I and my heirs, vis-
counts of Carcassonne, and our successors ought to hold
the stirrup for the honor of the dominion of St. Mary of
Grasse; and to him and all who come with him, to as many
as two hundred beasts, we should make the abbot's purvey-
ance in the borough of St. Michael of Carcassonne, the first
time he enters Carcassonne, with the best fish and meat, and
with eggs and cheese, honorably, according to his will, and
pay the expense of shoeing the horses, and for straw and
fodder as the season shall require.
And if I or my sons or their successors do not observe
towards thee or thy successors each and all the conditions
declared above, and should come against these things, we
desire that all the aforesaid fiefs should by that very fact be
182
Readings in European History
The abbot
acknowl-
edges that
homage
has been
rendered.
85.
Itelty
handed over to thee and to the said monastery of St Mary
of Grasse and to thy successors.
I, therefore, the aforesaid Lord Leo, by the grace of God
abbot of St. Mary of Grasse, receive the homage and fealty
for all fiefs of castles and manors and places which are
described above, in the way and with the agreements and
understandings written above; and likewise I concede to
thee and thy heirs and their successors, the viscounts of
Carcassonne, all the castles and manors and places afore-
said, as a fief, along with this present charter. . . . And I
promise by the religion of my order to thee and thy heirs
and successors, viscounts of Carcassonne, that I will be a
good and faithful lord concerning all those things described
above. . . .
Made in the year of the Incarnation of the Lord mo,
in the reign of Louis [VI]. Seal of Bernard Atton, viscount
of Carcassonne, seal of Raymond Mantellini, seal of Peter
Roger of Barbazan, seal of Roger, son of the said viscount
of Carcassonne, seal of Peter de Vitry, seal of Trencavel,
son of the said viscount of Carcassonne, seal of William
Hugo, seal of Lord Abbot Leo, who has accepted this
acknowledgment of the homage of the said viscount.
And I, the monk John, have written this charter at the
command of the said lord Bernard Atton, viscount of Car-
cassonne, and of his sons, on the day and year given above,
in the presence and witness of all those named above.
If any one should hold from a lord in fee, he ought to
seek his lord within forty days, and if he does not do it
within forty days, the lord may and ought to seize his fief
for default of homage, and the things which should be found
there he should seize without return, and yet the vassal would
be obliged to pay to his lord the redemption.
When any one wishes to enter into the fealty of a lord he
ought to seek him, as we have said above, and should say as
follows: u Sir, I request you, as my lord, to put me in your
fealty and in your homage for such and such a thing situated
in your fiei, which I hare obtained." And he ought to say
Feudalism 183
from what man, and this one ought to be present and in
the fealty of the lord ; and he ought to explain whether it is
by purchase, or by escheat, or by inheritance ; and with his
hands joined, to speak as follows: *kSir, I become your
man and promise to you fealty for the future as my lord
towards all men who may live or die, rendering to you such
service as the fief requires, paying to you your relief, as you
are the lord." And he ought to say whether for guardian-
ship, or as an escheat, or as an inheritance, or as a purchase.
The lord should immediately reply to him, "And I receive
you and take you as my man, and give you this kiss as a
sign of faith, saving my right and that of others,*1 according
to the usage of the various districts.
And the lord may take the revenues and the products of
the year, if the relief is not paid to him, and also money
rents. But no one makes money payments for a guardian-
ship, or for a dowry, or for a partition, or for a report of
the extent of the fief, according to the usages of various
districts ; except in the one case where the one who holds in
guardianship ought to give security to the parties that when
the child shall come of age, the one who has the guardian-
ship will do it at his own expense and at his cost and will
guarantee the socage tenants for any payments. This in the
case of a fief, but in villanage there is no guardianship.
Fulbert, bishop by the grace of God^ to Gunther* Viscount 86. Hwaa
Hubert, Roger, JBucard, Hugo the son of Hugo, Ottred^
Hamelin, Hugo the son of Herbrand, and the wife of Guis-
mand, and to all others who hold benefices of the church of
St. Mary at Chartres by the gift of Bishop Reginald:
I summon you and conjure you in the name of God and
St. Mary and in our own name, that ye come to us before
next Easter and do your service to us or render a just
account of your benefices, If you shall not do this, I will
excommunicate you for your disobedience ; and I will forbid
you to hear the divine office, to receive the communion while
you live, and to have (Christian) burial when you die. Yea,
verily, I will anathematize the castle of Vindocinium and
1 84
Readings in European History
the lands thereof, and the divine office shall not be celebrated
there nor the dead buried. And afterwards I will give away
to one man, or to many, the benefices which ye hold, and
will negotiate no further with you in regard to them. May
God change your hearts, my children!
87. Bishop
Folbertof
Chartres
explains in
a celebrated
latter the
duties of
vassal and
lord (1020),
IV. MUTUAL DUTIES OF VASSAL AND LORD
To William, most glorious duke of the Aquitanians^ Bishop
Fulbert, the favor of his prayers :
Asked to write something concerning the form of fealty,
I have noted briefly for you, on the authority of the books,
the things which follow. He who swears fealty to his lord
ought always to have these six things in memory: what is
harmless, safe, honorable, useful, easy, practicable. Harm-
!ess, that is to say, that he should not injure his lord in his
body; safe, that he should not injure him by betraying his
secrets or the defenses upon which he relies for safety;
honorable^ that he should not injure him in his justice or
in other matters that pertain to his honor; useful, that he
should not injure him in his possessions; easy and practicable^
that that good which his lord is able to do easily he make
not difficult, nor that which is practicable he make not
'impossible to him.
That the faithful vassal should avoid these injuries is
certainly proper, but not for this alone does he deserve his
holding ; for it is not sufficient to abstain from evil, unless
what is good is done also. It remains, therefore, that in the
same six things mentioned above he should faithfully coun-
sel and aid his lord, if he wishes to be looked upon as
worthy of his benefice and to be safe concerning the fealty
which he has sworn.
The Lord aiso ought to act toward his faithful vassal recip-
rocally in all these things. And if he does not do this, he will
be justly considered guilty of bad faith, just as the former,
if be should be detected in avoiding or consenting to the
avoidance of his duties,, would be perfidious and perjured.
Feudalism 185
I would have written to you at greater length, if I had
not been occupied with many other things, including the
rebuilding of our city and church, which was lately entirely
consumed in a terrible fire : from which loss, though we
could not for a while be diverted, yet by the hope of God's
comfort and of yours we breathe again.
V. FEUDAL MILITARY SERVICE
In the year 1272 the bishop of Paris came to Tours at 88.Lwt«f
the citation of the lord king and presented himself in the
king's house on the second Sunday after Easter, before
Ferrario of Verneuil, knight, marshal of France, saying that Froce t»
he had come at the citation of the lord king prepared to
fulfill his duty; who replied to him that he should come
again, or send, at the first hour of the next day, because in
the meanwhile he could not speak or respond to him, since
Gregory of St. Martin of Tours was absent, on account of
his weakness, and because, moreover, he was. expecting new
instructions from the king.
On the next day, and on Tuesday, the aforesaid bishop
presented himself before the said marshal, saying that he
had come ready for the service of the king with three
knights, whose names were John of Marcey, John of Jul-
liaco, and Adam of Blois. He said that if he was held to
send more, he was ready to do what he ought; and if he
had furnished more than he owed, that this should not bind
either him or the church of Paris for the future.
The bishop of Troyes appeared for his see, saying that he
owed two knights, whose names were Ralph and Droce of
Pre*aux.
The bishop of Noyon was represented by Theobald of
Boesseria, a knight, who acknowledged that the said bishop
owed five knights and sent three knights beyond what be
owed. The names of the knights are as follows: AosoW of
Rancorolis, Nevelon of Rancordis, his brother, etc. . . .
They went forth to the service of the king.
1 86 Readings in European History
The bishop of Bayeux was represented by Thomas of
Semilly, his procurator, who acknowledged that the said
bishop owed ten knights for the service of the king in the
army. These he sent, namely, John of Bellengreville, John
of Caenchy, Richard of Rovancestre, William of Surrain,
and others. . . .
John of Rouvray, a knight, lord of Yneto, appeared for
himself, confessing that he owed, by reason of his holding
of Rouvray, one knight, whom he brought with him, namely,
John of Cairn,
Fulco of Bauquancayo, a knight, appeared for the abbot
of St. Ebrulf, and went forth for the said abbot, as he should,
and was held to do.
The archdeacon of Cheuteville did not appear, but sent
one knight,, namely, Peter of Maucomble.
Reginaldus Trihan, a knight, appeared and went forth for
himself.
. . . John of Rouvray, a knight, appeared for himself, say-
ing that he owed one knight for his fief of Corbon and its ap-
purtenances. He offered for himself John of Meier, a knight.
What service he owed on his wife's part he did not know.
Robert Bertran, a squire, appeared and said that he owed
the lord king two knights and a half.
. . . The abbot St. Columba at Sens appeared in person,
and said he had never known his monastery to do military
service by furnishing knights. The service was rendered in
money, namely, eight score pounds for the army and the sum
of seventeen Parisian pounds.
Hugh de Conflent, knight, marshal of Champagne, ap-
peared for the king of Navarre, and brought with him sixty
knights, to do the service owed to the king.
Stepharms Mener and Adam Allutarius appeared for the
city of Vi!leneuve-le-Roi, near Sens* and said they owed no
military service to the king, unless they chose to render
it oat of sheer courtesy. And they would do the bidding of
the lord king only on condition that they go only as far from
YiHeoeuve as they can return thither in one day, during
the sunlight or the daylight.
Feudalism 187
The representative chosen by the abbot of Ferrieres
appeared in person, and said that he owed no military serv-
ice with horses and arms, but only the sum of seventeen
pounds Parisian and his followers six score pounds, namely,
sixty pounds for Ferrieres and sixty for Beausse. . . .
VI. FAILURE OF FEUDALISM TO SECURE ORDER. THE
TRUCE OF GOD
[In the form which feudalism had reached at the Nor- 39.
man Conquest,] it may be described as a complete organiza-
tion of society through the medium of land tenure, in which
from the king down to the lowest landowner all are bound
together by obligation of service and defense: the lord to
protect his vassal, the vassal to do service to his lord ; the
•defense and service being based on and regulated by the
nature and extent of the land held by the one of the other.
In those states which have reached the territorial stage of
development, the rights of defense and service are supple-
mented by the right of jurisdiction. The lord judges as well
as defends his vassal ; the vassal does suit as well as service
to his lord. In states in which feudal government has reached
its utmost growth, the political, financial, judicial, every branch
of public administration is regulated by the same conditions.
The central authority is a mere shadow of a name.
The general failure of feudalism to secure peace and
order, indeed its tendency directly to promote disorder,
is illustrated by many of the passages from the chron-
icles found in the following chapters (see, especially,
Chapter X). The. provisions of the Truce of God are
eloquent of existing conditions.
Inasmuch as io our own times the Church, through its 90. The
members, has been extraordinarily afflicted by tribulations
and difficulties, so that tranquillity and peace were wholly
1 Tka& document has been preserved only in this form, in vhich it was
communicated by the archbishop of Cologne to the bishop of Minister.
1 88 Readings in European History
despaired of, we have endeavored with God's help to come
to its aid, in the midst of its sufferings and perils. And by
the advice of our faithful subjects we have at length pro-
vided this remedy, so that we might to some extent reestab-
lish, on certain days at least, the peace which, because of
our sins, we could not make enduring. Accordingly we have
enacted and set forth the following:
Having called together those under us to a legally sum-
moned council, which was held at Cologne, the chief city
of our province, in the church of St. Peter, in the io83d
year of our Lord's Incarnation, in the sixth indiction, on the
twelfth day before the Kalends of May, after arranging other
business, we have caused to be read in public what we pro-
posed to do in this matter. After this had been fully dis-
cussed by all, both clergy and people with God's aid reached
an agreement, and we set forth in what manner and during
what parts of the year the peace should be observed, namely :
That from the first day of the Advent of our Lord through
Epiphany, and from the beginning of Septuagesirna to the
eighth day after Pentecost and through that whole day, and
throughout the year on every Sunday, Friday, and Saturday,
and on the fast days of the four seasons, and on the eve
and the day of all the apostles, and on all days canonically
set apart — or which shall in future be set apart — for fasts
or feasts, this decree of peace shall be observed; so that
both those who travel and those who remain at home may
enjoy security and the most entire peace, so that no one
may commit murder, arson, robbery, or assault, no one may
injure another with a sword, club, or any kind of weapon.
Let no one, however irritated by wrong, presume to carry
arms, shield, sword, or lance, or any kind of armor, from the
Advent of our Lord to the eighth day after Epiphany, and
from Septuagesima to the eighth day after Pentecost. On
the remaining days, indeed, namely, on Sundays, Fridays,
apostles' days, and the vigils of the apostles, and on every
day "set aside, or to be set aside, for fasts or feasts, arms
may be carried, but oa this condition, that no injury shall
be done in any way to any one.
Feudalism 1 89
If it shall be necessary for any one, during the period of
the peace, — i.e. from the Advent of our Lord to the eighth
day after Epiphany, and from Septuagesima to the eighth
day after Pentecost, — to go from one bishopric into another
in which the peace is not observed, he may bear arms, but
on the condition that he shall not injure any one, except in
self-defense if he is attacked ; and when he returns into our
diocese he shall immediately lay aside his arms. If it shall
happen that any castle is besieged during the days which
are included within the peace, the besiegers shall cease
from attack unless they are set upon by the besieged and
compelled to beat the latter back.
And in order that this statute of peace should not be
violated by any one rashly or with impunity, a penalty was
fixed by the common consent of all, namely : If a free man
or noble violates it, i.e. commits homicide, or wounds any one,
or is at fault in any manner whatever, he shall be expelled
from his lands, without any indulgence on account of the
payment of money or the intercession of friends, and his
heirs shall take all his property. If he holds a fief, the lord
to whom it belongs shall receive it again. Moreover, if it
appear that his heirs after his expulsion have furnished him
any support or aid, and if they are convicted of it, the estate
shall be taken from them and revert to the king. But if
they wish to clear themselves of tbe charge against them,
they shall take oath, with twelve who are equally free or
equally noble.
If a slave kills a man, he shall be beheaded ; if be wounds
a man, he shall lose a hand ; if he does an injury in any
other way with his fist or a club, or^by striking with a stone,
he shall be shorn and flogged. If, however, he is accused
and wishes to prove his innocence, he shall clear himself by
the ordeal of cold water, but he must himself be put into the
water and no one else in his place. If, however, fearing the
sentence decreed against him, he flees, he shall be under a
perpetual excommunication; and if he is known to be in any
place, letters shall be sent thither, in which it shall be
announced to all that he is excommunicate, and that it is
190 Readings in European History
unlawful for any one to associate with him. In the case of
boys who have not yet completed their twelfth year, the
hand ought not to be cut off; but only in the case of those
who are twelve years or more of age. Nevertheless, if boys
fight, they shall be whipped and prevented from fighting.
It is not an infringement of the peace if any one orders
has delinquent slave, pupil, or any one in any way under his
charge, to be chastised with rods or sticks. It is also an
exception to this constitution of peace if the, lord-king pub-
licly orders an expedition to attack the e'ffemies of the king-
dom, or is pleased to hold a council to judge the enemies
of justice. The peace is not violated if, during the times
specified, a duke, or other counts, magistrates, or their sub-
stitutes, hold courts and inflict punishment legally on thieves,
robbers, and other criminals.
The statute of this noble peace is especially enacted for
the safety of those engaged in feuds ; but after the end of
the peace they are not to dare to rob and plunder in the
villages and houses, since the laws and penalties enacted
before the institution of the peace are still legally valid to
restrain them from crime, and, moreover, because robbers
and highwaymen are excluded from this divine peace, and
indeed from any peace.
If any one attempt to oppose this pious institution and
is unwilling to promise peace to God with the others, or to
observe it, no priest In our diocese shall presume to say a
mass for him, or shall take any care for his salvation ; if he ,
is sick, no Christian shall dare to visit him ; on his deathbed
he shall not receive the eucharist, unless he repents. The
supreme authority of the peace pledged to God and generally
extolled by all will be so great that it will be observed not
only in our times, but forever among our posterity, because
if any one shall presume to infringe or violate it, either now
or ages hence, until the end of the world, he is irrevocably
excommunicated by us.
The responsibility for carrying out the above-mentioned
penalties against the violators of the peace rests no more
with the counts, local judges, or officials than with the whole
Feudalism \ 9 1
people in general. They are to be especially careful not
to show friendship or hatred, nor to do anything contrary to
justice in punishing, nor to conceal crimes, which may be
hidden, but to bring them to light. No one is to receive
money for the release of those taken in fault, or to attempt
to aid the guilty by any favor of any kind, because whoever
does this incurs the intolerable damnation of his soul ; and
all the faithful ought to remember that this peace has not
been promised to men, but to God, and therefore must be
observed so much the more rigidly and firmly. Wherefore we
exhort all in Christ to guard inviolably this necessary con-
tract of peace, and if any one hereafter presumes to violate
it, let him be damned by the ban of irrevocable excommuni-
cation and by the anathema of eternal perdition. . . .
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Origins of Feudalism : ADAMS, r/xv/u****, pp. 194-21 1 ; EMK*TOM, A. #*pr-
Introduction* Chapter XV, pp. 236-255.
Feudal Institutions : EHEKTON, J/*<A«rzu/ Euraff, Chapter XIV,
pp. 477-508; ADAMS, Civilization^ pp. 21 1-226; French \»titn, pp. 63-
72; B&MONT and MONOD, pp. 246-257; MASSQN, Mtdurral Framte,
pp. 3-13; MUNRO, Chapter V, pp. 40-50.
Life of the Feudal Nobles: MCNRO, Chapter XIII, pp. 735-147;
B&MONT and MONOD, pp. 257-267.
There is no complete and satisfactory treatment in English of the B. AM*
origin and development of feudalism on the continent. Older accounts,
like those of Hallam and Guixot, are based, in some instances, upon '**™^
theories since proved to be erroneous, and are therefore to be avoided.
A description of feudal institutions in France, brief hut reliable and
scientific as far as it goes, nnay be found in SKIGNO»OS, The Feudal
Rigimt* translated by Dow. For a thorough and authoritative analysis
of English feudalism, see POLLOCK and MAITLAHD, History «f English
Lam kcfort tkf Time »f EdwarJ /, 2 vols^ especially Book II, M Doctrine
of English Law," Chapters I and II.
Suggestive ideas of life in a feudal society may be gathered from the
great romances of the eleventh and twelfth centuries, which, though in
cases ascribed by their aataoxs to the time oC Charlemagne, in
192 Readings in European History
reality depict far more nearly the manners of the age in which they were
composed and recited. Two excellent illustrations are Steele's trans-
lations of the adventures of Renaud of Montauban and Huon of
Bordeaux. See History of Western Europe, pp. 254 sqq.
€. Materials LUCHAIRE, Manuel dfs institutions frarifazses, Period des Capetiens
for advanced directs,, 1892. Part II of this volume (pp. 147-289), " Les institutions
study. feodales/* with its abundant footnotes and references, is perhaps the
best guide for those wishing to make a careful study of feudal insti-
tutions.
BRUNNER, Grundziige der deutschen Rechtsgeschichte^ 1901, contains
a brief summary of the feudal system as it appears to this distinguished
expert in the field. There the reader will find plenty of references to
Brenner's own valuable monographs and to the contributions of other
German scholars.
The histories of law by ESMEIN, SCHRODER, and VIOLLET, referred
to above, p. 57, are heartily to be recommended for their chapters on
feudalism.
ASH LEY, Survey sy Historical and Economic, 1 900. A series ofjsviews-
and essays dealing with recent discussions in regard -tc^landholding in
the Middle Ages.
Du CANGE, Glossarium (see above, p. 12) contains elaborate explana-
tions of feudal terms and usages, with many examples drawn from the
documents.
LAURIERE, Gtossairedu droit fran^ais (Niort, 1882). A compendious
dictionary of technical legal terms.
Tte sources. The records which have been preserved of actual feudal contracts
and arrangements constitute our chief source of information in regard
to the system which gave rise to them. Such records were kept in the
archives of the raters and feudal lords and by the churches and monas-
teries. A number of collections of these documents have been printed,
especially in France. A few examples only are added here; further
references win be found in Luchaire's Manuel mentioned above.
Livre dei vassaux du comti de Champagne et de Brie, edited by
LONGNON, Paris, 1869 ; also the original Latin text in Documents rela-
tifs au cemtl de Champagne et de Brie* 1 172-1361 ; Tome I, 1901 (in the
series of Documents in&dits ; see below p. 220). The register kept by the
counts of Champagne (1x72-1222), enumerating their vassals and de-
scribing what each owed in the way of feudal obligations. Longnon has
prepared an admirable introdoctian, in which he gives a clear account
of the most important information coataiaed in the register.
Feudalism \ 93
Layettes du Treser des Chartes* edited by TEUI.FT, 3 vols., Paris, 1863-
1875. A collection of the documents in the archive* of the French
kings, together with many from the archives of the great fiefs of
Toulouse, Champagne, Valois, etc. This includes much feudal material.
Of the** Cartulaires," or collections of records found in churches and
abbeys, may be mentioned :
Cartulaire de rabbayt de Saint-Fere de Ckartrfj* edited by Gr£&AKr>.
2 vols., Paris, 1840. (In the Crilectovn de documents inrdttx.} Partkna-
larly valuable for the condition of the rural population in the eleventh
and twelfth centuries.
Cartulaire dt rfghse df Jfotrt-JSame de Farts* edited by GftKAHD.
LONGNON, Atlas kistoriqut df fa France* plates XI, XII, and XIII.
furnishes far the best maps of feudal France,
The collections from which the illustrations contained in the present
chapter were drawn contain many other important examples of feudal
arrangements. See list of citations at the opening of this volume,
Nos. 70-87.
CHAPTER X
THE DEVELOPMENT OF FRANCE
I. THE ELECTION- OF HATGH CAPET
Louis V, the last of the direct descendants from Char-
lemagne* died in 98 7.* Many of the great feudal lords
assembled to attend his funeral ; before they dispersed
they held a meeting, at which Duke Hugh (Capet) pre-
sided, to consider the general situation. The archbishop
of Rheims, Adalbero, urgently recornmerfdeci that the all-
important matter of choosing a king should be postponed
until all the great barons could be brought together.
He moved that all those present should pledge them-
selves by an oath to the "great duke " (Hugh) that they
-would take no steps in the matter until the proposed
meeting should be held. This plan was adopted.
Charles of Lorraine, the uncle of the late king, was,
however, unwilling to wait for the decision of the barons,
and attempted to induce Adalbero to secure the throne
for him. The archbishop put him off on the ground that
his companions and supporters were evil men, and that
in any case nothing could be done without the consent
of the great lords.
Meanwhile the nobles of Gaul -who had taken the oath
came together at the appointed time at Senlis; when they
had all taken their places in the assembly, the duke, having
made a sign to the archbishop of Rheims, the latter expressed
himself as follows : " King Louis, of divine memory, left no
1 See f/istory ef Westm* E»tr*pe, pp. 1 20 s$q.
The Development of France
children ; we must therefore take counsel as to the choice of
a successor, in order that the country shall not come to ruin
through neglect and the lack of a pilot. Our deliberations
on this subject were recently postponed, by common con-
sent, in order that each one might here voice the senti-
ments with which God might inspire him, and that from all
these individual opinions a general and collective decision
might be reached.
" Now that we are once more assembled together, let us
endeavor, in all prudence and rectitude, not to sacrifice
reason and truth to our personal likes or dislikes. We know
that Charles has his partisans, who claim that the throne
belongs to him by right of birth. Regarding the question
"from this point of view, we reply that the throne cannot be
acquired by hereditary right. Nor should one be placed upon
it who is not distinguished alike by nobility of body and
wisdom of mind, and by his good faith and magnanimity.
We see in the annals of history rulers of illustrious origin
deposed on account of their un worth in ess, and replaced by
incumbents of equal, or even of inferior, birth.
"And what is there to recommend Charles of Lorraine?
He is feeble and without honor, faith, or character; he has
not blushed to become the servitor of a foreign king [the
emperor], nor to take to wife a girl of only knightly rank. How
could the great duke bear that a woman belonging to the
lowest rank "of his vassals should be queen and rule over
him ? How could he give precedence to a woman, when his
equals and even his superiors in birth bend the knee before
him and place their hands beneath his feet? If you con-
sider this matter carefully, you will see that Charles' fall
has been brought about through his own fault rather than
that of others.
" Make a choice, therefore, that shall insure the welfare of
the state instead of being its ruin. If you wish ill to your
1 Richer, a monk of Rheims, who was living at the time, gives the
only good accounts we possess of the revolution which put the Capetians
OD the throne of France, See below, p. 220.
91. The
mgeette
choice *
Haghfc-
•tnrfof
Ckaxteacf
<:
ffetorJ)
196 Readings in European History
country, choose Charles; if you wish to see it prosperous,
make Hugh, the glorious duke, king. Do not let yourselves
be misled by your sympathy for Charles, nor blinded to the
common good by hatred of the duke. For if you blame the
good, how can you praise the bad ? If you praise the bad,
how despise the good ? Remember the words of the Scrip-
ture : * Woe unto them that call evil good, and good evil ;
that put darkness for light, and light for darkness.' Choose
the duke, therefore ; he is the most illustrious among us all
by reason of his exploits, his nobility, and his military fol-
lowing. Not only the state, but every individual interest,
will find in him a protector. His great-heartedness will
render him a father to you all. Who has ever fled to him for
aid and been disappointed? Who that has been left in
the lurch by his friends has he ever failed to restore to his
rights?"
This discourse was received with universal applause, and
by unanimous consent the duke was raised to the throne.
He was crowned at Noyon on the first of June, by the arch-
bishop and the other bishops, as king of the Gauls, the
Bretons, the Danes [Normans?], the Aquitanians, the Goths,
the Spaniards, and the Gascons. Surrounded by the nobles
of the kingdom, he issued decrees and made laws according
to royal custom, judging and disposing of all matters with
success,
II. KING ROBERT AND HIS UNRULY VASSALS
93. Ki*g King Robert, to whom the kingdom of the Franks then
fell, was frequently subjected to the outrages of certain of
his insolent subjects, especially of those whom Hugh, his
i«3x),aaa father, and Hugh, his grandfather, or he himself, had, in
spite of their base origin, raised from a humble condition to
&e highest dignities. At their head stood Eudes, the son of
Thibaut of Chartres, known as the Trickster, who, with a great
anmber of other less dangerous lords, seemed to revolt with
1 See below, p. 220.
The Development of Frame 197
the more pride the more clear their duty was to show them-
selves humble and submissive. Among these was Eudes II
£count of Blois and of Chartres], son of the Eudes just men-
tioned, who outdid all others in power and perfidy. Now
the count of Troyes and of Meauac, son of Heribert, and the
king's cousin, having left no children, Eudes took possession,
in spite of the king's opposition, of these vast domains, which
ought in justice to have become part of the patrimony of King
Robert. This same Eudes became involved in long contests
and foreign wars with Foulques of Anjou. Both of them
were purled up with pride, and consequently were rarely in
a pacific frame of mind.
William, stepson of Duke Henry and son of Adelbert,
duke of the Lombards, was also for a time in revolt against
the king. Among his partisans was his son-in-law, Landri,
count of Nevers, and Brunon, his brother-in-law, the bishop
of Langres. William's wife, Brunon's sister, had borne him
SODS and daughters* The oldest of the daughters had mar-
ried Landri, the others were married to William of Poitou
and William of Aries. One of his sons, Renauld, married
Adelaide, daughter of Richard of Normandy.
This William was a stranger in France, for while still a
child he had been carried off to the country of the Lombards :
but, thanks to the sagacity of a monk, he had been restored
to his mother, who was in Burgundy. In spite of his sojourn
abroad, he was able, by his wealth and the number of his
soldiers, to vie with the most powerful lords of the region.
He encountered, it is true, a sharp resistance from Hugh of
Lambert, count of ChSIonsrSur-Saone. This Lambert was a
very remarkable man. Among other notable actions of his
life he built in the county of Autun, in honor of St. Mary
and St. John the Baptist, the monastery called Faray, where
be was later to be honorably buried. Hugh was at the
same time bishop of Auxerre, for the king had left him
the administration of the county of his father of whom he
was the only male offspring. Consequently he viewed all of
King Robert's enemies as his own and faithfully maintained
his fidelity to the king.
198
Readings in European History
King
Robert's
cue i»
regard to
the selection
of bishops.
Robert took for wife Constance, a relative of this lord,
whose soul was as constant as her name, and who well
deserved the crown which she received. Her father was
William, first duke of Aquitaine. She bore Robert four
sons and two daughters. Now it happened that a certain
Hugh, surnamed Beauvais, endeavored for some time to stir
up hate and discord between the king and his wife. He
even succeeded in rendering the queen hateful to Robert,
in the hope that the dissension might turn to his profit.
He also succeeded in inducing the king to grant him the
title of Count of the Palace. One day, as the king was
hunting in the forest accompanied by Count Hugh, who
always followed him closely, twelve valiant knights in the
hire of the queen's uncle, Foulques of Anjou, killed Hugh
under the king's eyes. King Robert was for some time
greatly saddened by this event. Nevertheless he reconciled
himself with the queen, as he should.
This prince was a wise servant of God. He always
favored the humble and hated the arrogant. When an
episcopal chair became vacant in his kingdom through the
death of the bishop, he always exercised the greatest care
that it should be given to a successor who would prove a
useful person to the Church, however low might be his
origin, and not to a nobleman accustomed to the disorders
of the world. In this way he often aroused the strong
opposition of the great of the realm, who despised the
lowly and would have chosen men as insolent as themselves.
III. How Lours THE FAT (1108-1137) BEGAN, WITH
ABBOT SUGER'S AID, TO GET THE UPPER HAND OF HIS
VASSALS
The chief adviser of Louis was Suger, abbot of the
great monastery of St. Denis, near Paris, who not only
greatly aided the king in his task of strengthening the
royal power, but wrote a life of him which is one of the
most important of the French historical sources.
The Development of France
199
The young hero, Prince Louis,1 gay, gracious, and so
friendly to all that he passed with some for a person of no
force, had hardly come to man's estate when he proved him-
self an illustrious and courageous defender of his father's
realm. He provided for the needs of the Church, and strove
to secure peace for those who pray, for those who work, and
for the poor. And no one had done this for a long time.
Now it came to pass at this time that certain disputes
arose between Adam, the venerable abbot of St. Denis, and
a nobleman, Burchard, lord of Montmorency [his vassal],
concerning certain customs. The controversy waxed so hot
and reached such extremes of irritation that all ties of
homage were broken between vassal and lord, and the two
disputants betook themselves to arms, war, and fire.
When the affair came to the ears of Lord Louis he was
sorely vexed. He delayed not, but ordered the aforesaid
Burchard, duly summoned, to appear before his father in
the castle of Poissy for judgment. Burchard lost his cause,
but refused to submit to the judgment. He was not taken
prisoner, for that is not the custom of the French, but hav-
ing withdrawn to his estates, he straightway learned what
manner of injury and calamity the king's majesty can inflict
on his disobedient subjects. For this famous youth [Prince
Louis] carried arms thither against him and his criminal
allies, Matthew, count of Beaumont, and Dreux of Mouchy-
le-chitel, vigorous and warlike men. He laid waste the land
of Burchard with fire, famine, and the sword ; and overthrew
all the defenses and buildings, except the castle itself, and
razed them to the ground. When his enemies undertook to
defend themselves in the castle he besieged them with the
French and the Flemish troops of his uncle Robert, as well
as with his own. By these and other means he brought the
humiliated Burchard to repentance, bent him to his will
How
Prince Lcmia
put an end
to a quarrel
between his
vassals, tfce
abbot of
St Dews
and the loud
uf Moot
morency.
1 The earlier chapters of Sugar's Life *f Leuis relate to the period
before he actually became king. His incompetent father* Philip, appears
to have left much of the hard work of government to his energetk son
and heir.
2OO
Readings in European History
How Prince
Louis aided
a vassal
against an
oppressor.
and pleasure, and satisfactorily adjusted the dispute which
had given rise to the trouble.
Matthew, count of Beaumont, had long cherished hatred
against Hugh of Clermont, whose daughter he had married.
This Hugh was a noble man, but simple and easy to lead.
His son-in-law laid hold upon a castle called Luzarches
(a share in which was his by right of marriage), and took
it altogether, and left nothing undone in strengthening the
tower with arms and soldiers.
What could Hugh do but hasten to the defender of the
kingdom, throw himself at his feet, and beg him with tears
to have compassion on an old man and succor him, for
he was grievously oppressed. " I would rather, O dearest
Lord," he said, "that thou shouldst have all my land,
because I hold it of thee, than that my unnatural son-in-law
should have it If he robs me of it, I wish to die." His
sad misfortune smote the king to the heart. He gave
the old man his hand in friendly wise and promised to aid
him, and so sent him forth gladdened by hope. And his
hope was not vain. For straightway messengers went forth
from the court, who sought the count and commanded him,
by authority of Hugh's defender, to restore to Hugh the
estate of which he had been illegally despoiled ; and they
summoned him to appear at the court, upon a day appointed,
to defend his cause.
The count did not obey this summons, so the defender
made haste to execute vengeance. He gathered a great
army and went forth against the rebel. He fell upon the
castle and attacked it with arms and fire. By hard fighting
he stormed and took it ; He then placed a strong guard in
the keep, and after he had fortified it he restored it to Hugh
just as he had promised to do.
Thus the future king of France was ever busy, provid-
ing wisely for the administration of the realm, subduing
the rebellious, taking or forcing into submission the
strongholds which were centers of revolt.
The Development of France
201
For example, Guy Troussel, son of that violent man and
troubler of the kingdom, Milo of Montlhery, came back
home from an expedition to the Holy Sepulcher, weakened
by the hardships of the long journey and by many trials.
He had been moved by exceeding great fear of Corbaran,1
and had descended from the wall of Antioch and left the
army of God beleaguered within, and so he was forsaken by
all. Fearing that his only daughter might in consequence
be deprived of her heritage, he yielded to the desire and per-
suasions of Philip, the king, and of Louis, his son, who
ardently longed for his castle, and gave his daughter in
marriage to Philip, the king's younger son. . . .
When the castle of Montlhery fell in this wise into their
hands, the king and his son rejoiced as if they had plucked
a straw from their eyes or had torn down bars by which they
had been confined. And, indeed, we have heard the father
say to his son Louis, " Go, son Louis, keep that tower with
all vigilance, whose ravages have well-nigh made us grow old,
and whose wiles and criminal frauds have never let me rest
in good peace and quiet."
Indeed, its unfaithfulness made the faithful faithless, the
faithless most faithless. It brought together the treacherous
from far and near, and no ill was done in the whole king-
dom without its support. And since the territory of Paris
was commanded on the river Seine by Corbeil, midway by
Montlhe'ry, on the right by Chateaufort, there resulted such
confusion and chaos in the communications between the
men of Paris and of Orleans that neither could go to visit
the others without the consent of these faithless men, unless
they traveled with a strong guard. But the marriage of
which we have spoken tore down the barrier and made travel
easy between the two cities.
Suger well understood the duties of a monarch in that
disorderly period, and gives many illustrations of the
obstacles to be overcome before a real kingdom of France
could be created,
i I.e. Kerbogha, Emir of Antioch.
202
Readings in European History
Suger's
account of
the position
and duties
of a medi-
aeval French
king.
A king, when he takes the royal power, vows to put down
with his strong right arm insolent tyrants whensoever he
sees them vex the state with endless wars, rejoice in rapine,
oppress the poor, destroy the churches, give themselves
over to lawlessness which, and it be not checked, would
flame out into ever greater madness; for the evil spirits
who instigate them are wont cruelly to strike down those
whom they fear to lose, but give free rein to those whom
they hope to hold, while they add fuel to the flames which
are to devour their victims to all eternity.
Such an utterly abandoned man was Thomas of Marie.
While King Louis was busied with many wars, he laid
waste the territories of Laon, Rheims, and Amiens, devour-
ing like a raging wolf. He spared not the clergy — fearing
not the vengeance of the Church — nor the people for human-
ity's sake. And the devil aided him, for the success of the
foolish does ever lead them to perdition. Slaying all men,
spoiling all things, he seized two manors, exceeding rich,
from the abbey of the nuns of St. John of Laon. He forti-
fied the two exceeding strong castles, Cre'cy and Nogent,
with a marvelous wall and very high towers, as if they had
been his own ; and made them like to a den of dragons and
a cave of robbers, whence he did waste almost the whole
country with fire and pillage ; and he had no pity.
The Church of France could no longer bear this great
evil ; wherefore the clergy, who had met together in a gen-
eral synod at Beauvais, proceeded to pass sentence of con-
demnation upon the enemy of the Church's true spouse,
Jesus Christ. The venerable Cono, bishop of Praeneste
and legate of the holy Roman Church, troubled past endur-
ance by the plaints of churches, of the orphans, of the poor,
did smite this ruthless tyrant with the sword of the blessed
Peter, which is general anathema. He did also ungird the
knightly sword belt from him, though he was absent, and
by the judgment of all declared him infamous, a scoundrel,
unworthy the name of Christian.
And the king was moved by the plaints of this great coun-
cil and led an army against him right quickly. He had the
The Development of France 203
clergy, to whom he was ever humbly devoted, in his com- How the
pany, and marched straight against the castle of Crecy.
Well fortified was it; yet he took it unprepared because his
soldiers smote with an exceeding strong hand; or rather,
because the hand of the Lord fought for him. He stormed
the strongest tower as if it were the hut of a peasant, and
put to confusion the wicked men and piously destroyed
the impious. Because they had no pity upon other men,
he cut them down without mercy. None could behold the
castle tower flaming like the fires of hell and not exclaim,
"The whole universe \\i\V fight for him against these mad-
men."
After he had won this victory, the king, who was ever
swift to follow up his advantage, pushed forward toward the
other castle, called Nogent. There came to him a man who
said : " Oh, my lord king, it should be known to thy Seren-
ity that in that wicked castle dwell exceeding nicked men
who are worthy to lie in hell, and there only. Those are
they who, when thou didst issue commands to destroy the
commune of Laon, did burn with fire not only the city of
Laon, but the noble church of the Mother of God, and many
others beside. And well-nigh all the noble men of the city
suffered martyrdom because they were true to their faith
and defended their lord the bishop. And these evil men
feared not to raise their hands against thy venerable Bishop
Gaudin, the anointed of the Lord, defender of the church,
but did him most cruelly to death, and exposed his naked
body on the open road for beasts and birds of prey to feed
upon; but first they cut off his finger with the pontifical
ring. And they have agreed together, persuaded by the
wicked Thomas, to attack and hold your tower."
The king was doubly animated by these words, and he
attacked the wicked castle, broke open the abominable places
of confinement, like prisons of hell, and set free the innocent;
the guilty he punished with very heavy punishment He
alone avenged the injuries of many, Athirst for justice,
he ordained that whatsoever murderous wretches he came
upon should be fastened to a gibbet, and left as common
2O4
Readings in European Histoiy
The king
attacks a
certain
Adam in his
tower at
Amiens.
The king
brings the
unjust
Aymon to
his senses.
food for the greed of kites, crows, and vultures. And this
they deserved who had not feared to raise then: hand against
the Lord's anointed.
When he had taken these two adulterine castles and
given back to the monastery of St. John the domains that
had been seized, he returned to the city of Amiens and laid
siege to a tower of that city which was held by a certain
Adam, a cruel tyrant who was laying waste the churches
and -all the regions round about. He held the place besieged
for hard upon two years, and at last forced those who
defended it to give themselves up. When he had taken it
he destroyed it utterly, and thus brought peace to the realm.
He fulfilled most worthily the duty of a king who beareth
not the sword in vain, and he deprived the wicked Thomas
and his heirs forever of the lordship over that city.
It is known that kings have long arms; and to show that the
king's strength was not confined within the narrow bounda-
ries of certain places, a man, Alard de Guillebaut by name,
a clever man, with an oily tongue, came from the frontiers
of Bern to the king. He laid the grievance of his stepson
before his lord the king, and entreated him right humbly,
that he would summon by his royal authority a certain noble
baron, Aymon by name, surnamed Vais-Vache, lord of Bour-
bon, who refused to do him justice. Moreover he asked
that the king should restrain Aymon from despoiling, with
presumptuous audacity, his nephew, the son of his older
brother, Archambaut, and to fix according to French custom
what portion of goods each of them ought to have.
Now the king loved justice and had compassion on the
churches and the poor. And he feared lest these wars
should make wickedness flourish, and lest the poor might be
vexed and bear the punishment for the pride of others. So,
after vainly summoning Aymon, who would not trust himself
to trial and refused to obey the summons, Louis gave way
neither to pleasure nor to sloth, but marched with a great
army toward the territory*of Bourges. There he directed his
forces against Aymon's castle of Germigni, which was well
fortified, and strove to reduce it by a vigorous assault.
The Development of Frawe 205
Then did Aymon see that he could not hold out, and he
gave over hoping to save himself or his castle. He saw only
this one way to safety — that he should throw himself at the
king's feet. There he prostrated himself again and again,
while all the crowd marveled, and prayed the king to have com-
passion upon him. He gave up his castle, and, humble now
as he had once been proud, submitted himself utterly to the
king's justice. The king kept the castle and took Aymon
into France to be judged there : and right justly and piously,
by the decision and arbitration of the French, did he settle
the dispute which had arisen between the uncle and nephew.
King Louis spent freely both of money and the sweat of
his brow to relieve the sufferings and oppressions of many.
He was used to make many such expeditions throughout the
country for the relief of churches and of the poor, but we
must pass over these, as it would but weary the reader to
narrate them. . . „
Now Louis, the king of the French, by virtue of his
superior dignity, bore himself toward Henry, king of the
English and duke of the Normans, as toward a vassal. But
the king of the English, for that he had wealth in marvel-
ous abundance and a noble kingdom, was impatient of his
inferiority. So he agreed together with his nephew Theobald,
the count of the palace, and many other disaffected men of
the kingdom, to cast off Louis' overlordship and strive to
rouse the kingdom and stir up old troubles. The king of
England and Count Theobald, because Normandy and the
county of Chartres lie close together, united to attack the
king's nearest frontier. They sent Stephen, count of Mor-
tagne, brother of one and nephew of the other, with an army
to another region, in Brie, for they feared that the king might
suddenly occupy this territory while the count was absent
And the king of France did not restrain himself, nor spare
Normandy, nor Chartres, nor Brie. Stationed in the midst
of all these lands as in a circle, he laid waste now one, now
another; and he often gave battle to make known the power
of the king's majesty.
206 Readings in European History
IV. PHILIP AUGUSTUS AND HIS VASSALS
94. Philip The extracts from Suger, given above, show feudal
™,SSS? anarch>* in France at the opening of the twelfth cen-
ana extends tury, and exhibit the ideal king as a ruler who sup-
pressed disorder and protected the weak, especially the
Church, against the strong. The king as an organiser
Of the realm was a conception that could hardly exist
until the more powerful of the turbulent nobles had
been subdued. Philip Augustus (1180-1223) carried
on the work of consolidation so well begun by Louis the
Fat with Suger 's aid, and was able before the end of his
long reign to begin to play the role of a king in the fuller
sense of the word. He had, however, like the youthful
St. Louis later, to meet a general revolt at the opening
of his reign.
In the first year of the reign of Philip Augustus1 and the
fifteenth year of his age, certain quarrels arose among the
great of the kingdom. These were really a cloak for a league
which the nobles of the realm — prompted by the enemy of
the Church's peace, the devil — dared to form against their
lord, Philip Augustus. They gathered an army and began to
lay waste the king's domain.
When the most Christian king, Philip Augustus, heard of
this iniquity he waxed exceeding wroth and led against the
rebels an army — an infinite multitude. Before many days
had passed, he put them all to flight. He pursued them with
such vigor and might that, through the miraculous interven-
tion of God, he forced them all to submit to him, and com-
pelled them by his exceeding great strength to do his will in
all things.
1 The title "Augustus" was conferred on Philip by his biographer
Rigord, a monk of St. Denis, who explains in his preface that Augustus
is derived from the Latin avgeo, "to augment,7* — namely, the bounds
of the realm.
The Dere/ofuu nt *y" France 207
While the following extract from Rigord's Life of
Philip Augustus is not correct in all details, it illus-
trates the way in which the kings of France increased
their domains.
In the year of our Lord's Incarnation 1184, the fifth year
of Philip Augustus* reign and the twentieth of his age, a
dispute arose, as is not uncommon in times of change,
between Philip, most Christian king of the French, and
Philip, count of Flanders, about a certain district commonly
called Vermandois.
The king claimed that all Vermandois, with its castles,
villages, and vills, belonged by right of inheritance and suc-
cession to the kings of the French ; and he offered to prove
it all by the testimony of clergy and laity, — archbishops,
bishops, counts, viscounts, and other nobles.
The count of Flanders replied that he had held the land
in question during the lifetime of the most Christian king
Louis, of blessed memory, and had possessed it in peace,
without any dispute, during many years, and was firmly
resolved never to give it up so long as he lived. For the
count believed that, since the king was but a lad, he could
easily divert his mind from this project by promises and
flattering words. Besides, it is said that many nobles were
ready to support him : but, as the proverb says, " They are
sons of the winds, they weave cobwebs."
At length Philip Augustus followed the advice of the
princes and barons and called together all the nobles of his
lands in the beautiful castle of Karnopalis, commonly called
Compiegne. He took counsel with them, and collected a
very large army at the city which is called Amiens.
When the count of Flanders heard of the king's coming
his heart rejoiced. He collected an army to oppose Philip,
directed his forces against his lord, the king, and swore by
the strength of his arm that he could defend himself against
all men. Thus in the fifth year of his reign and the twenti-
eth of his age the king entered into that land with his army,
2oS Readings in European History
which covered the face of the earth like locusts. When the
count of Flanders saw the king's army, that it was very
great and strong, his spirit was troubled, and the hearts of
his people became as water, so that they sought safety in
flight. Then the count took counsel with his own, and sent
messengers to call to his presence Theobald, count of Blois,
chief of the king's knights and seneschal of France, and
William, archbishop of Rheims — both uncles of the king,
to whom the direction of affairs had been intrusted at this
time because they were faithful to the king.
The count of Flanders used them as intermediaries and
through them addressed the king in this wise : " Let thine
anger toward us cease, Lord. Come to us in peaceful guise,
and use our service as shall be pleasing in thy sight. The
land which thou desirest, my lord king, Vermandois, with all
the castles and vills belonging to it, I will restore to thee,
my lord king, in its entirety, freely, and without delay. But
if it shall please your royal majesty, I beg that the castle of
St. Quentin and the castle of P^ronne may be granted to me
as a kingly gift to be held so long as I live. After my death
they shall, without controversy, devolve upon thee or thy
successors, the kings of the French."
When Philip, most Christian king of the French, had
heard this message, he called together all the archbishops,
bishops, abbots, counts, viscounts, and all the barons who
had came with one accord to subdue the insolence of the
count of Flanders and to humble his pride. He took coun-
sel with them, and they answered as with one voice that
this which the count of Flanders proposed to the king
should be done. When this decision had been reached, the
count of Flanders was introduced, and before all the nobles
and the throng gathered there, he restored to Philip, the law-
ful king, the land he had so long wrongfully held ; and then
and there, after he had restored the land before them all,
he put the king in possession of it.
Further, he promised the king upon his oath to make good,
without delay, and according to the king's will, all the losses
lie had inflicted upon Baldwin, count of Hainauit, and other
The Development of France
209
94*. How
friends of the king. And thus was peace restored between
the king and the count as by a miracle, for it was con-
cluded without shedding human blood. And when all the
people heard of these things they were filled with great joy,
and praised and blessed God who saves those who put their
hope in him.
V. PHILIP AUGUSTUS AND JOHN or ENGLAND
In 1 20 1 John, king of England, came to Paris and was
received with much honor by King Philip. When he
withdrew to his own lands again, he and Philip appeared
to be upon the best terms, and the French king was
able to turn his attention to a couple of recalcitrant
counts who were "persecuting the churches of God and
despoiling them of their goods," and who refused to
obey his summons to appear at his court. But mean-
while new difficulties arose with King John. These are
explained by Rigord as follows :
The king of the French summoned John, king of England,
as his liegeman, holding from him the counties of Poitou and ^^^J^L
Anjou and the duchy of Aquitaine, to come two weeks after to Philip
Easter to Paris to give a satisfactory answer to the charges Augustas,
which Philip made against him. But since the king of Eng-
land, instead of coming in person on the day indicated, did
not even send a satisfactory reply, the king of the French,
with the advice of his princes and barons, assembled an army,
entered Normandy, and took the little fort of Boutavant, which
he destroyed. Orgueil, Mortecoer, and all the land which
Hugh of Gournay held soon fell into his power. At Gour-
nay he made Arthur [John's brother] a knight and delivered
to him the county of Brittany, which had fallen to him by
hereditary right. He even added the counties of Anjou
and of Poitou, which he had acquired by right of arms.
Lastly, he gave him the support of two hundred knights,
with a considerable sum of money. Then the king received
210
Readings in European History
conduct of
King John.
till
tries to rees-
tabfisfe peace
Ptoilipaad
Jote.
Arthur as his liegeman. The latter, with the king's permis-
sion, left him in July.
A few days later Arthur rashly advanced with a small
troop of men into the territory of the king of England, who
suddenly came upon him with a vast multitude of armed
men, defeated him, and carried him away prisoner with Hugh
le Brun, Geoffrey of Lusignan, and several other knights.
King Philip, having learned this news, immediately aban-
doned the siege of the castle of Arques and appeared with
his army before Tours, took the town, and set fire to it.
The king of England, on his side, arrived, at the head of
his troops, after the departure of the king of France and
destroyed the same city with its castle.
A few days after, the king of England took the viscount
of Limoges and carried him off with him. Although Hugh
le Brun, viscount of Thouars, Geoffrey of Lusignan, and the
viscount of Limoges were all liegemen of the king of Eng-
land, nevertheless they allied themselves with the king of
the French, both by oath and through hostages. For King
John had perfidiously carried off the wife of Hugh le Brun,
daughter of the count of Angouleme, and this outrage, added
to other grievances of the same lords of Poitou, alienated their
fidelity to King John. The following winter the two kings
discontinued their war after having guarded their fortresses,
without, however, concluding either peace or a truce. . . .
In the year of our Lord 1202, in the fortnight following
Easter, the king of the French had raised an army, entered
Aquitaine, and, with the aid of the people of Poitou and of
Brittany, had taken several fortresses. It was at this time
that the count of Alencon formed an alliance with King
Philip and put his whole land under the protection of this
prince. The king then returned to Normandy with his army,
and took possession of Conques and the island of Andelys
and of YaudreuiL
While these things were taking place in France, Pope
Innocent III sent the abbot of Caseroar to the king of the
French and the king of England with tbe view of reestab-
lishing peace. Conformably to the orders of the pope his
The Development of France 2 \ I
lord, the abbot joined to himself the abbot of Trois-Fontaines,
and with his aid made clear to the two princes the wishes
of the pope. The pope ordered them to convoke the arch-
bishops, bishops, and the other great people of the whole
kingdom, in order, while guarding their respective rights, to
make peace in the presence of the assembly and to reestab-
lish in their former estate the monasteries and nunneries, as
well as the churches, which had been destroyed in the course
of their wars. Philip received this injunction at Mantes in
the week of the Assumption of the most blessed Virgin
Mary. He immediately appealed in the presence of die
bishops, abbots, and barons of the kingdom, who submitted
the whole case to the examination of the sovereign pontiff.
The last day of the same month the king of France
assembled an army and besieged Rodepont In about a
fortnight, having raised about the place his movable wooden
towers and set up his other machines of war, be took fcbe
town. He secured as prisoners twenty knights who had
bravely defended themselves, a hundred squires, and thirty
crossbowmen.
When he had recovered his strength and that of his army pwip
he laid siege to Castle Gail lard, in the month of September
following. This was a strong fortress which King Richard
had had constructed upon a high rock which dominated
the Seine near the island of Andelys. The king of the
French and his army were delayed by the siege of this
place for five months, for they were unwilling to under-
take an assault lest much blood should be spilled and tbey
might damage the walls and the tower. They hoped to
force the besieged to surrender through huager and depri-
vation. [Later the king decided upon an attack and suc-
cessfully took the fortress by assault] . . .
In the year of our Lord 1203, Philip, king of the French, Philip
having assembled his army, entered Normandy on the zd
of May, took Falaise, a very strong castle, Domfront, and
a very rich town which the people call Caen- He also
brought under his control all the neighboring districts as far
as Mont St. Michel The Normans then came to ask for
212 Readings in European History
mercy and delivered up the towns which had been con-
fided to their protection, — Coutances, Bayeux, Lisieux, and
Avranches, with their castles and suburbs. As for Evraux
and Sdez, he already had them in his power. Of all Nor-
mandy there only remained Rouen, — a very rich town, full
of noble men, the capital of all Normandy, — and Verneuil
and Arques, strong towns well situated and well defended.
Returning from Caen, the king, having left garrisons in the
various cities and castles, laid siege to Rouen.
The Normans, seeing that they could not defend them-
selves, nor could expect any aid from the king of England,
began to think of surrender ; nevertheless they judiciously
took precautions in order to remain faithful to the king of Eng-
land. They humbly asked the king of the French to grant a
truce of thirty days, which should close at the feast of St.
John, for their own city [RouenJ and for Verneuil and Arques,
which were in league with Rouen. In this interval they might
be able to send to the king of England and ask for aid in so
pressing a danger. If he should refuse, the Normans agreed
to place their goods and persons, the city and the said castles,
in the hands of the victorious Philip, king of the French, and
to give as hostages sixty sons of the burghers of Rouen.
At the feast of St. John, the burghers, having received no
aid from the king of England, fulfilled their promise and
delivered to the king of the French their city of Rouen, a
rich town, the capital of all Normandy, with the two castles
of which we have spoken above. Three hundred and six-
teen years had elapsed since this city and all Normandy had
ceased to belong to the kings of France. The Northman
Rollo, who had come with his pagan followers, had taken
it by right of arms in the time of Charles the Simple.
VI. ST. Louis
We are particularly fortunate in possessing full and
interesting accounts of St. Louis, who was the very
ideal of a devout and sagacious mediaeval ruler. The
The Development of France 213
most famous of his biographers was the courtly Sire de
Joinville, who was brought up at the elegant and refined
court of the counts of Champagne. He was born in 1225,
and although eleven years younger than the king, he
became his friend and companion, and had excellent
opportunities to acquaint himself with the king's char-
acter and to follow the events of his reign. Joinville was
one of the first to desert Latin and write a serious his-
torical work in French.
As I have heard say, our sainted king Louis was born on 95, Smtt
the feast of St Mark the evangelist, after Easter [1214].
. . . God, in whom he put his trust, watched over him
always, from his infancy to the end, but especially in his
childhood, when he had greatest need of his care, as you
shall hear later. God saved his soul through the pious care
of his mother, who taught him to believe in God and to love
him, and kept him surrounded by devout and religious peo-
ple. Even as a child she made him attend the daily services
and listen to the sermons on feast days. He remembered
hearing his mother often say that she would rather that he
were dead than that he should commit a mortal sin.
In his youth he had sore need of God's aid, for his mother,
who came from Spain, had neither relatives nor friends in
the whole kingdom of France. And when the barons of
France saw that their king was a child and the queen mother
a foreign woman, they made the count of Boulogne their
head and treated him in all things as their lord. After the
king had been crowned there were certain barons who
demanded that the queen should give them extensive lands,
and when she would not they assembled at Corbeil. And
the sainted king has told me how he and his mother, who
were at Montlhe"ry, dared not return to Paris until their
supporters there came for them in arms. He told me, too,
that all the way from Montlhe'ry to Paris the roads were
full of men, armed and unarmed, and that they all called on
214 Readings in European History
our Lord to grant the king a long and happy life and defend
him from his enemies. And God did even so, as you shall
hear.
HOW Louis got the better of his many enemies at home, and
hfek^StT* in I248 went on a crusade directed against the sultan
fought m Of Egypt, who had gained possession of Jerusalem four
fi>pt" years before. Joinville accompanied his king and gives
many vivid accounts of the righting in Egypt
While I was on foot with my knights, and wounded, as I
have just been relating, the king came along with his own
body of troops, amidst a great shouting and noise of trum-
pets and kettledrums, and halted on the highroad. Never
have I seen knight so noble, for he stood head and shoul-
ders above all his attendants, a golden helmet on his head,
and in his hand a German sword.
As soon as he came to a halt the good knights in his fol-
lowing, whom I have already named to you, rushed pell mell
upon the Turks. And then followed a splendid feat of arms ;
none drew bow or crossbow, but it was a combat at close
quarters, with sword and battle-ax, between the Turks and
our people, all mixed up together. One of my squires, who
had escaped [from a previous encounter] with my banner
and returned to me, loaned me one of my Flemish stallions,
which I mounted and rode off side by side with the king.
[In the midst of a council of war as to the course to be
pursued] the constable, Monseigneur Imbert de Beaujeu
came to the king to tell him that his brother, the count of
Artois, was defending himself in a house at Mansourah and
needed aid. The king said, " Constable, go you ahead and
I will follow you." And I said to the constable that I would
go with him and be his knight, for which he thanked me
heartily. So we set out for Mansourah. . . .
As we came down along the river bank, between the brook
and tte river, we saw the king near the river, and that the
Turks were pushing back our troops toward the river, driving
tfeeaa on with furious strokes of battle-ax and sword. So
The Development of France 215
great was the havoc that some of our people thought to escape
by swimming across the river to the duke of Bourgoyne's
side, which, however, they were unable to do, for the horses
were weary and the day grown very hot ; so that, as we came
down, we saw the river full of lances and shields, and of
drowning men and horses who perished there.
We came presently to a little bridge or culvert over the
brook, and I said to the constable that we would better stay
and guard it, " for, if we leave it, they will rush across it to
attack the king, and if our men are assailed from both sides
at once they are likely to succumb/" So we did this. And
men said that we should all have been lost that day if it had
not been for the king's being there in person. For the sire
of Courtenay and Monseigneur Jean de Saillenay told me
how six Turks seized the king's horse by the bridle and were
going to take him prisoner, and how he, with great slashing
sword cuts, delivered himself from them unaided. And when
his men saw how the king defended himself they look heart,
and some of them gave up trying to get across the river and
came to his support. . . .
£ The constable went to seek aid, leaving JoinvHle and two
other knights to hold the bridge, which they did, in spite of
many wounds. At sunset the constable brought a com-
pany of crossbownnen, who ranged themselves in front of
us ; and when the Saracens saw them preparing to discharge
their crossbows they took to flight and left us. Then the
constable said to me, "Seneschal, this is well done; now you
must go to the king, and do not leave him until he dismounts
at his own tent/' Just as I reached the king, Monseigneur
Jean de Valery came and said, " Sire, Monseigneur de
Chatillon requests that you assign to him the rear guard."
This the king did gladly, and then we set out. As we went
along I got him to take off his helmet, and I lent him my
iron one so that he might get some air. . . „
After we had passed the river there came to him Henry
de Ronnay, marshal of the hospital, and kissed his hand,
all in armor as it was. The king asked if he could give him
any tidings of his brother, the count of Artois, and he said
2l6
Readings in European History
How
St Louis
thought
peopfc
should dress.
he could indeed, for he was sure the count of Artois was in
paradise. "But O sire," said the marshal, "be of good
comfort; for never did a king of France win greater honor
than has fallen to you. You have swum a river in order to
fight your enemies ; you have routed them and driven them
from the battlefield, have captured their tents and engines
of warfare, and to-night you shall sleep in their camp." And
the king replied that God be praised for all that he had done
for him ; but great tears fell from his eyes.
The following anecdote shows the king's charming
courtesy as well as his extreme conscientiousness.
One day in Pentecost the saintly king was at Corbeil, where
there were eighty chevaliers. After dinner the king came
down into the courtyard beneath the chapel and was talking
in the gateway with the count of Brittany, the father of the
present duke, God keep him ! Master Robert de Sorbonne 1
came seeking me and, taking me by the hem of my cloak,
led me to the king ; and all the other gentlemen followed us.
So I said to Master Robert, " Master Robert, what do you
want with me ? " and he said to me, " If the king should seat
himself here in the courtyard and you should go and sit
above him on the same bench, would you think yourself
blameworthy? " And I replied that I should. And he said,
" Then you are also blameworthy when you wear finer clothes
than the king, for you array yourself in ermine and cloth of
green, which the king never does."
" But," I said, " Master Robert, saving your grace, I am
not to blame in wearing ermine and cloth of green, for it is
the habit of dress that has come down to me from my father
and my mother. But you, on the contrary, are much to be
blamed, for your father was a villein and your mother was a
villein, and you have forsaken the dress of your father and
your mother, and wear finer camelot than the king." And I
took the skirt of his outer coat and that of the king's and
1 Tfce fooader of the college wfekh grew into the famous divinity
school at Paris.
« The Development of Fraficc 2 1 7
said to him, " Look now, if I do not speak the truth." Then
the king set himself to speak in defense of Master Robert
with all his might.
Afterward my lord the king called my lord Philip, his son,
the father of the present king, and King Thibaut,1 and, seat-
ing himself at the entrance to his oratory, he put his hand on
the ground and said to them, ** Sit here close by me so that
no one can hear us." ** O, sire/1 they said, fci we dare not
seat ourselves so close to you." Then he said to me, ** Senes-
chal, sit here/' which I did, and so dose to him that my gar-
ments touched his. Then he made them sit down after me
and said to them, "You did very wrong, you who are my
sons, not to do at once what I commanded ; see that it does
not happen again." And they said that it should not.
Then he said to me that he had summoned us in order to
confess to me that he had been wrong in defending Master
Robert against me. " But," he said, " I saw that he was so
thunderstruck that he was in sore need of my aid. How-
ever, do not mind anything I may have said in defense of
Master Robert ; for, as the seneschal told him, you should
always dress neatly and well, for your ladies will love you
the better for it, and your servants value you the more. As
the philosopher says, one should array oneself, both as to
clothing and arms, in such a manner that the men of sense
of his generation cannot cry that he dresses too well, nor the
young people that he dresses too poorly."
When it was summer King Louis went and sat him down St. LMBS
in the forest of Vincennes after mass, taking his place under
an oak tree, and making us sit down by him. Then those
who had anything to say to him might come without the oak tree.
interposition of any usher or other attendant Then he
would ask of them, " Is there any one here who has any case
to be decided?" and those who had a case would rise ; then
he would say, "All must keep silence, for we must take up
one matter after another." And then he called M. de Fon-
taines and M, Geoffrey de Villette, and said to one of them,
1 Of Navarre, the son-in-law of St. Louis.
2 1 8 Readings in European History
" Hand the brief to me"; and when he saw anything to better
in the words of those who spoke for another, he corrected
them with his own mouth.
Sometimes in summer I have seen him, in order to dispose
of his people's affairs, come into the garden in Paris dressed
in a coat of camelot, with a sleeveless garment of linsey-
woolsey, a cloak of black taffeta about his shoulders, his
hair carefully dressed, but with no headdress save a hat of
white peacock feathers. He would have carpets spread down
so that we might sit about him, and all the people who had
business to bring before him stood round about. And then
he would attend to them in the manner I have described
above in the forest of Vincennes.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
General Narratives: ADAMS, Civilization, pp. 311-321; MUNRO,
Chapters VII and XVIII, pp. 64-72 and 204-213.
Odo and Charles the Simple: BEMONT and MONOD, pp. 235-241 ;
EMERTON, Medieval Europe, pp. 405-411 ; OMAN, pp. 496-505.
Hugh Capet: ADAMS, Growth of the French Nation, pp. 54-60;
BEMONT and MONOD, pp. 241-245 and 391-393; EMERTON, pp. 413-
419; Tour, The Empire and the Papacy, pp. 66-77.
The Great Fiefs : TOUT, pp. 82-92.
Louis the Fat: ADAMS, French Nation, pp. 73-78; BEMONT and
MONOD, pp. 396-401 j MASSON, Mediaval France, pp. 47-57 ; TOUT,
pp. 274-282.
P&mp Augustus : ADAMS, French Nation, pp. 81-88; BEMONT and
MONOD, pp. 404-413; MASSON, pp. 69-88; TOUT, pp. 290-294 and
393-405.
St. Louis : ADAMS, French Nation, pp. 89-95 » BEMONT and MONOD,
pp. 413-420; MASSON, pp. 90-119; TOUT, pp. 407-427.
Philip the Fair: ADAMS, French Nation, pp. 96-103 ; LODGE, Close
of ike Middle Ages, pp. 49-62 ; MASSON, pp. 139-156.
Political Institutions under theCapetiaas : ADAMS, Civilization, pp.
52I-33I J B£MONT and MONOD, pp. 421-444 ; EMERTON, pp. 422-433.
A Stinre7 of tfae *k°le Capetian period may be obtained from KITCHIN,
History of France, Vol. I, Book III. This may be advantageously snp-
ptemented by recourse to serera! short biographies or monographs, such
The Development of France
2ig
as THOMPSON, Development of the French Monarchy under Louis fY.
le Gros; WALKER, On the Increase ef Royal Power in France under
PhUip Augustus; HUTTLLN, Philip Augustus — a very readable and
satisfactory little book; and PERRY, St. Lsuis* — a careful account
of the reign of ** the most Christian king/' with many quotations from
the sources. The fullest treatment in English of the struggle between
the king of France and the house of Anjou is found in XURGATE,
Rngland under the Angevin Kings^ 2 vols.
One source only is available in English ; it is, however, one of the
most famous historical works of the Middle Ages, — The Life of St.
/,*'»/;, by JOINVILLE, mentioned above. It maybe found in the Chron-
hlf* of the Crusades (Bohn Library).
Hitter e dt France, edited by LAVISSE, Vol. II, Part II, and Vol. Ill ; C.
Parts I and II, by LUCHAIRK and LA.NGLOIS. An admirable and very f*r*dv*nu*4
recent account of the whole period, with special chapters on its social
and economic as welt as its political aspects.
LUCHAIRE, Institutions monarckiquei 4* In Frantt JWKI lei premifrx
Capetiens (987-1 180), 1891. Clear and excellent.
CARTELLIERI, Philipp //, August* A'owgtvn Frankreuk* VoL 1, 1898.
LECOY 0R LA MARCHE, France tens St.-L#uu ei s**f Philippe If
Hardi, 1894. A study of social conditions. Illustrated.
A series of monographs upon the several reigns is appearing in the
BMiotktqut de r&ole de* hautex ftudes.
1 MB ART DE LA ToUR, Let lleitiom fyiscvpale* dans revise dt France
du IX* ait Xfff siecle, 1891. A very valuable contribution to this
important subject.
LONGNON'S A fai historique de la France LUCHAIRE'S Manuel* and
the works on the history of law mentioned above, p. 57, should also be
called into requisition.
Histoire de la langne et de la li&rahtre fra»fa*st, edited by PmriT
DE JULLEVILLE, 1896 Mfg. Vols. I and II relate to the Middle Ages. A
scholarly, interesting, and beautifully illustrated work by a number of
well-known French specialists, which serves to supplement the general
history as narrated, for example, in LAVISSB, ffistotre de France.
France has several great collections of historical material ; the most
important are the following :
RecueH des kixtoriens des Gaules et de la France, — often cited as
** Bouquet," the name of the Benedictine monk who was the first editor
of the collection in the eighteenth century, Paris, 1738-1876, 23 thick
Gnat
collections
of sources
for Preach
22O Readings in European History
folio volumes. Begun like the Histoire litttraire (see below) by the
monks of St. Maur. The more recent volumes are well edited and sup-
plied with useful indices. This series is being continued in quarto.
Collection de documents intdits sur fkistoire de France, 1835 sqq. Some
230 volumes have appeared. A vast and invaluable collection, still in
course of publication, undertaken by the French government at the in-
stigation of Guizot when minister of public instruction. Especially rich
in documents and letters. See Potthast, pp. Hv sqq. for contents,
SoctittdeFhistoirede France, Outrages publics par la, 1834^^. About
220 volumes have been issued in octavo, containing chronicles, memoirs,
letters, etc. Almost as voluminous as the preceding collection, but in
more convenient form (contents in Potthast, pp. cxl sqq.).
Collection de textes pour servir a f etude et a renseignementde Fkistoire,
Paris, 1886 sqq. An admirably edited and annotated, inexpensive col-
lection of important sources for mediaeval and modern French history.
It corresponds with the octavo edition of the Monumenta Germaniae
Historiea (see below), and should be in every college library.
GuiZOT, Collection def mbnoires relatifs & Phistoire de France, Paris,
1833-1835, 31 vols., 8vo. A fairly accurate translation into French of a
number of the most important mediaeval chronicles.
Histoire litteraire de la France, Paris, 1 733-1895, 32 vols., 4to. A very
famous and often cited work, begun by the Benedictine monks of St. Maur,
and continued by the members of the French Institute. Contains so
fail and elaborate an analysis of the literary monuments of France
down to the fourteenth century that it takes, in a way, the place of a
collection of the sources themselves.
Sauces for FLODOARD (priest of Rheims, d. 966), Annals (919-966). Written
Fnaoefrom apparently as the events occurred, accurate and rich in information
tfce ftwr to {M*n***c*ta Germaniae Historica ; GuiZOT, Collection, Vol, VI).
tecoth RICHER, monk residing at Rheims between 966 and 998. His Histo-
ce»terjr. riorum Libri IV (888-995), while rhetorical and partisan, tell us about
all we know of the revolution which put Hugh Capet on the throne.
See extract above, p. 1 95. (Octavo edition of the Monumenta ; Geschicht-
tckreikri Vol. XXXVII; French translation, published by SoriM de
Vkisttire de France.) Richer's account may be controlled by the remark-
abie letters of the famous Gerbert, his teacher and friend (edited by
HAVET in the Collection de textes).
RAOUL GLABER (i,e. Rudolf the Bald, ca. 985-^. 1046), Historiarum
IMri V* deals with his own time. A fantastic work by a fantastic man,
who especially delighted in relating catastrophes and prodigies (C&llec-
Hfn tie Uxtes ; GUIZOT, Celhctwn, Vol. VI).
The Development of France 221
The following additional sources for this period will be found in the
Collection de textts, — Oix> OF ST. MAUR, Lift of Burckard* one of the
chief vassals and councilors of Hugh Capet. AnouR DE CHAVANNES,
Chronicle coming down to 1027, and the Ckrenide ef XanUs (570-1040).
The most important and interesting source for the twelfth century is
the Historia ecclesiastica of ORDERICVS Vmus, who was born in Eng-
land in 1075, but spent tne greater part of his life in Normandy. His
so-called Historia is really a collection of four or five historical treatises,
— a short chronicle, an account of the expeditions of the Normans, a
history of France and the Christian world, 751-1141, etc. Full of per-
sonal reminiscences, vivid and sometimes humorous (published by SocUti
de rhistoire de Franc* * 5 vols. ; English translation, by FORESTER,
4 vols., Bohn Library).
SUGER, Lift of Lexis the Fat, written between 1138 and 1144. See
above, pp. 198 tff. (CeMtctiffH de UxUs ; GriZOT, CoiUctatn, Vol
VIII.)
RIGORD, Deeds of Pkiltp Augustus, completed about 1 200. See above, Historical
pp. 206 ff q . (SofiAe* di rkutor* d* Fr*mtt ; G 17 IZOT, C*U#t**n, Vol. II.) *••*• ^
Rigord, like Snger, was a member of the great monastery of St Denis. ^J
Their historical work was continued for two centuries by their fellow-
monks, who constituted themselves royal historiographers. The best
known of this group m tbe thirteenth century was William of Na&gfe
(d. fa. 1300), who compiled a chronicle and lives of St. Louis and
Philip III, which are valuable in parts, but have little of the charm of
Joinville (BOUQUET, Vol. XX).
The once highly esteemed Grandts tkromques tie la Frtnte are a
compilation in French of the contributions of the monks of St. Denis
preceded by older sources, such as the Annuls of Lvrtik and Annals <*/
EinJkerdi together with much quite unworthy material.
The most important historians of the thirteenth century are perhaps
those of England, especially Roger of Weadover aod his contimiator,
Matthew of Paris. See below, p. 244.
CHAPTER XI
96, King
Alfred's
to Ms trans-
lation of the
Ctery*.
ENGLAND IN THE MIDDLE AGES
I. KING ALFRED'S INTEREST IN LEARNING
King Alfred, in his introduction to the Pastoral Charge,
by Gregory the Great, which he translated into Anglo-
Saxon, gives a remarkable picture of the conditions of
the time.
King Alfred bids greet Bishop Waerferth with loving words
and with friendship ; and I let it be known to thee that it
has very often come into my mind what wise men there
formerly were throughout England, both of sacred and secu-
lar orders ; and what happy times there were then ; and how
the kings who .had power over the nation in those days
obeyed God and his ministers ; how they preserved peace,
morality, and order at home, and at the same time enlarged
their territory abroad ; and how they prospered both in war
and in wisdom ; and also the sacred orders, how zealous
they were both in teaching and learning, and in all the serv-
ices they owed to God; and how foreigners came to this
land in search of wisdom and instruction, the which we
should now have to get from abroad if we were to have them.
So general became the decay of learning in England that
there were very few on this side of the Humber who could
understand the rituals in English, or translate a letter from
JLatin into English ; and I believe that there were not many
beyond the Humber. There were so few, in fact, that I can-
not remember a single person south of the Thames when I
came to the throne. Thanks be to God Almighty that we
now have some teachers among us. And therefore I com-
mand thee to disengage thyself, as I believe thou art willing,
from worldly matters as often as thou art able, that thou
England in the ^fiddle Ages 223
mayest apply the wisdom which God has given thee wher-
ever thou canst. Consider what punishments would come
upon us if we neither loved wisdom ourselves nor suffered
other men to obtain it : we should love the name only of
Christian, and very few of the Christian virtues.
When I thought of all thii» I remembered also how I saw
the country before it had been all ravaged and burned ; how
the churches throughout the whole of England stood filled
with treasures and books. There was also a great multitude
of God's servants, but they had very little knowledge of the
books, for they could not understand anything of them
because they were not written in their own language. As
if they had said : " Our forefathers, who formerly held these
places, loved wisdom, and through it they obtained wealth
and bequeathed it to us. In this we can still see their
traces, but we cannot follow them, and therefore we have
lost both the wealth and the wisdom, because we would not
incline our hearts after their example/'
When I remembered all this, I wondered extremely that
the good and wise men who were formerly all over England,
and had learned perfectly all the books, did not wish to
translate them into their own language. But again I soon
answered myself and said, ** Their own desire for learning
was so great that they did not suppose that men would
ever be so careless, and that learning would so decay; and
they wished, moreover, that the wisdom in this land might
increase with our knowledge of languages." Then J remem-
bered how the law was first known in Hebrew, and when
the Greeks had learned it how they translated the whole of
it into their own language, and all other books besides. And
again the Romans, when they had learned it, translated the
whole of it, through learned interpreters, into their own lan-
guage. And also all other Christian nations translated a
part of it into their own language.
Therefore it seems better to me, if you agree, for us also
to translate some of the books which are most needful for
ail men to know into the language which we can all under-
stand ; and for you to see to it, as can easily be done if we
224 Readings in European History
have tranquillity enough, that all the free-born youth now
in England, who are rich enough to be able to devote them-
selves to it, be set to learn as long as they are not fit for
any other occupation, until that they are well able to read
English writing ; and let those afterwards be taught more in
the Latin language who are to continue learning, and be
promoted to a higher rank.
When I remembered how the knowledge of Latin had
decayed throughout England, and yet that many could read
English writing, I began, among other various and mani-
fold troubles of this kingdom, to translate into English the
book which is called in Latin PastoraHs, and in English
Shepherd's Book^ sometimes word by word, and sometimes
according to the sense, as I had learned it from Plegmund,
my archbishop, and Asser, my bishop, and Grimbold, my
mass-priest, and John, my mass-priest. And when I had
learned it, as I could best understand it and most clearly
interpret it, I translated it into English.
I will send a copy of this to every bishopric in my kingdom;
and on each copy there shall be a clasp worth fifty mancuses.
And I command, in God's name, that no man take the clasp
from the book, or the book from the minster. It is uncer-
tain how long there may be such learned bishops, as thanks
be to God there now are nearly everywhere ; therefore I
wish these copies always to remain in their places, unless
the bishop wish to take them with him, or they be lent out
anywhere, or any one wish to make a copy of them.
II. THE BATTLE OF HASTINGS : ENGLISH AND NORMANS
CT.HanU
*adW3J^a The courageous leaders mutually prepared for battle,
Settle. each according to his national custom. The English, as we
(P«» TOB- have heard, passed the night without sleep, in drinking and
1^m singing, and in the morning proceeded without delay against
the enemy. All on foot, armed with battle-axes, and cover-
ing themselves in front by the juncture of their shields, they
formed an impenetrable body which would assuredly have
England in the Middle Ages 225
secured their safety that day had not the Normans, by a
feigned flight, induced them to open their ranks, which till
that time, according to their custom, had been closely
compacted. King Harold himself, on foot, stood with his
brothers near the standard in order that, so long as all
shared equal danger, none could think of retreating. This
same standard William sent, after his victory, to the pope ;
it was sumptuously embroidered with gold and precious
stones, and represented the figure of a man fighting.
On the other hand, the Normans passed the whole night
in confessing their sins, and received the communion of the
Lord's body in the morning. Their infantry, with bows and
arrows, formed the vanguard, while their cavalry, divided
into wings, was placed in the rear. The duke, with serene
countenance, declaring aloud that God would favor his as
being the righteous side, called for his arms ; and when,
through the haste of his attendants, he bad put on his
hauberk the hind part before, he corrected the mistake with
a laugh, saying, "The power of my dukedom shall be
turned into a kingdom." Then starting the song of Roland,
in order that the warlike example of that hero might stimu-
late the soldiers, and calling on God for assistance, the
battle commenced on both sides, and was fought with great
ardor, neither side giving ground during the greater part of
the day.
Observing this, William gave a signal to his troops, that, The Nor-
feigning flight, they should withdraw from the field. By means
of this device the solid phalanx of the English opened for the
purpose of cutting down the fleeing enemy and thus brought
upon itself swift destruction; for the Normans, facing about,
attacked them, thus disordered, and compelled them to fly.
In this manner, deceived by a stratagem, they met an hon-
orable death in avenging their country; nor indeed were
they at all without their own revenge, for, by frequently
making a stand, they slaughtered their pursuers in heaps.
Getting possession of an eminence, they drove back the
Normans, who in the heat of pursuit were struggling up
the slope, into the valley beneath, where, by hurling their
226
Readings in European History
The author
discreetly
declares that
the leaders
were equally
fere.
The char-
acter and
habits of &e
E^Ssfa.
javelins and rolling down stones on them as they stood below,
the English easily destroyed them to a man. Besides, by a
short passage with which they were acquainted, they avoided
a deep ditch and trod underfoot such a multitude of their
enemies in that place that the heaps of bodies made the
hollow level with the plain. This alternating victory, first
of one side and then of the other, continued so long as
Harold lived to check the retreat ; but when he fell, his
brain pierced by an arrow, the flight of the English ceased
not until night.
In the battle both leaders distinguished themselves by
their bravery. Harold, not content with the functions of a
general and with exhorting others, eagerly assumed himself
the duties of a common soldier. He was constantly striking
down the enemy at close quarters, so that no one could
approach him with impunity, for straightway both horse and
rider would be felled by a single blow. So it was at long
range, as I have said, that the enemy's deadly arrow brought
him to his death. One of the Xorman soldiers gashed his
thigh with a sword, as he lay prostrate ; for which shameful
and cowardly action he was branded with ignominy by
William and expelled from the army.
William, too, was equally ready to encourage his soldiers
by his voice and by his presence, and to be the first to
rush forward to attack the thickest of the foe. He was
everywhere fierce and furious ; he lost three choice horses,
which were that day killed under him. The dauntless spirit
and vigor of the intrepid general, however, still held out.
Though often called back by the kind remonstrance of his
bodyguard, he still persisted until approaching night crowned
him with complete victory. And no doubt the hand of God
so protected him that the enemy should draw no blood from
his person, though they aimed so many javelins at him.
This was a fatal day to England, and melancholy havoc
was wrought in our dear country during the change of its
lords. For it had long before adopted the manners of the
Angles, which had indeed altered with the times; for in
the first years of their arrival they were barbarians in
Englami in the Middle Ages
227
their look and manner, warlike in their usages, heathens
in their rites.
After embracing the faith of Christ, by degrees and, in
process of time, in consequence of the peace which they
enjoyed, they relegated arms to a secondary place and gave
their whole attention to religion. I am not speaking of the
poor, the meanness of whose fortune often restrains them
from overstepping the bounds of justice ; I omit, too, men
of ecclesiastical rank, whom sometimes respect for their pro-
fession and sometimes the fear of shame suffers not to devi-
ate from the true path ; I speak of princes, who from the
greatness of their power might have full liberty to indulge
in pleasure. Some of these in their own country, and others
at Rome, changing their habit, obtained a heavenly king-
dom and a saintly intercourse. Many others during their
whole lives devoted themselves in outward appearance to
worldly affairs, but in order that they might exhaust their
treasures on the poor or divide them amongst monasteries.
What shall I say of the multitudes of bishops, hermits, and
abbots ? Does not the whole island blaze with such numer-
ous relics of its own people that you can scarcely pass a
village of any consequence but you hear the name of some
new saint? And of how many more has all remembrance
perished through the want of records ?
Nevertheless, the attention to literature and religion had
gradually decreased for several years before the arrival of
the Normans. The clergy, contented with a little confused
learning, could scarcely stammer out the words of the sac- before the
raments; and a person who understood grammar was an "
object of wonder and astonishment The monks mocked
the rule of their order by fine vestments and the use of
every kind of food. The nobility, given up to luxury and
wantonness, went not to church in the morning after the
manner of Christians, but merely, in a careless manner,
heard matins and masses from a hurrying priest in their
chambers, amid the blandishments of their wives. The com-
monalty, left unprotected, became a prey to the most power-
ful, who amassed fortunes, either by seizing on their property
General m-
tefiectaal
indrcfigmr
228
Readings in European History
Manners and
customs of
th* English.
Character of
the Normans,
or by selling their persons into foreign countries ; although
it is characteristic of this people to be more inclined to rev-
eling than to the accumulation of wealth. . . .
Drinking in parties was an universal practice, in which
occupation they passed entire nights as well as days. They
consumed their whole substance in mean and despicable
houses, unlike the Normans and French, \vho live frugally in
noble and splendid mansions. The vices attendant on drunk-
enness, which enervate the human mind, followed ; hence it
came about that when they engaged William, with more rash-
ness and precipitate fury than military skill, they doomed
themselves and thenr country to slavery by a single, and
that an easy, victory. For nothing is less effective than
rashness; and what begins with violence quickly ceases
or is repelled.
The English at that time wore short garments, reaching
to the mid-knee; they had their hair cropped, their beards
shaven, their arms laden with golden bracelets, their skin
adorned with tattooed designs. They were accustomed to
eat till they became surfeited, and to drink till they were
sick. These latter qualities they imparted to their con-
querors; as to the rest, they adopted their manners. I
would not, however, have these bad propensities ascribed to
the English universally; I know that many of the clergy at
that day trod the path of sanctity by a blameless life; I
know that many of the laity, of alt ranks and conditions, in
this nation were well-pleasing to God. Be injustice far from
this account; the accusation does not involve the whole,
indiscriminately; but as in peace the mercy of God often
cherishes the bad and the good together, so, equally, does
his severity sometimes include them both in captivity.
The Normans — that I may speak of them also — were
at that time, and are even nowr exceedingly particular in
their dress and delicate in their food, but not so to excess.
They are a race inured to war, and can hardly live without
it; fierce in rushing against the enemy, and, where force
fails of success, ready to use stratagem or to corrupt by
bribery. As I have said, they live in spacious houses with
England in the Middle Ages 229
economy, envy their superiors, wish to excel their equals,
and plunder their subjects, though they defend them from
others; they are faithful to their lords, though a slight offense
alienates them. They weigh treachery by its chance of
success, and change their sentiments for money. The most
hospitable, however, of all nations, they esteem strangers
worthy of equal honor with themselves; they also inter-
marry with their vassals. They revived, by their arrival, the
rule of religion which had everywhere grown lifeless in Eng-
land. You might see churches rise in every village, and
monasteries in the towns and cities, built after a style
unknown before; you might behold the country flourishing
with renovated rites; so that each wealthy man accounted
that day lost to him which he had neglected to signalize by
some munificent action.
III. RULE OF WILLIAM THE CONQUEROR
At Midwinter the king was at Gloucester with his "witan,"
and there held his court five days; and afterwards the arch-
bishop and clergy had a synod three days. There was
Maurice chosen bishop of London, and William, of Norfolk, Book t» lit
and Robert, of Cheshire. They were all the king's clerks. *?** B*
After this the king had a great council, and \ery deep speech
with his 4t witan " about this land, how it was peopled, or by
what men ; then he sent his men over all England, into every
shire, and caused to be ascertained how many hundred hides
were in the shire, or what land the king himself had, and
cattle within the land, or what dues he ought to have, in
twelve months, from the shire. Also he caused to be written
how much land his archbishops had, and his suffragan
bishops, and his abbots, and his earls; and — though I
may narrate somewhat prolixly — what or how much each
man had who was a landholder in England, in land, or in
cattle, and how much money it might be worth. So very
narrowly he caused it to be traced out, that there was not
one single hide, nor one yard of land, nor even — it is
shame to tell, though it seemed to him no shame to do —
230 Readings in European History
an ox, nor a cow, nor a swine, left that was not set down
in his writ.
William's King William, about whom we speak, was a very wise
character. man> an(j verv powerful, more dignified and strong than any
of his predecessors were. He was mild to the good men who
loved God, and beyond all measure severe to the men who
gainsaid his will. ... He was also very dignified; thrice
every year he wore his crown, as oft as he was in England.
At Easter he wore it in Winchester ; at Pentecost, in West-
minster; at Midwinter, in Gloucester. And then were with
him all the great men over all England, archbishops and
suffragan bishops, abbots and earls, thanes and knights.
So also was he a very rigid and cruel man, so that no
one durst do anything against his will. He had earls in
bonds who had acted against his will ; bishops he cast from
their bishoprics, and abbots from their abbacies, and thanes
into prison; and at last he spared not his own brother, named
Odo : he was a very rich bishop in Normandy ; at Bayeux
was his episcopal see ; and he was the foremost man besides
the king; and he had an earldom in England, and when the
king was in Normandy, then was he the most powerful in
this land : and him the king put in prison.
Among other good things is not to be forgotten the good
peace that he made in this land ; so that a man who had any
confidence in himself might go over his realm, with his bosom
full of gold, unhurt. Nor durst any man slay another man
bad he done ever so great evil to the other. He reigned
over England, and by his sagacity so thoroughly surveyed it
that there was not a hide of land within England that he
knew not who had it, or what it was worth, and afterwards
set it in his writ.
Brytland (Wales) was in his power, and therein he built
castles, and completely ruled over that race of men. In
like manner he also subjected Scotland to him by his great
strength. The land of Normandy was naturally his, and over
the country which is called Le Maine he reigned; and if he
might yet have lived two years he would, by his valor, have
won Ireland, and without any weapons.
England in the Middle Ages 231
Certainly in his time men had great hardship and very
many injuries. Castles he caused to be made, and poor
men to be greatly oppressed. The king was very rigid,
and took from his subjects many a mark of gold, and more
hundred pounds of silver, all which he took, by right and
with great unright, from his people, for little need. He had
fallen into covetousness, and altogether loved greediness.
He planted a great preserve for deer, and he laid down
laws therewith, that whosoever should slay hart or hind
should be blinded. He forbade the harts and also the
boars to be killed. As greatly did he love the tall deer as
if he were their father. He also ordained concerning the
hares that they should go free. His great men bewailed it,
and the poor men murmured thereat ; but he was so obdu-
rate that he recked not of the hatred of them ail ; but they
roust wholly follow the king's will if they would live, or
have land, or property, or even his peace. Alas that any
man should be so proud, so raise himself up, and account
himself above all men ! May the Almighty God show mercy
to his soul, and grant him forgiveness of his sins 1
IV. How THE GREAT CHARTER WAS WON
In the year of our Lord 1215, which was the seventeenth 99. The
year of the reign of King John, he held his court at Win-
chester at Christmas for one day, after which he hurried to
London, and took up his abode at the New Temple ; and at
that place the above-mentioned nobles came to him in gay
military array, and demanded the confirmation of the liberties
and laws of King Edward [the Confessor], with such other
liberties granted to them and to the kingdom and church of
England as were contained in the charter and the above-
mentioned laws of Henry the First. They also asserted that
at the time of his absolution at Winchester he had promised
to restore those laws and ancient liberties, and was bound
by his own oath to observe them. The king, hearing the
bold tone of the barons in making this demand, much feared
232 Readings in European History
an attack from them, as he saw that they were prepared for
battle ; he however made answer that their demands were a
matter of importance and difficulty, and he therefore asked
a truce till the end of Easter, that -he might, after due delib-
eration, be able to satisfy them as well as the dignity of his
crown. . . .
In Elaster week of this same year the above-mentioned
nobles assembled at Stamford with horses and arms, since
they had now induced almost all the nobility of the whole
kingdom to join them and constituted a very large army.
There were computed to be two thousand knights, besides
horse soldiers, attendants, and foot soldiers, who were vari-
ously equipped. . , . All of these were united by oath, and
were supported by the concurrence of Stephen, archbishop
of Canterbury, who was at their head. The king at this time
was awaiting the arrival of his nobles at Oxford.
On the Monday next after the octaves of Easter the said
barons assembled in the town of Brackley ; and when the
king learned of them, he sent the archbishop of Canterbury
and William Marshall, earl of Pembroke, with some other
prudent men, to them, to inquire what the laws and liberties
were which they demanded. The barons then delivered to
the messengers a paper, containing in great measure the
laws and ancient customs of the kingdom, and declared that
unless the king immediately granted them and confirmed
them under his own seal they would, by taking possession of
bis fortresses, force him to give them sufficient satisfaction
as to their before-named demands.
The archbishop with his fellow-messengers then carried
the paper to the king and read to him all the heads of the
paper, one by one. The king, when he heard the purport
of these beads, derisively said, with the greatest indignation,
M Why, amongst all these unjust demands, did not the barons
ask for my kingdom also? Their demands are vain and
visionary, and are unsupported by any plea of reason what-
ever." And at length he angrily declared, with an oath, that
he would sever grant them such liberties as would render
him their slave. . . *
England in the Middle Ages 233
King John, when he saw that he was deserted by almost
all, so that out of his regal superabundance of followers he
scarcely retained seven knights, was much alarmed lest the
barons should attack his castles and reduce them without
difficulty, as they would find no obstacle to their so doing.
So he deceitfully pretended to make pe.ice for a time with
the aforesaid barons, and sent William Marshall earl of
Pembroke, with other trustworthy messengers, to them, and
told them that, for the sake of peace and for the exaltation
and honor of the kingdom, he would willingly grant them
the laws and liberties they required ; he also sent word tu the
barons by these same messengers, to appoint a fitting day
and place to meet and carry all these matters into effect.
The king's messengers then came in all haste to London,
and without deceit did report to the barons all that had
been deceitfully imposed on them ; they, in their great joyt
appointed the isth of June for the king to meet them at a
field lying between Staines and Windsor. Accordingly, at
the time and place pre-agreed upon, the king and nobles
came to the appointed conference, and when each party had
stationed themselves apart from the other, they began a long
discussion about terms of peace and the aforesaid liberties.
... At length, after various points on both sides had been
discussed, King John, seeing that he was inferior in strength
to the barons, without raising any difficulty, granted the
underwritten laws and liberties and confirmed them by his
charter as follows :
V. PRINCIPAL PROVISIONS OF THE GREAT CHARTER
John, by the graft of Go*i King of England, Lord of Ireland,
Duke of Normandy and Aquitaine, Count of Anjou, to the
archbishops, bishops, abbots, ear 'Is \ barons, ju sticiars, foresters,
sheriffs, reeves, servants, and all bailiffs and to his faithful <**ztau
people, greeting:
Know that by the suggestion of God and for the good of
our soul and of those of all our predecessors and of our heirs,
to the honor of God and the exaltation of holy Church, and
234 Readings in European History
for the improvement of our kingdom, by the advice of our
venerable fathers, Stephen, archbishop of Canterbury, pri-
mate of all England and cardinal of the holy Roman Church,
Henry, archbishop of Dublin, William of London, Peter of
Winchester, Jocelyn of Bath and Glastonbury, Hugh of Lin-
coln, Walter of Worcester, William of Coventry, and Benedict
of Rochester, bishops; of Master Pandulf, subdeacon and
member of the household of the lord pope, of Brother
Aymeric, master of the Knights of the Temple in England ;
and of the noblemen William Marshall, earl of Pembroke,
William, earl of Salisbury, William, earl of Warren, William,
earl of Arundel, Alan of Galloway, constable of Scotland,
Warren Fitz-Gerald, Peter Fitz-Herbert, Hubert de Burgh,
steward of Poitou, Hugh de Nevil, Matthew Fitz-Herbert,
Thomas Bassett, Alan Bassett, Philip d'Albini, Robert de
Roppelay, John Marshall, John Fitz-Hugh, and others of
our faithful.
1. In the first place, we have granted to God, and by this
our present charter confirmed for us and our heirs forever,
that the English church shall be free, and shall hold its
rights entire and its liberties uninjured ; and that we will that
it should thus be observed is shown by this : that the freedom
of elections, which is considered to be most important and
especially necessary to the English church, we, of our pure
and spontaneous will, granted, and by our charter confirmed,
before the contest between us and our barons had arisen ;
and we obtained a confirmation of it by the lord pope Inno-
cent III, which we will observe, and which we will shall be
observed in good faith by our heirs forever.
We have granted, moreover, to all free men of our kingdom,
for us and our heirs forever, all the liberties written, below,
to be had and holden by themselves and their heirs from us
and our heirs.
2. If any of our earls or barons, or others holding from
us in chief by military service, shall have died, and when he
has died his heir shall be of full age and owe relief, he shall
have his inheritance by the ancient relief; that is to say,
the heir or heirs of an earl, for the whole barony of an earl,
England in the Middle Ages 235
a hundred pounds ; the heir or heirs of a baron, for a whole
barony, a hundred pounds ; the heir or heirs of a knight,
for a whole knight's fee, a hundred shillings at most ; and
who owes less, let him give less, according to the ancient
custom of fiefs. . . .
5. The custodian [of the lands of a minor], moreover, so
long as he shall have the custody of the land, must keep
up the houses, parks, warrens, fish ponds, mills, and other
things pertaining to the land, from the proceeds of the land
itself; and he must return to the heir, when he has come to
full age, all his land, furnished with plows and implements of
husbandry, according as the time of wainage requires and as
the proceeds of the land are able reasonably to sustain. . . .
7. A widow, after the death of her husband, shall have
her marriage portion and her inheritance immediately and
without obstruction. . . .
8. No widow shall be compelled to marry so long as she
prefers to live without a husband, provided she gives secu-
rity that she will not marry without our consent, if she holds
from us, or without the consent of her lord from whom she
holds, if she holds from another. . . .
12. No scutage or aid shall be imposed in our kingdom Except fe
save by the common council of our kingdom, except for the sPedfi*d
ransoming of our body, for the making of our oldest son to be imposed
a knight, and for once marrying our oldest daughter ; and without the
for these purposes it shall be only a reasonable aid ; in the
same way it shall be done concerning the aids of the city of
London.
13. And the city of London shall have all its ancient
liberties and free customs, as veil by land as by water.
Moreover we will and grant that all other cities and boroughs
and villages and ports shall have all their liberties and free
customs,
14. And for holding a common council of the kingdom
concerning the assessment of an aid otherwise than in the
three cases mentioned above, or concerning the assessment
of a scutage, we shall cause to be summoned the archbishops,
bishops, abbots, earls, and greater barons by our letters
236 Readings in European History
under seal; and, besides, we shall cause to be summoned
generally, by our sheriffs and bailiffs, all those who hold
from us in chief, for a certain day, at the end of at least
forty days, and for a certain place; and in all the letters of
that summons we will state the cause of the summons, and
when the summons has thus been given the business shall
proceed on the appointed day, on the advice of those who
shall be present, even if not all of those who were sum-
moned have come.
15. We will not grant to any one, moreover, that he shall
take an aid from his free men, except for ransoming his
body, for making his oldest son a knight, and for once marry-
ing his oldest daughter; and for these purposes only a
reasonable aid shall be taken. . . .
20. A free man shall not be fined for a small offense,
except in proportion to the gravity of the offense ; and for
a great offense he shall be fined in proportion to the magni-
tude of the offense, saving his freehold ; and a merchant in
the same way, saving his merchandise ; and the villein shall
be fined in the same way, saving his wainage, if he shall be
at our mercy ; and none of the above fines shall be imposed
except by the oaths of honest men of the neighborhood. . . .
28. No constable or other bailiff of ours shall take any
one's grain or other chattels without immediately paying
for them in money, unless he is able to obtain a postpone-
ment at the good will of the seller.
29. No constable shall require any knight to give money
in place of his ward of a castle if he is willing to furnish
that ward in his own person, or through another honest man
if he himself is not able to do it for a reasonable cause ;
and if we shall Jead or send him into the army he shall be
free from ward in proportion to the amount of time which he
has been in the army through us.
30. No sheriff or bailiff of ours, or any one else, shall take
horses or wagons of any free man, for carrying purposes,
except on the permission of that free man.
31. Neither we nor our bailiffs will take the wood of
another man for castles, or for anything else which we are
England in the MiddU Agts
237
doing, except by the permission of him to whom the wood
belongs. . . .
39. No free man shall be taken, or imprisoned, or dispos-
sessed, or outlawed, or banished, or in any way injured,
nor will we go upon him, nor send upon him, except by the
legal judgment of his peers, or by the law of the land.
40. To no one will we sell, to no one will we deny or
delay, right or justice.
41. All merchants shall be safe and secure in going out
from England and coming into England, and in remaining
and going through England, as well by land as by water, for
buying and selling, free from all evil tolls, by the ancient
and .rightful customs, except in time of war, or if they arc
of a land at war with us ; and if such are found in our land
at the beginning of war, they shall be attached without injury
to their bodies or goods, until it shall be known from us, or
from our principal justiciar, in what way the merchants of
our land are treated who shall be then found in the country
which is at war with us; and if ours are safe there, the
others shall be safe in our land. „ . .
47. All forests which have been afforested in our time
shall be disafforested immediately; and so it shall be concern-
ing river banks which in our time have been fenced in. ...
51. And immediately after the reestablishment of peace
we will remove from the kingdom all foreign-born soldiers,
crossbowmen, servants, and mercenaries who have come with
horses and arms for the injury of the realm.
52. If any one shall have been dispossessed or removed
by us, without legal judgment of his peers, from his lands,
castles, franchises, or his right, we will restore them to him
immediately; and if contention arises about this, then it
shall be done according to the judgment of the twenty-five
barons, of whom mention is made below concerning the
security of the peace. Concerning ail those things, how-
ever, from which any one has been removed, or of which he
has been deprived, without legal judgment of his peers, by
King Henry our father, or by King Richard our brother,
which we have in our hand, or which others hold, and which
No arhtrary
imprison*
ment.
Protection of
mere huts.
238 Readings in European History
it is our duty to guarantee, we shall have respite till the
usual term of crusaders; excepting those things about which
the suit has been begun or the inquisition made by our writ
before our assumption of the cross. When, however, we shall
return from our journey, or if by chance we desist from the
journey, we will immediately show full justice in regard to
them. . . .
61. Since, moreover, for the sake of God, and for the
improvement of our kingdom, and for the better quieting of
the hostility sprung up lately between us and our barons, we
have made all these concessions; wishing them to enjoy
these in a complete and firm stability forever, we make and
concede to them the security described below; that is to say,
that they shall elect twenty-five barons of the kingdom, whom-
soever they will, who ought with all their power to observe,
hold, and cause to be observed, the peace and liberties which
we have conceded to them, and by this our present charter
confirmed to them; . . .
63. ... It has been sworn, moreover, as well on our part
as on the part of the barons, that all these things spoken of
above shall be observed in good faith and without any evil
intent. Witness the above-named and many others. Given
by our hand in the meadow which is called Runnymede,
between Windsor and Staines, on the fifteenth day of June,
in the seventeenth year of our reign.
VI. WRITS OF SUMMONS TO THE MODEL PARLIAMENT
(I295)
SUMMONS TO A BISHOP
By the following writs of summons Edward I secured
a perfect representation of the three estates in an assem-
bly which should have the power of taxing: the whole
nation for the war with France ; in short, a parliament
was constituted " on the mode! of which every succeeding
assembly bearing that name was formed ° (Stubbs).
England in the Middle Ages 239
The King to thf venerable father in Christ^ Robert* by the 101
same grate Archbishop of Canterbury, Primate of all Eng-
land, greeting:
As a most just law, established by the careful providence
of sacred princes, exhorts and decrees that *hat affects all
by all should be approved, so also, very evidently, should
common danger be met by means provided in common.
You know sufficiently well, and it is now, as we believe,
divulged through all regions of the world, how the king of
France fraudulently and craftily deprives us of our land of
Gascony by withholding it unjustly from us.
Now, however, not satisfied with the before-mentioned
fraud and injustice, having gathered together for the con-
quest of our kingdom a very great fleet and an abounding
multitude of warriors, with which he has made a hostile attack
on our kingdom and the inhabitants of the same kingdom, he
now proposes to destroy the English language altogether from
the earth, if his power should correspond to the detestable
proposition of the contemplated injustice, which God forbid.
Because, therefore, darts seen beforehand do less injury,
and your interest especially, as that of the rest of the citizens
of the same realm, is concerned in this affair, we command
you, strictly enjoining you in the fidelity and love in which
you are bound to us, that on the Lord's day next after the
feast of St Martin, in the approaching winter, you be pres-
ent in person at Westminster ; citing beforehand the dean
and chapter of your church, the archdeacons and all the
clergy of your diocese, causing the same dean and arch-
deacons in their own persons, and the said chapter by one
suitable proctor, and the said clergy by two, to be present
along with you, having full and sufficient power from the
same chapter and deigy, to consider, ordain, and provide,
along with us and with the rest of the prelates and principal
men and other inhabitants of our kingdom, how the dangers
and threatened evils of this kind are to be met.
Witness the king, at Wangham, the joth of September.1
1 The other bishops and abbots received identical or similar sum-
240
Readings in European History
Summons of
a baron to
Parliament
Summons of
representa-
tives of shires
a»d towns to
SUMMONS ro A BARON
The King to his beloved and faithful relative^ Edmund ^ Earl
of Cornwall, greeting :
Because we wish to have a consultation and meeting with
you and with the rest of the principal men of our kingdom,
as to provision for remedies against the dangers which in
these days are threatening our whole kingdom, we com-
mand you, strictly enjoining you in the fidelity and love in
which you are bound to us, that on the Lord's day next
after the feast of St. Martin, in the approaching winter,
you be present in person at Westminster, for considering,
ordaining, and doing, along with us and with the prelates
and the rest of the principal men and other inhabitants of
our kingdom, as may be necessary for meeting dangers of
this kind.
Witness the king, at Canterbury, the ist of October.1
SUMMONS TO THE REPRESENTATIVES OF THE SHIRES AND TOWNS
The King to the Sheriff of Northamptonshire :
Since we intend to have a consultation and meeting with
the earls, barons, and other principal men of our kingdom
with regard to providing remedies against the dangers which
are in these days threatening the same kingdom, and on
that account have commanded them to be with us on the
Lord's day next after the feast of St. Martin, in the approach-
ing winter, at Westminster, to consider, ordain, and do as
may be necessary for the avoidance of those dangers, we
strictly require you to cause two knights from the aforesaid
county, two citizens from each city in the same county, and
two burgesses from each borough, of those who are espe-
cially discreet and capable of laboring, to be elected without
delay, and to cause them to come to us at the aforesaid time
and place.
Moreover, the said knights are to have full and sufficient
power for themselves and for the community of the aforesaid
* Similar summonses were sent to seven earls and fortyooe barms.
Englami in the Middle Ages 24 1
county, and the said citizens and burgesses for themselves,
and the communities of the aforesaid cities and boroughs
separately, then and there, for doing what shall then be
ordained according to the common council in the premises;
so that the aforesaid business shall not remain unfinished in
any way for defect of this power. And you shall have there
the names of the knights, citizens, and burgesses, together
with this writ.
Witness the king, at Canterbury, on the 3d of October,1
BIBLIOGRAPHY
General Summary : A DAMN Or'///*?//**, pp. 339-348 ; BEMONT and A.
MONOD, pp. 445*466; MUNKO, Chapters VIII and XIX, pp. 74-85
and 214-223.
The Banish Invasion* and Alfred : CHEYWIY, A Sk*rt Hi*t*y +f
England, pp. 59-68; ANDEEWS, History if England, pp, 21-33;
GARDINER, pp. 55-62; GREEN, Chapter I, sect. 5, pp. 44-53; TERRY,
A History of England to /go/, Chapter IV, pp. 57-77 ; COLBY, pp. 19-24 ;
KENDALL, Seurct Bock of Engiisk History \ pp. 17-24 ; LEE, Semrct B^k
*f English History, pp. 96-99.
The Danish Conquest and Cnut : ANDREWS pp. 53-60 ; GAKDINER*
pp* 79-85; GREEN, Chapter II, sect i, pp. 63-67 ; TERRY, pp. 106-123;
KENDALL, pp. 31-35; LEE, pp. 99-107; COLBY, pp. 24-27.
English Institutions before the Norman Conquest: CHEYNEY,
pp. 7&-S3; ANDREWS, Chapter IIIr pp. 40-52; GARDINER, pp. 29-33
and 69-77 ; GREEN, Chapter I, sect. 6, latter part, pp. &-6i ; LEE,
pp. 87-95.
The HonaoLS Qoagnest aad WOiiaM I: CHKTWET, pp. 85-115;
ANDREWS, pp. 66-61; GAEDINKJU pp. 91-114; CB.KEK, Chapter Ilf
sects. 3-5 and beginning of sect £ p|X 7»-«9; TE»mY, ppu IJD-I«J;
GEE aad HAIDY, D**mt*tt Mmjtrvtnv •/ £*giut Ckmrck ff*tt*y,
if™ jr~ jy
Heaxy H: CHEYKEY, pp. 145-170; ANDREWS, pp. 93-108; GA.R-
DIHER, Chapter X, pp. 13^-1 58; GREEN, Chapter II, sect. 5, pp. 104-
112; TERRY, pp. 211-229; KENDAJUU pp. 51-58.
Tfce Qaan^ witk i Becfcet: COLBY, pp. 56-59; KEKTAALL, pp. 59-
61 ; LEE, pp. 130-138.
summonses were sent to the sheriffs of each county.
242 Readings in European History
Henry's Judicial Reforms: ADAMS and STEPHENS, Select Documents
oj English Constitutional History, pp. 14-18; HENDERSON, Select His-
torical Documents^ pp, 16-20; LEE, pp. 117-119; Translations and
Reprints* Vol. I, No. 6, pp. 22-26.
Richard the Lion-Hearted : ANDREWS, pp. 108-112; GARDINER,
Chapter XI, pp. 159-171; GREEN, Chapter II, sect. 9, first part, pp.
112-115; TERRY, pp. 230-244 ; COLBY, pp. 68-70.
King John: CHEYNEY, pp. 174-184; ANDREWS, pp. 112-121 ; GAR-
DINER, Chapter XII, pp. I73~i85 i GREEN, Chapter II, sect. 9, end, and
Chapter III, sects. 2-3, pp. 115-116 and 122-132 ; TERRY, pp. 245-265;
ADAMS and STEPHENS, pp. 34, 35; Magna Charta, full text in ADAMS
and STEPHENS, pp. 42-52; HENDERSON, pp. 135-148; LEE, pp. 169-180;
Translations and Reprints, Vol. I, No. 6, pp. 6-17.
Henry HI: ANDREWS, pp. 123-136; GARDFNER, Chapter XII, pp.
185-208; GREEN, Chapter III, sects. 5, 7, pp. 141-14? ar»d 152-160;
TERRY, pp. 266-296; COLBY, pp. 78-83; KENDALL, pp. 81-87,
Edward I: CHEYNEY, pp. 209-216; ANDREWS, pp. 136-156; GAR-
DIHUL, pp. 208-224; GREEN, Chapter IV, sects. 1-3 and 5, first part,
pp. 161-193 and 201-207; TERRY, pp. 296-333,
A Add* GREEN, Tke Conquest of England^ 2 vols., new ed., 1899. Comes
down to 1071,
RAHSAY, Foundations of England, 2 vols., 1898.
NoftGATS, England under the Angevin Kings, 2 vols., 1887. These
cover more satisfactorily than any other works the general history of
England to the thirteenth century. They may be supplemented by the
following accounts : PLUM HER, Life and Times of Alfred the Great, 1902,
and CONYBSAJLB, Alfred in tke Chronicles, 1900 ; STUBBS, The Early
Plantagenets ; GREEN, Henry //, 1888; NORGATE, John Lackland, 1902;
RICHARDSON, Tke National Movement in tke Reign of Henry HI, 1897 ;
MEDLEY, English Constitutional History {excellent}.
TRAILL, Social England, 6 vols., 1894-1897 ; new, revised, and finely
illustrated edition, 1902 sqq. This is a sort of encyclopedia of history,
made up of special contributions by various writers upon all the various
phases of the social and intellectual life. Naturally valuable as a work
of reference rather than to be read consecutively. Vols. I and II relate
to the Middle Ages.
History */ England, edited by HUNT and POOLS. A cooperative
history ia twelve voioiaes, now in preparation, which promises to prove
England in the Middle Ages ^43
English History from Contemporary Writers, edited by YolK-
POWELL. Little volumes of interesting extracts from the sources, —
Thomas cf Cant fr bury, 1899; Crusadt of Richard /, i&Jo,; Misrult of
Henry III, 1887; Simon de Montfort, 1888.
For additional information in regard to the books for England, espe-
cially the various series which have appeared, see the admirable bibliog-
raphies in ANDREWS, History of England, especially pp, 549 sqq.
FREEMAN, History of the \orman Ccnyue tf, r 867 j^., 6 vols , — a very C. Material*
elaborate *ork but open to serious criticism ; RAMSW, The Angeim fer ********
Empire* 1903; POLLOCK and MAITLANTI, Histery of English Low ****'
through the Reign tf Edward /, z vols., 1809,— -a remarkably interest-
ing and thoroughly scholarly presentation of the subject ; MAITLAND,
Domesday Book and Beyond; ROUND, Feudal England. The above
are examples of the careful work on English institutional history which
has been carried on since the appearance of STUBBS* welt-known Cm-
stitutiwtal History.
STEPHENS and HUNT, History of the English Church, 1898 tff^
Vols. I and II (to Edward I). To be completed in seven volumes, by
various writers.
ASHLEY, English Economic History, Vol. I, Part I.
CUNNINGHAM, Growth of English Industry and C^mmerte, 2 vols^
3d ed., 1901-1903.
Other works relating to the social and economic history will be found
at the close of Chapter XVIII, pp. 429 17.
GAIRDNEE, Early Chroniclers of England. A useful introduction to Tte mrae*
the historiography of mediaeval England.
Stlttt Charters mnd Other Jl lustration* ff Emtfuh C**st*t*t*om*l Hu~
tvry from tin Earliest Timts to &* JRfign *f EJw*rd /, edited by
WILLIAM STUBBS. A very remarkable and oonv^ntewt coBectkm of
documents in die ori^nal tongvcs.
The great national coBectioB of sowns for Fngtand is Tkt Chrtxicte
and Memorials *f Greet SrimtM, London, 1858 Jff . Tbis is issued under
the direction of the Master of the Rolls, and is comnonly called MTbe
Rolls Series.** Some 230 volumes and parts have appeared. For a list
of the contents, see GROSS, Sources ami Literature +f English History to
/jgf, 1901. Fortunately some of the more important chronicles hare
been translated into English in the Bonn Library.
244 Readings in Europe** n History
GILDAS, a monk of Britain (ei/. 516-573), who lived two centuries
before Bade, has left a melancholy account of the calamities of his time,
— Liber qtterulus de taiamitate* ex c id to ft conquest u Britanniae^ quam
Angham nunt vwant. (Edited by Mommsen in the Monumenta Ger-
•maniaf Htst&nca and in StJC English Chronicles in the Bohn Library.)
BEDE, Efrffsxastual History of the English ; see above, p, 112.
ASSER, Lift of Alfred, Very interesting. New edition, edited by
Stevenson, 1904. Translation in Bonn's Six English Chronicles.
Tike Anglv-Stixon Chronicle is all important for the period to the
Norman Conquest. It is not very voluminous, and can speedily be read
through. (Rolls Series in the original and translation. Better edited,
without translation, by Plurnmer and Earle, 2 vols. (Clarendon Press) ;
also in the Bohn Library, in the volume containing Bede's history.)
OREHRXICUS VITA MS; see above, p. 221.
WILLIAM OF MALMESBITRV, 751* History of the Kings of England.
An entertaining and sagacious monk, who brought his work down
to Stephen's time, and probably died about 1150- See extract given
above, pp. 224 sqq* (Rolls Series, translated in the Bohn Library, and
by Stevenson in The Church Historians of England^ 1854.)
ROGER OF HOVEDEN, Annals of English History, bringing tne story
down to 1 20 1, and very important for the reign of Richard. (Rolls
Series and Bohn.)
The monks of St. Albans were distinguished, like the monks of
St. Denis (see above, p. 221), for their historical writings in the thir-
teenth century. Among these historians two may be mentioned : ROGER
OF WaiSDOVM, whose chronicle, 7%e Flowers of History, reviews the
history of the world, but is especially valuable for the quarter of a cen-
tury of his own time (it closes with the year x 235).
The more famous MATTHEW OF PARIS — an ardent Englishman in
spite of his name — in his so-called Greater Chronicle^ after the customary
review of the world's history, carried the work of Roger of Wendover
down to the year 1259. His history Cardinal Baronius declared to be
** a golden book, only marred by hostility to the Holy See." It is prob-
ably the most generally useful historical production of the thirteenth
century. The writings of both these monks of St- Albans are in the
Roils Series and in the Bohn Library. Another so-called Fi<nx>ers of
jf/**£*r? is a compilation reaching the year 1307, long attributed without
any particular reason to a« apparently imaginary MATTHEW OF WEST-
Knfsw and cooamonly cited under his name. (In the Rolls Series and
at tte Bdha &2*arj.)
CHAPTER XII
GERMANY AND ITALY IN THE TENTH AHD BLEVSHTH
CENTURIES
I. THE TIMES OF HENRY I AND OTTO THE GREAT
The following account of the events in Germany in 102. Ger-
the first half of the tenth century was prepared by a
monk at Treves in 960-961. He made use, for the
earlier part of his narrative, of certain meager annals,
some of which have come down to us. The sources all
agree in giving a gloomy account of invasion, pillage,
and civil war, which even wise and energetic German
kings were unable to prevent.
In the year 90 7 1 of the Incarnation the Bavarians were
defeated with great bloodshed by the Hungarians. Duke
Luitbald was killed in this battle, and his son Arnulf suc-
ceeded him in the duchy.
In the year 908 of the Incarnation the Hungarians again
crossed the borders and devastated Saxony and Thuringia.
In the year 909 of the Incarnation the Hungarians forced
their way into Alemannia,
In the year 910 of the Incarnation the Franoooians fought
on the frontier of Franconia and Bavaria with the Hungarians
and were miserably defeated or put to flight. Count Geb-
hard lost his life in the battle and left behind him two sons,
still boys, Udo and Hermann, who were later to become dis-
tinguished in Franconia.
1 Regino's CkrtnicLe (sec above, p. 169), of which the present work
is * continuation, closes with the year 906.
246
Readings in European History
Death of
Louis the
Child, who
TO followed
^ Conrad.
In the year 911 of the Incarnation King Louis, the son
of Emperor Arnulf, died, and since the royal line was now
extinct, he was succeeded by Conrad, son of that Conrad
who had been killed by Adalbert.
In the year 912 of the Incarnation the Hungarians again
devastated without opposition Franconia and Thuringia,
Archbishop Hatto [of Mayence], a very keen and able man,
died, and Heriger succeeded him. Otto, duke of Saxony,
died.
In the year 913 of the Incarnation there was a very severe
winter. The Hungarians wasted the fields of the Alemannians
and were defeated by the Bavarians and Alemannians at the
river Inn. In the same year Einhard, bishop of Speyer, was
blinded by Counts Bern hard and Conrad.
In the year 914 of the Incarnation Otbert, bishop of Stras-
burg, was killed. Bishop Salomon [of Constance] was taken
prisoner.1
In the year 915 of the Incarnation the Hungarians wasted
all Alemannia with fire and sword ; they harried all Thuringia
and Saxony and came as far as the abbey of Fulda.
In the year 917 of the Incarnation the Hungarians came
through Alemannia into Alsace and to the borders of Lor-
raine, Erchanger and Berthold were beheaded. Arnulf,
duke of Bavaria, revolted against the king.
In the year 918 of the Incarnation King Conrad celebrated
the birth of St. John in the cloister of Hersfeld.
In the year 919 of the Incarnation King Conrad died.
He was in all respects a man of insight, gentle, and a friend
of divine learning. As he perceived that the day of his death
was near, he summoned his brethren and relatives, namely
die great among the Franconians, He said to them that his
* By Srcbaager, duke of AJMMafmfe, as we learn from tbe annals of
tfce Monastery of St GalL His exeoatioo k» mentioned below.
Germany and Italy 247
end was near, and exhorted them as a father that there should
be no discord in the realm over the choice of a king to follow
him. He commanded them to choose Henry, duke of Sax-
ony, a man of energy and a strong friend of peace. More-
over since he, Conrad, had been unable to find any other
person so well fitted for the position, he sent to Henry
the scepter and crown and other decorations associated with
the kingly dignity, on condition that he should shield and
protect the realm. He himself passed from this life and was
honorably buried in the monastery of Fulda. He was worn
out during the few years of his reign by the Bavarians and
Alemannians and Saxons, for they rose against him in many
a battle; but with God's help before his death he got the
better of them.
In the year 920 of the Incarnation Duke Henry was chosen
king by agreement of the Franconians, Alemannians, Bava-
rians, Thuringians, and Saxons.1 He began his reign by
strictly enforcing the peace ; for many, even among the nobles,
had turned their attention in those days to robbery/ . . .
In the year 928 of the Incarnation Henry made a hostile
expedition into the land of the Bohemians, and won the vic-
tory over them with God's aid. At this time a son, William,
was born to Otto, the king's son. The winter was uncom-
monly cold. Ruodger, archbishop of Treves, died. Ruod-
bert succeeded him.
In the year 929 of the Incarnation Duke Gisalbert took
to wife Gerburga, the daughter of King Henry.
In the year 930 of the Incarnation Otto, the son of King
Henry, took to wife Edith, the daughter of the king of the
Angles,
1 The fact that the peoples of the several duchies were viewed as
sobtiations is clear in this and other references to them.
* In his account of the years here omitted, our chronicler tells of
Hungarian raids, and of trouble between King Charles of France and
Heary I over Lorraine, and of its ultimate cession to Henry.
248 Readings in European History
In the year 931 of the Incarnation King Henry induced
the king of the Abotrites and the king of the Danes to be-
come Christians. In the same year the king was invited to
Franconia by Eberhard and others, — Franconian counts and
bishops, — and was honored by each of them, in his house
or in his see, with banquets and gifts as befitted a king.
In theyear932 of the Incarnation the Hungarians destroyed
many towns in eastern Franconia and Alemannia with fire and
sword. They then crossed the Rhine near Worms, wasted
Gaul as far as the sea, and then returned by way of Italy.
In the year 934 of the Incarnation King Henry overcame
the Hungarians in a great battle and took many of them
prisoners. In the same year he attacked the Slavs, who are
called Bucranes, conquered them, and made them tributary.
The church of St. Maximin was blown down in a storm.
Through the king's favor the right of election was given
back to the monks; Hugo, who had been prior, was chosen
abbot, and the monks who did not live according to the rule
were driven out.1
In the year 935 of the Incarnation King Henry suffered
from a stroke.
In the year 936 of the Incarnation a number of bishops
of Thuringia held a synod at Erfurt. King Henry, who had
diligently promoted peace and steadily pursued the heathen,
reached his life's end on the ad of July, after he had won
many a brave victory and pushed out the bounds of his realm
in every direction. His son Otto was chosen his successor
by a unanimous vote of all the great of the realm.
The annals of the reign of Henry I are fragmentary
and gloomy, but we have much fuller accounts of Otto's
difficulties and bis manner of surmounting them. Among
the historians of his time Widukind, a monk of Corvei,
holds a Irigfe place.
* Time s*atznne*its relate to the writer's owa monastery at Treves.
Germany and Italy 249
When Henry [I], the father of his country and the greatest 103.
and best of kings, was dead, all the people of the Franks and **** *****
Saxons chose as their chief Otto, his son, whom his father
had wished to have them choose. They decided to hold the
general election at the palace of Aix-la-Chapelle. . . . When
they were come thither the dukes and chief counts and
soldiers came together in the portico of the basilica of the
great Charles, and put the new king on a throne built there,
and gave him their hands, promising to be faithful to him,
and pledging him their aid against their enemies. So they
made him king after their custom.
While these things were done by the dukes and the other
magistrates, the chief pontiff [of Germany, i.e. the bishop of
Mayence], with all the priests and the people, awaited below
in the basilica the coming of the new king. When he came
toward them the pontiff met him and touched the king's
right hand. Now the bishop was clad in linen and was
adorned with a stole and pallium and bore a staff in his
right hand ; and he went forward among the people and
stood at the altar. He then turned toward the people who
stood around that all might see him. 4i Behold," he said,
** I present to you Otto, chosen by God, and previously des-
ignated by Henry, lord of this realm, and now made king
by all the princes. If this choice is pleasing to you, signify
it by raising your right hands toward heaven." And all the
people raised their right hands on high, and with a mighty
voice prayed for the prosperity of their new ruler.
Then the king, clad according to the Prankish custom in
a close tunic, marched with the bishop behind an altar on
which lay the royal regalia, — the sword with the belt, the
mantle and bracelets, the staff with the scepter and diadem.
. . . Then Hildebert, bishop of Mayence, came forward to
the altar, took the sword and belt, and turning to the king
said: "Take this sword, that thou mayst cast out all the
adversaries of Christ, all barbarians and false Christians,
by the divine authority given to thee, by all the power of
the whole empire of the Franks, to the lasting peace of
Christendom.'1
250
Readings in European History
Then he took the mantle and bracelets and put them upon
him : "As the border of this mantle flows to the ground, be
thou admonished that thou shouldst glow with the zeal of
faith and that thou shouldst endure to the end to maintain
peace.1' Then he took the scepter and stafT: "By these
tokens be thou admonished that thou shouldst reprove thy
subjects with fatherly chastisement and that thou shouldst
above all things extend the hand of mercy to the ministers
of God and to widows and orphans. And may thy head
never lack the oil of compassion, that thou mayst be crowned
now and hereafter with an eternal reward."
And he was anointed with the holy oil and crowned by
the pontiffs, Hildebert an$ Wicf ried [archbishop of Cologne],
with a golden crown. When the consecration was accom-
plished according to the law, the king was led by those same
bishops to the throne, which was built between two marble
columns and was reached by a winding stairway, whence he
could see all and be seen by all.
When the divine praise had been sung and the mass sol-
emnly celebrated, the king descended to the palace. There
he drew near a marble table adorned with royal pomp, and
seated himself with the bishops and all the people ; and the
dokes ministered to him.
II. ROME AND THE PAPACY IN THE TIME OF OTTO THE
GREAT
We get an idea of the papacy in the middle of the
tenth century from the chronicle of a monk living in
the monastery of St. Andrea at the foot of Mt. Soracte,
not far from Rome. He was near the scenes of the
events he describes and wrote, according to Wattenfaach,
about 968, when Otto's Italian expeditions were fresh in
his mind. But he was ignorant; his Latin is incredibly
bad; he seems scarcely to know the difference between
France and Germany, and makes many obvious historical
Germany and Italy 25 1
blunders. Yet there is good reason to assume that he
gives us a tolerably correct general impression of the
situation in Italy and Rome as Otto found it.
Marozia, mentioned below, belonged to a powerful
Roman family, and, through her energy and ambition, had
become the leader of the so-called senatorial party in
Rome. Alberic, her son by her first husband, succeeded,
as will appear in the selections given below, to her power;
he ruled Rome, and quietly controlled the popes for more
than a score of years until his death in 954. He was in
turn followed by his son Octavian, who as a boy of six-
teen sought to combine the position which his father
had held with the papal office. Finally he decided to
call in Otto the Great to help him out of his difficulties.1
The pope having died, the lady senatress Marozia [in 931]
ordained her son John to the most sacred seat ; wherefore
he is called John XI. Rome was ruled by the power of a
woman's hand ; as we read in the words of the prophets,
" Women shall rule Jerusalem.'1
Again the Hungarians came to Rome, and appeared before The
the gate of St, John, and the Romans went forth and fought
with the people of the Hungarians. And the Hungarians trjttr r
cut down the Roman nobles so that they lay unburied by the
very doors of the church. Then the Hungarians came to
the city of Re&tina, and Joseph, the wise Lombard, went
forth from the gates with a great army of the Lombards.
He put some of die Hungarians to the sword and took many
alive. Then the Hungarians saw that the strength of their
people was growing less in every way. They returned to their
own country, and came no more to Italy for pillage. . . .
1 An excellent brief accoont of the tangled history of Italy dvring the
period in question wiD be found in Emerton, JfaUrzut/ Emrtrpt, pp. 1 15-
128 and 135-144. Corrections of Benedict's inaccuracies are given in
GvcgotDTiftS, History *f ikt City of Rime m the Middlt Ages, Vol. IV,
pp. 276 ^y.
252
Readings in European Histoiy
Marozia, mother of Alberic, prince of the Romans, sent
legates to a certain Hugo, king of the Lombards,1 asking
that he unite himself with her in marriage. And this was
done [932]. But after the marriage had been solemnized
in the Castle of St. Angelo and the king had retired with
the queen, the king had evil thoughts, — that he would tear
out the eyes of his stepson Alberic, and so bring the Roman
kingdom under his own power.
Alberic the prince learned of this plot, and he made a
covenant with the Romans. The trumpets in the churches
sounded with fearful clamor, the people rushed to arms, and
the earth echoed with outcries. The hearts of the king and the
queen quaked with fear, and the king returned to Lombardy.
The face of Alberic, prince of the Romans, shone like his
father's, and he grew in strength and power. Indeed, he was
too terrible, and his yoke grew heavy upon the Romans and
upon the holy apostolic see. The pope dared not to do
anything without the commands of Prince Alberic.2 And in
his time no hostile force entered Italy from the land of the
Lombards or from across the Alps.
Alberic had a sou, to whom he gave the name Octavian.
The Romans, according to their evil habit, took counsel how
tbey might kill Prince Alberic, and Alberic became aware of
this plan. Marinus the bishop and Benedict the bishop, with
many others, worked secretly from that time to bring Prince
Alberic to death. "But their evil plans caine to naught. The
glorious prince had sisters of senatorial rank, who plotted
secretly among themselves the death of their brother. Then
one of them abandoned the plot arid, feigning to be grieved,
in the goodness of her heart hinted to her brother how she
had chanced upon the knowledge of a plot against him.
When Alberic heard her story the bishops we named were
seized. Some of the conspirators were made executioners
of others, some were scourged, some thrust into prison, some
1 See below, p. 255*
* Alberic kept has featf-brother, John XI, who died in 936, in honor-
*fcfe confinement awl appears to kave held &e four succeeding popes m
Germany and Italy 253
put to the sword. Thus was the prince delivered from the
treason of the Romans. . . .
There was at this time [946-955] in the holy apostolic Death of
see a pope named Agapetus. Not long after the plot of AIbcrk <954>-
which we have told, the illustrious prince [AlbericJ began
to sicken. He came straightway to the church of the chief of
the apostles, and sent messengers to all the Roman nobles,
and made them come to him. They all promised faithfully
upon oath that after the death of Pope Agapetus they would
elect Octavian pope. Having arranged for his daughter's
•welfare and for his son Octavian, and having confessed to
St. Peter the apostle, Prince Alberic ended his life.
And not long afterward Pope Agapetus died. Octavian Qctam»f
was elected to the holy see and was called John XII. He ^J^^
led a life so licentious and so openly wicked that he might jot^ xii
have been a heathen. He hunted constantly, not as a pope (955)- Hfe
but like a wild man. He was given over to vain desires and
surrounded himself with a crowd of evil women. So great
was his iniquity that it cannot be told.
Now there were in the city of Rome a deacon of the holy
Roman church named John, and Azzo, a papal scribe, who
hated the pontiff. Because his life was so evil, we consulted
how we might call the Saxon kings into Italy to possess the
Roman power. John and Azzo were sturdy men, and they
were of one heart and one mind, — that it were better to do
the pontiff to death than to let him live, and that the Roman
power should be bestowed upon the Saxon king, to the end
that he might rule justly as the protector of holy Church.
They sent legates to Otto, the first Saxon king, asking him
to come and possess Italy and the Roman power.
The pope heard of this plot He seized John the deacon
and Azzo the scribe. He ordered the hand to be cut off
with which Azzo had written the letter to Otto, and had
J6hn the deacon's nose cut off.1 . . .
1 It would appear, however, from other sources that it was really
John himself who called Otto into Italy. Even Benedict says jost
below that the pope received the Saxon king honorably.
254
Readings in European History
Coronation
of Otto the
Gnat as
Otto sets np
u antipope,
Otto the king came into Italy [961] with a great multitude
of people that well-nigh filled the face of the earth like
locusts. He had with him many nations whose tongues the
people did not know. The Roman people met him, together
with the pontiff, and received him honorably. Masses were
celebrated in the church of the chief of the apostles. Otto
was extolled with high praises, and was called "August." In
this wise was the Italian kingdom, or the Roman power,
made subject to the Saxon king.
The king and the queen, whose name was Adelaide, were
crowned in the church of the chief of the apostles; and they
gave many gifts throughout the holy Roman church. Then
much trouble came upon the Italian kingdom, for it was
devastated by pestilence, famine, fire, and sword. The cattle
perished, the land became a wilderness, and the famine
ever increased.
A great conflict arose between the emperor and the pope,
— how, we do not say. John withdrew into Campania,
leaving the apostolic see for fear of the emperor. The
Romans were in great confusion, and they begged the
emperor that he would elect a certain Leo pope. This
seemed good to the emperor, and Leo was elected and
enthroned in the most holy see. . . .
The Romans, as was their ancient habit, were divided
among themselves; and John the pope was recalled from
Campania, and entered Rome with a strong army. Leo
took flight and withdrew to a distance. They say he went
across the Alps. Not long afterward the emperor returned
with the pope and a great army into Italy. John the pope
heard of the king's furious onslaughts: he left Rome and
fled to Campania. [Soon after, he died.] The Romans
elected Benedict, the subdeacon, pope, a prudent man well
versed in grammar.
The emperor heard of this schism and grew very angry.
He swore by his royal power that he would besiege the city
of Rome on all sides unless Benedict would give way to
the rightful pofpe [Leo]. Rome was surrounded by the
people of Hie Lombards, the Saxons, and the Gauls, in a
Germany and Italy 255
great circle, so that none dared to go beyond the walls. Fire
and sword caused great famine in Rome, and the hearts of
the people quailed within them because their strength was
brought to naught. There was but one voice among them
from the least to the greatest. Forced by dire need, they
took Benedict the pope and gave him into the hands of
the emperor, and said to one another : '* It is better for one
alone to die for all, that we may save all other lives from
destruction by hunger." The emperor sent the pontiff into
exile in Saxony, and Leo returned to the most sacred seat,
amid the praises of the Roman people. . . ,
Woe unto thee, Rome, oppressed and trodden under foot
by so many nations! Thou art taken captive by the Saxon
king, thy people are put to the sword, thy strength is brought
to naught Thy gold and thy silver are carried away in their
purses. The mother thou wast — a daughter thou hast be-
come. What thou hadst, thou hast lost Thou art despoiled
of thy former strength. . . *
Formerly, glorying in thy power, thou hast triumphed over
nations, hast cast the world into the dust, hast strangled
the kings of the earth. Thou hast grasped the scepter and
wielded great power. Now art thou plundered and utterly
despoiled by the Saxon king. As some wise men say, and
as it will be found written in thy histories, thou didst once
fight with foreign nations and conquer them from north to
south. Now the people of Gaul have encamped in the midst
of thee, Thou wast too beautiful.
III. LIUTPRAND AND His a BOOK or RjmuwrnoH *?
The most entertaining and at the same time one of
the most instructive historians of the tenth century is
Liutprand, an Italian contemporary of Otto the Great,
He spent his early years at Pavia, the capital of the
kingdom of Italy, and was closely associated with both
King Hugo (mentioned above) and with his successor,
256 Readings in European History
Berengar II. The latter sent him on an embassy to
Constantinople in 949, where he added a knowledge of
Greek, of which he was evidently very vain, to his al-
ready remarkable attainments in Latin literature. Five
or six years later he fell out with Berengar and fled to
the court of Otto the Great, 'whose ardent supporter
he remained thereafter. When Otto had conquered his
Italian kingdom in 962 he made the helpful Liutprand
bishop of Cremona. In 968 he undertook a mission to
Constantinople for the emperor. Here he was badly
treated, and on his way back wrote a lively account of his
experiences at the Byzantine court.1 He died about 973.
Besides his account of his embassy to Constantinople,
we have from Liutprand's pen a history of Europe relat-
ing chiefly to Italy and Germany during his own early
years, and closing abruptly in the middle of the year 950.
This is his Book of Retribution, extracts from which
are given below. Later he undertook an account of the
deeds of Otto the Great, which he never finished. This
deals almost exclusively with Otto's troubles with Pope
John XII in 963. Liutprand is our best source for the
matters of which he had personal knowledge, and few
knew more of the politics of the time. Yet even more
important than his narrative of events is the light which
he casts upon the thought and customs of his age,
especially the life at the court of the eastern emperors.2
105, l*rt- In the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost,
herewith begins the book oxrcwrofcxrcws (antapodbstas) — that
is to say, " of retribution " — for the kings and princes of a part
of Europe, which Liutprand, deacon of the church at Pavia,
1 Ttaastated by He&dersoa in the app<tBriiy to his Select Documents.
and Italy 257
has composed *v TJJ t^/AoAocrui avrov (en // fihmalosia autu\
— that is to say, *" during his wanderings/7 — and has dedi-
cated to Recemund, bishop of Elvira, in Spain.1
To the ffonoraMf Lord and Mirror of Ho tints s^ Lord JRete-
muntli Bishop t+f Elvira, Liutprand, not wing to any merit
of his twn, dtaton of the church ai JPariaj Grtttong .-
Owing to a want of confidence in my powers, I have now
for two years hesitated to fulfill your request, my dearest
father, that I should narrate the deeds of the emperors and
kings of all Europe, since I knew them not through doubt-
ful hearsay but from my own observation. I was deterred
from the undertaking by my complete want of eloquence and
by the ill will of the critics, For these arrogant fellows, who
are too lazy to read themselves and, as the learned Boethius
says, think that they wear the philosophic mantle when they
have on scarcely a rag of it, will say mockingly to me, " Our
predecessors hare written so much that there is now a dearth
of readers rather than of books." And they will quote that
verse of the comedy, *4 We shall hear nothing that others
have not said before." *
I answer all such barking curs by the observation that
just as it is with those who the more they drink the thirstier
they are, so with the learned, the more they read the more
they long for new books. One who, for example,, has become
weary of the profound works of the eloquent Cicero tnay find
recreation in such light writings as the present one. Just as
one who gazes at the sun directly, with nothing between bis
eye and it, will only be dazzled and not see it in its proper
shape, so the mind, it seems to we, which contemplates with-
out intermission the teachings of the Academy, and of the
Peripatetics and Stoics, will flag unless it finds refreshment
in the salutary laughter called forth by comedy, or in the
entertaining tales of the heroes.
1 Laotprand probably began his hook in 958, at the urgent request of
tbe bishop of Elvira, who was sojourning at the court of Otto as the
representative- of the Spanish caliph, Abderrahman.
* A qootatkua from memory from Terence.
258 Readings in European History
Since the abhorrent practices of the ancient heathen, the
knowledge of which is not only useless but positively hurt-
ful, are recorded in books so that it may not be lost, why
should we say nothing of the warlike deeds of the men of
our own time, who are in no way behind the famous generals
Julius, Pompey, Hannibal, his brother Hasdrubal, and Scipio
African us ?
Doubtless, most holy father [Liutprand adds at the
opening of the third book], you will constantly marvel over
the title of this work. Why, you will ask, did the book
receive the title AvTCLvoSocrq* (antapddosis)^ since it narrates
the deeds of distinguished men? I answer, the aim of this
work is to relate, proclaim, shout abroad to the whole world
the acts of that Berengar who is now tyrant rather than king
in Italy, and of his wife Wiila, who, by reason of her bound-
less oppression, should be called a second Jezebel, and for
her insatiable lust for plunder, by her true name of Lamia,
Both of these have without cause persecuted me and my
house, my relatives and my associates, with the poisoned
arrows of lies, and by tyrannical exactions and godless
intrigues such as neither tongue can tell nor pen describe.
So these pages shall be for them antapbdosis^ — that is to
say, a ** retribution," — because, for the evils that they have
brought upon me, I propose to reveal to the present and to
future generations T%V (article) acrefkiav (asevian), — that is
to say, their godlessness. And not less will this be an anta-
f&dosis for the benefits which good and holy men have con-
ferred upon me. For among all those whom I have mentioned
or shall mention, with the single exception of this godless
Berengar, there are few or none to whom either my parents
or myself do not owe the warmest thanks for the good they
have done us.
It is, moreover, said of this book of mine that it was written
cy (that is, ** in ") r^ (article) cxftaXocria, (en ti echm&losia), to
wit, daring "imprisonment" or "wandering." This refers
to my exile; for I began it in Frankfort, wMch is twenty
miles from Mayence, aad am now working on it on the
Germany and Italy 259
island of Paxo [south of Corfu], some nine hundred miles
from Constantinople.1
IV. BRVNO, THE IDEAL or A SCHOLAR ix THE TENTH
CENTURY
There was a marked revival of interest in learning in
Germany under Otto the Great. We can form some
idea of its character from Ruotger's Life of Bruno,
Otto's scholarly brother, which is one of the most inter-
esting biographies of the earlier Middle Ages.
When [in 928] the noble child of kings was four years
old he was sent to Utrecht, to be instructed by the vener-
able Bishop Baldric in liberal studies* ... Of his progress
we have heard from the bishop's own lips, for he was wont
to tell of it often to the glory of God. So we know that
when the boy had acquired the first rudiments of grammar
he began to read, under his teacher's guidance, the poet Pro-
dentius. This poet is Catholic in faith and in aspiration,
excellent in eloquence and in truth, pleasing in meter, rich
in meaning. His verses delighted the boy's heart, He
mastered the words and the inner meaning, and, if I may
say so, drank the purest nectar of the spirit like one athirst.
As time went on, his eager mind grasped all sorts of liberal
studies within the range of Greek and Latin eloquence. . . .
He would not allow books which he had studied or had
before him to be carelessly torn or creased, or handled heed-
lessly in any way. . . .
Bruno had given himself to God when he was very voting;
but when his brother Otto came to the throne, he recalled
Bruno from the retirement of the schools to the palace, and
gave him an honorable post, as was fitting. Yet he never
ceased to seek learning. He was not satisfied to gather in
the treasury of his mind lore easy to mine. Nay, he col-
lected from far and near riddles and philosophical problems
1 Uatpra&d appears to hare been on his way to Constantinople in
95^, foe wfcftt reasoa we do not know.
260 Rcaiiings in European History
foreign to the human understanding and gave them room
in his heart. The seven liberal arts had been long forgotten :
he brought them again to light. Whatever historians, orators,
poets, philosophers had to tell that was novel or great he
closely investigated, aided by teachers of the language in
which the books were written.
His Latin style was well-nigh perfect, and his influence
made the style of others polished and clear. He was in no
wise haughty, but was dignified, courteous, affable, charm-
ing. After meals most men, even, so we understand, emi-
nent ones, are given to rest awhile. Bruno, on the contrary,
busied himself tirelessly with reading and thinking. He
would not give up the morning hours at any price and never
yielded to drowsiness. Jests and buffoonery which make
everybody shake with laughter when put into the mouths
of various persons in tragedy and comedy, he read through
gravely and seriously. He thought their meaning was worth-
less ; he estimated the style as the main thing. He took
his library everywhere with him. When he followed the king
he had, wherever the royal tents were pitched, the source
and the materials for his studies, — the source in the sacred
books, the materials in secular ones. . . . Even when he
traveled he was not idle ; and in a crowd he was as if alone.
We could not say this of many men, . . .
He allowed himself no luxuries. He refused over and
over again in the king's palace to wear the fine and soft
clothing in which he had been nurtured. Among servants
clad in purple and soldiers gleaming with gold he wore the
mean garb and the sheepskins of a rustic. He especially
spurned the comforts of the couch. He rarely frequented
the bath with those who wished to make their skin white
and shining. This is the more wonderful because he had
been used from the cradle to the greatest daintiness and to
royal splendor.
Always and everywhere, in public and in private, he bore
himself as oae who would avoid human praise ; yet he served
as a& example to his inferiors. Many men profited by his
words and yet more by his example.
Germany and Italy 261
BIBLIOGRAPHY
General Outline: ADAMS, pp. 227-245; BEMONT and Moxoo, A.
pp. 268-285. <*•
The Stem Duchies : EMERTON, pp. 95-100.
Henry I: EWERION, pp. 103-110; HENDERSON. Germany ** the
Middle Ages* pp. 1 17-1 22 ; Tun. 7*/ Empire and the Papa+yr pp. 1 2 -18.
Otto I ; BRYCR, Chapter VI, last part, Chapter VIII, and Chapter IX,
first part, pp. 80-88 and 122-145; KMKKIUN, pp. 110-114 and ii&~i 45;
HENDERSON, Germany in the AfidJiS Agei, pp. 123-144 ; Sk&rt Hitfery
of Germany, pp. 4^-531 To IT, pp. 1^-35.
Liutprand's Report of his Mission to Constantinople: HKNOER-
SON, Ihstorifal D*.umtnfs, pp. 441-477. An interesting and amusing
document.
Theory of the Empire: BRYCE, Chapter VII, pp. 89-121.
Conrad II: EMFRIUN, pp 174-185; HENDERSON, Germany in the
Atiddlt Ages* ppu 166-173 ; Tun, pp. 50-60.
Henry in: KMERTUN, pp. 185-204; HENDERSON, Germany in the
Middle Agts, pp. 174-182 ; Skert f/ut&y of Germany* pp. 54-58; Tour,
pp. 60-64.
The Papacy under Leo IX aadHicfcoUs II: EMERTON, pp. 204-233;
TOUT, pp. 96-103 and 108-116.
The Decree of 1059 in Regard to Papal Elections: HENDERSON,
Histerual Documents, pp, 361-365.
HERBERT FISHER, T*kt AftJitrt'tit Empire* 2 \ols. The roost recent B.
and best treatment in English. Admirable for thU and the two following
, rtadmtm
chapters.
NEWMAN, pp. 437-443 ™& 495-5°*-
MILMAN, Vol III, Book V, Chapters XI-XIV. and Book VI.
GREGOROVI17S, Vol. Ill, Book VI, and Vol. IV, Book VII,
ters I-III.
ALICE GREENWOOD, Tke Empire a*Jtk*P*pa<y in fa Middle Afts,
1902.
DdULiNGRR, FaUfs retpettimg the Pt&es in the Middle Age** 1 872. An
interesting refutation of some celebrated legends.
MATHEWS, Select Medt*wd Document s+ pp, 19-35. Gires a few
important documents lor this period in the original Latin.
C.
Jmkr&cker dtr de*t*<ken Gesckuktf, issued under the auspices of the
Academy of Sciences, Berlin and Leipzig, 1866 sqq. Thirty
262
Readings in European History
Rfchter's
Detailed
•egfccted.
volumes have appeared, coming down to the thirteenth century. This
is an extraordinary treatment of the whole field of German history by
reigns and years, and is designed for the exacting student rather than
for the reader of history, as there is much technical discussion of minute
questions of scholarship. The volumes for the Carolingian period have
already been mentioned. For the tenth and early eleventh century there
are the following: WAITZ, Kimig Hetnrich 7, 1863 ; DUMMLER, Kaiser
Ottoder Gressf, 1876 ; U HLIRZ, Otto Ilund Otto HI, Vol. 1, 1902 j HIRSCH
and BRESSLAU, Htinrich //, 3 vols., 1862-1875 ; BRESSLAU, Konrad II,
z vols,, 1879-1884; STEINDORFF, Heinrick III, 2 vols., 1874-1881.
RlCHTER, Annaltn der devtschen Ges£hichte im Mittelalter mit durch*
gangiger kritischer Erl&vterung aus Quetltn und Littraturangaben. £in
Handbuck fur das wissenchaftlickc Studium der deutscken GescAickte im
Mtiklalter, 3 vols., Halle, 1873-1898. This is a sort of condensation
of the Jahrbuthrr mentioned above. The events are briefly recounted
in the text, while in the voluminous notes, which fill a great part of the
page, special points are discussed and extracts are given from the sources.
It is by far the most important work within its compass for the advanced
student of German mediaeval history. Volumes I and II have already
been mentioned; Vol. Ill, Part I (1890), covers the period 919-1056;
VoL III, Part II (1898), comes down to 1137.
There are a number of more or less voluminous modern narrative
histories of Germany in German. The most suggestive of these is
LAMPKECHT, Dnttsckc Geschichtf^ Berlin, 1891 j^.f an original treat-
meat, with much attention to the social and economic phases. Other
works of this class are briefly described by Dr. Henderson, A History
if Gfrm&tty in tkt Middle Ages^ pp. 21 sgq.
It may not be amiss to suggest that the student will do well after he
has gained a tolerably clear notion of the general course of German
history to proceed directly to such a work as Rkhter's Annaltn, which
brings him close to the sources, rather than to plod through the detailed
and often rather heavy and unprofitable secondary accounts.
EBERT, Litteratur des Mitttlalttrs (see above, p. 34), Vol. III. Con-
tains the best account of the literary activity of the tenth century.
In the preceding bibliographies frequent references have already been
made to the great collection of the sources of German history in the
Middle Ages known as the Menumenta Gfrmamae Historic*, Hannover
and Berlin, 1826 stf . The first portions o€ this vast collection were
isseed ia fili* under the editorship of tike distinguished scholar Pertz.
Of ifcfe fofio e&tioa there are 29 volumes, known as the Srripteres,
Germany and Italy 263
rerum Gfrmanicarwn. This series, beginning with the sources of the
Carolingian period, is sometimes referred to as •• Pert*,** from its editor.
There are besides in folio five volumes of laws — Ltge* — and one of
Dtplomata. Portions of this folio edition are out of print and are very
expensive,
A reorganization of the whole great enterprise was undertaken after
the death of Pertz, and since 1877 volumes have been appearing in
quarto in several divisions. The A mitres a*ti<f*ustmt, 13 volumes,
include the Roman writers who deal with the earliest history of the
Germans. Then there are the Stnpterej rtrum MfrvrtHgvjritm and
the Scriptores rerum Langobarditarum* All these relate almost exclu-
sively to a period anterior to Pippin and Charlemagne, and so bear
rather on the history of western Europe than on that of Germany, in
the later and narrower sense of the term. There are oth<-r sections of
the quarto series, for example, the Ltgts, the Epistdat, etc.
Many of the more important annals and chronicles included in the
Mortumcnta have been reprinted in a very inexpensive form in the
Scriptertt rtrum Gtrmanicantm in utnm sck&i*r*m, Hannover, 1840
jyy., 42 vols.v vctov*. In some cases the text of the octavo edition n
more recent and critical than that in the expensive Mtmxmcnt*.
Under the title D*t GtstkifkUtkrtikr der dfutscktn I *ru*& 90 vote*, Dit
2d ed., Berlin and Leipzig, 1885 jy?., M. 228.15, admirable translations
by distinguished German scholars have been issued of the chief sources
of German history for the whole period from Caesar to the end of the
fourteenth century.1
It is hardly necessary to add that the M<m*menta and its offshoots, —
the octavo edition and the Gtsf kxktu k reiber* — although edited with
special attention to Germany, are far the best of all the collections of
sources for the student of the general history of western Europe during
the Middle Ages.
The annals for the early tenth century are very meager* Tne extract
from Tkt €*******&* *f Kegim*, given above, pp. 245 sf f ^ affords an
idea of their character; but in the latter half of the century several
important historical works appeared:
WIDUKIND, Dtf& tftkt Sax***, covering the period of Henry I and
Otto the Great The author was a monk of Corvei, and began his
i References to the M<m*mt*ta are usually abbreviated; e~g. KG. or M.G.H.
SS. rer. Her. — Mtnumfnta G*r mania* Historica, St,n/twcs rfmm Mtrnin^f-
ttfrmm. For a fuller description and an analysis of this and other great sets, see
Pttttast, Wcgwaur dmrek dit G<^ki.kira«rk< J<s g*n>p*ixk*n
3d ad, pp. xxxii jy ^.
264 Readings in European History
work in 967, when Otto was at the height of his power. See extracts
above, pp. 249^. (In the octavo edition of the Monumenta, and in the
Gcsckichtxhreiber, Vol. XXXIII.)
LIUTPRAND OF CREMONA (d. ca. 973). See above, pp. 255 sqq. (In
the octavo edition of the Monumenta, and long extracts with excellent
introduction by WATTENBACH in Geschifhtsckreiber, Vol. XXIX.)
HROSVITA, a nun of Gandersheim, who died about the year 1000, com-
posed a metrical account of Otto's deeds, but is especially well known for
her dramas, which were suggested by those of Terence, but have little in
common with their model either in style or substance. (Her historical
works are in the octavo edition of the Monumenta* and in the Gcschickt-
sckrtibfr,Vo\. XX XII. Her dramas may be found in her works edited
by Winterfeld, 1902, and with a French version in MAGNIN, Thfdtre de
I/rosvita. See EBERT, Vol. Ill, pp, 285 sqq.)
RUOTGER, Life of BrunO) written about 966, immediately after the
archbishop's death. See extracts above, pp. 259 sq. (In the octavo
edition, and Gesckicktsckreiber* Vol. XXX.)
For the early eleventh century the following writers are of especial
note:
THZETMAR, bishop of Merseburg, completed a history of the three
Ottos and Henry II in 1018. (In the octavo edition, and Gesckicht-
stkrtiter. Vol. XXXIX.)
HERMANN OF REICHKNAU (called Contractus^ Le. the lame), who died
in 1054, is one of the ablest historians of his rime. His Ckroniclt is, of
coarse, especially valuable for his own age, but he used an excellent
source for the previous century, which has been lost, and his work is
therefore as authoritative and rather more complete and orderly than the
Annals of Quedlinburg, Hiideskfim* eta, which belong to the latter
part of the tenth century. (In the Mtmumtnta, and Gesckichtsckreiber^
Vol. XUI.)
LAMBERT OF HERSFELD, the most elegant writer of the earlier Middle
Ages, brings his annals down to 1077. Formerly greatly admired, he
has of late been accused of partiality and unfairness. (In the octavo
edition, and Gesckichtschreiber, Vol. XLIII,)
For Gerbert's letters and the French sources, see above, p. 219 sqq.
For the history of the papacy from the break-up of Charlemagne's
empire to the time of Gregory VII, the following works are to be
especially recommended:
LANGXN, Gtukicktc dtr rffmiscken Kircke (see above, p. 84), Vol. III.
Si, Grjg&re VII ft la Rtftrme & rggtise a» XI* stick*
Tkeaa&or is a Catholic; he devotes Vote. land II of
Germany arid Italy 265
his work to the period before Gregory's pontificate and gives many
extracts from the sources.
HAUCK, Kirckengtsckickte Deutscklands* Vol. III. Excellent.
DRESDNER, fCultur- und Sitttngexckickte der ifalitmsck&t GttstfuA-
kfit, 1890.
MARTENS, £He Bt*et*u*g dts papstitcke* StukUt **ter If ei* rick ///
und /y, 1887.
Dwretales psettde-isidoriaiuu* edited by HIN^CHILS, i86j. The best
edition of a famous collection of the acts of the councils and of the
decrees of the pope* made about 850, noted for the spurious decretals
of the earlier bishops of Rome which it contains, and which were
accepted as genuine for several centuries. Some discussion of these
forged decretals will be found in the church histories for the period.
Most writers have ascribed far too much importance to this compilation
in explaining the development of the power of the popes, which would
hardly have been less had the forgeries never been conceived.
WATT ERICH, PentijicMm rerun H0rxm ^*^l&^ at aefmaJ&ms f&*
2 vols^ 1862. A collection of the contemporary lives of the popes In
872 to 1198; a modern continuation of the L*b*r p+*tiju*lu memtk
above, p. 85.
In this period, as elsewhere in the history of the mediaeval papacy,
JAFFA'S Rtgtsta (see above, p. 85) i* of great importance.
SACK UK, ZV<r ClM*i*4:f*str fa* xxr Mitt* det elf tern f+hrktuulirts.,
Vols. I-II, 1892-1804. By far the most thorough treatment of the
growth and influence of the great order of Cluny.
CHAPTER XIII
THE CONFLICT BETWEEN GREGORY VII AND HENRY IV
I. THE EARLY YEARS OF HENRY IV
107. The The most comprehensive of all the mediaeval chroni-
c*es cove™g the history of the world was written by
Ekkehard of Aurach. He exercised great patience and
cfewfete care and repeatedly revised and elaborated his work.
* Bkfcefeud He began to write just before the opening of the First
Crusade, in which he became greatly interested (see
extract below, pp. 316^.)- *^s fair-mindedness is shown
in the following account of Henry IV's early troubles.
In the year 1057 of the Incarnation of our Lord, and the
year iSoS since the founding of the City, Henry IV, son of
Emperor Henry, while still a boy, began to reign in the
place of his father. At the time that this book is being
Written, he is reigning, in his forty-second year, as the eighty-
seventh emperor since Augustus. . . .
la the year of our Lord 1058, Frederick, who as pope
was called Stephen, died, and Alexander, bishop of Lucca,
followed him. At that time Hildebrand, who later became
pope, administered the office of archdeacon in Rome.
In the year of our Lord 1059, Pope Stephen died, and
Gerhard followed him under the name of Nicholas (II).1
Henry, king of France, died, and Philip, his son, reigned in
his stead.
1 Stephen IX died in 1058 and was succeeded by Nicholas II, who
was in torn succeeded by Alexander II in 1061. The confusion of dates
by Ekkehard seems rather surprising, bat ay«Hiar mistakes are common
in most of the chronicles.
266
ConJJict between Gregory 1*1 I and ffenry Ilr 267
In the year of our Lord 1060, Luitpold, archbishop of
Mayence, died and Siegfried, abbot of Fulda, followed him,
who later allied himself with others in a conspiracy against
his lord the king.
In the year of our Lord 1062, Archbishop Anno of
Cologne, with the consent of the leaders of the empire,
brought the prince (Henry IV), of whose person he had
taken violent possession, under his control, and withdrew
from the prince's mother the government of the empire, as
if he felt it to be unworthy that the state should be ruled by
the empress, who, though a woman, was enabled to exercise
power after the manner of a man. After he had given an
account before all of what he had done* he again gained the
favor of his lord the king, and was again reconciled to the
mother through the son. ...
In the year of our Lord 1063, Pope Nicholas died and
was followed by Bishop Alexander of Lucca. . . .
In the year of our Lord 1064, Siegfried, bishop of May-
enoet Gunther of Babenberg, and William of Utrecht, along
with many other bishops and noblemen, set forth with a
great following on a pilgrimage to Jerusalem. Here they
suffered much from the attacks of the barbarians, but finally,
having happily reached their goal, they returned, greatly
reduced in numbers and strength.
In the* year of our Lord 1065, Gunther, bishop of Baben-
berg, died in Pannonia, as he was returning from Jerusalem,
His body was brought back to Babenberg and buried there,
and Hermann was chosen to succeed him. Count Gozmin,
who had usurped the power in the bishopric of Wiirzburg,
was killed by the followers of Bishop Adelberon.
In the year of our Lord 1066, a comet glowed long over
the whole earth. In the same year England was terribly
desolated by the Norman William and finally subjugated,
and he had himself made king. He then drove almost all
the bishops of the said kingdom into banishment and had
268 Readings in European History
the nobles killed. The commons he gave over in bondage
to his knights, and he compelled the wives of the natives to
marry the invaders.
In the year of our Lord 1067, King Henry took to wife
Bertha, daughter of a certain Otto, an Italian, and of Adel-
heid; and he celebrated the wedding at Tribur. Conrad,
councilor of the church at Cologne, whom King Henry had
designated as bishop of Treves, was taken prisoner by The-
odoric, count of that city, and was carried into the forest
by his followers and thrown down three times from the top
of a mountain, but since he still remained unhurt, they dis-
patched him with a sword.
In the year of our Lord 1068, King Henry, with youthful
recklessness, began to reside in Saxony alone of all the
' Roman Empire, to despise the princes, oppress the nobles,
exalt the lowborn, and to devote himself (as was said) to
the chase, to gaming and other occupations of this kind,
more than to the administration of justice. He married the
daughters of the nobles to his favorites of low origin, and,
full of distrust against the powerful of the empire, he began
to build certain castles. By thus recklessly sowing the seeds
of discord it fell out that the number of those who proposed
to deprive the king not only of his kingdom but even of his
life grew rapidly. However, as he had not yet fully reached
the years of maturity, many judged that the responsibility
did not fall so much upon him as upon Archbishop Adelbert
of Bremen, since everything was done on his advice.
In the year of our Lord 1 069, the Empress Agnes, mother
of King Henry, through vexation, or better, through divine
inspiration, surrendered the duchy of Bavaria, and, discard-
ing the reins of government in her devotion to Christ,
betook herself to Rome, where, with marvelous humility, she
brought forth the fruits of repentance and after a few years
closed this earthly life in the Lord.
In tbe year of our Lord 1070, Margrave Teti, not without
the ooQaiTanoe of the Saxon princes, established a tyranny
Conflict between Gregory VII and Henry IV 269
directed against the king's followers. This was, however,
suppressed through the intervention of the heavenly as well
as the earthly majesty* for his castles of Beichlingen and
Burgsheidungen were destroyed by the king; his son, like-
wise a warrior, was killed by some of his servants, and he
himself soon died a natural death.
In the year of our Lord 1071, Duke Otto lost the duchy
of Bavaria. He was a Saxon by origin, a man of excellent
rank, to whom few could be compared in insight and mili-
tary power. He enjoyed such respect among all the princes i>«kc Otto.
that the king, who was already an object of suspicion and
hate to the Saxons, was fearful lest this Otto might should the
king's influence decline, attempt to win the royal throne itself.
A certain Egino, of mean origin and insignificant re-
sources, took advantage of the situation for his evil ends.
Although well known for his impudence and shameless
conduct, he managed to slip into the court under the pro-
tection of certain of the king's adherents. He lied to the
king, saying that that great hero, Ottot who in reality had
never known him, had conspired with him to murder the
king. He offered himself, as was the custom, as a hostage
until the truth of what he had said should be settled
by a duel between him and the duke. What more need
be said ? After royal councils had been announced, one at
Mayence and the other at Goslan Otto disdained to fight with
Egino, — the duke with the rogue, the prince with the com-
mon man, — nevertheless his innocence and Egino's shame-
lessness remained by no means concealed.
So Otto, guilty of leze majesty, lost the duchy of Bavaria,
which a certain WeU received, a distinguished, brave, war-
like person, a Swabian by birth. From this seed, alas, did
great dissension spring, which grew into the wretched fruit
of continuous battles, of rebelliousness, robbery, and de-
struction, division in the Church, heresy, and many deaths.
In the year of our Lord 1072, the king followed Otto
everywhere, destroyed as many of his fortresses as he could,
270 Readings in European History
Dttte otto wasted his lands, and strove completely to annihilate him, as
rousesthe an enemy of the state. Nevertheless, Otto, with a select
following, and with his own stout arm and his heart full of
bitter hate, since he might not fight directly with the royal
troops, sought to avenge the injury which he had suffered,
now by plundering, now by fire, now by the sword, wherever
opportunity offered.
At his inspiration the Saxon people — of a very violent
disposition as they are — ceased not, with one accord, to
organize a conspiracy against the king ; sent letters full of
insulting and unheard-of accusations against the king to the
apostolic see, and sought allies by letter and messenger
throughout the whole German empire.
In the first place they made friends with Siegfried, the
archbishop of Mayence, Adelbert of Worms, Adelberon of
Wiirzburg, Gebhardt of Salzburg, and other bishops, as many
as they could, and then through these they gained Pope
Alexander. Many assert too that, last and greatest, Anno,
archbishop of Cologne, was one of those privy to this con-
spiracy. Frightened at last by these intrigues, the king left
Saxony and conducted the business of the empire in other
regions.
In the year of our Lord 1073, the archbishop of Cologne
and Hermann of Babenberg were sent to Rome in order to
get together the money which was owing the king there.
They brought back, on their return, a letter from Pope
Alexander, in which the king was ordered to give an ac-
count of his heresy, simony, and many other similar matters
which called for improvement, rumors of which had reached
him in Rome.
Thereupon the Saxons built many strongholds, for up to
this time that country had had but few of them. Moreover
they completely destroyed the castles which the king had
built some time before. Among these they tore down the
castle which was called Harzburg, the cathedral and the
abbey which stood there, destroying ail these in their rage and
perversity, down to the very ground. Horrible to say, ihey
Conflict bftiwn Gregory I'll atui Henry IT 271
took up the bones of the innocent son of the king, who had
been buried there, and scattered them about as an insult to
the father.
In the year of our Lord 1074, after Pope Alexander of Hikfebtaad,
blessed memory had died, Hildebrand, later called Gregory, lbe
followed him ; by profession and rank he was a monk and
archdeacon. L'nder him the Roman Empire and the *hole
Church began to be threatened by new and unheard-of divi-
sions and turmoil. Since Gregory had reached this height
of power without the king's permission, simply through the
favor of the Romans, some asserted that he was not right-
fully chosen, but had seized the papal dignity with his
own hand. Therefore he was not recognized by some of
the bishops. Gregory repeatedly summoned King Henry
through messengers and letters to answer for his deeds
before a synod.
In the year of our Lord 1074, Pope Gregory, after hold-
ing a synod, condemned the simonists, namely those who
bought and sold the gift of the Holy Ghost and provided that
the Nicolaitae, that is to say, the priests who had married,
should be removed from the sen-ice of the altar, and forbade
the laity to attend masses performed by them.
In the year of the Lord 1075. King Henry moved against
the Saxons, after he had collected a strong army from
Alemannia, Bavaria, and Germania, and from Bohemia.
He fought with the Saxons on the river Unstrut and after
much blood had been shed on both sides, he finally returned
home victorious.
Rudolph, duke of Alemannta and Burgundy, who later
usurped the imperial crown, fought bravely there with his
followers for the king. Bishop Hermann of Babeaberg
was deposed, on account of his simoniacal practices, by
command of Pope Hildebrand, and Ruotpert was put in
his place by the king. In this year died Anno, archbishop
of Cologne, rich in merits of piety, and was buried in the
cloister of Siegburg, which he himself had built He was
followed by Hildolf.
2J 2 Readings in European History
II. THE ISSUE BETWEEN POPE AND EMPEROR IN THE
MATTER OF INVESTITURE
loa. Tfce A conference was arranged at Chalons in 1 107 between
0<™£* the representatives of the pope and those of the emperor,
MUM where the demands of each party might be clearly stated.
Although this did not occur until just after the death of
Henry IV, it seems best to introduce at this point an
(1107). (Ftom account of the arguments advanced by each side, since
^y serve to s^ow ^e rea* nature °f t^ie troubles between
Henry and Gregory. The report which follows is given
by Suger in his Life of Louis the Fat (see above, p. 198).
He was himself present at the conference and evidently
neither liked the Germans nor approved of their argu-
ments and point of view.
The pope (Paschal II) having spent some time in CMlons,
the representatives of the emperor, men void of humility,
hard and rebellious, betook themselves according to agree-
ment to the place of meeting, with much display and a nu-
i&eroos escort, all richly appareled. These envoys were the
archbishop of Treves, the bishops of Halberstadt and of
Minister, several counts, and Duke Welf, who had his sword
carried before him. The latter was a man of great corpu-
lence, truly astonishing in the length and breadth of his
surface, and a loud-mouthed fellow withal. These turbu-
lent men seemed to have been dispatched with a view to
terrify those they met rather than to discuss matters in a
rational way,
We should make a single exception of the archbishop of
Treves : he was an agreeable person, of good manners, well
educated, a good speaker, and with a touch of French polish.
He made a clever speech, saluting the lord pope and the
assembly in the name of his master, and offering the empe-
ror's services> saving always the rights of the imperial throne.
Conflict between Gregory 17 I ami Henry fT 273
Then, reaching the real object of their mission, he con-
tinued as follows:
"This is the reason that the emperor has sent us hither. The claim
It is well known that in the time of our predecessors it was °^V
recognized by holy and truly apostolic men, like Gregory the ewpwt>r*
Great and others, that, according to the law of the empire,
in every election the following method should be observed.
First, the election was brought to the emperor's attention
before it was publicly announced. Before deciding the
matter measures were taken to learn whether he approved
of the candidate proposed, and his sanction was obtained.
Then, following the canons,1 the election was proclaimed
in a general meeting, as having been carried out by the
clergy with the ratification of the people and the assent of
the distributor of honors. The person chosen, freely elected
without simony in the manner above described, should then
present himself to the emperor to be invested with the
regalia by the ring and the staff, to pledge his fidelity and
to do homage. Nor is it any wonder that there should be
no other way by which one should be able to get possession
of towns, castles, markets, tolls, and other things associated
with the imperial dignity. If the lord pope will recognize
this, the throne and the Church will be united, to the glory
of God, in a firm and advantageous peace/'
To all this the lord pope replied judiciously, by the mouth Tl* «
of the bishop of Piacenza, a distinguished orator, as follows :
" The Church, redeemed and made free by the precious blood
of Jesus Christ, may in no way become a slave again. Now
if the Church cannot choose a prelate without the permis-
sion of the emperor, she is subject to him, and Christ's death
is made of no avaiL To invest with the ring mud the staff,
since these belong to the altar, is to usurp the powers of
God himself. For a priest to place his hands, sanctified by
the body and blood of the Lord, in the blood-stained hands
of a layman, as a pledge, is to dishonor his order and holy
consecration/'
* See History <f Western E*r*/*, p. 155.
274 Readings in European History
III. GREGORY VII's CONCEPTION OF THE POPE'S
PREROGATIVES
109. The Among the letters and decrees of Gregory VII a list
°f propositions is found which briefly summarizes the
claims of the papacy. The purpose of this so-called
Dictatus is unknown ; it was probably drawn up shortly
after Gregory's accession and no doubt gives an official
statement of the powers which he believed that he rightly
possessed. The more important of the twenty-seven
propositions contained in the Dictatus are given below.
The Roman church was founded by God alone.
The Roman bishop alone is properly called universal.
He alone may depose bishops and reinstate them.
His legate, though of inferior grade, takes precedence, in
a council, of all bishops and may render a decision of depo-
sition against them.
He alone may use the insignia of empire.1
The pope is the only person whose feet are kissed by all
princes.
His title is unique in the world.3
He may depose emperors.
No council may be regarded as a general one without his
consent.
No book or chapter may be regarded as canonical without
his authority.
A decree of his may be annulled by no one ; he alone
may annul the decrees of all.
* The Donation of Constaatine describes the emperor Constantino
as tearing his imperial scepter, cloak, etc., to Pope Sylvester. The
word ** use " (Latin *&" ) here employed may perhaps be used in the
sense of "dispose of," referring to the pope's asserted claim to control
the election of the emperor.
* This is the first distinct assertion of the exclusive right of the bishop
of Rome to the title of pope, once applied to all bishops. See History
0f Western Evrvpf* p. 52, note.
Conflict between Gregory VII and Henry IV 275
He may be judged by no one.
No one shall dare to condemn one who appeals to the
papal see.
The Roman church has never erred, nor ever, by the
witness of Scripture, shall err to all eternity.1
He may not be considered Catholic who does not agree
with the Roman church.
The pope may absolve the subjects of the unjust from
their allegiance.
IV. ORIGIN OF THE TROUBLES BETWEEN GREGORY VII AND
HENRV IV
In 1075 a synod held at Rome under Gregory VII
denounced the marriage of the clergy, prohibited lay
investiture, and then excommunicated five of Henry IV's
councilors on the ground that they had gained the
church offices which they held, by simony. While the
text of this decree, which in a way began the trouble
between Gregory and Henry, is lost, it was probably
similar to the following decrees issued respectively
three and five years later.
Inasmuch as we have learned that, contrary to the ordi-
nances of the holy fathers, the investiture with churches is,
in many places, performed by lay persons, and that from
this cause many disturbances arise in the Church by which
the Christian religion is degraded, we decree that no one
of the clergy shall receive the investiture with a bishopric,
or abbey, or church, from the hand of an emperor, or king, or
of any lay person, male or female. If be shall presume to
do so, let him know that such investiture is void by apostolic
authority, and that he himself shall lie under excommuni-
cation until fitting satisfaction shall have been made.
1 See sermoo of Leo tfee Great, above, pp. 70-71.
276
Readings in European History
Decree of
March 7,
1080, for-
bidding
the same.
lll.&ag-
«y»* tetter
Following the ordinances of the holy fathers, as we decreed
in our former councils held by the mercy of God concerning
the regulation of ecclesiastical offices, so also now by apos-
tolic authority we decree and confirm : that, if any one shall
henceforth receive a bishopric or abbey from the hands of
any lay person, he shall by no means be reckoned among
the bishops and abbots; nor shall any hearing be granted
him as bishop or abbot Moreover we further deny him
the favor of St. Peter and entrance to the Church, until,
coming to his senses, he small surrender the position that
he has appropriated through criminal ambition and disobe-
dience— which is the sin of idolatry. We decree, more-
over, that the same rule be observed in the case of inferior
ecclesiastical positions.
Likewise if any emperor, king, duke, margrave, count, or
any secular dignitary or person shall presume to bestow the
investiture with bishoprics, or with any ecclesiastical office,
let him know that he is bound by the bonds of the same
condemnation. And, furthermore, unless he come to his
senses and relinquish her prerogatives to the Church, let
him feel, in this present life, the divine wrath both in body
and estate, in order that at the Lord's coming his soul may
be saved.
The two letters which follow serve to show the atti-
tude of mind of the pope and of the emperor on the
eve of open hostilities.
Bishop Gregory, servant of the servants of God, to King Henry,
greeting and apostolic benediction: — that is, if he. be obedi-
ent to the apostolic chair as beseems a Christian king:
For we cannot but hesitate to send thee our benediction
when we seriously consider the strictness of the Judge to
whom we shall have to render account for the ministry
intrusted to us by St. Peter, chief of the apostles. For
thou art said knowingly to associate with men excommu-
nicated by a judgment of the apostolic chair and by
sentence ol a synod. If this be true, thou thyself dost
Coriflict between Gregory I ^11 ami Henry Il~ 277
know that thou mayst not receive the favor of the divine,
nor of the apostolic benediction, unless those who have
been excommunicated be separated from thee and com-
pelled to do penance, and thou, with condign repentance
and satisfaction, obtain absolution and pardon for thy mis-
deeds. Therefore we counsel thy Highness that, if thou
dost feel thyself guilty in this matter, thou shouldst seek
the advice of some devout bishop, with prompt confession.
He, with our permission, enjoining on thee a proper pen-
ance for this fault, shall absolve thee, and shall take care to
inform us by letter, with thy consent, of the exact measure
of thy penance.
In the next place, it seems strange to us that although thou
dost so often send us such devoted letters ; and although
thy Highness dost show such humility in the messages of
thy legates, — calling thyself the son of holy mother Church
and of ourselves, subject in the faith, foremost in love and
devotion ; — although, in short, thou dost commend thyself
with all the sweetness of devotion and reverence, yet in
conduct and action thou dost show thyself most stubborn,
and in opposition to the canonical and apostolic decrees in
those matters which the religion of the Church deems of
chief importance. For, not to mention other things, in tbe
aHair of Milan1 the actual outcome shows with what intent
thou didst make, and how thou didst carry out, the promises
made through thy mother and through our brothers tbe
bishops whom we sent to thee. And now, indeed, inflicting
wound upon wound, thou hast, contrary to the rules of the
apostolic chair, given the churches of Fermo and Spoleto —
if indeed a church can be given or granted by a mere man —
to certain persons not even known to us, on whom, unless
they are previously well known and proven, it is not lawful
regularly to perform the laying on of hands.
It would have beseemed thy royal dignity, since thou dost
confess thyself a son of the Church, to have treated more
1 There had been trouble even before Gregory's accession over tbe
qmestkm of fining tbe bishopric of Milan.
278 Readings in European Histoiy
respectfully the master of the Church, — that is, St. Peter,
the chief of the apostles. For to him, if thou art of the
Lord's sheep, thou wast given over by the Lord's voice and
authority to be fed; Christ himself saying, "Peter, feed
my sheep," And again : " To thee are given over the keys
of the kingdom of heaven ; and whatsoever thou shalt bind
on earth shall be bound in heaven ; and whatsoever thou
shalt loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven.57
Inasmuch as in his seat and apostolic ministration we,
however sinful and unworthy, do, by the providence of God,
act as the representative of his power, surely he himself is
receiving whatever, in writing or by word of mouth, thou
hast sent to us. And at the very time when we are either
perusing thy letters or listening to the voices of those who
speak for thee, he himself is observing, with discerning eye,
in what spirit the instructions were issued. Wherefore thy
Highness should have seen to it that no lack of good will
should appear toward the apostolic chair in thy words and
messages, . . .
In this year a synod was assembled about the apostolic
*** chair, over which the heavenly dispensation willed that we
1075 far- should preside, and at which some of thy faithful subjects
were present Seeing that the good order of the Christian
religion has now for some time been disturbed, and that
the chief and proper methods of winning souls have, at
tbe instigation of the devil, long been neglected and sup-
pressed, we, struck by the danger and impending ruin of
the Lord's flock, reverted to the decrees and teachings of the
holy fathers, — decreeing nothing new, nothing of our own
invention.1 . . .
lie pope Lest these things should seem unduly burdensome or
*to unjust to thee, we did admonish thee, through thy faithful
servants, that the changing of an evil custom should not
alarm thee ; that thou shouldst send to us wise and religious
men from thy land, to demonstrate or prove, if they could,
by any reasoning, in what respects, saving the honor of the
1 S®6 abow* PP- 375 *»•
Conjlict between Gregory VII and Henry IT 279
Eternal King and without danger to our soul, we might
moderate the decree as passed by the holy fathers, and we
would yield to their counsels. Even without our friendly
admonitions it would have been but right that, before thou
didst violate apostolic decrees, thou shouldst reasonably
have appealed to us in cases where we oppressed thee or
infringed thy prerogatives. But how little thou didst esteem
our commands or the dictates of justice is shown by those
things which thou afterwards didst.
But since the long-suffering patience of God still invites
thee to amend thy ways, we have hopes that thy under-
standing may be awakened, and thy heart and mind be bent
to obey the mandates of God : we exhort thee with paternal
love to recognize the dominion of Christ over thee and to
reflect how dangerous it is to prefer thine own honor to
his.
Henry, irritated not so much by the tone of the above
letter as by the reproaches of Gregory's legates, sent the
following violent reply, January 24, 1076.*
Henry \ King not by usurpation but by holy ordination of God, 112
to Hitdebrand, now no Pope but false monk :
Such greeting as this hast thou merited through thy dis-
turbances, for there is no rank in the Church but thou hast
brought upon it, not honor but disgrace, not a blessing but
a curse. To mention a few notable cases out of the many,
thou hast not only dared to assail the rulers of the holy
Church, the anointed of the Lord, — archbishops, bishops,
and priests, — but thou hast trodden them under foot like
slaves ignorant of what their master is doing. By so crash-
ing them thou hast won the favor of the OOEQBOOO herd;
thou hast regarded them all as knowing nothing, — thyself
alone as knowing all things. Yet this knowledge thou hast
1 Henry appears to hare prepared two replies to the pope's letter.
Tfcfe is the second draft, more ralent than one which Henry had
dispatched jest before. See discussion i* Richter's Anntdt* dcr Jsut-
Gc*ck*tkte, Vot II, pp. 102-203.
2 So Readings in European Uist&ty
exerted, not for their advantage but for their destruction;
so that with reason we believe St. Gregor}T, whose name
thou hast usurped, prophesied of thee when he said, "The
pride of the magistrate commonly waxes great if the number
of those subject to him be great, and he thinks that he can
do more than they all.*"
We, forsooth, have endured all this in our anxiety to save
the honor of the apostolic see, but thou hast mistaken our
humility for fear, and hast, accordingly, ventured to attack
the royal power conferred upon us by God, and threatened
to divest us of it. As if we had received our kingdom from
thee ! As if the kingdom and the empire were in thy hands,
not in God's \ For our Lord Jesus Christ did call us to the
kingdom, although he has not called thee to the priesthood:
that tfaou hast attained by the following steps.
By craft abhorrent to the profession of monk, thou hast
acquired wealth; by wealth, influence; by influence, arms;
by arms, a throne of peace. And from the throne of peace
thou hast destroyed peace ; thou hast turned subjects against
their governors, for thou, who wert not called of God, hast
taught that our bishops, truly so called, should be despised.
Thou hast put laymen above their priests, allowing them to
depose or condemn those whom they themselves had received
as teachers from the hand of God through the laying on of
l>isti€Nps* Hindis.
Thou hast further assailed me also, who, although unworthy
of anointing, have nevertheless been anointed to the king-
dom, and who, according to the traditions of the holy fathers,
am subject to the judgment of God alone, to be deposed
upon no charge save that of deviation from the faith, —
which God avert I For the holy fathers by their wisdom
committed the judgment and deposition of even Julian the
Apostate not to themselves but to God alone. Likewise
the true pope, Peter, himself exclaims : M Fear God. Honor
the king." But thou, who dost not fear God, art dishonor-
ing me, his appointed one. Wherefore* St. Paul, since he
spared not an angel of heaven if be should preach other
than the gospel, has not excepted thee, who dost teach other
Conflict between Gregory VII and Henry IV 281
doctrine upon earth. For he says, " If any one, whether I,
or an angel from heaven, shall preach the gospel other than
that which has been preached to you, he shall be damned."
Thou, therefore, damned by this curse and by the judg-
ment of all our bishops and ourselves, come down and
relinquish the apostolic chair which thou hast usurped.
Let another assume the seat of St. Peter, who will not prac-
tice violence under the cloak of religion, but will teach St
Peter's wholesome doctrine. I, Henry, king by the grace
of God, together with all our bishops, say unto thee : " Come
down, come down, to be damned throughout all eternity ! "
V. GREGORY'S DEPOSITION OF HENRY IV.
PENANCE AT CANOSSA
HENRY'S
O St. Peter, chief of the apostles, incline to us, I beg, thy 113. Finrt
holy ear, and listen to thy servant, whom from infancy thou
hast nurtured, and whom, until this day, thou hast shielded
from the hand of the wicked that hated me, and do hate
me, for my faithfulness to thee. Thou and my Lady, the
Mother of God, and thy brother, St. Paul, are witnesses for
me among all the saints that thy holy Roman church placed
me in control against my will ; that I had no thought of
violence in ascending to thy chair, and that I should rather
have ended my life as a pilgrim than by worldly means to
have gained thy throne for the sake of earthly glory.
Therefore, through thy grace and through my own merit,
I believe that it has been and is tby will ttei the Christian
people especially committed to thee should obey lae. To
me, in particular, as thy representative and the recipient of
thy favor, has God granted the power of binding and loosing
in heaven and earth. In this confedence, therefore, for the
honor and security of thy Church, in the name of Almighty
God, Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, by thy power and
authority, I withdraw from Henry the king, son of Henry
the emperor, a rebel of incredible insolence against thy
Church, his right to rule over the whole kingdom of the
deposit*-
(February
282 Readings in European History
Germans and over Italy. And I absolve all Christians from
the bonds of the oath which they have taken to him or
which they shall in future take ; and I forbid any one to
serve him as king,
For it is fitting that he who strives to lessen the honor
of thy Church should himself lose the honor which seems
to belong to him. And since he has scorned to obey as
a Christian, and has not returned to God whom he has
deserted, but has had intercourse with the excommunicated ;
practiced manifold iniquities; spurned the counsels which,
as thon art witness, I sent to him for his own salvation;
separated himself from thy Church and endeavored to rend
it asunder ; I bind him, in thy stead, with the chain of the
anathema. Relying upon thee, I bind him, that the people
may know and prove that thou art Peter, and upon thy rock
the Son of the living God hath built his Church, and the
gates of hell shall not prevail against it
114* teg- Bifk&p Gregory, servant of the servants of God, to all the
Archbishops, Bishops, Dukes, Counts, and other princes of
the realm of the Germans, defenders of the Christian faith^
greeting and apostolu benediction:
Inasmuch as for the love of justice ye have assumed
common cause and danger with us in the stress of this
Christian warfare, we have bethought us to relate to you,
beloved, in sincere affection, how the king, humbled to pen-
ance, has obtained the pardon of absolution, and how the
whole matter has progressed since his entry into Italy up
to the present day.
As had been arranged with the legates whom you dis-
patched to us, we came into Lombardy about twenty days
before the date on which one of the nobles was to meet us
at the pass, and awaited *his coming before we crossed over
to the other side of the Alps.
When the time fixed upon had quite passed, we were told,
as we could well believe, that at that season, on account
of the numerous obstacles, an escort could not be sent to
laeet us. We were then involved in no little anxiety as
C&njlict between Gregory VII and Henry //" 283
to what we would best do, since we had no means of cross-
ing over to you.
Meanwhile, however, we learned positively that the king
was approaching. Indeed, before he entered Italy he had
sent us suppliant messages, offering to render satisfaction,
in all respects, to God, St. Petert and ourselves. He also
renewed his promise that he would be perfectly obedient in
the matter of amending his life if only he might win from
us the favor of absolution and of the apostolic benediction.
When, after many delays and after much consultation, we
had, through all the envoys who passed between us, severely
reprimanded him for his offenses, he at length came of his
own accord, accompanied by a few followers, with no hos-
tility or arrogance in his bearing, to the town of Canossa,
where we were tarrying. And there, laying aside all the
trappings of royalty, he stood in wretchedness, barefooted
and clad in woolenr for three days before the gate of the
castle, and implored with profuse weeping the aid and con-
solation of the apostolic mercy, until he had moved all who
saw or heard of it to such pity and depth of compassion
that they interceded for him with many prayers and tears
and wondered at the unaccustomed hardness of our heart ;
some even protested that we were displaying not the serious-
ness of the apostolic displeasure but the cruelty of tyrannical
ferocity.
At lastT overcome by his persistent remorse and by the
earnest entreaties of those with us, we loosed the chain of
anathema and received him into the favor of our fellowship
and into the lap of the holy mother Church, accepting the
pledges given below,1 We also obtained a confirmation of
the transaction from the abbot of Cluny, from our daughters
Mati Ida * and the countess Adelaide, and from such princes*
ecclesiastical and lay, as seemed to us proper.
1 Henry took an oath that be wooid carry oat the wishes of the
pope ; this may be found in Henderson, Se/ert &ec»*mmts, pp. 387-
1 Tke ronT>tf*y> of Tuscany, to whom the castle of Canossa belonged.
284 Readings in European History
VI. THE POPE FULLY EXPLAINS THE NATURAL SUPREMACY
OF THE SPIRITUAL OVER THE CIVIL POWER
us. Letter The following is one of the fullest and most instructive
general justifications of the papal supremacy that has
tfce bishop come down to us.
•f Hetx
<Marcfc,io8i). 2$js£0p Gregory \ servant of the servants of God, to his beloved
brother in Christ, Hermann, Bishop of Metz, greeting and
the apostolic benediction:
It is doubtless through God's grace that thou art ready,
as we hear, to endure trials and dangers in the defense of
the truth, . . . However, thy request to be supported and
fortified by a letter from us directed against those persons
who are constantly asserting, with perverse tongues, that
the holy and apostolic see had no authority to excommuni-
cate Henry — the scorner of Christian law, the destroyer
of churches and of the empire, the patron and companion
of heretics — nor to absolve any one from the oath of fidel-
ity to him, hardly seems necessary to us when so many and
such absolutely decisive warrants are to be found in the
pages of Holy Scriptures. . . .
Shall not an office instituted by laymen — by those even
who did not know God — be subject to that office which
the providence of God Almighty has instituted for his own
honor, and in compassion given to the world? For his
Son, even as he is unquestioningly believed to be God and
man, so is he considered the chief of priests, sitting on the
right hand of the Father and always interceding for us.
Yet he despised a secular kingdom, over which the men of
this world swell with pride, and came of his own will to
the priesthood of the cross. Whereas all know that kings
and princes are descendants of men who were ignorant of
God, and who, by arrogance, robbery, perfidy, murder, — in a
word by almost every crime, — at the prompting of the prince
of this world, tbe devil, strove with blind avarice and intol-
erable presumption to gain the mastery over their equals,
that is, over mankind
Conflict between Gregory 171 awt Henry IT 285
To whom, indeed, can we better compare them, when they
seek to make the priests of God bend to their feet, than to
him who is chief of all the sons of pride and who tempted
the highest Pontiff himself, the chief of priests, the Son
of the Most High, and promised to him all the kingdoms of
the world, saying, "All these will I give thee, if thou wilt
fall down and worship me "J ?
Who doubts that the priests of Christ should be regarded
as the fathers and masters of kings and princes, and of all
the faithful ? Is it not evidently hopeless folly for a son to
attempt to domineer over his father, a pupil over his master,
or for any one, by iniquitous exactions, to claim power over
him by whom he himself, as he acknowledges, can be bound
and loosed both on earth and in heaven ? Constantine, the
great lord of ail kings and princes throughout nearly the
whole world, plainly understood this, as the blessed Gregory
observes in a letter to the emperor Mauritius, for Constan-
tine took his seat after all the bishops in the holy Council of
Nicsea; he presumed to issue no decisions superior to theirs,
but addressed them as gods, and declared that they should
not be subject to his judgment, but that he was dependent
upon their will.1 . , . »
Armed accordingly with such decrees and authority, many cases of
bishops have excommunicated, in some cases kings, in others chwthwea
emperors. If the names of such princes are asked for, it
may be said that the blessed pope Innocent excommunicated
the emperor Arcadius for consenting to the expulsion of
St. John Chrysostom from his see. Likewise another Roman
pontiff, Zacharias, deposed a king of the Franks, not so
much for his iniquities, as for the reason that he was not
fitted to exercise his great power. And he substituted
Pippin, father of the emperor Charles the Great, in his
place, — releasing all the Franks from the oath of fealty
which they had sworn to him, — as, indeed, the holy Church
frequently does, by its abundant authority, when it absolves
1 Gregory adds here some extracts from the letter of Pope Gelasius,
whack is gJTen above, pp. 72-73.
286 Rtadmgs in EurpfftiH History
servitors from the fetters of an oath sworn to such bishops
as are deposed by apostolic sentence from their pontifical
rank.
The blessed Ambrose — who, although a saint, was yet
not bishop over the whole Church — excommunicated and
excluded from the Church the emperor Theodosius the
Great for a fault which was not looked upon as very grave
by other priests. He shows* too, in his writings that gold
does not so far excel lead in value as the priestly dignity
transcends the royal power. He speaks in this fashion near
the beginning of his pastoral letter: ** The honor and sub-
limity of bishops, brethren, is beyond all comparison. To
compare them to resplendent kings and diademed princes
would be far more unworthy than to compare the base metal
lead to gleaming gold. For one may see how kings and
princes bow their necks before the knees of priests, and
kiss their right hands so as to believe themselves protected
by their prayers." » - .
Furthermore every Christian king, when he comes to die,
as a poor suppliant the aid of a priest, that he may
heirs prison, may pass from the darkness into the
light, and at the judgment of G*d may appear absolved from
the bondage of his sins* Who, in his last hour, whether
layman or priest, has ever implored the aid of an earthly
king for the salvation of his soul ? And what king or em-
peror is able, by reason of the office he holds, to rescue a
Christian from the power of the devil through holy baptism,
to number him amoog the sons of God, and to fortify him
with the divine unction? Who of them can by his own
words make the body and blood of our Lord, — the greatest
act in the Christian religion? Or who of them possesses
the power of binding and loosing in heaven and on earth?
From all of these considerations it is dear how greatly the
priestly offioe excels m power*
Who of them can ordain m single clerk in the holy Church,
much less depose him tor any fault? For in the ranks of
the Church a greater power is weeded to depose than to
ordain. Bishops may ordain other bishops* bat emu by no
Conflict bctuvfn Gregory I'll <imf fft*n IT 287
means depose them without the authority of the apostolic
see. Who, therefore, of even moderate understanding, can
hesitate to give priests the precedence over kin^s ? Then,
if kings are to be judged by priests for their sins, by whom
should they be judged with belter right than by the Roman
pontiff?
In short, any good Christian whatsoever might far more
properly be considered as a king than might a bad prince;
for the former, seeking the glory of God. strenuously governs
himself, whereas the latter, seeking the things which are his
own and not the things of Ciod, is an enemy to himself and
a tyrannical oppressor of others. Faithful Christians con-
stitute the body of the true king* Christ , evil rulers, that of
the devil. The former rule themselves in the hope that
they will eternally reign with the Supreme Kmperor, but
the sway of the latter ends in their destruction and eternal
damnation with the prince of darkness, who is king over all
the sons of pride.
It is certainly not strange that wicked bishops are of one
mind with a bad king, whom they love and fear for the
honors which they have wrongfully obtained from him.
Such men, simoniacaJly ordaining whom they please, sell
God even Cor a paltry sum. As even the elect are indisso-
lubly united with their Head, so also the wicked constitute a
pertinacious league with him who is the head of evil with
the special purpose of resisting the good But surely we
ought not so much to inveigh against them as to mourn for
them with tears and lamentations, beseeching God Almighty
to snatch them from the snares of Satan in which tiaev arc
field captive, and alter their peril to bring them ml last to
a knowledge of the truth.
We refer to those kings and empciois wno, too
dated by worldly glory, rule not lor God but for themselves. fa
Now, since it belongs to onr office to admonish and encour-
age eve*y o*e as bents the special rank or dignity which he
enjoys, we endeavor, \tj God*s grace, to implant in emperors
and kings and other princes the virtue of humility, that they
r be »bfe to alby t»e gvsts of posora and the floods of
2#8 Readings in European
pride. For we know that mundane glory and worldly cares
usually foster pride, especially in those who are in authority,
and that, in consequence, they forget humility and seek ever
their own glory, and dominion over their brethren. Where-
fore it is well for kings and emperors, particularly when
they grow haughty in spirit and delight in their own pomp,
to discover a means by which they may be humbled and be
brought to realize that the cause of their complacency is
the very thing that they should most fear.
Let them, therefore, diligently consider how dangerous
and how much to be dreaded are the royal and imperial
offices. For in them very few are saved, and those who,
through the mercy of God, do attain to salvation are not so
glorified in the holy Church by the will of the Holy Spirit
as are many of the poor. From the beginning of the world
to this our own day, in the whole extent of recorded history,
we do not find seven emperors or kings whose lives were
as distinguished for piety and as beautified by the gift of
miracles as were those of an innumerable multitude who
despised the world; yet, notwithstanding this, we believe
tfcat many of them achieved salvation through the almighty
Godofmeicy.
What emperor or king was ever honored by miracles
as were St. Martin, St. Anthony, and St. Benedict, not to
mention the apostles and the martyrs? What emperor or
king raited the dead, cleansed lepers, or gave sight to the
blind ? Observe how the holy Church praises and reveres
the emperor Constantine of blessed memory, Theodosius,
Honorius, Charles, and Louis, lovers of justice, promoters
of Christian reli&on, defenders of the churches ; yet it does
not ascribe even to them such resplendent and glorious
miracles. Furthermore, bow many emperors or kings have
chapels or altars dedicated to them by order of the holy
Church, or masses celebrated in tfceir honor?
Let kings and princes fear lest the more they exult in
their $wmy over men in this life, the more they shall be
**bjected to eternal fires; for of them it is written, "The
mighty shall suffer mightily in torment" They must needs
Ci+rtfltct bftwten (Irfg&ry I 77 a «<///< *try //* 289
render account to (rod for as many as they had under their
dominion, and if it be no slight task for *in\ devout person
in a private station to guard his single sou!, how much
labor devolves upon them mho rule over many thousands
of souls ?
Moreover if the judgment of the hol\ Church severely
punishes a sinner for the slaying of one man, what will
become of them who, for the sake of worldly renomn, s^nd
many thousands of souls to death ? Such men, though after
a great slaughter they may s»a\ with their lips, ** We have
sinned," nevertheless inwardly rejoice that they have ex-
tended their so-called fame. They would not undo what
they have done, nor do they grieve that they have sent their
brethren down to Tartarus. And so long as they do not
repent with their whole heart, and refuse to let go what they
have gained or kept through the shedding of human blood,
their repentance fails in the sight of God to bring forth the
true fruit of repentance.
They should, therefore, be in constant apprehension and
should frequently recall to mind that, as we have already
said, from the beginning of the world very few of the mul-
titude of kings in the various realms of the earth are known
to have been holy, whereas in one see alone* the Roman, —
where bishops have succeeded one another in an unbroken
line, — almost a hundred, since the time of St. Peter the
apostle,, are reckoned among the most holy. Why is this*
except that kings and princes of the earth, seduced by wain
glory, prefer, as has been said, the things that are their own
to the things that are spiritual, whereas the bishops of the
Church, despising vain gtoryt prefer to carnal thing? the
things that are of God? The former ptraisfc promptly
offenders against themselves and are indifferent to sinners
against God. The latter pardon readily those who sin
against themselves., but do not spare those who are remiss
toward God, The former, too much bent on earthly achieve-
ments* think slightingly of spiritual ones ; the latter, sedu-
lously meditating upon heavenly things, despise the things
of earth.
290 Ranting* f» Enwfui* History
VII. THE FORMAI SETTLEMENT OF THE QUESTION OF
In the year mi, during the negotiations between
Henry V and Pope Paschal II in regard to the adjust-
ment of the long-standing controversy over investitures,
the pope agreed for a moment that the bishops should
give up all the governmental powers and privileges which
they clearly owed to the emperor. The emperor would
then no longer have his old excuse for meddling in the
elections of the prelates. The opposition was too strong
to permit so revolutionary a settlement to be carried
out, but the document in which the plan is set forth
gives as clear a statement as exists of the situation of
the mediaeval prelate.
11*. A p* &ixk*f Paukaly xrrant of the servants of God, to his beloved
Mm Hetuy **J kis ttuuttors forever :
It b forbidden by the provisions of divine law, and inter-
fey the holy canons, that priests should busy them-
with secular concerns or should attend the public
except to rescue the condemned or bear aid to
tfcoee who arc suffering wrong. Wherefore, also, the apostle
Psaut says, M If ye have judgments of things pertaining to
thu life, set them to judge who are least esteemed in the
church." Nevertheless in portions of your kingdom bishops
and abbots arc so absorbed in secular affairs that they are
obHged regularly to appear at court and to perform military
service, pursuits nureiy, if ever, carried on without plunder,
sacrilege, or arson.
Ministers of the altar are hecoeoe ministers of the king's
court, Inasmuch as they receive cities, duchies, margravates*
nunta> and other thing* wbkb have to do with the king's
service. Hence the customs has grown up, intolerable for
the Church, that bisfcops should not receive ooQsecratk>n
until they have first been invested by the hand of the king.
Conflict beticcen Gregory / Y/ ti «</ //t nt » //* 291
From this have sprung the prevalent vices of stmoniacal
heresy and ambition, at times so strong that episcopal sees
were filled without any previous election. Occasionally
investiture has even taken place while the bishop holding
the office was still alive.
Alarmed by these and many other evils which had come
about, owing chiefly to the method of investiture, our prede-
cessors* the pontiffs Gregory VII and Urban II of blessed
memory, in the councils of the bishops which they frequently
held, condemned investitures by lay hands, and decreed
that those who had obtained churches in this manner should
be deposed and the donors also should be excluded from the
communion, in accordance with that chapter of the Apostolic
Canons which runs : "• If any bishop do employ the powers
of the world to obtain a church, he shall be deposed and
isolated, as well as all who communicate with him." We
also, following in the path of these examples, have coo firmed
their decision in an episcopal council.
So, most beloved son, King HenryT — now through our
sanction, by the grace of God, emperor of the Romans, —
we decree that those royal appurtenances are to be restored
to thee and to thy kingdom which clearly belonged to that
kingdom in the time of Charles, Louis, and of thy other
predecessors. We forbid and prohibit, under penalty of
anathema, any bishop or abbot, present or future, from in-
truding upon these same royal appurtenances ; in which are
included the cities, duchies, margravates, counties, mints*
tolls, market rights, manors,, rights of royal baili&s, aod
rights of the judges of the courts of the hundreds, which
manifestly belong to the king, together with what pertains
to them, the military posts and camps of the kingdom. Nor
shall they henceforth, unless by favor of Hie king, have anght
to do with these royal appurtenances. Neither shall it be
allowable for our successors, who shall follow us in the apos-
tolic chair, to disturb thee or thy kingdom in this matter.
In addition we decree that the churches, with their offer-
ings and hereditary possessions which plainly do not belong
to the kingdom, shall remain free ; as on the day of thy
292 Readings in European History
coronation, before the whole church, thou didst promise
they should be. It is right that the bishops, freed from
secular cares, should take charge of their people and no
longer be absent from their churches ; for, as the apostle
Paul says, let them watch, as men about to render an account
for the souls of the people.
117. CM- The final compromise between the emperor and
pope in regard to investitures, called the "Concordat
of Worms," reads as follows :
I, Bishop Calixtus, servant of the servants of God, do
grant to thee, beloved son Henry, by the grace of God
emperor august of the Romans, permission to hold the elec-
tions of the bishops and abbots of the German realm who
belong to the kingdom, in thy presence, without simony or
show of violence ; with the understanding that, should any
discord arise among those concerned, thou, by the counsel
and judgment of the metropolitan and the suffragan bishops,
shalt give support and aid to the party which appears to
have the better case. Moreover the one elected may receive
the regalia from thee through the scepter, subject to no exac-
tions; and he shall perform his lawful duties to thee for them.
He who is consecrated in other parts of the empire [i.e.
in Burgundy or Italy] shall, within six months and subject
to no exactions, receivet the regalia from thee through the
scepter, and shall perform his lawful duties for them, saving
ail rights which are known to pertain to the Roman Church.
In whatever cases thou shalt make complaint to me and ask
my help, I, as my office requires, will furnish thee aid.
I grant, moreover, to thee, and to all those who are or have
been of thy party during this conflict, a true peace.
<*) Edkt of In the name of the holy and indivisible Trinity, I, Henry,
***** v* by the grace of God emperor august of the RomanSy for the
love of God and of the holy Roman Church and of our lord,
Pope Calktus, and for the cleansing of my soul, do surrender
to God and to the holy apostles of God, Peter and Paul, and
Conflict between Gregory VII and Henry 77 r 293
to the holy Catholic Church, all investiture through the ring
and the staff; and do agree that in all churches throughout
my kingdom and empire there shall be canonical elections
and free consecration.
All the property and regalia of St. Peter which have been
seized upon from the beginning of this conflict until this
day and which I now hold I restore to that same holy Roman
Church ; and will faithfully aid in the restoration of that
which is not in my own hands. The goods also of all other
churches and princes and of every one, whether lay or eccle-
siastical, which have been lost in the struggle, I will restore,
as far as I hold them, according to the counsel of the princes
and the behests of justice. I will also faithfully promote
the restoration of that which I do not hold.
And I grant a true peace to our master, Pope Calixtus,
and to the holy Roman Church, and to all those who are or
have been on its side. In matters where the holy Roman
Church shall seek assistance, I will faithfully render it, and
whensoever it shall appeal to me I will see that justice is
done.
All this has been done by the consent and counsel of the
princes, whose names are .here added : Adalbert, archbishop
of Mayence ; F., archbishop of Cologne; H., bishop of Ratis-
bon; O., bishop of Bamberg; B., bishop of Speyer; H., of
Augsburg; G., of Utrecht; Ou., of Constance ; E., abbot of
Fulda ; Henry, duke ; Frederick, duke ; S., duke ; Bertolf,
duke ; Margrave Teipold ; Margrave Engelbert ; Godfrey,
count palatine ; Otto, count palatine ; Berengar, count.
I, Frederick, archbishop of Cologne and archchancelior,
have ratified this.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
General Outline: B£MONT and MONOD, pp. 286-300; BRYCE, A. Refer-
Chapter X, pp. 153-166; HENDKfcSON, Short History of Germany,
PP- 58-75-
Gregory's Character and Views: EMERTON, pp. 239-246; TOUT,
pp. 124-127.
Gregory's Letter to William the Conqueror : COLBY, pp. 36-38.
294 Readies in European History
Minority of Henry IV: EMERTOX, pp. 232-239; HENDERSON, Ger-
many in the Middle Ages, pp. 183-189 ; TOUT, pp. 120-124.
Tbe Straggle between Pope and Emperor: EMERTON, pp. 246-
259; HENDERSON, Germany in the Middle Ages, pp. 189-210; TOUT,
pp. 127-136.
Henry IV's Last Years: EMERTON, pp. 260-266; HENDERSON,
Germany in tke Middle Ages, pp. 21 1-217 ; TOUT, pp. 136-141.
Henry V: EMERTON, pp. 266-269; HENDERSON, Germany in the
Middle Ages* pp. 217-227; TOUT, pp. 141-15°-
A Aid* MONTALEMBERT, Monks cj the West, Vols. V and VII.
STEPHENS, Hildtbrand and his Times. (Epochs of Church History
Series.)
GREGOROVIUS, Vol. IV, Book VII, Chapters IV-VII ; Book VIII,
Chapters I-II.
MILMAN, Vol. Ill, Book VII, Chapters I-V; Vol. IV, Book VIII,
Chapters I-1II.
HENDERSON, Select Documents. Contains some documents not in-
dnded in the present chapter.
MATHEWS, Select Mediaval Documents, pp, 35-68. Examples of
the documents in the original Latin.
Sec also references to FISHER, GREENWOOD, DOLLINGER, under sec-
tion B ID Chapter XII, above.
MEYER YON KNONAU, Htinrifk IV, Vols. I-II I, 1890-1900. This
dcvwB to 1084 atnd belongs to the series of the Jahrbucher der
tken Ges£k*€hte (see above, p. 261).
Die P*Mi»*tik im Zeitalttr Gregors VII, Leipzig, 1894.
An aocooat of the abundant political discussions of the time.
MARTENS, Greffrr VII, sein Liben und Wirken, 2 vols., Leipzig,
DELARC, S*mt Grtgmn VII et I* Jttferme de ?£glist ax XI* siecle,
3 «*L, P*iia, 1889.
See abo tfce worits of RICHTER, LA.MPRECHT, HAUCK, DESDNER,
aad LAKCMC, referred to above, pp. 262 and 264 s?.
Aaaoog the sources for this period a*e tne continuation of the Chron-
icle of HERMANN OF REICHKNAU and, abow ali, the polished writer
LAMBERT op HmasntLD (see above, p. 264).
EK tEHARD OF AD RACH, ff***tr»at CfrvmOe (see above, pp. 266^^.),
Conflict between Gregory I'll and Ifenry Ilr 295
:, Bibliotheca rerum G£rmani£aru.m9 Vol. II. Contains the letters
o£ Gregory VII. There are several lives of Gregory VII (see Pott hast,
PP- I35° S4$')' Among these the most important is perhaps l~ita Ifeix-
rici IV imperatoris. (Octavo edition of the Momtmenta, and Geschicht-
sckrci&eri Vol. L.)
JLibelli tie lite tmpgratorum et fontijiciem saeculis AV ft XII conscript
3 vols., 1891 sqq- Published in the Afonumenta* and contains the pam-
phlets and treatises which were called forth by the troubles between
pope and emperor.
CHAPTER XIV
THE HOHBNSTAUFEN EMPERORS AND THE POPES
I. THE GERMAN CITIES BEGIN TO TAKE A HAND IN
POLITICS
The German towns first become conspicuous in politi-
cal affairs in the twelfth century. We find them par-
ticipating in the struggles of the time, fighting their
bishops or neighboring lords, or even the emperor him-
self. They begin also to have their own annals, in which
the local events are given a prominent place.
No German town was more important than Cologne,
with its great commerce and its influential archbishop.
The following passages from The Greater Annals of
Cologne, the first part of which was probably written
in the form in which we have it about 1175, give a
vivid picture of the pride of the burghers and their
dubious relations with the emperor.
lie. Hffw Remembering his dislike for the people of Cologne, the
emperor got together a great army of Alemannians and Bava-
riaus and of Saxons, under their duke Lothaire, with the
purpose of reducing to shame and insignificance this most
flourishing among the cities of France and Germany. He
first attempted to take and destroy the fortified town of
Deutz, so that by stationing a garrison at this point he
could cut off the people of Cologne from receiving any-
thing by water. As soon as the people of Cologne heard
of this, they called together under their standard great
numbers of their most valiant young men, crossed the
296
The ffo/itTfistoitfett Emperors arttt the £*&pcs 297
Rhine with a strong force of bowmen, and, drawing them-
selves up in battle array, awaited the attack of the emperor
with stout hearts. When the emperor observed their
bravery he took counsel with his followers and determined
to draw out the battle until evening, when the enemy, sup-
posing his troops to be worn out, would begin to withdraw
and so be the more easily overcome.
In the meanwhile the cavaliers of both sides had a free
field and rode against one another as if they were taking
part in a spectacle ; but when a great cloud of arrows
came showering in from the side of the Cologne people the
knights of the enemy fell dead or wounded. There was in
the emperor's army a corps whose armor was made of horn
and so could not be pierced by iron. When these removed
their armor, however, in order to get a little air, for it was
very hot, they were immediately covered with arrows, and
all but six fell on the spot.
When the emperor saw that the enemy did not give way
but steadily held its own, he decided that he would yield
the field, since the position proved ill chosen, and accord-
ingly retreated that night behind the Wagenburg. The next
day he directed his army against Bonn and Jiilich, two forti-
fied places belonging to Cologne, and plundered and burned
everything within reach.
On his return, Archbishop Frederick, Duke Gottfried of
Lorraine, Henry of Zutphen, and Count Theodoric of Are
intercepted him with great bravery, but in vain, for some of
the most distinguished on their side — Count Gerhard of
Jiilich and Lambert of Mulenarke — were taken prisoners,
and Eberhard of Gandernol, a valorous man, was killed. But
when Count Frederick of Westphalia and his brother Henry
came up with heavy reinforcements the emperor was forced
to give way and barely escaped the pursuing enemy by
flight.
For the third time the combatants met in a great engage-
ment on the plain of Andernach, nine miles from Cologne,
and here the people of Cologne won the victory, as is their
wont. The emperor had under his standard a very strong
298 Readings in European History
force, footmen as well as cavalry, made up of Saxons, Fran-
conians, Alemannians, and Bavarians, as well as valorous
knights from Burgundy. He appeared before Andernach
with this mighty host, but proposed to fight the battle with
the help of his dukes, for he himself took no part, but
awaited the outcome of the conflict at a little distance.
Then appeared the ranks of Cologne in battle array, far
fewer in number but nowise inferior in bravery, under the
leadership of their duke and archbishop, Frederick, and of
the former Duke Henry of Lorraine, Count Theodoric of
Are, Count Henry of Kessel, and others equally valorous
and well versed in war. In the first onset Duke Henry,
with a small detachment, rushed upon a far superior mass
of the enemy, but was forced to retreat to his camp.
Then amid a frightful din of trumpets both armies, eager
for the conflict, set upon each other, and for a long time
the struggle remained undecided. At last the chosen youth
of Cologne, in a wild rage, resolved either to conquer or die,
and began to slash about them with fearful effect, so that
the enemy was compelled to flee. Then Count Theodoric,
a brave knight to whom the victory was chiefly due, since he
had pressed forward with his followers against the enemy
like a lion, began a fearful slaughter on all sides.
Many free men of knightly rank were killed or taken pris-
oners^ Duke Bertolf of Carinthia, a faithful adherent of the
emperor, was captured and taken in charge by Count The-
odoric himself. None of the leaders on the side of Cologne
were either killed or captured except Count Henry of Kessel,
an excellent man, who, through the turpitude of his follow-
ers, fell under the horses* hoofs and perished. He was hon-
orably buried in Cologne near the cathedral of St. Peter.
In describing the events of the year 1 187, toward the
end of the reign of Frederick Barbarossa, The Greater
Annals of Cologne report aiK>ther incident which serves
to indicate that no great degree of mutual confidence
existed as yet between the city and the emperor.
The Hohenstanfen Emperors and the Popes 299
In the bishopric of Cologne there was fearful apprehension. Rumor in
The rumor had spread that the emperor wished to lead an c°k>P»«tha*
army through the territory of Cologne, ostensibly to aid the
French king, but really with the purpose of surrounding was about
and laying siege to the city. He had already constructed a ^e*c^fk
bridge of boats and planks over the Moselle in order that
his troops might cross. Excited by this, the townspeople put
the moat in order and set to work to construct new gates.
The archbishop supplied his people with guards and provi-
sions and saw to the walls and moats of his various towns.
Now the archbishop was not on especially good terms
with the emperor, since he seemed rather to incline to the
side of the pope, who was hostile to the imperial party; and
it was this suspicion of the emperor's disfavor that led the
people to accept his rumored plans as true. Nevertheless
it is clear that the emperor was not at this time planning
to attack Cologne, and consequently he was much irritated
when he learned of the excitement and preparations.
On the day of the Assumption he held a diet at Worms
and complained, in the presence of the princes, of the con-
duct of the archbishop of Cologne and the people of that
city, who had dared to bar his way through a part of his
realm and had circulated such a shameful rumor about him
throughout the Roman Empire. In consequence of this he
had caused the Rhine to be blocked since the festival of
St. James, so that the people of Cologne could not procure
the grain and wine which usually reached them by river.
At this time a mighty feud prevailed between Bishop
Baldwin of Utrecht and Count Otto of Geldero over Veluwe.
Fire and murder raged, and it was said that all this happened
with, the approbation of the emperor, for during die feud
neither of the parties engaged could bear aid to the people
of Cologne, nor could any ships pass up the river.
The excellent annals of Liege throw much %ht on
the troubles which were constantly arising between the
townspeople and their bishop or the neighboring secular
Readings in European History
119. Situa-
tion of the
towns in
t&e Nether-
lands.
(Prom
Reiser's
Annals of
8L James In
1203.)
lords, commonly over matters of feudal dues and feudal
dependence.
In this year [1203] the burghers of Huy rose against
their bishop [of Liege] on account of a certain due which
he had claimed in an unjust manner. They took possession
of the apparatus for carrying on a siege, which was coming
by ship from Namur. The vessel they dragged overland to
the market place ; they barricaded the entrance and exit to
the burg. But soon they repented and all betook themselves
to Liege, where they rendered satisfaction barefooted to the
bishop in the presence of the clergy and people.
A bitter feud broke out between Duke Henry of Louvain
and Count Louis of Los over a certain due paid by the town
of St. Trond. This town belonged to the bishop of Metz ;
he had taken it from the count of Los and given it to the
duke. But the people of St. Trond rose in opposition and
would not yield to the duke. Now Count Louis of Los
proceeded to grant all his towns, namely, Montenaken,
Brusthem, Hallut, and all the land he controlled, to [the
church of] St. Lambert. He offered all these at the altar
of the church as a legal gift before clergy and people, and
iti the presence of ths bishop, Duke Henry of Ardennerland
and Count Henry of Moha. He then received the lands
again from the hand of the bishop as a fief. The bishop
took possession on St. John's day of the aforementioned
towns and the lands.
As the harvest approached the duke [of Louvain] sum-
moned his forces and proposed to lay siege to the town of
St. Trond. He set up his tent in the village of Landen and
remained a week there, destroyed the crops in the region in
a manner hard to believe, and assembled a great number of
soldiers. The count of Los, however, went to the bishop,
whose man he had lately become, and asked his help. He also
got together from his own lands and elsewhere heavy reen-
forcements. The bishop ordered his dependents — knights,
burghers, and those of his household — to defend him, and
ordered the count to be at a village called Waremme on a
The Hohenstaitfcn Emperors and the Popes 301
certain day. They all came together accordingly and took
their station in the said village. There they awaited the
outcome, hoping rather for war than peace. In the mean-
time negotiations were carried on for a week at a place
between Montenaken and Landen, but in spite of the inter-
vention of the clergy, who tried to bring about an adjust-
ment, no peaceful settlement could be reached. At last
the count of Namur intervened and effected an armistice,
which the others had been unable to arrange.
[During the succeeding years there was no end of dis- New troubles
order, due mainly to feudal complications. Finally, in 1212,] m, 1212-
on the ist of May the burghers of Liege sallied forth to taken and
fight Duke Henry of Brabant. But the next day they plundered,
returned in disorder and fright. The third day the town
was invested and immediately taken and pillaged. On the
fourth and fifth days the enemy robbed the people of all
their gold, silver, and everything in the way of valuables ;
women and girls were carried off to the enemy's camp
and many burghers taken prisoners. On the sixth day the
burghers who were left concluded a peace, but a miserable
one; on the seventh day the army withdrew from Liege; on
the eighth it laid siege to Musal, but did not take the town.
Waleffe, on the contrary, was turned over deserted to the
duke. A week after Ascension day the army of the duke re-
turned home. The count of Namur demanded some security
that the duke would keep the peace, for he feared the duke's
power. The bishop kept in hiding with a few followers.
The next year, however, fortune favored the people
of Liege, who under their bishop gained a glorious vic-
tory over the duke of Brabant and his army. After
a very full account of the affair, our chronicler closes
his report of the year with peaceful news of progress.
This account of the year must come to aa end But I Reference
will first tell of three useful products which we have discov- *° coal-
ered and which are well worth mentioning. I mean the
marl, which is good for enriching the soil ; the black earth,
3O2 Readings in European History
which is much like charcoal and is very useful to smiths
and other workers as well as to the poor people for making
fires ; lastly, lead, which has been found in several places
near us.
II. OTTO OF FREISIXG'S ACCOUNT OF THE ITALIAN CITIES
Otto, bishop of Freising and uncle of Frederick
Barbarossa, may be safely assigned the highest rank
among the historians of the twelfth century. In writing
his great Chronicle, or History of the World, he doubt-
less allowed himself to be too much influenced by
Augustine's City of God and by the gloomy theory of
Augustine's pupil Orosius,1 who set out to discover all
the evil he could in the past ; but Otto nevertheless ex-
hibits a good deal of critical ability at times and shows
really remarkable philosophical insight in some of his
reflections. It would tax the skill of a modern historian
better to state the conditions in Italy at the advent of
Frederick Barbarossa than does Otto in the passage
given below. This is taken from his Deeds of Frederick*
which he undertook after the completion of his Chronicle;
but he lived only long enough to present the first four
years of his nephew's reign. In response to a request
which he sent to the emperor for information in regard
to his career, he received a letter which opens as follows :
120. Em- Frederick, by the grace of God Emperor of the Romans and
at all times Augmenter of the realm, to his wdl-beloved
Uncle Otto^ with his favor and best wishes:
The Chronicle which you have affectionately sent to us
and which your Wisdom has compiled, or rather brought out
of dark oblivion into luminous harmony, we have received
1 See above, p. 58.
The Hohcnstanfcn Empewrs and the Popes 303
with extraordinary pleasure : we hope after the fatigues of
war to refresh ourselves with it from time to time, and
by means of the noble deeds of the emperors rouse our-
selves to similar acts of virtue.
As to what we have done since the opening of our reign,
that we would gladly state briefly for your information were
it not that in comparison with the deeds of earlier times
wrought by the famous men of the past, ours seem but
shadows of deeds. But since we are aware that your re-
markable ability enables you to exalt humble things and to
write much about unimportant matters, we consent to nar-
rate in a few words the little that we have done in the
Roman Empire during a period of five years. In so doing
we rely more upon your flattering presentation than upon
any merit of our own.1 . . ,
The extraordinary account of the Italian cities as they
existed in the middle of the twelfth century, which Otto
of Freising gives, shows that they already exhibited
many of the traits which distinguished them in later
centuries. Of their bad habits none is more striking
than their readiness to call in foreigners to aid them in
settling their perpetual broils. Milan, it will be noted,
had already begun the career of conquest, which was later
to make her one of the most important states of Italy.
[The Lombards after their arrival in Italy] gradually laid 121
aside their fierce barbarian customs and intermarried with
the natives. Thus their children have derived from die
mothers* race, and from the character of the country and the
climate, something of Roman culture and civilization, and
retain the elegance and refinement of Latin speech and
manner.
In the government of the cities and in the management
of civil affairs they also imitate the skill of the ancient
1 Then follows the emperor's dry summary, in four or five pages, of
the prcrkftas five years.
304
Readings in European History
Reasons for
the wealth
ind inde-
pendence of
the I-ombard
towns.
Attitude of
the towns
toward their
emperor.
Romans. Furthermore they love liberty so well that, to
guard against the abuse of power, they choose to be ruled
by the authority of consuls rather than by princes. They
are divided into three classes, namely, 4t captains," vavasors,
and the people. To prevent the growth of class pride, the
consuls are chosen from each class in turn, and, for fear that
they may yield to the lust of power, they are changed nearly
every year.
It has come to pass that almost the whole country belongs
to the cities, each of which forces the inhabitants of her
territory to submit to her sway. One can hardly find, within
a wide circuit, a man of rank or importance who does not
recognize the authority of his city. ... In order that there
shall be no lack of forces for tyrannizing over their neigh-
bors, the cities stoop to bestow the sword-belt and honorable
rank upon youths of inferior station, or even upon laborers
in despised and mechanical trades, who, among other peoples,
are shunned like the pest by those who follow the higher
pursuits. To this practice it is due that they surpass all
other cities of the world in riches and power; and the long-
continued absence of their ruler across the AJps has further
contributed to their independence.
In one respect they are unmindful of their ancient nobil-
ity and betray their barbarian origin ; for, although they
boast of living under law, they do not obey the law. They
rarely or never receive their ruler submissively, although it is
their duty to show him willing and respectful obedience.
They do not obey the decrees that he issues by virtue of his
legal powers, unless they are made to feel his authority by
the presence of his great army. Although, in a civilized
state, the citizens should submit to law, and only an enemy
should be coerced by force, yet they often greet with hostil-
ity him whom they ought to receive as their own gracious
prince, when he comes to demand his own.
This situation brings double evil on the state. The prince's
attention is occupied with gathering together an army to
subdue the townsmen, and the citizens, though forced to
obey the prince, waste their resources in the struggle. The
The Hohenstauftn Emperors and the Popes 305
fault, in such a case, lies wholly in the insolence of the
people; the prince, who has acted under necessity, should
be absolved before God and man.
Among all these cities Milan has become the leading one, Gna
... It must be regarded as more powerful than any of the Mibfl-
others, in the first place, on account of its size and its multi-
tude of brave men, and, secondly, because it has brought
the two neighboring cities of Como and Lodi under its sway.
Led on by Fortune's smiles, as is the way of this fleeting
world, Milan has become so puffed up with pride that she
has dared not only to incur the enmity of all her neighbors,
but, fearing not even the majesty of the emperor himself,
she has recently courted his anger. How this came about
I shall presently relate. But first I wish to say something
of the prerogatives of the empire.
There is an ancient custom, which has existed ever since
the Roman power devolved upon the Franks and which has
been preserved until our own times, that when the kings wish
to visit Italy they should send officials of their household
ahead to go through the various cities and towns and demand
what is due to the royal treasury, called by the inhabitants
fodrum. The usual result is that when the ruler himself
arrives, most of those cities, towns, and castles which have
ventured either to refuse to pay the tax altogether, or have
paid it only in part, are razed to the ground as a warning to
posterity.
Another right which is said to be derived from ancient
custom is that when the emperor enters Italy all magistracies
and offices are suspended and all things are regulated accord-
ing to his will and the decisions of men skilled in the law.
Even the Italian judges are said to recognize his supreme
jurisdiction, to the extent of assigning to him for his own use
and that of his army all that he needs of whatsoever the land
produces, scarcely excepting the oxen and seed necessary for
the cultivation of the land.
The emperor camped for five days, it is said, on the plain
of Roncaglia and held an assembly there, to which came
princes, consuls, and notables from all the cities, Many
306
Readings in European History
The em-
peror holds
an assembly
in the plain
of Roncaglia
(December,
"54)-
Frederick's
ire aroused
Milan-
matters came up for discussion in consequence of the com-
plaints that were made from this quarter and from that
The bishop of Asti and William, marquis of Monteferrat, — a
noble and great man and almost the only baron in Italy that
has kept himself independent of the cities, — both made
grave complaints of the insolence of the people of Asti, and
the marquis complained also of the people of Chieri.
The consuls from Como and Lodi also gave accounts cal-
culated to draw tears of their long-endured sufferings under
Milan's oppression, and this in the presence of the consuls
from Milan, Obert de Orto and Gerard Niger. The emperor,
who wished to visit the region of northern Italy and look
into these matters, kept these two consuls with him to con-
duct him through the Milanese territory and help in the
choice of convenient places to camp. There came also to
this assembly ambassadors from the Genoese, who had
recently returned la^en with the spoils of the Saracens
from Spain, where they had conquered the well-known cities
of Almeria and Lisbon, famed for the manufacture of silk
stuffs. They brought to the emperor lions, ostriches, par-
rots, and other valuable gifts.
Frederick, wishing, as we have said, to see something of
northern Italy, led his troops forth from Roncaglia and set
up his camp in the territory of Milan. The Milanese con-
suls aforementioned led him about, however, through arid
regions where provisions were neither to be found nor pro-
cured at any price, and the emperor was thereby so angered
that he determined to turn his arms against Milan, first
ordering the consuls to return home. The whole army, dis-
tressed by great floods of rain, was so exasperated by the
double discomfort of hunger and bad weather that they did
everything in their power to increase the emperor's irritation
against the consuls aforesaid. Another thing which contrib-
uted not a little to his indignation was the fact that the
Milanese not only refused to permit the towns that Milan
had destroyed to be rebuilt, but, they insulted his noble and
upright character by offering him money to bribe him to
condone their villany.
The Hohcnstaiifcn Emperors and the Popes 307
III. STRUGGLE OVER THE THRONE BETWEEN PHILIP
AND OTTO
In the year of our Lord 1198 there arose among the 122.
German princes a great feud and a most terrific struggle
over the throne. To begin with, the archbishops of Cologne
and Treves claimed that the choice of a king belonged of elected.
right to them; and after taking counsel at Andernach with
Duke Bernhard of Saxony and with other bishops, counts,
and many nobles, they gave notice of an assembly to be
held in Cologne, on Oatli Sunday,1 to which was also sum-
moned Duke Bertolf of Zahringen, whom they thought of
choosing for king.
So few came to the assembly that it was impossible to Evidently
cany out their plan ; at the same time they received news ^ «*"*f
that the eastern margraves, together with Duke Bernhard of fe^rfdtect
Saxony, the archbishop of Magdeburg^ and other princes of ors existed
Upper Germany, had met at Erfurt to choose the new king. at ***** ***"**
Thereupon they sent Bishop Hermann of Miinster and other
men of note to the assembled princes to beg them not to
make any choice in their absence but to meet with them
at some place to be agreed upon, in order that they might
together choose a worthy emperor and protector of the
Church, acceptable to God.
When the messengers arrived at the assembly, they learned pfafip
that the princes had already agreed upon Duke Philip, the d***** **
[latej emperor's brother, and chosen him as king. So they
returned, and reported what had happened to their bishops,
who were thereby highly incensed, for no king bad
before been chosen in Saxony, nor by these princes.
It is, nevertheless, certain that Duke Philip sent
gers to the archbishop of Cologne, offering him moch and
promising still more if he would ratify his election. Tbis
the bishop absolutely refused to do, for he felt that k would
be neither safe for him nor honorable ; and, after holding
1 Namely, March 1st, the day on which a portion of the chord* service,
begins with the word octtli.
308
Readings in European History^
Philip
assumes
the crown.
Otto takes
Aix-Ia-Cha-
peBe and is
tbere.
a consultation, he chose as king, Otto^e Pious, count of
Poitou, son of the late duke Henry [tji^Lion] of Saxony.1
Duke Philip, driven by the necessity of strengthening his
cause to seek help on every side, succeeded by means of gifts
in gaining the support "of most of the princes. He made
himself master of the royal towns, had all the people do him
homage, assumed the title of king, and, on the Sunday after
Easter, entered Worms wearing the crown. In Lower Ger-
many, he sought to gain the favor of the nobles of Lorraine,
among whom Walrav, son of Duke Henry of Limburg, came
over to his side and was invested by him with a royal castle
called Berinstein, as a fief. . . .
At Cologne about this time, a star was visible at about
the ninth hour,2 which was considered by all as a good
omen for their king who was chosen there three days after
the star appeared. Hastening to Aix-la-Chapelle — the
royal residence — to-lfe consecrated, he found the city hos-
tile to him and garrisoned with the troops of Duke Philip
under the above-mentioned Walrav. He undertook the
siege of the town and with great effort and expense brought
it to submission. Upon his entry he was consecrated by
Archbishop Adolph of Cologne and placed upon the throne.
Even Walrav was taken into his good graces and now
received from him, as a fief, and as a token of reconcilia-
tion, the same castle of Berinstein with which he had already
been invested by Duke Philip. The archbishop, however,
who conceived this to be a menace to his territory, con-
quered and destroyed the castle. Walrav, estranged thereby
from King Otto, returned to his allegiance to Duke Philip*
and, in all the wretched confusion to which Germany now
fell a prey, he was an instigator and leader.
Toward the beginning of October, King Philip got to-
gether a very large army and, with the King of Bohemia
and his other allies, took up a position on the river Moselle,
1 Otto had been given Poitou as a fief by his nude, Richard the
.Lion-hearted of England.
* Between three and four o'clock in the afternoon.
The Hohenstaitfon Emperors and the Popes 309
with the intention of moving into Lower Germany and devas-
tating the bishopric of Cologne. King Otto and the arch-
bishop of Cologne also gathered together their adherents and
encamped on the opposite bank of the river. The citizens
of Cologne came too, in well armed and well manned boats.
For some time the outcome seemed doubtful for neither Philip's
side dared to attack the other. Finally, King Philip and tr°°psdevas-
his followers took courage and attempted to effect a crossing,
while the forces from Lorraine made a stand against them
in the river itself. The battle continued until nightfall with
varying fortunes. The following morning the Lorrainers
retired to their camp, thinking it unwise to measure their
own small forces against the innumerable host of the enemy,
who immediately crossed the river. They gave the men of
Lorraine, who prepared to make a stand at Andernach, no
opportunity for an engagement, but laid waste the land far
and wide with fire and sword. Rentagen and Bonn, with
many outlying villages, were burned to the ground, and there
was no one to stay the ravages of the enemy, for every one
fled before them to the most strongly fortified places.
The atrocities which they committed in their brutal inso-
lence are too revolting to relate. I will describe but a single
case among many, which will furnish some notion of the rest, troops
A nun whom they had stripped of her clothing was covered
with honey and rolled in feathers ; in this horrible condition
she was placed on a horse with her face toward the beast's
tail. When they had paraded this ridiculous, or rather,
lamentable, spectacle for several days the matter came to
King Philip's ears. He, in holy indignation, had all wfao
had taken any part in the affair drowned in boiling water.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
General Summary: ADAMS, CrvMsaA**, pp. 247-257; Mcnuta, A.
pp. 184-202.
Conditions in Germany under the BoheastaB&as : B£MONT and
160NOD, pp. 479-487.
Frederick Barbarossa : B£MONT and Mo NOD, pp. 301-317 ; BRYCE,
Chapter XI, pp. 167-18 1 ; EMERTON, pp. 282-312 ; HENDERSON,
Readings in European History
Germany in the Middle Ages, pp. 246-290 ; Short History of Germany,
pp. 78-90 ; TOUT, pp. 245-273.
Peace of Venice: HENDERSON, Historical Documents, pp. 425-430.
Henry VI: B£MONT and MONOD, pp. 319-321; BRYCE, Chapter
XII I, first part, pp. 205-207; EMERTON, pp. 3 14-316; HENDERSON, Ger-
many in the Middle Ages, pp. 291-317; Short History of Germany,
pp. 90-92; TOUT, pp. 3°4-312-
Innocent III and the Imperial Election: BE"MONT and MONOD,
pp. 321-325; EMERTON, pp. 316-332; HENDERSON, Germany in the
Middle Ages, pp. 318-337; TOUT, pp. 3i3~335-
The Dispute with King John: COLBY, pp. 72-73; HENDERSON,
Historical Documents, pp. 43°-432 » LEE» PP- IS5-I^4-
Frederick n : BEMONT and MONOD, pp. 325~335 5 BRYCE, Chapter
XIII, latter part, pp. 207-211 ; EMERTON, pp. 343~3S2; HENDERSON,
Germany in the Middle Ages, pp. 337-40! \ Short History of Germany,
pp. 92-101 ; TOUT, pp. 358-392.
The Imperial Claims of the Eohenstaufens : BRYCE, Chapter XII,
pp. 182-203.
B Adds- BALZANI, The Popes and the Hohenstaufens (Epochs of Church
rim*/ read- History).
*V *J B KINGTON-OUPHANT, History of Frederick II, 2 vols. Rather old,
but the most complete account in English.
FISHER, Medieval Empire, referred to above ; also GREGOROVIUS,
VoL IV, Book VII, Chapters III-VII ; Vol. V, Book IX, Chapters
I-VI; MILMAN, Vol. IV, Book VII, Chapters VII and IX; Book
IX, Chapters I-V; VoL V, Book X; NEWMAN, pp. 511-518; and
MATHEWS, pp. 68-163, for some of the documents.
C. Materiel* In the great series' of fahrbufher der deutschen Geschichte (see
above, p. 261) the following relate to the period under consideration :
BERNHARDI, Lothar von Supplinburg, 1879; and Konrad III, 1883;
TOECHE, Kaiser Heinrich VI, 1867; WINKELMANN, Philipp von
Sckwtthen und Otto IV von Braunschweig, 2 vols., 1873-1878; and
Kaiser Friedrich II, 2 vols. (to 1233), 1889-1897. The volumes on
Frederkk Barbarossa have not yet appeared.
jASTROW-WlNTER, Deutsche Geschichte im Zeitalter der ffohen-
staxfen, Vol. I, 1897,
LANGEN, Geschichte der romischen Kirche^ Vol. IV (von Gregor VII
bis Irmocenz III), 1893.
LAMPRRCHT, Deutsche Geschichte, Vol. III.
The Hohenstaufen Emperors and the Popes 3 1 1
BLONDEL, Etude sur la politique de Vempercur Frederic II en Alle-
magne^ 1892. Excellent.
ZELLER, VEmpereur Frederic II et la chute de P empire germanique
du moyen dge> 1885.
LOSERTH, Geschichte des spateren Mittelalters, 1903. An admirable
general account of the thirteenth and fourteenth centuries, with remark-
able bibliographies.
OTTO OF FREISING'S Deeds of Frederick was continued after his The sources
death by his secretary, RAHEWIN, and carried down to 1160. (In
the octavo edition of the Monumenta, and in the Geschichtschreiber^
Vols. LIX-LX.)
Gesta Frederici limperatoris in Lombard^ auctore rive Mediotanensi,
edited by Holder-Egger, 1892. An Italian account of Frederick's
invasions.
Greater Annals of Cologne (see above, p. 296). (In the octavo edition,
and the Gesckichtschreiber, Vol. LXIX.) Comes down to 1257 ; of great
importance for the Hohenstaufen period.
Ckronicon Urspergense (to 1229). (In the octavo editioa.) Brief,
but excellent for opening of thirteenth century.
The Chronicle of Arnold of Lubeck^ an abbot who died in 1212, is
especially valuable for the end of the twelfth and the opening of the
thirteenth century. In Book IV, Chapter XIX, there is a very amusing
letter written by Henry VPs chancellor to his old teacher, narrating his
experiences in Italy. He describes Virgil's achievements as a magician,
and exhibits the direst confusion in his classical reminiscences. For
example, he discovers both Parnassus and Olympus in Italy. (In the
Monument and in the Geschlcktschreiber^ Vol. LXXL)
The Libelli de lite (mentioned above, p. 295), are useful for this period.
HuiLLAiD-BR^HOLLES, ffistoria diplomatico. Frieterid II, 6vob^
1861 . A collection of the documents relating to the reign of Fradeticfc,
with a volnme which serves as an introduction.
JAFFE'S Regfsta pontificum, referred to above, p. 85, doses *ftfc "9&.
A similar work, beginning with the pontificate of Innocent HI, has. faeea
prepared for the thirteenth century by Potthast, 2 vois^ Beitia.
Since the opening of the Vatican library to sctafers, the Freacfe
school at Rome and other learned bodies have undertaken a aeries o€
publications of sources relating to the papacy. For an excefla* accovat
of these enterprises, see an article by Professor HasJo&s ia tfee Ameriom
Historical Review, Voi IL
CHAPTER XV
THE CRUSADES
I. POPE URBAN'S ADDRESS AT CLERMONT
We have four reports of Urban's address, which were
drawn up by those who were apparently actually present
at the Council of Clermont. One of the most interesting
of these is that given by Robert the Monk, of Rheims,
in the opening chapters of his history of the First Cru-
sade. This was written toward twenty-five years after
Urban's visit to France and does not claim to give more
than a general idea of the pope's arguments.
]23.Uit>aB's In the year of our Lord's Incarnation one thousand
an<j ninety-five, a great council was celebrated within the
bounds of Gaul, in Auvergne, in the city which is called
ClenuoGt. Over this Pope Urban II presided, with the
Roman bishops and cardinals. This council was a famous
one on account of the concourse of both French and German
bisbops, and of princes as well. Having arranged the mat-
ters relating to tie Church, the lord pope went forth into a
certain spacious plain, for no building was large enough to
hold all the people. The pope then, with sweet and per-
suasive eloquence, addressed those present in words some-
tiling like the following, saying :
" Ob, race of Franks, race from across the mountains,
race beloved and chosen by God, — as is clear from many of
your works, — set apart from ail other nations by the situa-
tion of your country as well as by your Catholic faith and
the honor which you render to the holy Church : to you our
3*2
The Crusades 313
discourse is addressed, and for you our exhortations are
intended. We wish you to know what a grievous cause
has led us to your country, for it is the imminent peril
threatening you and all the faithful which has brought us
hither.
"From the confines of Jerusalem and from the city of
Constantinople a grievous report has gone forth and has
repeatedly been brought to our ears ; namely, that a race
from the kingdom of the Persians, an accursed race, a race
wholly alienated from God, * a generation that set not their
heart aright, and whose spirit was not steadfast with God,'
has violently invaded the lands of those Christians and has
depopulated them by pillage and fire. They have led away
a part of the captives into their own country, and a part
they have killed by cruel tortures. They have either de-
stroyed the churches of God or appropriated them for the
rites of their own religion. They destroy the altars, after
having defiled -them with their urtcleanness. . . . The
kingdom of the Greeks is now dismembered by them and
has been deprived of territory so vast in extent that it could
not be traversed in two months* time.
"On whom, therefore, is the labor of avenging these
wrongs and of recovering this territory incianibent, if not
upon you, — you, upon whom, above all other nations, God
has conferred remarkable glory in arms, great courage, bodily
activity, and strength to humble the heads of those who
resist you ? Let the deeds of your ancestors encourage
you and incite your minds to manly adb jeveoaeots : — tiae
glory and greatness of King Charlemagne, and of IBS stite
Louis, and of your other monarchs, wi*o have dcMAOf&d
the kingdoms of the Turks and have extended fee swa? tit
the holy Church over lands previously pagan, Ijet tfae fecfy
sepulcher of our Lord and Saviour, wMdfc is possessed by tfe
unclean nations, especially arouse you, and the boiy p&aoes
which are now treated with igaoeaaay and iiievetwutly pol-
luted witii the filf& of the unclean. Oil, most valiant soldiers
and descendants of invincible ancestors, do not degenerate,
but recall the valor of y©**r progenitors.
314
Readings in European History
The French
urged to find
excessive OI"
population.
" But if you are hindered by love of children, parents, or
remember what the Lord says in the Gospel, t He that
loveth father or mother more than me is not worthy of me.'
4 Every one that hath forsaken houses, or brethren, or sisters,
or father, or mother, or wife, or children, or lands, for my
name's sake, shall receive an hundredfold, and shall inherit
everlasting life.' Let none of your possessions retain you,
nor solicitude for your family affairs. For this land which
you inhabit, shut in on all sides by the seas and surrounded
by the mountain peaks, is too narrow for your large popula-
tion; nor does it abound in wealth; and it furnishes scarcely
food enough for its cultivators. Hence it is that you mur-
der and devour one another, that you wage war, and that
very many among you perish in intestine strife.1
" Let hatred therefore depart from among you, let your
quarrels end, let wars cease, and let all dissensions and con-
troversies slumber. Enter upon the road to the Holy Sepul-
cber; wrest that land from the wicked race, and subject it
to yourselves. That land which, as the Scripture says,
' floweth with milk and honey * was given by God into the
power of the children of Israel. Jerusalem is the center of
the earth ; the land is fruitful above all others, like another
paradise of delights. This spot the Redeemer of mankind
has made illustrious by his advent, has beautified by his
sojourn, has consecrated by his passion, has redeemed by
his death, has glorified by his burial.
1 Another of those present at the Council of Clennont, Fulcher of
Chartres, thus reports this part of Urban's speech: "Let those who
have formerly been accustomed to contend wickedly in private warfare
against the faithful fight against the infidel, and bring to a victorious
end the war which ought already to have been begun. Let those who
have hitherto been jobbers now become soldiers. Let those who have
formerly contended against their brothers and relatives now fight against
the barbarians as they ought. Let those-who have formerly been mer-
cenaries at low wages now gain eternal rewards. Let those who have
been exhausting themselves to the detriment both of body and soul
now strive for a twofold reward." See a complete translation of Ful-
cher's report of Urban's speech in TV&ntlations and Reprints^ Vol. I,
No. 2.
The Crusades 315
" This royal city, however, situated at the center of the
earth, is now held captive by the enemies of Christ and is
subjected, by those who do not know God, to the worship
of the heathen. She seeks, therefore, and desires to be
liberated and ceases not to implore you to come to her
aid. From you especially she asks succor, because, as we
have already said, God has conferred upon you above all
other nations great glory in arms. Accordingly, undertake
this journey eagerly for the remission of your sins, with the
assurance of the reward of imperishable glory in the king-
dom of heaven/'
When Pope Urban had urbanely said these and very
many similar things, he so centered in one purpose the desires
of all who were present that all cried out, " It is the will of
God ! It is the will of God I " When the venerable Roman
pontiff heard that, with eyes uplifted to heaven, he gave
thanks to God and, commanding silence with his hand, said :
" Most beloved brethren, to-day is manifest in you what
the Lord says in the Gospel, * Where two or three are gath-
ered together in my name, there am I in the midst of them * ;
for unless God had been present in your spirits, all of yoa
would not have uttered the same cry; since, although the
cry issued from numerous mouths, yet the origin of the cry
was one. Therefore I say to you that God, who implanted
this in your breasts, has drawn it forth from you. Let that
then be your war cry in combats, because it is given to you
by God. When an armed attack is made upon the enemy,
let this one cry be raised by all the soldiers of God: *It is
the will of God! It is the will of God J ' [2>cxs vm#/
Deus -vultr\
"And we neither command nor advise that the old or
feeble, or those incapable of bearing arms, undertake this
journey. Nor ought women to set out at all without their
husbands, or brothers, or legal guardians. For such are
more of a hindrance than aid, more of a burden than an
advantage. Let the rich aid the needy ; and according to
their wealth let them take with them experienced soldiers.
The priests and other clerks, whether secular or regular,
3i6 Readings in European History
are not to go without the consent of their bishop ; for this
journey would profit them nothing if they went without per-
mission. Also, it is not fitting that laymen should enter
upon the pilgrimage without the blessing of their priests.
" Whoever, therefore, shall determine upon this holy pil-
grimage, and shall make his vow to God to that effect, and
shall offer himself to him for sacrifice, as a living victim,
holy and acceptable to God, shall wear the sign of the cross
of the Lord on his forehead or on his breast. When, indeed,
he shall return from his journey, having fulfilled his vow,
let him place the cross on his back between his shoulders.
Thus shall ye, indeed, by this twofold action, fulfill the pre-
cept of the Lord, as he commands in the Gospel, * He that
taketh not his cross, and folioweth after me, is not worthy
of me.' "
II. THE FIRST CRUSADE
124. Ekke- Ekkehard, a well-known German historian (see above,
p. 266), had completed a history of the world in the year
j iOI when he determined to make a pilgrimage to Jeru-
salenu On his return he entirely rewrote the particulars
of his history relating to the First Crusade, and finally
issued it as a little separate volume called Hierosolymita*
His work is regarded by historical scholars as remark-
ably painstaking and temperate.
After mentioning the capture of Jerusalem by Godfrey
of Bouillon and his fellow-crusaders in 1099, Ekkehard
continues :
Some declare Here I am very anxious to add certain details concerning
tfeese military undertakings, which are due to divine rather
than human inspiration. This I do for the especial purpose
of refuting those imprudent — or, better, impudent — critics,
who, bound by prejudice, take it upon themselves with inso-
lent lips to blame this novel enterprise, so necessary to a
world that is growing old and Hearing its end. They, like
The Criisades 317
the Epicureans, prefer the broad way of pleasure to the
narrow way of God's service. To them love of the world
is wisdom and those who despise it are fools. ... I,
however, since I trust in the Lord and strive not for pres-
ent but for future things, would, although only as an idle
spectator yet a kindly well-wisher, exalt the glorious men
of our time who have overcome the kingdoms of this world
and who, for the sake of the blessed Shepherd who sought
the hundredth sheep that was lost, have left wife and child,
principalities and riches, and have taken their lives in their
hands. . . .
[After Urban had aroused the spirits of all by the promise Tbt m*mj
of forgiveness to those who undertook the expedition with
single-hearted devotion,] toward one hundred thousand men
were appointed to the immediate service of God from Aqui-
taine and Normandy, England, Scotland, Ireland, Brittany,
Galicia, Gascony, France, Flanders, Lorraine, and from other
Christian peoples, whose names I no longer retain. It was
truly an army of " crusaders," for they bore the sign of the
cross on their garments as a reminder that they should mor-
tify the flesh, and in the hope that they would in this way
triumph over the enemies of the cross of Christ, as it had
once come to pass in the case of the great Constandne.
Thus, through the marvelous and unexampled working of
divine dispensation, all these members of Christ, so differ-
ent in speech, origin, and nationality, were suddenly brought
together as one body through their love of Christ
While they were all under one king, Christ, the several
peoples nevertheless were led by their several leaders, namely
Godfrey of Lorraine and his brothers Baldwin and Eustace,
Robert of Flanders, Robert of Normandy, Count Regimund
of St. GUles, Hugh, brother of King Philip of France, and
other warriors of similar eneigy, rank, and bravery. Over
all of these the above-mentioned pope placed Bishop Hade-
mar, a man of venerable holiness and wisdom. To him the
pope granted the right to exercise in his stead the power
transmitted by St Peter to the Roman see of binding and
loosing. . . .
Readings in European History
The Ger-
mans at first
regard fee
crusaders as
Prodigies
announce the
crusade.
The West Franks were easily induced to leave their fields,
since France had, during several years, been terribly visited
now by civil war, now by famine, and again by sickness. . . .
Among the other nations, the common people, as well as those
of higher rank, related that, aside from the apostolic sum-
mons, they had in some instances been called to the land
of promise by certain prophets who had appeared among
them, or through heavenly signs and revelations. Others
confessed that they had been induced to pledge themselves
by some misfortune. A great part of them started forth
with wife and child and laden with their entire household
equipment.
The summons, however, failed altogether to reach the
East Franks, Saxons, Thuringians, Bavarians, and Aleman-
nians. This was due especially to the division between the
civil government and the priesthood, which from the time of
Pope Alexander [II] to the present day has, alas, made us as
hated and offensive to the Romans as the Romans are to
us. So it came about that almost the whole German people
were, at the beginning of the expedition, quite unacquainted
with the reasons for it. Consequently the many legions of
horsemen who passed through their land, the hosts of people
on foot, the crowds of country people, women and children,
were viewed by them with contempt as persons who had
altogether lost their wits.
Those bound for the Holy Land seemed to them to be
leaving the land of their birth and sacrificing what they
already had for a vain hope. The promised land offered
no certainty but danger, yet they deserted their own pos-
sessions in a greedy struggle for those of others. Never-
theless, although our people are far more arrogant than
others, the fury of the Teutons finally gave way in view of
the divine mercy, and after they had thoroughly discussed
the matter with the multitude of pilgrims, they too inclined
their hearts.
Moreover the signs ia the sun and the wonders which
appeared, both in the air and on the earth, aroused many
who had previously been indifferent It seems to us useful
The Cnisadcs 319
to interweave an account of a few o£ these signs, although
it would carry us too far to enumerate them all. For exam-
ple, we beheld a comet on the yth of October to the south,
and its brilliancy slanting down seemed like a sword. . . .
A few years ago a priest of honorable reputation, by the
name of Suigger, about the ninth hour of the day beheld
two knights, who met one another in the air and fought
long, until one, who carried a great cross with which he
struck the other, finally overcame his enemy. . . . Some
who were watching horses in the fields reported that they
had seen the image of a city in the air and had observed
how various troops from different directions, both on horse-
back and on foot, were hastening thither.
Many, moreover, displayed, either on their clothing, or
upon their forehead, or elsewhere on their body, the sign
of the cross, which had been divinely imprinted, and they
believed themselves on this account to have been destined to
the service of God. Others likewise were induced, through
some sudden change of spirit or some nocturnal vision, to
sell all their property and possessions and to sew the sign
of mortification on their mantles. Among all these people
who pressed into the churches in incredible numbers, swords
were distributed with the priestly benediction, according to
the new usage, along with the pilgrim's staff and wallet
I may also report that at this time a woman after two
years gestation finally gave birth to a boy who was able to
talk ; and that a child with a double set of limbs, another
with two heads, and some lambs with two heads were also
born ; and that colts came into the world with great teeth,
which we ordinarily call horses' teeth and which nature
only grants to three-year old horses.
While through these and similar signs the whole creation Bad
seemed to offer its services to the Creator, the watchful ^
enemy, who takes occasion when others sleep to sow his crusaders,
tares amongst the good seed, raised up also false prophets
and mixed false brethren and degraded women among the
Lord's host under the appearance of religion. In this way
the armies of Christ were defiled not only through hypocrisy
32O
Readings in European History
125. A
Greek prin-
cess
describes
fee bad
manners of
a crusading
prince.
and lies but through shameless uncleanness, so that the
prophecy of the Good Shepherd might be fulfilled, that
even the elect may be led astray.
Among the sources for the First Crusade there is a
history of the eastern emperor, Alexis, written by his
daughter, Anna Comnena. After speaking of the kindly
but sagacious way in which her father treated the incon-
venient and often disorderly troops of crusaders when
they reached Constantinople, she gives the following
example of their bad manners.
When the Franks had all come together and had taken an
oath to the emperor, there was one count who had the bold-
ness to sit down upon the throne. The emperor, well
knowing the pride of the Latins, kept silent, but Baldwin
approached the Frankish count and taking him by the hand
said, ** You ought not to sit there ; that is an honor which
the emperor permits to no one. Now that you are in this
country, why do you not observe its customs ? " The insolent
count made no reply to Baldwin, but said in his barbarous
language, as if talking to himself, "This must be a rude
fellow who would alone remain seated when so many brave
warriors are standing up." Alexis noted the movement of
the man's lips and called an interpreter in order to learn
what he bad said; but when the interpreter had told him he
did not complain to the Franks, although he did not forget
the matter.
When the counts came to take leave of the emperor he
retained this haughty knight and asked him who he was.
" I am a Frank," he replied, " of the most high and ancient
nobility, I know but one thing, and that is that there is in
my country a church built at the crossroads where all those
betake themselves who hope to show their valor in single
combat, and there make tbeir prayer to God while they
await an enemy ; I remained there a long time without any-
body daring to measure swords with me."
The Crusades 321
Alexis was on his guard against accepting this challenge.
" If you then waited without being able to show your
bravery," he said to him, "you now have* a chance to fight;
and if I may give you a word of advice, it will be not to put
yourself either at the head nor rear of the army but in the
middle. The experience which I have had of the way in
which the Turks make war has convinced me that that is
the best place." l
III. THE CAMPAIGNS rx THE HOLV LAND AS DESCRIBED
IN THE LETTERS OF THE CRUSADERS
The letters written from the Holy Land by those who
actually participated in the crusades constitute our most
reliable source of information.2
Count Stephen to Adele, his sweetest and most amiable wife, 126. Sto-
to his dear children, and to all his vassals of all ranks —
his greeting and blessing: kiewSL
You may be very sure, dearest, that the messenger whom
I sent to you left me before Antioch safe and unharmed j^JS?
and, through God's grace, in the greatest prosperity. And
already at that time, together with all the chosen army of
Christ, endowed with great valor by him, we had been con-
tinuously advancing for twenty- three weeks toward the home
of our Lord Jesus. You may know for certain, my beloved,
that of gold, silver, and many other kinds of riches, I now
have twice as much as you, my love, supposed me to have
when I left you. For all our princes, with the common con-
sent of the whole army, though against my own wishes, have
1 Anna remarks later in her history wkh satisfaction that the inso-
lent knight was JdBeA An eminent scholar believes that he was prob-
ably no less a person than Count Robert o€ Paris. This is but one
instance among many which served to arouse hostility between the
emperor and the crosaders.
4 For other letters by the crusaders and a useful list of those which
have been translated into English, see Munro, Letters of tkt Crusaders
vrittenfrem tkt Holy Land, in Translations and Reprints, Vol. I, No. 4.
322 Readings in European History
made me, up to the present time, the leader, chief, and
director of their whole expedition.
You have assuredly heard that after the capture of the
city of Nicaea we fought a great battle with the perfidious
Turks and, by God's aid, conquered them. Next we con-
quered for the Lord all Romania and afterwards Cappa-
docia. And we learned that there was a certain Turkish
prince, Assam, dwelling in Cappadocia ; thither we directed
our course. All his castles we conquered by force and com-
pelled him to flee to a certain very strong castle situated on
a high rock. We also gave the land of that Assam to one
of our chiefs, and in order that he might conquer the above-
mentioned Assam, we left there with him many soldiers of
Christ. Thence, continually following the wicked Turks, we
drove them through the midst of Armenia, as far as the great
river Euphrates. Having left all their baggage and beasts of
burden on the bank, they fled across the river into Arabia.
The bolder of the Turkish soldiers, indeed, entering
Syria, hastened by forced marches night and day, in order
to be able to occupy the royal city of Antioch before our
approach. The whole army of God, learning this, gave due
praise and thanks to the omnipotent Lord. Hastening with
great joy to the aforesaid chief city of Antioch, we besieged
it aad had many conflicts there with the Turks. Seven
times we fought with the citizens of Antioch and with the
innumerable troops coming to their aid ; we rushed to meet
them and we fought with the fiercest courage under the lead-
ership of Christ ; and in all these seven battles, by the aid
of the Lord God, we conquered, and most assuredly killed
an innumerable host of them. In those battles, indeed, and
in very many attacks made upon the city, many of our breth-
ren and followers were killed, and their souls were borne to
the joys of paradise.
We found Antioch a very great town, fortified with incredi-
ble strength and almost impregnable. In addition, more
than five thousand bold Turkish soldiers had entered the
city, not counting the Saracens, Publicans, Arabs, Turco-
poiitans, Syrians, Armenians* and other different races, of
The Crusades 323
whom an infinite multitude had gathered together there. In
fighting against these enemies of God and of our own we
have, by God's permission, endured many sufferings and
innumerable evils up to the present time. Many also have
already exhausted all their resources in this very holy pas-
sion. Very many of our Franks, indeed, would have met a
temporal death from starvation, if the clemency of God, and
our money, had not succored them. Moreover before the
above-mentioned city of Antioch we suffered for our Lord
Christ, throughout the whole winter, from excessive cold
and enormous torrents of rain. What some say about the
impossibility of bearing the heat of the sun throughout
Syria is untrue, for the winter there is very similar to our
winter in the west.
When Caspian [Bagi Seian], the emir <ue. prince and
lord) of Antioch, perceived that he was hard pressed by us,
he sent his son, Sensadolo by name, to the prince who holds
Jerusalem, and to the prince of Calep Rodoam, and to
Docap, prince of Damascus. He also sent into Arabia to
Bolianuth, and into Carathania to Hamelnuth- These five
emirs, with twelve thousand picked Turkish horsemen, sud-
denly came to aid the inhabitants of Antioch. We, ignorant
of all this, had sent many of our soldiers away to the other
cities and fortresses; — for there are one hundred and sixty-
five cities and fortresses throughout Syria which are in our
power. But a little before they reached the city we attacked
them, at three leagues distance, with seven hundred soldiers,
on a certain plain, near the " Iron Bridge,'*
God fought for us, his faithful servants, against them ;
for on that day, fighting in the strength diat God gives,
we conquered them and killed an innumerable multitude —
God continually fighting; for as — and we also carried back
to the array more than two hundred of their heads, in order
that the people might rejoice on that account. The emperor of
Babylon also sent Saracen messengers to our army with letters,
and through these he established peace and concord with us,
I am glad to tell you, dearest, what happened to us during
!Lenfc. The city of Antioch is about five leagues distant
324 Readings in European History
from the sea. Our princes had commanded a fortress to be
built before one of the city gates which was between our
camp and the sea; for the Turks, issuing daily from this
gate, killed some of our men on their way to the sea. For
this reason they sent the excellent Bohemond and Raymond,
count of St. Gilles, down to the sea, with only sixty horse-
men, in order that they might bring mariners to aid in this
work* When, however, they were returning to us with
those mariners, the Turks collected an army, fell suddenly
upon our two leaders, and forced them to a perilous flight.
In that unexpected flight we lost more than five hundred of
our foot soldiers — to the glory of God. Of our horsemen,
however, we lost only two, for certain.
On that same day, ignorant of our brethren's misfortunes,
we went out joyfully to meet them. When, however, we
approached the above-mentioned gate of the city, a mass of
horsemen and foot soldiers from Antioch, elated by the vic-
tory which they had won, rushed upon us in the same man-
ner. Seeing these, our leaders sent to the camp of the
Christians to order all to be ready to follow us into battle.
In the meantime our men gathered together, and the two
leaders, namely Bohemond and Raymond, -with the remain-
der of their army, came up and narrated the great misfortune
which they had suffered.
Our men, full of fury at these most evil tidings, prepared
to die for Christ, and, deeply grieved for their brethren,
rushed upon the sacrilegious Turks. They, enemies of God
and of us, hastily fled* before us and attempted to enter their
city. But by God's grace the affair turned out very differ-
ently; for, when they attempted to cross a bridge built over
the great river Moscholum, we followed them as closely as
possible, killed many before they reached the bridge, forced
many into the river, all of whom were killled, and we also
slew many upon the bridge and very many at the narrow
entrance to the gate. I am telling you the truth, my beloved,
and you may rely upon it, that in this battle we killed thirty
emirs (that is, princes) and three hundred other Turkish nobles,
not counting the remaining Turks and pagans. Indeed^ the
The Crusades 325
number of Turks and Saracens killed is reckoned at twelve
hundred and thirty, while of our own troops we did not lose
a single man.
On the following day (Easter), while my chaplain, Alex-
ander, was writing this letter in great haste, a party of our
men, lying in wait for the Turks, fought a successful engage-
ment with them and killed sixty horsemen, whose heads
they brought to the army.
I can write to you only a few, dearest, of the many things
which we have done. Although I am not able to tell you
all that is in my mind, I trust that all is going well with
you, and urge you to watch carefully over your possessions
and to treat as you ought your children and your vassals.
You will certainly see me just as soon as I can possibly
return to you. Farewell.
To Lord Paschal, Pope of the Roman Church, and to a/I the 137. 1
Bishops, and to the whole Christian people, Greeting frem the
Archbishop of Pisa, Duke Godfrey \ now, by the grace of God,
Defender of the Church of the Holy Sepulcher, Raymond,
Count of St. Gilles, and the whole army of Goif, which is in
the land of Israel;
Multiply your supplications and prayers in the sight of
God with joy and thanksgiving, since God has manifested
his mercy in fulfilling by our hands what he had promised
in ancient times ; for after the capture of Nicsea the whole
army, made up of more than three hundred thousand sok
diers, departed thence. And, although this army was so Comfortable
great that it could in a single day have covered all Romania
and drunk up ail the rivers and eaten up all the growing
things, yet the Lord conducted them amid so great abun-
dance that a ram was sold for a penny and an ox for twelve
pence or less. Moreover, although the princes and kings
of the Saracens rose up against us, yet, by God's wilU they
were easily conquered and overcome.
Because, however, some were puffed up by these sue- Delay at
cesses, God opposed to us Antioch, impregnable to human
strength. And there he detained us for nine months and so
326 Readings in European History
humbled us in the siege that there were scarcely a hundred
good horses left in our whole army. God then opened to us
the abundance of his blessing and mercy, and led us into the
city, and delivered the Turks and all of their possessions into
our power.
Tte finding Inasmuch as we thought that these had been acquired by
of the holy our own strength, and did not worthily magnify God who
had done this, we were beset by so great a multitude of
Turks that no one dared to venture forth at any point from
the city. Moreover hunger so weakened us that some could
scarcely refrain from eating human flesh. It would be tedi-
ous to narrate all the miseries which we suffered in that city.
But God looked down upon his people, whom he had so
long chastised, and mercifully consoled them. Therefore,
he at first revealed to us, as a recompense for our tribula-
tion and as a pledge of victory, his lance, which had lain
hidden since the days of the apostles.1 Next, he so forti-
fied the hearts of the men that they who from sickness or
hunger had been unable to walk, now were indued with
strength to seize their weapons and manfully to fight against
the enemy.
After we had triumphed over the enemy, as our army
was wasting away at Antioch from sickness and weariness
and was especially hindered by the dissensions among the
leaders, we proceeded into Syria, stormed Barra and Marra,
cities of the Saracens, and captured the fortresses in that
country. And while we were delaying there, there was so
great a famine in the army that the Christian people now
ate the putrid bodies of the Saracens. Finally, by the divine
admonition, we entered into the interior of Hispania,2 and
the most bountiful, merciful, and victorious hand of the
omnipotent Father was with us ; for the cities and for-
tresses of the country through which we were proceeding
1 The holy lance with which the Roman soldier is reported to have
pierced Christ's side.
* A regkm on the right bank of the Orontes which stretches toward
the east.
Tfi€ Crusades
sent ambassadors to us with many gifts and offered to aid
us and to surrender their wailed places.
But because our army was not large and it was the unani-
mous wish to hasten on to Jerusalem, we accepted their
pledges and made them tributaries. One of the cities for-
sooth, which was on the seacoast, had more men than there
were in our whole army. And when those at Antioch and
Laodicea and Archas heard how the hand of the Lord was
with us, many from the army who had remained in those
cities followed us to Tyre. Therefore, with the Lord's
companionship and aid, we proceeded thus as far as Jeru-
salem.
And after the army had suffered greatly in the siege,
especially on account of the lack of water, a council was
held, and the bishops and princes ordered that all should
march around the walls of the city with feet bare, in order
that he who entered it humbly in our behalf might be moved
by our humility to open it to us and to exercise judgment
upon his enemies.
God was appeased by this humility, and on the eighth day
after the humiliation he delivered the city and his enemies
to us. It was the very day, indeed, on which the primitive
Church was driven thence and on which the festival of
the Dispersion of the Apostles is celebrated. And if you
desire to know what was done with the enemy who were
found there, know that in Solomon's Porch and in his temple
our men rode in the blood of the Saracens up to the knees
of their horses.
Then when we were* considering who ought to hold the
city, and some, moved by love for their country and kins-
men, wished to return home, it was announced to us that the
king of Babylon1 had come to Ascalon with an innumerable
multitude of soldiers. His purpose was, as he said, to lead
the Franks who were in Jerusalem into captivity, and to
take Antioca by storm. But God had determined otherwise
in regard to us.
The CTB-
saders ad-
vance upon
Jerusalem.
Cnoadets
attached fcg
tioops fnM
1 An important city of Egypt at tbat time.
328
Readings in European History
The king of
Bfcbyfoo
defeated.
Cooperation
6a the part
«rf tfee cap-
tured
afe.
Therefore, when we learned that the army of the Baby-
lonians was at Ascalon, we went down to meet them, leaving
our baggage and the sick, with a garrison, in Jerusalem.
When our army was in sight of the enemy, we invoked up-
on our knees the aid of the Lord, that he who in our other
adversities had strengthened the Christian faith, might in
the present battle break the strength of the Saracens and of
the devil, and extend the kingdom of the Church of Christ
from sea to sea, over the whole world. There was no
delay; God was present when we cried for his aid, and
indued us with so great boldness that one who saw us
rush upon the enemy would have taken us for a herd of
deer, hastening to quench their thirst in running water.
It was indeed wonderful, since there were in our army
not more than five thousand horsemen and fifteen thousand
foot soldiers, and there were probably in the enemy's army
one hundred thousand horsemen and four hundred thousand
foot soldiers. Then God appeared most marvelous to his
servants. For before we engaged in fighting, by our very
onset alone, he turned this multitude in flight and scattered
all their weapons, so that if they wished afterward to attack
us they did not have the arms in which they trusted.
There can be no question as to the greatness of the spoils,
since the treasures of the king of Babylon were captured.
More than one hundred thousand Moors perished there by
d»e sword. Moreover their panic was so great that about
two thousand were suffocated at the gate of the city. Those
wfao perished in the sea were innumerable. Many were
entangled in the thickets. The whole world was certainly
fighting for us, and if many of our men had not been
detained in plundering $ie camp, few of the great mul-
titude of the enemy would have been able to escape from
the battle.
And although it may be tedious, the following must not
be omitted. On the day preceding the battle the army cap-
tured many thousands of camels, oxen, and sheep. By the
command of the princes these were divided among the peo-
ple. When we advanced to battle, wonderful to relate, the
The Crusades 329
camels formed in many squadrons, and the sheep and oxen
did the same. Moreover these animals accompanied us,
halting when we halted, advancing when we advanced, and
charging when we charged. The clouds sheltered us from
the heat of the sun and cooled us.
Accordingly, after celebrating the victory, the army
returned to Jerusalem. Duke Godfrey remained there; the
count of St. Gilles, Robert, count of Normandy, and Robert,
count of Flanders, returned to Laodicea. There they
found the fleet belonging to the Pisans and to Bohemond.
After the archbishop of Pisa had established peace between
Bohemond and our leaders, Raymond prepared to return to
Jerusalem for the sake of God and his brethren.
Therefore, we call upon you of the Catholic Church of
Christ and of the whole Latin Church to exult in the ad-
mirable bravery and devotion of your brethren, in the
glorious and desirable retribution of the omnipotent God,
and in the devoutly hoped-for remission of all our sins
through the grace of God. And we pray that he may make
you — namely, all bishops, clergy, and monks who are lead-
ing devout lives, and all the laity — to sit down at the
right hand of God, who liveth and reigneth, God for ever
and ever.
And we ask and beseech you, in the name of our Lord
Jesus, who has ever been with us and aided us and freed as
from all our tribulations, to be mindful of your brethren
who return to you, by doing them kindnesses and by paying
their debts, in order that God may recompense you and
absolve you from all your sins and grant you a share in all
the blessings which either we or they have deserved in the
sight of the Lord. Amen.
IV. ST. BERNARZ> ANI> THE SECONX> CRUSADE
St. Bernard was induced to use his unrivaled influence
in promoting a new crusade in 1146. The following
letter indicates his attitude toward the enterprise :
Readings in European History
128. St.
Bernard
exhorts the
people to
ffficy* arms
against the
iafidel.
To the Lords and very dear Fathers, the Archbishops and
Bishops, with the whole Clergy and the faithful people of
Eastern France and Bavaria ; Bernard, called Abbot of
Clairvaux, desires that they may abound in the spirit
of strength :
I write to you with respect to a matter which concerns
the service of Christ, in whom is our salvation. This I say
in order that the Lord's authority may excuse the un worthi-
ness of the person who speaks; let the consideration of
its usefulness to yourselves also excuse the faults of my
address. I, indeed, am of small account ; but I have no
small love for you all, in the bowels of Jesus Christ. This,
now, is my reason for writing to you, that I may thus
approach you as a whole. I would rather do so by word
of mouth, if the opportunity, as well as the will, were
afforded me.
Behold, brethren, now is the accepted time, now is the
day of salvation. The earth also is moved and has trembled,
because the God of heaven has begun to destroy the land
ifhich is his: fais, I say, in which the word of the Father
was taught, and where he dwelt for more than thirty years, a
man among men; his, for he enlightened it with miracles,
be consecrated it with his own blood; in it appeared the
first fruits of his resurrection. And now, for our sins, the
enemies of the Cross have raised blaspheming heads, rav-
aging with the edge of the sword the land of promise. For
they are almost on the point, if there be not One to withstand
them, of bursting into the very city of the living God, of
overturning the sanctuaries of our redemption, of polluting
the holy places of the spotless Lamb with purple blood.
Alas! they rage against the very shrine of the Christian
faith with blasphemous mouths, and would enter and
trample down the very couch on which, for us, our Life lay
down to sleep in death.
What are you going to do then, O brave men ? What are
you doing, O servants of the Cross ? Will you give what is
holy to the dogs, and cast your pearls before swine ? How
many sinners there, confessing their sins with tears, have
The Crusades 331
obtained pardon, after the defilement of the heathen had
been purged by the swords of your fathers I The wicked
man sees and is grieved ; he gnashes with his teeth, and con-
sumes" away. He prepares the instruments of sin, and will
leave no sign or trace of so great piety, if ever (which God
forbid !) he gain possession of this holiest of holy places.
Verily that would be an irremediable grief to all time, an
irrecoverable loss, a vast disgrace to this most graceless
generation, and an everlasting shame.
What are we then to think, brethren ? Is the Lord's arm
shortened so that it cannot save, because he calls his weak
creatures to guard and restore his heritage? Can he not
send more than twelve legions of angels, or merely speak the
word, and the land shall be set free? It is altogether in
his power to effect what he wishes; but I tell you, the
Lord, your God, is trying you. He looks upon the sons of
men to see if there be any to understand, and seek, and
bewail his error. For the Lord hath pity upon his people,
and provides a sure remedy for those that are afflicted.
Think what care he uses for your salvation, and wonder.
Behold the abyss of his love, and trust him, O ye sinners.
He wills not your death, but that you may turn and five;
for now he seeks occasion, not against you, but for your
benefit. What opportunity of salvation has God not tried
and sought out, when the Almighty deigns to summon to
his service murderers, robbers, adulterers, perjurers, and
those guilty of other crimes, as if they were a people that
dealt righteously ? Doubt him not, O sinners ; God is kind.
If he willed to punish you, he not only would not seek your
service, but would not accept it when offered.
Again I say, weigh the riches of the goodness of the
Highest God; hear his plan of mercy. He makes, or feigns,
a need for himself, while he desires to help you in your
necessity. He wills to be held a debtor, that he may give
pay to those that light for him, pardon of sins, and everlast-
ing glory. Therefore I may call it a highly favored genera-
tion which has happened upon a time so full of indulgence ;
upon which has come that acceptable year of the Lord, a
332
Readings in European History
Neighbor-
hood war.
lews are
*ottobe
attacked.
very jubilee; for this blessing is spread over the whole
world, and all fly eagerly to the sign of life.
Since, therefore, your land is fruitful in brave men, and
is known to be full of robust youth, since your praise is in
the whole world, and the fame of your valor has filled the
entire earth, gird up your loins manfully, and take up arms
in zeal for the Christian name. Let not your former war-
like skill cease, but only that spirit of hatred in which you
are accustomed to strike down and kill one another and in
turn be overcome yourselves. How dire a madness goads
those wretched men, when kinsmen strike each other's bodies
with the sword, perchance causing the soul also to perish !
But he does not escape who triumphs ; the sword shall go
through his own soul also, when he thinks to have slain
his enemy only. To enter such a combat is madness, not
valor: it is not to be ascribed to bravery, but rather to
foolishness.
But now, O brave knight, now, O warlike hero, here is a
battle you may fight without danger, where it is glory to
conquer and gain to die. If you are a prudent merchant,
if you are a desirer of this world, behold I show you some
great baigains ; see that you lose them not. Take the sign
of the cross, and you shall gain pardon for every sin that
you confess with a contrite heart. The material itself, being
bought, is worth little; but if it be placed on a devout shoulder,
it is, without doubt, worth no less than the kingdom of God.
Therefore they have done well who have already taken the
heavealy sign : well and wisely also will the rest do, if they
hasten to lay upon their shoulders, like the first, the sign
of salvation.
Besides, brethren, I warn you, and not only I, but God's
apostle, "Believe not every spirit" We have heard and
rejoice that the zeal of God abounds in you, but it behooves
no mind to be wanting in wisdom. The Jews must not be
persecuted, slaughtered, nor even driven out. Inquire of the
pages of Holy Writ. I know what is written in the Psalms
as prophecy about the Jews, " God hath commanded me,"
says the Church, * Slay them not, lest my people
The Crusades
333
They are living signs to us, representing the Lord's pas-
sion. For this reason they are dispersed into all regions,
that now they may pay the just penalty of so great a crime,
and that they may be witnesses of our redemption. Where-
fore the Church, speaking in the same Psalm, says, u Scatter
them by thy power; and bring them down, O Lord, our
shield." So has it been. They have been dispersed, cast
down. They undergo a hard captivity under Christian princes.
Yet they shall be converted at even-time, and remembrance
of them shall be made in due season. Finally, when the mul-
titude of the Gentiles shall have entered in, then " all Israel
shall be saved," saith the apostle. Meanwhile he who dies
remains in death.
I do not enlarge on the lamentable fact that where there
are no Jews there Christian meiijudaizc even worse than they
in extorting usury, — if, indeed, we may call them Christians
and not rather baptized Jews. Moreover, if the Jews be
utterly trampled down, how shall the promised salvation
or conversion profit them in the end? . . .
This also we must warn you, dearest brethren, that if any
love to bear rule among you, and wish, by hastening, to
anticipate the army of his country, he shall by no means
attempt to do it. If he pretend to have been sent by us,
it is not true ; or if he show letters as if given by us, I warn
you that they are altogether false or obtained by fraud. It
is necessary to choose warlike and skillful leaders, and for
the army of the Lord to set out together, that it may have
strength everywhere, and not be liable to sustain injury
from any.
There was in the former expedition, before Jerusalem
was taken, a certain man, Peter by name, of whom (if I
mistake not) you have often heard mention. He went alone,
at the head of a mass of people who had intrusted them-
selves to his care, and led them into so great dangers that
none, or at least very few, escaped death, either by hunger
or the sword. So there is danger lest, if you do likewise,
the same fate should overtake you also, which may God, who
is forever blessed, avert from you. Amen.
Christians
usury.
two of Peter
horttecf
folkmm.
334
Readings in European History
129. St.
Bernard
Warned
because of
the disas-
trous out-
come of the
crusade.
TbatSt
God is
proved by-
many
miracles.
St. Bernard's secretary, Geoffrey of Clairvaux, who
wrote a life of his revered master, thus defends him
from the criticisms of those who would blame him for
the sad outcome of the Second Crusade :
We ought not to conceal the fact that certain men, through
ignorance or malignity, took offense because Bernard had
by his preaching stimulated the expedition for the deliver-
ance of Jerusalem, which had such an unfortunate issue.
Nevertheless we can confidently affirm that he was not the
first mover in the matter. Even after the report of the
unfortunate situation had already deeply stirred the souls
of many, and he had been repeatedly urged by the king of
France, and had also been pressed by apostolic letters, he
still refused to speak or to give his advice in the matter
until the sovereign pontiff himself, in a general letter to all
the faithful, had commanded him, as the natural interpreter
of the Roman Church, to set forth to the peoples and their
rulers the necessity of the crusade. The tenor of this letter
was that both people and princes should, for the purpose of
penance and the remission of their sins, betake themselves
to Jerusalem, where they would either deliver their brethren
or sacrifice their lives for them.
Bernard accordingly preached the expedition in the most
convincing manner, with the aid of the Lord, who confirmed
the truth of his servant's words by miracles. So many were
the miracles, and so great, that it would be difficult to enu-
merate, still more to narrate, them. At one time an effort was
made to write them out, but the number of the prodigies to
report exceeded the strength of the writer, and the grandeur
of the subject, the faculties of him who had undertaken to
treat it
In short, as many as twenty skk folk, and even more, were
cured of divers ills in a single day, and hardly a day passed
that similar miracles were not performed. In a word, at this
time Christ permitted his servant, by his touch and his prayers,
to restore sight to men who had been blind from their birth,
The Crusades 335
to cause the lame to walk, to cure the paralytic, to make
the deaf to hear and the dumb to speak. All these were
restored to a perfection of health truly remarkable in view
of that which they had previously enjoyed.
The eastern church was not, it is true, granted the happi-
ness of being delivered by the expedition of which we are
speaking ; but at least the heavenly Church was filled there-
by with pious souls and may therefore rightly rejoice. If,
on this occasion, it pleased the Lord, instead of saving the
bodies of the eastern people from the pagans, to snatch the
souls of many of the western from sin, who shall say,
"Wherefore, Lord, dost thou so?" . .
It happened that at the moment when the first news of St. Bemani
the lamentable rout of the crusaders1 army reached France »» I***"1**1*
a father came to present his blind son to the servant of
God, that the boy's sight might be restored. After he had
succeeded, by many prayers, in overcoming the reluctance °*
of Bernard, the saint, laying his hands upon the child,
addressed the Lord, saying that, if it were truly his word the<
that Bernard had spread abroad when he preached the cru-
sade, and if the Holy Spirit had really inspired him when
he preached, the Most High might deign to prove this by
opening to the light the eyes of this blind child. While
after this prayer they awaited the outcome, the child cried
out, " And what shall I do now, for I can see ? " Immedi-
ately a great stir arose among those present, including not
only a great number of monks but secular persons also, who,
realizing that the little child could see, were greatly consoled
and rendered thanks to God.
V. A HOLY PILGRIM
Along with the soldiers whom Urban and St. Ber-
nard urged to direct their warlike energies against the
Mohammedans instead of making trouble at home,
thousands of pious pilgrims were constantly seeking the
Holy Land in a spirit of single-minded devotion. Such
336
Readings in European History
130. Tbe
pilgrimage
ricfeto
Jerusalem.
pilgrimages as that described below had begun long
before the crusades1 and continued long after the mili-
tary expeditions ceased.
The holy Udalrich, having spent some time at home, began
to be oppressed in soul lest the duties imposed upon him by
his uncle 3 were not sufficiently pleasing to God. Wishing,
therefore, to be free and entirely unhampered in order to
make a pilgrimage for Christ's sake, he gave up his benefices
and started for Jerusalem. He took with him his servant,
who was at the same time his almoner, and a single horse.
From the day he left Freising until he entered Jerusalem
he never mounted his horse until he had repeated the Psalter
from beginning to end, in the meanwhile ordering Martin, his
servant, to ride, and meditating long, perchance, by the way.
When at last this saintly man reached the holy places, it
is not possible to relate with what emotion he greeted the
memorials of the birth, passion, resurrection, and ascension
of our Lord, with what genuflections he adored them, and
with what floods of tears he watered them. The simple
strength of his prayer and supplication exceeds the power
of words. He literally fulfilled the utterances of the Psalm-
ist : " I am weary with my groaning ; all the night make I my
bed to swim ; I water my couch with my tears." His com-
panions were filled with astonishment, and as for himself,
fee lost his eyesight before his time, as will appear later.
God had given him outpourings from above and from
below, that is, compunction due not only to his love of the
celestial kingdom, but springing also from his apprehension
of the torments of hell; — but perfect love casteth out fear.
At last, asked by one of his associates why he bemoaned him-
self so long every night and permitted no one about him to
sleep, and why he did not spare his failing eyes, he replied
that he was tired of the long pilgrimage in this world, that
he longed to die and be with Christ; nor was he troubled
over the failing light
1 See, for example, that spoken of abo-re, p. 267.
* The bishop of Frefein& xrfjo had grtea him certain benefices.
TJ& Crusades 337
VI. INDUCEMENTS OFFERED TO THOSE WHO WOULD TAKE
THE CROSS
There is no more extraordinary example of the vast
power enjoyed by the pope in the twelfth and thirteenth
centuries than the privileges granted to those who enlisted
in the struggle against the infidel.
Moreover, in virtue of the authority vested by God in us, 131
we, who with paternal care provide for your safety and the
needs of the Church, have promised and granted to those
who from a spirit of devotion have resolved to enter upon
and accomplish this holy and necessary undertaking, that
full remission of sins which our predecessor, Pope Urban,
granted. We have also commanded that their wives and
children, their property and possessions, shall be under the
protection of the holy Church, of ourselves, of the arch-
bishops, bishops, and other prelates of the Church of God.
Moreover we ordain, by our apostolic authority, that until
their return or death is fully proven, no lawsuit shall he
instituted hereafter in regard to any property of which they
were in peaceful possession when they took the cross.
Those who with pure hearts enter upon this sacred jour-
ney, and who are in debt, shall pay no interest. And if
they, or others for them, are bound by oath or promise to
pay interest, we free them by our apostolic authority. And
after they have sought aid of their relatives, or of the lotds
of whom they hold their fiefs, if the latter are unable or
unwilling to advance them money, we allow them freely to
mortgage their lands and other possessions to churches,
ecclesiastics, or other Christians, and their lords shall have
no redress,
Following the example of our predecessor, and through
the authority of omnipotent God aad of St Peter, prince of
the apostles, which is vested in us by God> we grant absolu-
tion and remission of sins, so that those who devoutly under-
take and accomplish this holy journey, or who die by the
338
Readings in European History
132. Privi-
leges
granted by
Innocent HI
at tbe coun-
cil of the
Cittsaders
to be ex-
empted from
taxation.
way, shall obtain absolution for all their sins which they
confess with humble and contrite heart, and shall receive
from him who grants to each his due reward the prize of
eternal life.
Granted at Vetralle on the Kalends of December [1146],
In order that nothing relating to Christ's business may
be neglected, we wish and command patriarchs, archbishops,
bishops, abbots, and others who have charge of souls, to set
forth zealously to those committed to their care the word of
the cross, exhorting in the name of the Father, Son, and Holy
Ghost, — the one only true and eternal God, — kings, dukes,
princes, marquises, counts, barons, and other magnates, also
the communities of cities, towns, and villages, who do not go
in person to the aid of the Holy Land, to send a suitable
number of warriors, with the necessary expenses for three
years according to their individual means, for the remission
of their own sins, — all which is stated in our general letters,
and is also stated below, for the greater surety.
Of this remission we wish that not only those who furnish
their own vessels should be partakers, but also those who
may have striven to build ships for this purpose. More-
over let it be sternly announced by apostolic authority to
those who refuse — if perchance any shall be so ungrateful
to our Lord God — that they are to understand that for this
they will have to answer to us on the last day of strict judg-
ment before an awful judge. Nevertheless let them first
consider with what conscience or what security they will be
able to appear before the only begotten Son of God, Jesus
Christ, into whose hands the Father gave all things, if they
shall refuse in this matter, which is peculiarly fitting for
them, to aid him who was crucified for sinners, by whose
bounty they live, by whose kindness they are maintained,
— nay, more, by whose blood they have been redeemed.
Since it is certainly right that those who give their alle-
giance to the heavenly Emperor should enjoy a special
privilege, when the time of the expedition shall exceed one
year in length the crusaders shall be free from collections,
The Crusades
339
tallages, and other taxes. And we have taken their per-
sons and property, after the assumption of the cross, under
St. Peter's and our own protection, and we have decided that
their defense shall be intrusted to the archbishops, bishops,
and all the prelates of the Church. We have also appointed
officers of our own especially for their protection, in order
that their property may be kept intact and uninjured until
their death or return is known with certainty. And if any-
one attempts any attack upon their property, he shall be
restrained by ecclesiastical censure.
If any of those setting out thither are bound by oath to
pay interest, we command that their creditors shall be com-
pelled by the same means to release them from their oaths
and to desist from the exaction of interest. But if any
creditor shall compel them to pay interest, we order that
he shall be forced, by a similar chastisement, to pay it back.
We command that the Jews, however, shad) be compelled
by the secular power to remit interest ; and until they remit
it all faithful Christians shall, under penalty of ei
They are
freed frott
of
Jmtote
cation, refrain from every species of intercourse with
For those, moreover, who are unable at present to pay their
debts to the Jews, the secular princes shall provide by a
useful delay, so that after they begin their journey they shall
suffer no inconvenience from interest, until their death or
return is known with certainty. The Jews shall be com-
pelled, after deducting the necessary expenses, to count the
income which they receive in the meantime from the mort-
gaged property toward the payment of the principal; since
a favor of this kind, which defers the payment and does not
cancel the debt, does not seem to cause ranch loss. More-
over let the prelates of the Church who are proven to be
negligent in doing justice to the crusaders and their families,
understand that they shall be severely punished.
Therefore, trusting in the mercy of omnipotent God and
in the authority of the blessed apostles Peter and Paul, by
that power of binding and loosing which God has conferred
on us> although unworthy, we grant to all who undergo the
difficulties in their own person and at their own expense,
potofcal
I
gran bed to
CmSkORXS
and AMI
who aid
340
Readings in European History
full remission of the sins of which they have truly repented
with contrite hearts and which they have confessed with
their mouths; and at the retribution of the just we promise
an increase of eternal salvation. To those also who do not
go thither in person but yet, according to their ability and
means, send suitable men at their expense, and to those like-
wise who go in person, although at the expense of others,
we promise full remission of their sins. We also will and
grant that, according to the kind of their aid and the depth
of their devotion, all shall partake of this remission who
minister fitly from their property to the aid of that land, or
furnish opportune counsel and assistance. Also on all who
piously proceed in this task, this general council -bestows in
common the aid of all its benefits, that it may worthily con-
duce to their salvation. Amen.
133. Liat-
aecetratof
insieoep-
stantiQopJe
VII. A GLIMPSE OF THE COURT OF THE EASTERN EMPEROR
When the crusaders reached Constantinople they saw
about them evidences of an elaborate civilization, of which
they could have had little conception in their dreary and
uncomfortable castles. It is, no doubt, in the general
broadening effects of travel that the chief influence of
the crusades on the western peoples is to be found. A
hundred and fifty years before the First Crusade, when
western Europe was still in the midst of the gloomiest
period of the early Middle Ages, Liutprand, the historian
of Otto the Great, visited Constantinople. He gives the
following account of his reception as ambassador of
Berengar, king of Italy.1
Adjoining the imperial palace in Constantinople there is
a hall of extraordinary size and beauty. . . . The Emperor
Constantine [VII] had this hall arranged in the following
manner for the reception of the recently arrived, Spanish
* See above, pp. 255 jy.
Cnisades 341
ambassador, as well as of Liutfrid [ambassador of Otto I]
and myself. In front of the emperor's throne stood a tree of
gilded Iron, whose branches were filled with birds of various
kinds, made of iron and gilded, which gave forth the different
sorts of birds' notes. The throne itself was so cunningly
constructed that at one instant it looked low, the next;
higher, and a moment later had risen to a great elevation.
It was guarded on either side by huge lions, I know not
whether of metal or wood, but covered with gold, which
lashed their tails on the floor and, with open mouth and
moving tongue, roared aloud.
In this hall, and accompanied by two eunuchs, I was
brought before the emperor. At my entrance the lions
roared and the birds sang, each after his kind ; but I was
neither frightened nor even astonished, since I had taken
pains to learn beforehand about these things from those
who knew about them. When I raised my head, after
prostrating myself before the emperor for the third time, I
beheld him, whom before I had seen seated at a moderate
height above me, elevated almost to the roof of the hall and
clad in different garments. How this was managed I do
not know, unless by means of something like the screw of a
press. All this time the emperor spoke no word ; indeed,
even had he wished to do so, it would have been undignified
from so great a height. He inquired, however, through his
chamberlain, after Berengar's health and pursuits. After I
had replied in a fitting manner I retired, at a sign from the
interpreter, and was conducted to the inn where quarters had
been assigned me.
[Liutprand then tells of his humiliation on discovering
that tbe other ambassadors had brought costly gifts to the
emperor frota their masters, while the parsimonious Berengar
had set* nothing but a letter, " and that f ul! of lies!" So he
determined to give the emperor the presents which his step-
father had sent, as if they had been sent by the Italian king,
** piecing out the small gift as well as I could with fine words."]
This plan having accordingly been carried out, the emperor,
at the end of three days, sent for me to come to the palace,
342 Readings in European History
conversed with me with his own mouth., invited me to dine
with him, and, after the meal, honored me and my following
with appropriate gifts. . . .
In a hall of extraordinary height and magnificence nine-
teen tables are spread on the anniversary of the Incarnation
of our Lord Jesus Christ ; around these the emperor and his
guests, instead of sitting as usual, recline to eat. On this
day, moreover, only golden dishes are used instead of the
usual silver ones. After dinner fruit was served in three
golden vessels of such enormous weight that they could not
be carried by men but were brought in on little carts decked
with purple coverings. They were placed on the table in
the following manner. Through openings in the ceiling three
ropes of gilded leather were let down, on the ends of which
were fastened golden rings; these were attached to hooks
rising from the golden vessels, which were then lifted on to
the table by means of a windlass above the ceiling, while
four or more men lent their aid from below. Later they were
removed in the same way.
It would take too long to describe all the performances
which followed, but I must mention one of them, for it was
quite too wonderful. There was a man who carried on his
forehead, without touching it with his hands, a pole at least
twenty-four feet long, on which, an ell from the top, a cross-
piece two ells long was fastened. Then two little boys, naked
except for loin cloths, were brought in. They climbed up
the pole, performed ail sorts of gymnastic feats upon it, and
came down again, headforemost, without the pole moving
any more than if it had been rooted in the ground.
Then after one boy had climbed down, the other one stayed
up alone and went through his tricks, which threw me into
still greater astonishment. For as long as they both were
performing on the pole the thing seemed, after a fashion,
explicable, since by their equal weight, though to be sure
with marvelous skill, they had kept the pole perpendicular.
That one by himself, however, should be able to preserve the
equilibrium so as to perform his antics and come down again
unhurt, — this threw me into such a state of wonder that
The Crusades 343
my amazement attracted the attention of the emperor. He
called an interpreter and had him ask me which I admired
the more, the boy, who had managed his movements with
such care as to leave the pole unmoved ; or the man, who
had held it so skillfully on his forehead that neither the boy's
weight nor his movements had caused the pole to swerve
one whit from its position. And when I said I knew not
which thaumastoteron (Le. 44was most to be admired"), the
emperor laughed and said that he did not know either.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
General Account: ADAMS, €Vr>//**ft<»ff, pp. 258-270; MASSON, pp. A. R*f*r-
22-33; MUNRO, pp. I06-IJ7. ******
The Eastern Situation: B£MONT and Mo NOD, pp. 336-347; GIB-
BON, Vol. VI, Chapter LVII, pp, 224-258; MUNRO, pp. 86-104 ; Toirr,
pp. 151-176.
The First Crusade : B&MONT and MONOD, pp. 348-356; EMEJLTON,
pp. 357-366; GIBBON, Vol. VI, Chapter LVIII, pp. 259-31:!; Tomr,
pp. 177-184.
The Kingdom of Jerusalem : B*MONT and MONOD, pp. 359-363 ;
EMERTON, pp. 366-374; GIBBON, VoL VI, Chapter LVIII. pp. 312-
321 ; Tour, pp. 184-191.
The Second Crusade: B^MONT and MONOD, pp. 356-359; EMER-
TON, pp. 374-377*. GIBBON, Vol. VI, Chapter LIX, pp, 322-347;
Tour, pp. 191-197.
Documents : HENDERSON, Historical Documents* pp. 333~336i f^mmr-
latiens aiuf JReprintr, Vol. I, No. z, p. 13 ; VoL I, No. 4, pp. 12-16.
The Third Grasade : B*MOHT and MONOD, pp. 3163-366; EM*«TO*,
PP- 377-379? GIBBON, Vol. VI, Chapter LTX, pp. 347-3S4; Toirrt
pp. 295-304.
Documents: COLBY, pfx. 68-70; H«H»RXSOK, PL 135;
*nd Reprints, Vol. I, No. 2, pp. 13-15: v<* J» **°- 4» PP-
Tfee Fourth Crusade: B^MONT and MONOD, pp, 366-368;
TON, pp. 379-383 '» Tour, pp. 342-355*
Contemporary Records : Tr*mtfatiens mmd Rtprimts* VoL III, No, i,
pp. 2-20.
Tfce Last Crusades : B*MONT and MONOD, pp. 368*374 ; EMMTOK,
PP 383-^88; GIBBON, Vol. VI, Chapter LIX, pp. 354-3^5?
pp.
344
Readings in European History
B. Addi-
tional read-
ing in
English.
Somes in
Documents : HENDERSON, pp. 337-344 ; Translations and Reprints,
Vol. I, No. 2, pp. 16-19; VoL J» No- 4» PP- 20-34.
Results of the Crusades : ADAMS, pp. 270-276; EMERTON, pp. 388-
397 j HENDERSON, Short History of Germany, pp. 102-108; MUNRO,
pp. 117-121. _
ARCHER and KINGSFORD, The Crusades (Story of the Nations).
Perhaps the best short treatment in English.
CONDOR, The Latin Kingdom of Jerusalem (1099-1291), London,
1897-
OMAN, The Byzantine Empire.
Essays on the Crusades by MUNRO, PRUTZ, and DIEHL, published by
the " International Quarterly," New York. Very interesting and useful.
OMAN, A History of the Art of War, Vol. II, " The Middle Ages,"
1898. Contains a good sketch, of the military operations of the
crusaders.
AMEER ALI, A Short History of the Saracens (see above, p. 124).
MILMAN, History of Latin Christianity, Book VII, Chapter VI, for
the First Crusade; Book VII, Chapters IV and VI, last part, for the
Second; Book IX, Chapter VII, for the Third and Fourth; Book X,
Chapter III, for that of Frederick II. For the later period of the
crusades, see LANE-POOLE, Saladin and the Fall of the Kingdom of
Jerusalem (Heroes of the Nations), 1898, and PEARS, The Fall of
(1202-1204).
For an account of the sources of the first crusade, see SYBEL, The
History and Literature of the Crusades, edited by Lady Duff Gordon.
Some of the sources may be found translated into English in the
Chronicles &f the Crusades in the Bohn Library, — for example, an
account of the Third Crusade by RICHARD OF DEVIZES, and JOIN-
VILLB*S famous life of St. Louis (see above, p. 213). Material is also
available in ARCHER, The Crusade of Richard I (English History
from Contena|x>rary Sources).
The Chronicles of ROGER OF HOVEBEN, ROGER OF WENDOVER,
MATTHEW OF PARIS, and that ascribed to MATTHEW OF WESTMINSTER
(see above, p. 244), all contain information relating to the crusades and
are ail to be Lad in the Bohn library.
C, Materials
Rd'HRICHT, Gesc kichtedes Kenigreickes Jerusalem, 1100-1291, 2 vols.,
,3^ An authoritative and recent work, Trith plenty of references to
the literature of the subject. The same author has prepared a brief
The Crusades 345
outline without notes called Gwhicktc d*s Konigreickts Jmtsaltm im
Umriss, 1898. Also, Gesckichte dfs crsten Kreuxxuges, 1891, with notes.
PRUTZ, Cvlturgcsehichtt drr A'revsxugv, 1883. This is the best work
on the general conditions in the Prankish kingdoms in Palestine.
KUGLER, GeschichU dtr JCreuzxugt, 2d ed., 1891 (Oncken Series).
This is a good general treatment, bat contains practically no notes or
references.
For the history of the East in general, s«e HSRTZBEKC, Ceitkuklf
der Bytantintr und des osmanisckcn Retches^ 1883, and Ml LLE*, Dtr
Islam (see above, p. 125), both in the Oncken Series.
On the institutions : DODIT, Htstonre des institutions monarcttfntt
dans le Royaume Latin de Jerusalem*
For the military orders: GUELIN, Sekuld t>dfr U**tkul4 Jts Tempd-
ordens, 1893; DELISLE, Operations financitrts dfs Tnaplifrs, 1889; LEA,
History of the Inquisition, Vol. Ill, Chapter V.
The best account of the sources for the opening of the crusades The
will be found in SYBEL, Gesc&itkie ties ersttn A~rf*tx*gf*, 2d ed,, i88f .
By far the most comprehensive collectioo of the sources themselves
is that issued under the auspices of the Academic des Inscriptions et &*
Belles-lettres, called Re£*rU &s kisteritus des cr*is*dftt in fooitee«
ponderous but magnificently printed folio volumes, 1841-1898. Fire
volumes are devoted to the western writers, two to the Greek histo-
rians, five to the Arabian, two to the laws of the kingdom of Jerusalem,
and one to Armenian documents. The Greek text is accompanied by
a Latin translation, and the Arabic and Armenian material is translated
into French.
GUIZOT, Collection des Mfmoins (see above, p. 220), contains
of the most celebrated writers: FULCHEV. OF CHARTRES, who
on the First Crusade and kept a diary ; ROBKKT THK MONK (see above,
p. 312) ; WILLIAM OF TYRE, — the earlier part of whose work is now
discredited ; and,, for die later period, JACQUES DE VITEV.
CHAPTER XVI
THE MEDUBVAL CHURCH AT ITS HEIGHT
I. THE PREEMINENCE OF THE CHURCH
The most celebrated assertion of the supreme author-
ity of the Church and of its head, the pope, is the bull
Unam Sanctam, issued by Boniface VIII in 1302.
134. Boll That there is one holy Catholic and apostolic Church we
are impelled by our faith to believe and to hold — this we
do firm*y believe and openly confess — and outside of this
there is neither salvation nor remission of sins, as the bride-
groom proclaims in Canticles, " My dove, my undefiled is
but one ; she is the only one of her mother, she is the choice
one of her that bare her." The Church represents one
mystic body, and of this body Christ is the head ; of Christ,
indeed, God is the head. In it is one Lord, and one faith,
and one baptism. In the time of the flood there was one
ark of Noah, prefiguring the one Church, finished in one
cubit, having one Noah as steersman and' commander. Out-
side of this all things upon the face of the earth were, as we
read, destroyed. This Church we venerate and this alone.
... It is that seamless coat of the Lord, which was not
rent but fell by lot. Therefore, in this one and only Church
there is one body and one head, — not two heads as if it were
a monster, — namely, Christ and Christ's vicar, Peter and
Peter's successor ; for the Lord said to Peter himself, " Feed
my sheep." " My sheep," he said, using a general term and
not designating these or those sheep, so that we must believe
that ail the sheep were committed to him. If, then, the
Greeks, or others, shall say that they were not intrusted to
Petser and his successors, they must perforce admit that they
346
The JMedi&val Church at its Height 347
are not of Christ's sheep, as the Lord says in John, " there
is one fold, and one shepherd."
In this Church and in its power are two swords, to wit, a
spiritual and a temporal, and this we are taught by the words
of the Gospel ; for when the apostles said, kt Behold, here
are two swords " (in the Church, namely, since the apostles
were speaking), the Ltord did not reply that it was too many,
but enough. And surely he who claims that the temporal
sword is not in the power of Peter has but ill understood the
word of our Lord when he said, *4 Put up again thy sword
into his place." Both the spiritual and the material swords.
therefore, are in the power of the Church, the latter indeed
to be used for the Church, the former by the Church, the one
by the priest, the other by the hand of kings and soldiers,
but by the will and sufferance of the priest.
It is fitting, moreover, that one sword should be under
the other, and the temporal authority subject to the spiritual
power. For when the apostle said, "there is no power but
of God: the powers that be are ordained of -God," they
would not be ordained unless one sword were under the
other, and one, as inferior, was brought back by the other to
the highest place. For, according to St. Dionysius, the law
of divinity is to lead the lowest through the intermediate to
the" highest. Therefore, according to the law of the universe,
things are not reduced to order directly and upon the same
footing, but the lowest through the intermediate, and the
inferior through the superior. It behooves us, therefore,
the more freely to confess that the spiritual power excels in
dignity and nobility any form whatsoever of earthly power,
as spiritual interests exceed the temporal in importance.
All this we see fairly from the giving of tithes, from the
benediction and sanctificatioo, from the recognition of this
power and the control of these same things.
Hence, the truth bearing witness, it is for the spiritual
power to establish the earthly power and judge it, if it be
not good. Thus, in the case of the Church and the power
of the Church, the prophecy of Jeremiah is fulfilled) : " See,
I have this day set thee over the nations and over the
343 Readings in European History
kingdoms," etc. Therefore, if the earthly power shall err,
it shall be judged by the spiritual power; if the lesser
spiritual power err, it shall be judged by the higher. But
if the supreme power err, it can be judged by God alone
and not by man, the apostles bearing witness, saying, The
spiritual man judges all things, but he himself is judged by
no one. Hence this power, although given to man and
exercised by man, is not human, but rather a divine power,
given by the divine lips to Peter, and founded on a rock for
him and his successors in him (Christ) whom he confessed,
the Lord saying to Peter himself, " Whatsoever thou shalt
bind," etc.
Whoever, therefore, shall resist this power, ordained by
God, resists the ordination of God, unless there should be
two beginnings [i.e. principles], as the Manichaean imagines.
But this we judge to be false and heretical, since, by the
testimony of Moses, not in the beginnings but in the begin-
ntng, God created the heaven and the earth. We, moreover,
proclaim, declare, and pronounce that it is altogether neces-
sary to salvation for every human being to be subject to the
Roman pontiff.1
Given at the Lateran the twelfth day before the Kalends
of December, in our eighth year, as a perpetual memorial of
this matter.
II. THE SEVEN SACRAMENTS
135. AH We have drawn up in the briefest form a statement of
Jf®000*0* the truth concerning the seven sacraments, so that the
sacraments, Armenians, now and in future generations, may more easily
written be instructed therein.
fortbe
1 This famous concluding sentence has often been interpreted as a
Sageae IV comprehensive claim on the part of the popes to the civil and political
headship of the world. Leo X, however, early in the sixteenth cen-
tury, declared that ** every human being " simply meant " all Christian
believers." Thus construed, the proposition loses its political significance
and becomes a universally accepted belief among all orthodox Roman
Catholics.
The Mcdi&val Church at its Height 349
There are seven sacraments under the new law: that is
to say, baptism, confirmation, the mass, penance, extreme
unction, ordination, and matrimony. These differ essen-
tially from the sacraments of the old law ; for the latter do
not confer grace, but only typify that grace which can be
given by the passion of Christ alone. But these our sacra-
ments both contain grace and confer it upon all who receive
them worthily.
The first five sacraments are intended to secure the spir-
itual perfection of every man individually ; the two last are
ordained for the governance and increase of the Church.
For through baptism we are born again of the spirit ; through
confirmation we grow in grace and are strengthened in the
faith ; and when we have been born again and strengthened
we are fed by the divine food of the mass ; but if, through
sin, we bring sickness upon our souls, we are made spiritually
whole by penance ; and by extreme unction we are healed,
both spiritually and corporeally, according as our souls have
need ; by ordination the Church is governed and multiplied
spiritually ; by matrimony it is materially increased.
To effect these sacraments three things are necessary:
the things [or symbols], that is, the " material "; the words,
that is, the " form " ; and the person of the ** ministrant,"
who administers the sacrament with the intention of carry-
ing out what the Church effects through him. If any of
these things be lacking, the sacrament is not accomplished.
Three of these sacraments — baptism, confirmation, and
ordination — impress indelibly upon the soul a character, a
certain spiritual sign, distinct from all others ; so they are
not repeated for the same person. The other four do not
imprint a character upon the soul, and admit of repetition.
Holy baptism holds the first place among all the sacra-
ments because it is the gate of spiritual life ; for by it we
are made members of Christ and of the body of the Church.
Since through the first man death entered into the world,
unless we are born again of water, and of the spirit, we
cannot, so saith Truth, enter into the kingdom of heaven.
The material of this sacrament is water, real and natural —
35<D Readings in European History
it matters nothing whether it be cold or warm. Now the
form is : "I baptize thee in the name of the Father, and of
the Son, and of the Holy Ghost." . . -1
The ministrant of this sacrament is the priest, for bap-
tism belongs to his office. But in case of necessity not only
a priest or deacon may baptize, but a layman or a woman — .
nay, even a pagan or a heretic, provided he use the form of
the Church and intend to do what the Church effects. The
efficacy of this sacrament is the remission of all sin, original
sin and actual, and of all penalties incurred through this
guilt Therefore no satisfaction for past .sin should be
imposed on those who are baptized ; but if they die before
they commit any sin, they shall straightway attain the king-
dom of heaven and the sight of God.
The second sacrament is confirmation. The material is
the chrism made from oil, which signifies purity of con-
science, and from balsam, which signifies the odor of fair
fame ; and it must be blessed by the bishop. The form is :
" I sign thee with the sign of the cross and confirm thee with
the chrism of salvation, in the name of the Father, and of the
Son, and of the Holy Ghost." The proper ministrant of this
sacrament is the bishop. While a simple priest avails to
perform the other, anointings, this one none can confer save
the bishop only ; for it is written of the apostles alone that by
the laying on of hands they gave the Holy Ghost, and the
bishops hold the office of the apostles. We read in the Acts
of the Apostles, when the apostles who were at Jerusalem
heard how Samaria had received the word of God, they sent
to them Peter and John ; who, when they were come, prayed
that they might receive Jthe Holy Ghost ; for as yet it was
fallen upon none of them, — they were only baptized in the
name of the Lord Jesus. Then they laid hands upon them
and they received the Holy Ghost. Now, in place of this
laying on of hands, confirmation is given in the Church.
Yet we read that sometimes, for reasonable and urgent cause,
1 Certain variations m the words used do not necessarily vitiate the
sacrament
The Mcdi&val Church at its Height 35 1
by dispensation from the Holy See, a simple priest has been
permitted to administer confirmation with a chrism prepared
by a bishop.
In this sacrament the Holy Ghost is given to strengthen
us, as it was given to the apostles on the day of Pentecost,
that the Christian may confess boldly the name of Christ.
And therefore he is confirmed upon the brow, the seat of
shame, that he may never blush to confess the name of
Christ and especially his cross, which is a stumbling-block
to the Jews and foolishness to the Gentiles, according to the
apostle. Therefore he is signed with the sign of the cross,
The third sacrament is the eucharist. The material is
wheaten bread and wine of the grape, which before conse-
cration should be mixed very sparingly with water; because,
according to the testimony of the holy fathers and doctors
of the Church set forth in former times in disputation, it is
believed that the Lord himself instituted this sacrament
with wine mixed with water, and also because this corre-
sponds with the accounts of our Lord's passion. For the
holy Pope Alexander, fifth from the blessed Peter, says, 4* In
the offerings of sacred things made to God during the sol-
emnization of the mass, only bread and wine mixed with
water are offered up. Neither wine alone nor water alone
may be offered up in the cup of the Lord, but both mixed,
since it is written that both blood and water flowed from
Christ's side."
Moreover the mixing of water with the wine fitly signifies
the efficacy of this sacrament, namely, the union of Chris-
tian people with Christ, for water signifies "people," accord-
ding to the passage in the Apocalypse which says, "many
waters, many people," And Julius, second pope after the
blessed Sylvester, says: "According to the provisions of
the canons the cup of the Lord should be offered filled
with wine mired with water, because a people is signified
by the water, and in the wine is manifested the blood of
Christ. Therefore when the wine and water are mixed in
the cup the people are joined to Christ, and the host of the
faithful is united with him in whom they believe."
3S2
Readings in European History
Tnosab-
sfcmtiatioo
of the
land
its three
pwts.
Since, therefore, the holy Roman Church, instructed by the
most blessed apostles Peter and Paul, together with all the
other churches of the Greeks and Latins in which glowed
the light of sanctity and of doctrine, has from the begin-
ning of the nascent Church observed this custom and still
observes it, it is quite unseemly that any region whatever
should depart from this universal and rational observance.
We decree, therefore, that the Armenians likewise shall con-
form themselves with the whole Christian world, and that
their priests shall mix a little water with the wine in the cup
of oblation.
The form of this sacrament is furnished by the words of
the Saviour when he instituted it, and the priest, speaking in
the person of Christ, consummates this sacrament. By
virtue of these words, the substance of the bread is turned
into the body of Christ and the substance of the wine into
bis blood. This is accomplished in such wise that the whole
Christ is altogether present under the semblance of the
bread and altogether under the semblance of the wine.
Moreover, after the consecrated host and the consecrated
wrae have been divided, the whole Christ is present in
any part of them. The benefit effected by this sacra-
meet ia the souls of those who receive it worthily is the
union of man with Christ And since, through grace, man
is made one body with Christ and united in his members,
it follows that through this sacrament grace is increased
in those who partake of it worthily. Every effect of mate-
rial food and drink upon the physical life, in nourishment,
growth, and pleasure, is wrought by this sacrament for the
spiritual life. By it we recall the beloved memory of our
Saviour; by it we are withheld from evil, and strengthened
in good, and go forward to renewed growth in virtues and
graces.
The fourth sacrament is penance. The material, as we
may say, consists in the acts of penitence, which are divided
into three parts. The first of these is contrition of the
heart, wherein the sinner must grieve for the sins he has
committed, with the resolve to commit no further sins.
The Medi&val Church at its Height 353
Second comes confession with the mouth, to which it per-
tains that the sinner should make confession to his priest
of all the sins he holds in his memory. The third is satis-
faction for sins according to the judgment of the priest, and
this is made chiefly by prayer, fasting, and almsgiving.
The form of this sacrament consists in the words of abso-
lution which the priest speaks when he says, "I absolve
thee," etc. ; and the minister of this sacrament is the priest,
who has authority to absolve either regularly or by the com-
mission of a superior. The benefit of this sacrament is
absolution from sins.
The fifth sacrament is extreme unction, and the material Extreme
is oil of the olive, blessed by a bishop. This sacrament u*ction'
shall not be given to any except the sick who are in fear of
death. They shall be anointed in the following places:
the eyes on account of the sight, the ears on account of the
hearing, the nostrils on account of smell, the mouth on
account of taste and speech, the hands on account of touch,
the feet on account of walking, and the loins as the seat
of pleasure. The form of this sacrament is as follows:
"Through this holy unction and his most tender compas-
sion, the Lord grants thee forgiveness for whatever sins thou
hast committed by the sight," — and in the same way for the
other members. The minister of this sacrament is a priest
The benefit is even the healing of the mind and, so far as is
expedient, of the body also. Of this sacrament the blessed
apostle James says: ** Is any sick among you? Let him
call for the elders of the church and let them pray over him,
anointing him with oil in the name of the Lord : and the
prayer of faith shall save the sick, and the Lord shall raise
him up; and if he have committed sins, they shall be
forgiven him,"
The sixth sacrament is ordination. The material for the
priesthood is the cup with the wine and the paten with the
bread ; for the deaconate, the books of the Gospel ; for
the subdeaconate, an empty cup placed upon an empty
paten; and in like manner, other ofSces are conferred by
giving to the candidates those things which pertain to their
354 Readings in European History
secular ministrations. The form for priests is this : " Receive
the power to offer sacrifice in the Church for the living and
the dead, in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and
of the Holy Ghost." And so for each order th6 proper
form shall be used, as fully stated in the Roman pontifical.
The regular minister of this sacrament is a bishop; the
benefit, growth in grace, to the end that whosoever is
ordained may be a worthy minister.
Matrimony The seventh sacrament is matrimony, the type of the
union of Christ and the Church, according to the apostle,
who saith, "This is a great mystery1; but I speak con-
cerning Christ and the church." The efficient cause of
marriage is regularly the mutual consent uttered aloud on
the spot. These advantages are to be ascribed to marriage :
first, the begetting of children and their bringing up in the
worship of the Lord; secondly, the fidelity that husband
and wife should each maintain toward the other; thirdly,
the indissoluble character of marriage, for this typifies the
indissoluble union of Christ and the Church. Although
for the cause of adultery separation is permissible, for no
other cause may marriage be infringed, since the bond of
marriage once legitimately contracted is perpetual.
III. TALES ILLUSTRATING THE MIRACULOUS POWER OF THE
SACRAMENTS AND THE RELIGIOUS IDEAS OF THE COMMON
PEOPLE
There were many tales current in the twelfth and
thirteenth centuries which were used by preachers and
writers to show the wondrous workings of the sacra-
ments and the timely intervention in human affairs of
the Virgin and the saints. Three collections of these
1 In thb passage from Paul's epistle to the Ephesians (v 32) the
original Greek word mys&rum was translated by the latin saeramentum,
so that the sentence reads in the Vulgate version of the New Testament,
Sturamentum kcc magnum ««&
The Medieval Church at its Height 355
anecdotes are especially well known: (i) The Dia-
logues concerning Miracles^ brought together by a
devout Cistercian monk, Caesar of Heisterbach (d. ca.
1240), early in the thirteenth century; (2) the sermon
stories of Jacques de Vitry (d. 1240), a bishop and
cardinal, famous for his preaching; (3) the anecdotes
or apologues of Stephen of Bourbon, a Dominican in-
quisitor (d. 1261), a man of wide experience and much
sagacity.
In Hemmenrode a certain aged priest, Henry by name, 136. Christ
died a few years ago. He was a holy and just man, and »»»•»*•
had been for many years sacristan in that monastery. When ^JSf* **
he was celebrating the mass one day at the altar of St. John
the Baptist, in the choir of the lay brethren, a certain one
of the lay brethren standing near saw, in the hands of the
priest, the Saviour in the form of a man. Nevertheless the *«*•)
priest himself did not see it One of the elders of that
convent related this to me.
I have heard that a certain rustic, wishing to become 137.]
wealthy and having many hives of bees, asked certain evil !J*"*L ^.
men how he could get rich and increase the number of his
bees. He was told by some one that if he retained tbe
sacred host on Easter and placed it in some one of his hives,
he would entice away all of his neighbor's bees, which, leav-
ing their own hives, would come to the place where the
body of our Lord was and there would make hooey. So he
did this.
-Then all the bees came to the hive where the body of
Christ was, and just as if they felt sorrow for the irrever-
ence done to it, by their labor they began to construct a.
little church and to erect foundations, and bases, and
columns, and an altar; then with the greatest reverence
they placed the body of our Lord upon the altar. And
within their little beehive they formed the little church with
wonderful and most beautiful workmanship. The bees of
356 Readings in European History
the vicinity, leaving their hives, came to that one ; and over
that work they sang in their own manner certain wonderful
melodies like hymns.
The rustic, hearing this, marveled. But waiting until
the fitting time for collecting the honey, he found nothing
in his hives. Finding himself impoverished through the
means by which he had expected to be enriched, he went
to the hive where he had placed the host, and where he saw
the bees had come together. But when he approached, just
as if they wished to vindicate the insult to our Saviour, the
bees rushed upon the rustic and stung him so severely
that he escaped with difficulty and in great agony. Going
to the priest, he related all that he had done, and what the
bees had done.
The priest, by the advice of the bishop, collected his
parishioners and made a procession to that place. Then
the bees, leaving the hive, rose in the air, making sweet
melody. Raising the hive, they found inside the noble
structure of that little church and the body of our Lord
placed upon the altar. Then, returning thanks, they bore
to their own church that little church of the bees, constructed
with such skill and elegance, and placed it on the altar.
By this deed those who do not reverence, but offer insult
instead, to the sacred body of Christ, or the sacred place
where it is, ought to be put to great confusion.
l38.Tfaraagb Also it is related that once when a certain holy father
was engaged with the brethren in some work, he forgot to
recite the nones at the right time, on account of his occupa-
fo» tion. Afterwards he saw the devil passing before him, bear-
ing on his shoulders a very large book, in the shape of a
roil, which looked as large as a tower ; and he adjured the
* devil in the name of the Lord to drop the book. When the
monk unrolled the book, he found written on one page that
he himself had not said the nvncs on the day and at the hour
when he ought. Whereupon, prostrating himself at once at
the feet of his companions, he confessed his negligence, and
immediately looking again in the devil's roll, he found that
The Medi&val Church at its Height 357
what had been written there was erased, and thereby he knew
the efficacy of confession.
A certain very religious man told me that this happened 139. Tfce
in a place where he had been staying. A virtuous and pious
matron came frequently to the church and served God most
devoutly day and night. There also came a certain monk,
the guardian and treasurer of the monastery, who had a
great reputation for piety, and truly devout he was. When,
however, the two frequently conversed together in the church
concerning religious matters, the devil, envying their virtue
and reputation, tempted them very sorely, so that the spirit-
ual love was changed to carnal. Accordingly they fixed upon
a night when the monk was to leave his monastery, taking
the treasures of the church, and the matron her home, with
a sum of money which she should steal from her husband.
After they had fled, the monks, on rising in the morning,
saw that the chests had been broken open and the treasures
of the church stolen ; and not finding the monk, they quickly
pursued him; likewise the husband his wife. Overtaking
the monk and the woman with the treasure and money, they
brought them back and threw them into prison. So great
was the scandal throughout the whole country, and so much
were all religious persons reviled, that the harm from the
infamy and scandal was far greater than from the sin itself.
Then the monk, restored to his senses, began with many
tears to pray to the blessed Virgin, whom from infancy he
had always served, and never before had any such misfortune
happened to him. Likewise the said matron began urgently
to implore the aid of the blessed Virgin, whom regularly, day
and night, she had been accustomed to salute and kneel in
prayer before her image* At length the blessed Virgin, very
angry, appeared, and after she had sorely upbraided them,
she said : " I can obtain the remission of your sins from my
Son, but what can I do about such a dreadful scandal ? For
you have so befouled the name of religious persons before
all the people, that in the future no one will trust them.
The harm you have done is almost irremediable,"
Readings in European History
Nevertheless the merciful Virgin, overcome by their
prayers, summoned the demons who had caused the deed and
enjoined upon them that, as they had caused the scandal
to religion, they must bring it to an end. As they were
not able to resist her commands, after much anxiety and
various conferences, they found a way to remove the in-
famy. In the night they placed the monk in his church,
and, repairing the broken receptacle as it was before, they
placed the treasure in it. Also after replacing the money
in it they closed and locked the chest which the matron had
opened. And they set the woman in her room and in the
place where she was accustomed to pray by night.
When the monks found the treasure of their monastery, .
and their brother praying to God just as he had been accus-
tomed to do, and the husband saw his wife, and the money
was found just as it had been before, they became stupefied
and wondered. Rushing to the prison, they saw the monk
and the woman in fetters just as they had left them ; for
one of the demons was seen by them transformed into the
likeness of a monk and another into the likeness of a
woman. When everybody in the whole city had come
together to see the miracle, the demons said in the hearing
of all, ** Let us go, for sufficiently have we deluded these
people by causing them to think evil of religious persons.**
And, saying this, they suddenly disappeared. Then all
threw themselves at the feet of the monk and of the woman
and demanded pardon.
Behold how great infamy and scandal and what inesti-
mable damage the devil would have wrought against religious
persons, if the blessed Virgin had not aided them,
IV. THE PRIVILEGE OF BENEFIT OF CLERGY
Richard of Bury, bishop of Durham, a celebrated book
collector of the early fourteenth century, -wrote a charm-
ing little volume in praise of book% the Philobiblon.
Among: other things he gives the complaint of the books
The ATediffval Church at its Height 359
against those ungrateful members of the clergy who fail
to realize that it is to books that they chiefly owe their
exalted position and privileges. Through their ability
to read, the clergy are raised above the laity ; for when
a clerk commits a crime he may, by reading a single
line, secure the "benefit of clergy/* — the right to be
tried by a church court, which cannot, like the secular
tribunals, inflict capital punishment. Thus even the
learning which the unworthy clerk had practically for-
gotten through neglect rescues him at the last moment
from the gallows.
Ye [namely, the clergy] are a chosen people, a royal priest- 140, Sw *
hood, a holy race ; ye are a peculiar people chosen into the
lot of God ; ye are priests and ministers of God, nay, ye are
called the very Church of God, — as though the laity were
not to be called churchmen. Ye, being preferred to the
laity, sing psalms and hymns in the chancel and, serving
the altar and living by the altar, make the true body of
Christ ; wherein God himself has honored you not only above
the laity, but even a little higher than the angels ; — for to
whom of his angels has he said at any time: *4Thou art a
priest forever, after the order of Melchizedek"? Ye dis-
pense the patrimony of the Crucified One to the poor, wherein
it is required of stewards that a man be found faithful. Ye
are shepherds of the Lord's flock, as well in example of life
as in the word of doctrine, and your sheep are bound to
repay you with milk and wooL
Who are the givers of all these things, O clerks? Is it
not books ? Do ye remember, therefore, we pray, how many
and how great are die liberties and privileges which we books
bestow upon the dergy. In truth, taught by us, who are the
vessels of wisdom and intellect, ye ascend the teacher's chair
and are called of men, Rabbi By us yc become marvelous
in the eyes of the laity, like great lights in the world, aixi
possess the dignities of the Church according to your various
360 Readings in European History
stations. By us, while ye still lack the first down upon your
cheeks, ye are established in your early years and bear the
tonsure on your heads, while the dread sentence of the
Church is heard, "Touch not mine anointed, and do my
prophets no harm ; " and he who has rashly touched them
let him forthwith, by his own blow, be smitten violently with
the wound of an anathema.
At length, yielding your lives to wickedness, reaching the
two paths of Pythagoras, ye choose the left branch and,
going backward, ye let go the lot of God which ye had first
assumed, becoming companions of thieves. And thus, ever
going from bad to worse, blackened by theft and murder and
manifold impurities, your fame and conscience stained by
sin, at the bidding of justice ye are confined in manacles
and fetters, and are kept to be punished by a most shameful
death. Then your friend is put far away, nor is there any
to mourn your lot. Peter swears that he knows not the
man ; the people cry to the judge : " Crucify, crucify him !
If thou let this man go, thou art not Caesar's friend."
Now all refuge is gone, for ye must stand before the
judgment seat, and there is no appeal, but only the gallows
is in store for you. While the wretched man's heart is thus
filled with woe, and only the sorrowing Muses bedew their
cheeks with tears, in his strait is heard on every side the
waning appeal to us, and to avoid the danger of impending
death fee shows the slight sign of the ancient tonsure which
he received fhrough us, begging that we may be called to his
aid and bear witness to the privilege bestowed upon him.
Then straightway, touched with pity, we run to meet the
prodigal son and snatch the fugitive slave from the gates of
death. The book he has not forgotten is handed to him to
be read, and when, with lips stammering with fear, he reads
a few words, the power of the judge is loosed, the accuser is
withdrawn, and death is put to flight. O marvelous virtue
of an empiric verse ! O saving antidote of dreadful ruin !
O precious reading of the psalter, which for this alone
deserves to be, called the book of life ! L*et the laity under-
go the judgment of the secular arm, that, either sewn up in
TJie Medi&val Church at its Height 361
sacks they may be carried out to Neptune, or planted in the
earth may fructify for Pluto, or may be offered amid the
flames as a fattened holocaust to Vulcan, or at least may be
hung up as a victim to Juno ; while our foster child, at a
single reading of the book of life, is handed over to the cus-
tody of the bishop, rigor is changed to favor, and the forum
being transferred from the laity, death is routed by the clerk
who is the nursling of books.
V. How THE CHURCHES AND MONASTERIES WERE
SUPPORTED
The following statement indicates how numerous and
complicated were the sources of revenue which even
a parish church might claim as its rightful means of
support.
I, Hugh, dean of Cye*, hereby inform the present genera- 141. Ti»
tion, and those to come, that, according as I have heard and r™"J? —
learned from my predecessors of blessed memory and have ^^j^
myself seen in my time, the church of St. Mary of Chitillon (123?)-
in my parish of Gy£ possesses the following revenue : namely,
one sixth of the tithe of grain and wine and one half of the
offerings, bequests and 'alms, — provided they are paid in
money, — and one half of the small tithe.1 From Neuilly,
one eighteenth of the tithe of grain, one sixth of the tithe
of wine, and one half of the small tithes, offerings, and leg-
acies. From C , on behalf of the allodial lands, two parts
of the tithe of grain, one sixth of the tithe of wine;, one half
of the legacies and offerings, and the whole of the small
tithe, except twelve pence, which the parish priest by virtue
of his office has been wont to receive as fish money. From
the monastery of C , two parts of the tithe of grain and
wine and of the small tithes, one third of the offerings at
Christmas, Pentecost, and All Saints. Of the other offer-
ings, however, made there during the year the church of
* Tfcat is, the tithe of other than the staple crops, — for example, of
pigs, lambs, flax, etc.
362
Readings in European History
143-ASwa-
ftfcaootiat,
Chatillon receives nothing whatever. Of the legacies up-
ward of twelve pence it receives one third, but of those
below that sum it receives by custom nothing at all.
It would seem as if the chances of misunderstanding
and of consequent litigation must have been great when
the property and dues were so curiously divided among
the various churches and monasteries. This astonishing
subdivision of the revenues possessed by ecclesiastical
bodies was doubtless due in large part to the habits of
their benefactors, whose property was commonly greatly
scattered, or bequeathed in a seemingly arbitrary fashion,
as in the following instance.
Lord Luithold, the count, gave for the support of Christ's
poor, the monks of this monastery of the holy Mother of
God, half of the manor which is called Derendingen. This
has excellent soil and is said to include twelve or more hides
of arable land alone. He also gave meadows full good, and
a half right to the exercise of all legal powers in the whole
manor. He gave two groves, two mills, and a half right to
tbe church on the same manor, and the sole right to the
church of St. Blasius hard by the manor. To these two
churches, that is to those portions of the churches which
aie under our jurisdiction, belongs one grove of five hides.
And be gave half of the manor which is called Undingen,
which includes twelve hides of fertile land and meadows
and extends over an area of more than sixty hides of woods
and of pastures for cattle. There is also an inn there. . . .
And he also gave us the whole manor of Altenburg, with
the sole right to the chapel, and a mill. The estate is
believed to comprise almost fourteen hides of arable lands
and meadows, without counting the woods and pastures.
He granted us, too, a half of the church at Oferdingen,
with four hides of fine arable land situated there, and at
Neuhausen one mans us ; likewise at Dusslingen one, and
two at Immenweiler, — which afterwards we exchanged for
The Aftdiaval Church at its Height 363
two at Stubichahe. Also ten mansus at Scephbouch and
four at Willsingen and three mills at Husin, — which were
afterwards given in exchange to Rudolph of Reutlingen for
Wimsheim. Also near the town of Chur a fourth part of
the church in the manor called Maifeld. . . .
aocwmtof
tfcoeewto
thejorttto-
«f Zwifalt
Describing with pride the foundation (1089) and his-
tory of his monastery of Zwifalt in Swabia, the monk
Ortlieb gives the following account of **uur family"
(nostra familia).
Now this our monastery church possesses many persons 143. Qrt-
who, because of the oppression of their former lords and of li^^
the burdens which weighed them down, have come under
our jurisdiction in order to have peace. Some of these are iwwd
tillers of the soil, some vinedressers ; others are bakers,
cobblers, artisans, merchants, and those who follow various
trades and callings. Some of those who pay their dues to
the monastery are on a different footing from others. Even
among those who belong directly to the monastery some pay
money yearly, while others contribute wax towards making
a certain great candle. What all these pay in dues to the
monastery is all handed over to the custodian of the church.
Some of those under our jurisdiction belong to the peo-
ple's church across the river, some to St. Stephen's church
at Tigerfeld, or to the church of St. Blasius at Derendingen,
or to other churches under our control. While these pay
their dues to the particular church to which they are known
to belong, they are all, nevertheless, like the others, numbered
among the members of our monastery family, and they should
obey our decrees, no matter if they pay dues to some other
church or monastery.
And it is to be noted that the people of Tigerfeld and
those who pay their dues to that church are to be judged,
at appointed times, by the advocate of that place in the pres-
ence of the provost of our monastery. If any one should be
convicted of any rash act, or of failure to pay his dues, one
Readings in European History
Fbe retain-
ers of the
monastery
squired to
themselves
aurobiy.
part of the fine exacted shall go to the advocate and two
parts to our community. . . .
Among our men some owe service of this kind, namely:
when the lord abbot, prior, provost, or others among the
brethren would travel anywhither, these men with their
horses, do accompany the brethren and minister unto them
obediently. And in order that this service may be right-
fully required of them they are granted certain benefices.
They assuredly rejoice to be honored by this distinction
because they have the right to have under them men we
call clients, or ministeriaks. Yet in spite of this, no man
of ours has ever become so perverse or haughty that he
presumed to ride with us in military array, or refused to
carry the wallet of any of our monks upon his pack horse.
The founders of our monastery did not intend to give us
such men, and we have not consented to receive any one
who might prove troublesome to us or to our successors.
144. Tte
Myrfa
tic
aartary.)
VI. TALES ILLUSTRATING THE MEDIEVAL ATTITUDE
TOWARDS HERETICS
The popular horror in which heresy was held in the
twelfth and thirteenth centuries is well shown in the
following accounts.
From the lips of the same brother Elias, a venerable
man, I learned that when certain heretics were scattering
the virulent seeds of error in parts of Burgundy, both the
Preaching Friars and the Minorites drew the two-edged
sword of God's word against these same heretics, opposing
them valiantly, until they were finally taken by the magis-
trate of the district. He sent them to the stake, as they
merited, in order that these workers of iniquity should perish
in their wickedness as a wholesome lesson to others.
Quantities of wood having been supplied in plenty to
feed the flames, suddenly a toad of wonderful size appeared,
and without being driven, betook itself of its own accord
The Medi&val Church at its Height 365
into the midst of the flames. One of the heretics, who was
reported to be their bishop, had fallen on his back in the
fire. The toad took his place on this man's face and in
the sight of all ate out the heretic's tongue.
By the next day his whole body, except his bones, had
been turned into disgusting toads, which could not be
counted for their great number. The inhabitants, seeing
the miracle, glorified God and praised him in his servants,
the Preaching Friars, because the Lord had, in his mercy,
delivered them from the horror of such pollution.
God omnipotent surely wished to show through the most
unseemly and filthiest of animals, how foul and infamous
are the teachings of heretics, so that all might thereafter f*sy'
carefully shun the heretic as they would the poisonous toad.
Just as among four-footed creatures the toad is held the
foulest, so the teachings of the heretic are more debased
and filthy than those of any other religious sect. The blind-
ness of heresy justifies the perfidy of the Jews. Its pollu-
tion makes the madness of the Mohammedans a pure thing
in contrast. The licentiousness of the heretics would leave
Sodom and Gomorrah stainless. What is held most enor-
mous in crime becomes most holy when compared with the
shame and ignominy of heresy. Therefore, dear Christian,
flee this unspeakable evil, in comparison with which all other
crimes are as trifles.
Two men, simply clad but not without guile, not sheep 145.
but ravening wolves, came to Besan^on, feigning the greatest
piety. Moreover they were pale and thin, they went about
barefooted and fasted daily, they did not miss a single room-
ing the matins in the cathedral, nor did they accept anything
from any one except a little food. When by this hypocrisy
they had attracted the attention of ei^ery one, they began ^.^
to vomit forth their hidden poison and to preach to the
ignorant new and unheard-of heresies. In order, moreover,
that the people might believe their teachings, they ordered
meal to be sifted on the sidewalk and walked on it without
leaving a trace of a footprint Likewise, walking upon the
366 Readings in European History
water, they did not sink; also they had little huts burned
over their heads, and after the huts had been burned to
ashes, they came out uninjured. After this they said to
the people, " If you do not believe our words, believe our
miracles. "
The bishop and the clergy, hearing of this, were greatly
disturbed. And when they wished to resist the men, affirm-
ing that they were heretics and deceivers and ministers
of the devil, they escaped with difficulty from being stoned
by the people. Now that bishop was a good and learned
man and a native of our province. Our aged monk, Conrad,
who told me these facts and who was in that city at the
time, knew him well.
The bishop, seeing that his words were of no avail and
that the people intrusted to his charge were being seduced
from the faith by the devil's agents, summoned a certain
clerk that he knew, who was very well versed in necromancy,
and said: "Certain men in my city are doing so and so.
I ask you to find out from the devil, by your art, who they
are, whence they come, and by what means they work so
many and such wonderful miracles. For it is impossible
that they should do wonders through divine inspiration when
their teaching is so contrary to that of God." The clerk
said, ** My lord, I have long ago renounced that art." The
bishop replied: " You see clearly in what straits I am. I
must either acquiesce in their teachings or be stoned by the
people. Therefore I enjoin upon you, for the remission of
your sins, that you obey me in this matter."
The clerk, obeying the bishop, summoned the devil, and,
when' asked why he had called him, responded : " I am sorry
that I have deserted you. And because I desire to be more
obedient to you in the future than in the past, I ask you to
tell me who these men are, what they teach, and by what
means they work so great miracles." The devil replied,
"They are mine and sent by me, and they preach what I
have placed in their mouths-" The clerk responded, "How
is it that they cannot be injured, or sunk in the water, or
burned by fire?" The demon replied again, "They have
The Mcditcval Church at its Height 367
under their armpits, sewed between the skin and the flesh,
my compacts, in which the homage done by them to me is
written ; and it is by virtue of these that they work such
miracles and cannot be injured by any one/' Then the clerk
said, "What if those should be taken away from them?"
The devil replied, 4t Then they would be weak, just like
other men." The clerk, having heard this, thanked the
demon, saying, " Now go, and when you are summoned by
me, return."
He then went to the bishop and related these things to
him in due order. The latter, filled with great joy, sum-
moned all the people of the city to a suitable place and
said : 4k I am your shepherd, ye are my sheep. If those men,
as you say, confirm their teaching by signsT I will follow
them with you. If not, it is fitting that they should be pun-
ished and that you should penitently return to the faith of
your fathers with me." The people replied, *4 We have
seen many signs from them." The bishop said, " But I have
not seen them."
Why prolong my tale ? The plan pleased the people.
The heretics were summoned. The bishop was present.
A fire was kindled in the midst of the city. However, be-
fore the heretics entered it, they were secretly summoned
to the bishop. He said to them, " I want to see if you have
anything evil about you." Hearing this, they stripped quickly
and said frith great confidence, '* Search our bodies and our
garments carefully." The soldiers, however, following the
instructions of the bishop, raised the men's arms, and no-
ticing under the armpits some scars that were healed up,
cut them open with their knives and extracted from them
little scrolls which had been sewed In.
Having received these, the bishop went forth with the
heretics to the people and, having commanded silence, cried
out in a loud voice, " Now shall your prophets enter the fire,
and if they are not injured I will believe in them." The
wretched men trembled and said, ** We are not able to eater
now." Then the bishop told the people of the evil which
had been detected, and showed the compacts. Then all
368 Readings in European History
were furious and hurled the devil's ministers into the fire
which had been prepared, to be tortured with the devil in
eternal flames. And thus, through the grace of God and
the zeal of the bishop, the growing heresy was extinguished,
and the people who had been seduced and corrupted were
cleansed by penance.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
A. Refer- Unfortunately the Church has received such slight attention in the
e*£€s. manuals most commonly used that there is little in them to supplement
the account given in Chapter XVI of the History of Western Europe.
General Review : B^MONT and MONOD, pp. 488-502 ; EMERTON,
pp. $41-555, — especially good for the development of the canon law;
MUNRO, pp. 169-175.
Interesting examples of the formulae for excommunication and the
interdict will be found in Translations and Reprints^ Vol. IV, No. 4,
pp. 22-33. .
B. Add*- CUTTS, Parish Priests and their People^ 1898.
t~m*lr**d- LBA, Studies in Church History. Contains essays on "The Rise of
Temporal Power," •* Benefit of Clergy," and a very full account of
w Excommunication."
MAFTLAND, S. M., The Dark Ages. Essays written some sixty years
ago with a view of defending mediaeval thought and institutions from
the aspersions of certain Protestant writers. The gloomier aspects of
tike subject will be found in :
LEA, ffistny 9/tkt Inquisition in the Middle Ages, Vol. *, Chapter I.
A startling arraignment of the vices of the mediaeval clergy, which
makes no claim to describe the normal and salutary activities of the
Church,
JISSOPP, The Coming 0f the Friars. Contains several essays on the
Church.
Somewhat more systematic accounts of the organization and beliefs
of the Church w31 be found in die histories of the Church mentioned
above, pp. 82 sf^ especially in MHJUAN, Book XIVr Chapters I-III,
and in NEWMAN, pp. 449-457.
C. Materials MoELLER, History *f tk* Christian Church^ Vol. II, Period II,
Chapter V ; Period III, Cbapteis II aad III, with references to many
monographs.
The Medi&va! Church at its Height 369
GlESELER, Ecclesiastical History^ Vol. Ill, Chapters I, II, V, and
VI, which give excerpts fiom the sources.
Mi;LLER, KARL, Kirchengeschichte, Vol. If 1892. The most sug-
gestive, scholarly, and readable general review of church history.
PREVOST, Les tglises et Us campagnes au moyen age, 1892. An
excellent and sympathetic account of the activities of the Church,
especially in the country districts.
LUCHAIRE, Manuel des institutions (see above, p. 192), Part I, Book I.
The best brief account of the Church as an institution, especially in its
relations to the civil authorities.
Special phases of the administrative system of the Chnrch are treated
by IMBART DE LA TOUR in his work on episcopal elections (see above,
p. 219), and by FOURNIER, Les Officiates au move* Age ; etudes sur
r organization, la compStence et la procedure des tributtaux ecclesiastiques
ordinaires en France, 1180-1328, iSSo. Also LEA, Formulary <y~ the
Papal Penitentiary in the Thirteenth Century, 1892. This contains an
excellent introduction and a collection of letters showing the kinds of
cases which were referred to the papal tribunal.
The two great systematic treatises upon church law, both of which
were unfortunately left uncompleted by their authors, are: HINSCHIUS,
Das JCirchenrecht der Katholiken und Protestanten in Dcutsckfand^
7 vols., i869-l897» and G. PHILLIPS <a Catholic), Kirchenreckt, j vols^
1845-1872.
Brief treatments: SOHM, Kirchenreckt^ 1892, and ZoRN, Lekrbvck
des KirchenrechtS) 1892.
TARDIF, Histmre des Sources du Droit Cancmiquc, 1887, is an indis-
pensable guide to the use of the Corpus Juris CanonicL Of the latter
there are numerous editions, but only one which the historical student
will find satisfactory, namely, that edited by FKIEDBERG, 2 vols^ 1881,
costing about M. 60. The editor has carefully given the context of
many documents of which only brief extracts appear in the decretals.
This adds greatly to the value of the collection in using it for historical
purposes. He also adds many excellent notes. The first of the two
volumes is devoted to GRATIA N'S Decretum* the second to tfae later
collections of decretals brought together on der Gregory IX and succeed-
ing popes. A copy of the canon law as edited by Friedberg should be
in every college library, as no one can 3ong study tbe Church without
having occasion to refer to the JOecretum and the decretals.
Of the ecclesiastical writers of the twelfth centarj the most impor-
tant wifi be found in MIGNE, Pairetogie Latin* (see above, p. 84). Tbe
letters and some of the other works of ST. BE&HAJU> may be had in
Ecclesiasti-
cal law.
Friedbei^s
stdmixftbfe
edition of
ma.
370 Readings in European History
English, translated by EALES, Life and Works of Sf. Bernard, 4 vols.,
1889 sgq. The Sententiae of PETER LOMBARD are in MIGNE, Vol.
CXCII. Older separate editions are very easily procured. The works
of ALBERTUS MAGNUS are expensive and rarely found even in large
libraries, but there is more chance of getting hold of the far more
important works of THOMAS AQUINAS, of which a very fine edition is
now being published at Rome under the papal auspices.
DENZINGER, Enchiridion Symbolorum et Definitionum qua* de rebus
fidei et morum a Conciliis oecumenicis et summis Pontifaibits emana-ve-
runt, Wiirzburg, several editions. A very convenient and inexpensive
collection of official pronouncements in regard to important matters of
faith, fully indexed.
JLEA, A ffistory of Auricular Confession and Indulgences, 3 vols.,
1896. Contains a very full discussion of the teachings of the various
theologians in regard to these two important subjects.
For the spirit of the Church and its role in the social life of the
period, see, above aH, MICHAEL, Culturxustdnde des deutscken Volkes
-makrend des dreizehnten fakrhunderts. Vol. II, 1899 "> a^so Histoirc de
France^ edited by LAVISSE, Vol. Ill, Part II, pp. 355 sqq. (by LANGLOIS).
In addition to the writers of the time, many of whom have much to
say of the conditions in the Church, especially of the evil, the student
will turn for impressions of the religion of the people to the tales and
sermon stories of C/ESAR OF HEISTERBACH, of JACQUES DE VITRY, and
of STEPHEN OF BOURBON, illustrations of which were given above, pp.
355 *¥¥• (see Ikt of citations at the opening of this volume, Nos. 136,
1 37, and 1 39). He will also consult the few reports of episcopal visita-
tkms, especially those of EUDES DE RIGAUD, bishop of Rouen, mentioned
beiow, pp. 378 jf#.y and the English Episcopal Registers, a list of which
may be found in GROSS, Sources of English History, — for example, that
of BISHOP GRANDISSON of Exeter (1327-1369), Part I, pp. 570-579.
Le Latre de Guillaume le Moire, described by LANGLOIS in the new His-
teire de France (see above), is a most interesting memorial of a bishop
under Philip the Fair ; it is published in MSlanges kistoriques^ Tome II,
in the Itecwntntt inedits (see above, p. 220).
CHAPTER XVII
HERESY AKD THE FRIAfiS
I. DENUNCIATIONS OF THE EVIL LIVES OK THE CLERGY
The extracts which follow illustrate the outspoken
criticism of the conduct and lives of the ecclesiastical
officials, from the pope down, which abounds in the
popular literary productions of England, France, and
Germany in the twelfth, thirteenth, and fourteenth
centuries.
The first extracts are from a poem, not improbably
composed by a very clever churchman, Walter Mape or
Mapes, who was a member of the literary circle which
Henry II of England gathered about him. It is but one
of a great number of Latin poems originating at the
same period, " remarkable chiefly for pungency of satire
or sprightliness of composition." They were the work
of university men, and show us that the Church never
succeeded in effectively checking, at least among the
educated, the most open and scornful strictures upon
the clergy.
The poet is represented as caught up into heaven,
where he sees visions suggested by the Apocalypse of
St. John. The translation here given is one made under
Elizabeth, or a little later.
After a burst of thunder a "goodlie personage" us. ,?>•
appears and bids the poet "Marke well and under-
stand " :
37*
372 Readings in European History
And when he had thus done he did bringe out a booke,
Which booke had titles seven, and seven sealles sealled
well,
And with a stedfast eye badde me therein to looke,
And see therbie what I to all the world should tell.
Of bisshopes' life and trade, this book hathe right good skill,
As by the sealles thereof more plainlie dothe appeare,
For in the inner part is hidd all that is ill,
But to the outeward shewe all godlie thinges appeare.
Anon a certaine power there was that opened cleare
The formost chapter's seale, and then I did espie
Foure beasts, whose shape eche one unlike to other were,
But nothinge yet at all in gesture contrarie.
The first of theise four beasts a lion semde to be,
The secund like a caulfe, the third an eagle stout,
The fourthe was like a man ; and they had wings to flie,
And full of eyen they were, and turnd like wheeles about.
And when unclosed was the first sealles knotte anon,
And I perused well the chapter thorough cleare,
And aftir that I bent my whole sight thereupon,
Whereof the title was as here it may appeare.
The lion is the Pope, that useth to devoure,
And laiethe his bookes to pledge and thirsteth aftir gold,
And dothe regard the marke, but sainct Marke dishonor,
And while he sailes alofte on coyne takes anker holde.
And to the Bisshoppe in the caulfe that we did see,
For he dothe runne before in pasture, feild, and fenne,
And gnawes and chewes on that where he list best to be,
And thus he filles himself e with goodes of other men.
Th* Archdeacon is likewise the egell that dothe fiie,
A robber rightlie cald, and sees a-farre his praie,
And aftir it with speed dothe follow by and by,
And so by theft and spoile he leades his life awale.
Heresy and tfte Friars 373
The Deane Is he that hathe the face and shape of man,
Withe fraude, desceipt, and guile fraught full as he may be,
And yet dothe hide and cloke the same as he best can,
Undir pretense and shewe of plaine simplicitie.
And theis have winges to flye, eche one of these said foure,
Because they flye abrode, and lie about affaires,
And they have eyes eche one, because that everye houre,
They looke about for gaine, and all that may be theires.
Then boisterous wyndes arose, and earthequakes by and by.
And there was harde a voice of thunder from above,
That sounded Ephata, which woorde dothe signifle
An openinge ; and anon the fifthe seale did remove,
When I the chapter sawe I reade the preface than,
And there the life and trades of priestes I marked well,
Which doe dishonor God, that all thinges first beganne,
Whiles for one penyes gaine the Trinitie they sell.
Full filthelie the priest dothe service celebrate
Withe voyce, and breathes on God his surfet's belchinge
cheere ;
And hathe twoo Latin names, but not bothe of one rate,
Sacerdos is the one, the other's Presbiter,
He cannot brooke as well Sacerdos name by right,
For by the other name men ought to call him more,
When he gives holie thinges then he Sacerdos hight,
But Presbiter when he hathe drunck well thrise before.
He is more bolde to synne, because be heares in Lent
The people's greivous crymes, and all their synnes at large.
And all the faukes for whidie they ot^ht for to be shent,
And thus he countes his owne to be of smallest charge.
The doings of abbots and monks are next revealed
to the poet :
374 Readings in European History
And when the Abbat dothe amonge his bretheren suppe,
Then tossed are the cuppes with quaffinge to and froe,
And then with bothe his handes the wine he holdeth uppe,
And with a thunderinge voice these wordes he doth out-
blowe :
" O how muche glorious is the lordes lamp so bright,
The cuppe in strong man's hande, that makes men
druncke I meane.
O Baccus, god of wyne \ our convent guyde aright,
With fruict of Daviddes stocke to wash us thoroughlie
cleane."
And aftir this the cuppe he takethe from the breade,
And cryes alowde, *4 Ho ! sires, can yow as well as I
Drincke this cuppe in his kind that I lift to my heade?"
They answer, ** Yea, we can," then goe to by and by.
Then of a moncke a right demoniacke is made,
And everie moncke dothe chatte and jangle with his
brother,
As popingaye or pie, the which are taught this trade,
By filling of their gorge, to speake one to an other.
Their order to transgresse, thei have but small remorce,
By fraude and perjurie, by missreport and spite,
By gredines of mynde, withholdinge thinges by force,
By filling of their pawnches, and fleshlie fowle delight.
Wurse than a moncke there is no feende nor sprite in hell,
Nothinge as covetuouse nor more straunge to be knowen,
For yf yow give him ought, he maie possesse it well,
But if you aske him ought, then nothinge is his owne.
The German minnesinger, Walther von der Vogel-
weide, who lived a little later than Walter Mapes, speaks
in a still more bitter tone of the popes:
Heresy and the Friars 375
St. Peter's chair is filled to-day as well 147.
As when 'twas fouled by Gerbert's sorcery ; l
For he consigned himself alone to hell,
While this pope thither drags all Christentie.
Why are the chastisements of Heaven delayed?
How long wilt thou in slumber lie, O Lord?
Thy work is hindered and thy word gainsaid,
Thy treasurer steals the wealth that thou hast stored.
Thy ministers rob here and murder there,
And o'er thy sheep a wolf has shepherd's care.
A belated troubadour in the early fourteenth century
thus denounces all classes of the clergy :
I see the pope his sacred trust betray, 14& A
For while the rich his grace can gain alway,
His favors from the poor are aye withholden.
He strives to gather wealth as best he may,
Forcing Christ's people blindly to obey,
So that he may repose in garments golden.
The vilest traffickers in" souls are all
His chapmen, and for gold a prebend's stall
He '11 sell them, or an abbacy or miter.
And to us he sends clowns and tramps who crawi
Vending his pardon briefs from cot to hadl —
Letters and pardons worthy of the writer,
Which leaves our pokes, if not our souls, the lighter.
No better is each honored cardinal
From early morning's dawn to evening's fall,
Their time is passed in eagerly contriving
To drive some bargain foul with each and alL
So if you feel a want, or great or small,
Or if for some preferment you are striving,
* A reference to Pope Sylvester II (see above, p. 220), who was popu-
larly supposed to have practiced magiral arts.
3/6
Readings in European History
The bishops.
Ifcfc prieste
Tbe Eoonks
ind friars.
The more you please to give the more 'twill bring,
Be it a purple cap or bishop's ring.
And it need ne'er in any way alarm you
That you are ignorant of everything
To which a minister of Christ should cling,
You will have revenue enough to warm you —
And, bear in mind, the lesser gifts won't harm you.
Our bishops, too, are plunged in similar sin,
For pitilessly they flay the very skin
From all their priests who chance to have fat livings.
For gold their seal official you can win
To any writ, no matter what ?s therein.
Sure God alone can make them stop their thievings.
*T were hard, in full, their evil works to tell,
As when, for a few pence, they greedily sell
The tonsure to some mountebank or jester,
Whereby the temporal courts are wronged as well,
For then these tonsured rogues they cannot quell,
Howe'er their scampish doings may us pester,
While round the church still growing evils fester.
Then as for all the priests and minor clerks,
There are, God knows, too many of them whose works
And daily life belie their daily teaching.
Scarce better are they than so many Turks,
Though they, no doubt, may be well taught — it irks
Me not to own the fullness of their teaching —
For, learned or ignorant, they 're ever bent
To make a traffic of each sacrament,
The mass's ho!y sacrifice included ;
And when they shrive an honest penitent,
Who will not bribe, his penance they augment,
For honesty should never be obtruded —
But this, by sinners fair, is easily eluded.
'T is true the monks and friars make ample show
Of rules austere which they all ondeigo,
But this the vainest is of all pretenses.
Heresy and t/w Friars 377
In sooth, they live full twice as well, we know,
As e'er they did at home, despite their vow,
And all their mock parade of abstinences.
No jollier life than theirs can be, indeed ;
And specially the begging friars exceed,
Whose frock grants license as abroad they wander.
These motives \ is which to the Orders lead
So many worthless men, in sorest need
Of pelf, which on their vices they may squander,
And then, the frock protects them in their plunder.
II. AN UNIMPEACHABLE REPORT OF THE HABITS OF THE
CLERGY OF NORMANDY IN THE THIRTEENTH CENTURY
It is not unnatural to suspect that the troubadours
and popular writers exceeded the bounds of truth in
their pungent satires, and were guilty at times of exag-
geration in their denunciations; but the cold daily record
which the conscientious archbishop of Rouen, Eudes
Rigaud, kept of his pastoral visits in the middle of the
thirteenth century is open to no such objection. There
is no reason to suppose that he did not tell the exact
truth ; and had we such reports as his for the condition
of the clergy in the other archbishoprics of western
Europe, it would be easy to determine bow feu- the
preachers, reformers, and the troubadours were justified
in the dark picture which they give of the lives of the
clergy. It must be conceded that, so far as Normandy
is concerned, the evidence of the archbishop would show
that, in many of the parishes, monasteries, and nun-
neries matters could hardly have been worse, although
occasionally he found dutiful priests, and monks and
nuns who observed the rule under which they lived.
378
Readings in European History
*tnict8 from
record of
tfee pastoral
visits of the
arcfabisbop
of Rouen,
fmfet
(1248-1269).
On the fourteenth day before the Kalends of April [1248]
we visited the chapter of Rouen. We found that they talked
in the choir, in violation of their rule. Clerks wandered about
the church and chatted with women while the service was
going on. They did not observe the rule in regard to enter-
ing the choir, and chanted the psalms too fast without making
the pauses. ... In short, they failed to observe many other
of the rules, and their temporalities were badly managed.
As for the canons themselves, we found that Master
Michael of Berciac was accused of incontinence, likewise
Lord Benedict. Likewise Master William of Salmonville
of incontinence, theft, and homicide. Likewise Master
John of St Laud of incontinence. Likewise Master Alain
of frequenting taverns, drunkenness, and gaming. Likewise
Peter of Auleige of carrying on business.
On the nones of May [1256] we visited the chapter of
St. Firmat. There are fifteen secular canons and a prior
there; six canons in residence. Firmin, the vicar of the prior,
farms the prebends of the said canons. Morell, the choir
clerk, is a rough fellow {ptrcussor). Regnaud of Stampis is
accused of incontinence, and has a boy with him whom he
supports. Bartholomew, the vicar of the cantor, sometimes
gets dnink and then does not get up to matins. Roger, one
of the canons, occasionally frequents taverns. John, the
vicar of the dean, is a tipsy fellow. We accordingly admon-
ished Bartholomew, the cantor's vicar, for his drinking, and
likewise John, the dean's vicar, and Roger, the canon, for
going to the tavern, and Regnaud of Stampis for his licen-
tiousness, and bade the said Bartholomew, John, Roger,
and Regnaud to avoid these offenses. Likewise we ordered
that Morell, the choir clerk, who was given to striking and
evil speaking, should be corrected as he deserved, and also
Firmin, the vicar, for farming the prebends, else we should
come down upon them with a heavy hand.
On the Kalends of May [1258] we visited the nunnery
of St. 'Savior. There were sixty-three nuns. They did
not have books enough : we ordered that these should be
Heresy and the Friars 379
procured. The rule of silence was not properly observed : we
commanded that it should be. We admonished them to go
to confession every month. We enjoined that they should
not keep dogs, birds, or squirrels, and should send away
those that they had. Each nun has a chest of her own.
We ordered the abbess to see what these contained, and
that she should have them opened, and that the iron fasten-
ings should be removed. When they receive new gowns
they do not return the old ones. We ordered that no nun
should dare to give away her old gown without the permis-
sion of the abbess.
Frequently, however, the nuns were accused of far
more grievous sins than keeping squirrels and having
each a locked chest, and the reports of the condition of
the parish priests are as bad as those which relate to the
monks and canons.
One of the functions of the bishop was to determine
whether the candidates presented to livings by the feudal
patrons were proper persons for the position, — whether
they knew Latin enough to read the service, and whether
they could chant.
The same day, namely the Tuesday before Pentecost, we
examined Godfrey, a clerk who had been presented to the
church of St. Richard of Herecourt, on the passage, Qw*mia
autcm aperia ef nuda $*mf eivs oat/is [«« AD things are naked
and open unto the eyes of him7']. Asked what part of
speech aperta was, be replied ** a »oun,** Asked whether it
could be any other part, he replied, ** Yes, a participle.**
Asked from what word it was derived, he answered, " From
the verb apcri&9 apcris? aperil^ apmr^ aptrivr, ap*ri€ri$" etc.
. . . Asked what paieo meant, he said " to open " or " to
suffer/* Asked what part of speech absque was, he said it
was a conjunction ; asked of what kind, he said causal.
Examined in singing, it proved that he could not sing with-
out notes and even then discordantly. We therefore, both
380
Readings in European History
on account of these deficiencies and on account of the fact
that he was accused of incontinence and quarrelsomeness,
judged that our examination showed that he was not a suit-
able person to whom to give the church.
150. Waldo
c£ Lyons,
the founder
erf the
WaMen-
(Fraeian
wxtfctes
IIL THE WALDENSIAN AND ALBIGENSIAN HERETICS
And during the same year, that is the 11733 since the
Lord's Incarnation, there was at Lyons in France a certain
citizen, Waldo by name, who had made himself much money
by wicked usury. One Sunday, when he had joined a crowd
which he saw gathered around a troubadour, he was smitten
by his words and, taking him to his house, he took care to
hear him at length. The passage he was reciting was how
the holy Alexis died a blessed death in his father's house.
When morning had come the prudent citizen hurried to the
schools of theology to seek counsel for his soul, and when
he was taught many ways of going to God, he asked the
master what way was more certain and more perfect than
all others. The master answered him with this text : " If
thou wilt be perfect, go and sell all that thou hast," etc.
Then Waldo went to his wife and gave her the choice of
keeping his personal property or his real estate, namely, what
he had in ponds, groves and fields, houses, rents, vineyards,
mills, and fishing rights. She was much displeased at hav-
ing to make this choice, but she kept the real estate. From
his personal property he made restitution to those whom he
had treated unjustly; a great part of it he gave to his two
little daughters, who, without their mother's knowledge, he
placed in the convent of Font Evrard; but the greatest part
of his money he spent for the poor. A very great famine
was then oppressing France and Germany. The prudent
citizen, Waldo, gave bread, with vegetables and meat, to
every one who came to him for three days in every week
from Pentecost to the feast of St Peter's bonds.
At the Assumption of the blessed Virgin, casting some
money among the village poor, fee cried, " No man can serve
Heresy aftd the Friars 38 1
two masters, God and mammon." Then his fellow-citizens
ran up, thinking he had lost his mind. But going on to a
higher place, he said : " My fellow-citizens and friends, I
am not insane, as you think, but I am avenging myself on
my enemies, who made me a slave, so that 1 was always
more careful of money than of God, and served the creature
rather than the Creator. I know that many will blame
me that I act thus openly. But I do it both on my own
account and on yours ; on my own, so that those who see
me henceforth possessing any money may say that I am
mad, and on yours, that you may learn to place hope in God
and not in riches."
On the next day, coming from the church, he asked a
certain citizen, once his comrade, to give him something to
eat, for God's sake. His friend, leading him to his house,
said, " I will give you whatever you need as long as I live."
When this came to the ears of his wife, she was not a little
troubled, and as though she had lost her mind, she ran to
the archbishop of the city and implored him not to let her
husband beg bread from any one but her. This moved ail
present to tears.
[Waldo was accordingly conducted into the presence of
the bishop.] And the woman, seizing her husband by the
coat, said, " Is it not better, husband, that I should redeem
my sins by giving you alms than that strangers should do
so ? " And from that time he was not allowed to take food
from any one in that city except from his wife.
An experienced inquisitor thus describes the Albi- JSI.BP-
genses:
It would take too long to describe in detail the manner in
which these same Manichsean heretics preach and teach their
followers, but it roust be briefly considered here-
in the first place, they usually say of themselves that they
are good Christians, who do not swear, or lie, or speak evil
of others ; that they do not kill any man or animal, nor any-
thing having die breath of life, and that they hold the faith
382
Readings in European History
Afcigenses
efficacy of
&e sacra-
ported
of the Lord Jesus Christ and his gospel as Christ and his
apostles taught. They assert that they occupy the place of
the apostles, and that, on account of the above-mentioned
things, they of the Roman Church, namely the prelates,
clerks, and monks, and especially the inquisitors of heresy,
persecute them and call them heretics, although they are
good men and good Christians, and that they are persecuted
just as Christ and his apostles were by the Pharisees.
Moreover they talk to the laity of the evil lives of the
clerks and prelates of the Roman Church, pointing out and
setting forth their pride, cupidity, avarice, and uncleanness
of life, and such other evils as they know. They invoke,
with their own interpretation and according to their abilities,
the authority of the Gospels and the Epistles against the
condition of the prelates, churchmen, and monks, whom
they call Pharisees and false prophets, who say, but do not
Then they attack and vituperate, in turn, all the sacra-
ments of the Church, especially the sacrament of the eucha-
rist, saying that it cannot contain the body of Christ, for had
this been as great as the largest mountain Christians would
have entirely consumed it before this. They assert that
the host comes from straw, that it passes through the tails
of horses, to wit, when the flour is cleaned by a sieve (of
horse hair) ; that, moreover, it passes through the body and
comes to a vile end, which, they say, could not happen if
God were in it
Of baptism, they assert that water is material and corrupt-
ible, and is therefore the creation of the evil power and
cannot sanctify the soul, but that the churchmen sell this
water out of avarice, just as they sell earth for the burial of
the dead, and oil to the sick when they anoint them, and as
they sell the confession of sins as made to the priests.
Hence they daim that confession made to the priests of
the Roman Church is useless, and that, since the priests may
be sinners, they cannot loose nor bind, and, being unclean
themselves, cannot make others clean. They assert, more-
over, that the cross of Christ should not be adored or ven-
erated, because, as they urge, no one would venerate or
Heresy and the Friars 383
adore the gallows upon which a father, relative, or friend
had been hung. They urge, further, that they who adore the
cross ought, for similar reasons, to worship all thorns and
lances, because as Christ's body was on the cross during the
passion, so was the crown of thorns on his head and the
soldier's lance in his side. They proclaim many other scan-
dalous things in regard to the sacraments.
Moreover they read from the Gospels and the Epistles
in the vulgar tongue, applying and expounding them in their
favor and against the condition of the Roman Church in a
manner which it would take too long to describe in detail ;
but all that relates to this subject may be read more fully
in the books they have written and infected, and may be
learned from the confessions of such of their followers as
have been converted.
IV. THE EFFICACY OF THE SACRAMENTS IN POLLUTED
HANDS
It was natural that the Church should maintain that
even though a priest led an evil private life he could still
celebrate the sacraments as efficiently as a righteous
person, just as now we do not consider that the bad
private character of a government official invalidates in
any way his official acts.
Since the sin of adultery does not take from a king the 152.
royal dignity, if otherwise be is a good prince who right-
eously executes justice in the earth, so neither can it take
the sacerdotal dignity front the priest, if otherwise he per-
forms the sacraments rightly and preaches the word of God.
Who doubts that a licentious king is more noble than a
chaste knight, although not raofe holy ? . . . No one can
doubt that Nathaniel was more holy than Judas Iscariot ;
nevertheless Judas was more noble on account of the apos-
tleship of the Lord, to which Judas and not Nathaniel
was called.
384 Readings in European History
But thou, heretic,1 wilt say : " Christ said to his disciples,
* Receive ye the Holy Ghost. Whosesoever sins ye remit,
they are remitted unto them ' ; therefore the priest who does
not receive the Holy Ghost because he is wicked cannot
absolve/* Even if a wicked priest has neither charity nor
the Holy Ghost as a private man, nevertheless his priest-
hood is worthy as far as the efficacy of the sacraments goes,
though he himself may be unworthy of the priesthood. . . .
For example, a red rose is equally red in the hands of an
emperor or of a dirty old woman ; likewise a carbuncle in
the hand of a king or of a peasant ; and my servant cleans
the stable just as well with a rusty iron hoe as with a golden
one adorned with gems. No one doubts that in the time
of Elijah there were many swans in the world, but the Lord
did not feed the prophet by swans, but by a black crow.
It might have been pleasanter for him to have had a swan,
but he was just as well fed by a crow. And though it may
be pleasanter to drink nectar from a golden goblet than from
an earthen vessel, the draught intoxicates just the same,
wherever it conies from.
V. ATTITUDE OF THE CIVI;L GOVERNMENT TOWARD
HERETICS
The following document is a good example of the
cordial manner in which the temporal rulers cooperated
with the Church in the detection and punishment of
heresy, which was universally regarded as the most hor-
rible of crimes (see above, p. 364). It is taken from the
laws of the enlightened Frederick II of Hohenstaufen.2
The heretics endeavor to rend the seamless garment of
our* Lord, and in accordance with their vicious name, which
1 The Waldensians against whom the writer is arguing, maintained,
as did the Albigenses (see above, p. 382) that only good priests could
administer the sacraments so that they would benefit the sinners.
3 Extracts from the laws in France and Germany relating to heretics
will be found in Translations aitd Refr*9t£$, VoL III, No. 6.
Heresy a fid tfie Friars 385
means division, they would destroy the unity of that same 153,
indivisible faith. They would withdraw the sheep from
Peter's guardianship, to which they were intrusted by the
Good Shepherd. They are ravening wolves within, but
feign a love for the flock, until they shall have crept into the
Lord's fold. They are bad angels, sons of perversity, ap- Jf
pointed by the father of lies and deception to mislead the
simple-minded. They are serpents who deceive the doves.
Like serpents they creep stealthily abroad; with honeyed
sweetness they vomit forth their virus. While they pretend
to offer life-giving food they strike with their tail, and
prepare a deadly draught, as with some dire poison.
These sects do not assume the old names lest they should
be recognized, but, what is perhaps more heinous, not con-
tent like the Arians, who took their name from Arius, or the
Nestorians, from Nestorius, and others of the same class,
they must imitate the example of the martyrs who suffered
death for the Catholic faith. They call themselves Patarins,
as if they, too, were sufferers.1
These same wretched Patarins, who refuse to accept the
holy belief in the eternal Trinity, combine three offenses in
their wickedness. They offend God, their neighbor, and
themselves, — God, since they refuse to place their faith in
him or recognize his Son; their fellow-menT since they
deceive them by offering them the seductions of a perverse
heresy under the form of spiritual nurture. Against them-
selves they rage even more fiercely, for, prodigal of life and
careless of death, in addition to the sacrifice of their souls,
they involve their bodies in the toils of a horribk end, which
they might avoid by acknowledging the truth and adhering
to the true faith. What is worst of all, the survivors are not
terrified by such examples.
Against these, who offend alike against God, themselves,
and their fellow-men, we cannot restrain ourselves, and must
draw forth the sword of merited retribution. We pursue
1 The name Pataiin, which seems here to be derived from the Latin
word /ofltW*, to suffer, appear* to have been given to the Caifeari of
Milan because they lived among the ragpickers \
386 jRi-adiugs in Euwjwan History
them the more closely inasmuch as they are known, to the
obvious prejudice of the Christian faith, to extend the crimes
of their superstition toward the Roman church, which is
regarded as the head of all other churches. Thus from the
confines of Italy, especially from parts of Lombardy, where
we are convinced that their wickedness is widespread, we
now find rivulets of their perfidy reaching even to our king-
dom of Sicily.
Feeling this most acutely, we decree, in the first place, that
the crime of heresy and of reprehensible teaching, of what-
ever kind, by whatever name its adherents may be known,
shall, as provided by the older laws, be included among the
recognized crimes. (For should not what is recognized to
be an offense against the Divine Majesty be judged more
terrible than the crime of leze majesty directed against our-
self, although in the eyes of the law one is not graver than
the other?) As the crime of treason deprives the guilty of
life and property, and even blackens the memory of the
dead, so in the aforesaid crimes of which the Patarins are
guilty, we wish the same rules to be observed in all respects.
And in order that the wickedness of those who walk in
darkness, since they do not follow God, should be thoroughly
exterminated, we desire that those who practice this class of
cnmes should, like other malefactors, be diligently sought for
and hunted out by our officers. If such be discovered, even
if there be only the slightest suspicion of their guilt, we
command that they shall be examined by churchmen and
prelates. If they shall be found by these to have devi-
ated from the Catholic faith, even in a single respect, and
if, when admonished by such churchmen in their function of
pastors, they refuse by leaving the wiles ,of the devil to
recognize the God of light, and stubbornly adhere to their
error, we command, by this our present edict, that such con-
demned Patarins shall suffer the death they court; that,
condemned to the sentence of the flames, they shall be
burned alive in the sight of the people. Nor are we loath
to satisfy their cravings in this respect, for they only suffer
the penalty of their crime and reap ao further gain, No one
Heresy and the Friars
387
shall dare to intercede with us for any such, and should any
one presume to do this, we shall properly direct the darts
of our indignation against him, too. . . .
All who shall receive, trust, aid, or abet the Patarins in
any way, seeking to shield others from a penalty which they
rashly do not fear for themselves, shall be deprived of all
their goods and banished forever. Their sons shall there-
after be excluded from all honors whatsoever and shall be
branded with perpetual disgrace. They shall not be per-
mitted to act as witnesses in any case, but shall be rejected
as infamous.
But if any one of the sons of such harborers or fautors
shall point out a Patarin, whose guilt shall be thus proven,
he shall, by the imperial clemency, be freed from the oppro-
brium and restored to his full rights, in view of the good
faith which he has shown.
VI. LIFE AND CHARACTER OF ST. FRANCIS
Until his twentieth year Francis wretchedly wasted his 154.
days. He astonished every one, for he sought to exceed all
others in pomp and vain display. He was full of jests,
quips, and light words; he dressed in soft flowing gar-
ments, for he was very rich; yet he was not avaricious,
only prodigal, and squandered instead of saving his money.
He was withal a man of gentle manner, friendly and very
courteous.
In the midst of the joys and sins of his youth suddenly the
divine vengeance, or grace, came upon him, which began to
recall him to the right way by bringing anguish to bis mind
and suffering to bis body, according to die saying of die
prophet, "Behold, I will hedge up thy way with thorns, and I
will encompass it with afflictions," Wben be bad ioog been
afflicted by bodily sickness — as the sinful man merits, since
he will not amend bis ways except by punishment — be began
to turn bis thoughts to other things than had been bis wont
Wben be bad somewhat mended, be once more wandered
about the house, supported by a staff, in order to hasten bis
Penalties lor
those win
harbor or aid
388 Readings in European Histo>y
recovery. One day he went out of doors and looked thought-
fully over the neighboring plain ; but the beauty of the fields
and their pleasantness, and all things whatsoever that are
lovely to the sight, in no way delighted him. He marveled
at the sudden change in himself, and those who still loved
the things that he had formerly loved seemed to him most
foolish.
From that day it came to pass that he seemed worthless
in his own sight, and did hold in a certain contempt those
things that he was used to hold in admiration and love.
He would fain conform his will to the divine will, and so he
withdrew himself for a season from worldly business and
tumult and sought to store away Jesus Christ within his
souL
[Together with a certain man of Assisi who did love him
greatly, he was used to go apart into the country. J Now
there was near the city a certain grotto and thither they
often went. Francis, the man of God, who now was blessed
with a holy purpose, would enter into the grotto whilst his
companion awaited him without. There he did pray fer-
vently that the eternal and true God would direct his way
and would teach him to do his will. His soul glowed with
divine fire and he could not hide the brightness of his spirit.
And be repented him because he had sinned so grievously
and had offended In the eyes of the Divine Majesty.
On a certain day when he had most earnestly besought
the mercy of God, it was made known to him by the Lord
what he should do. Therefore he was filled with so great
gladness that he could not keep from rejoicing inwardly,
and yet he would not make known unto men anything con-
cerning this joy. But so great was the love kindled within
him that he could not be wholly silent, so he spoke some-
what cautiously and in parables and told his companions
how that he would do noble and mighty deeds- They
asked him, saying, " Wilt thou marry a wife, Francis ? "
Who, answering, saith, " I will marry a wife more noble and
fairer than ever ye saw, and this spotless bride is the true
religion of God."
Heresy and the Friars 389
Ever had he been the benefactor of the poor, but from
this time he resolved more firmly in his heart to deny no
poor man anything who asked of him In the name of the
Lord. Thenceforth whensoever he walked abroad and a
keggar asked alms of him, if he had money he gave it to him.
If he had no money, then he went apart into some hidden
place and took off his shirt and sent it to the beggar secretly.
After some days, as he was passing by the church of St.
Damian, it was revealed to him in the spirit that he should
go in and pray. When he had entered and had begun to
pray fervently before a certain crucifix, lo, the Christ upon
the cross spoke to him kindly and lovingly, saying, " Francis,
do you not see that my house is destroyed ? Go then and
repair it for me." Trembling and astounded, he answered,
"That will I gladly do, Lord." For he thought that our
Lord did speak of the church of St. Damian, which, because
of its too great age, was like to fall into decay. So Francis
straightway sought out the priest and gave him a certain
sum of money that he might buy oil for the lamp before
the crucifix. From that hour was his heart softened and
wounded by the memory of our Lord's passion, so that
even while he lived he did bear in his heart the stigmata
of the Lord Jesus. . . .
[Now Francis, from this time, did long to give all things
that he had to the Lord;] so this blessed servant of the
Most High took some pieces of cloth that he might sell
them, and went forth mounted upon his horse a«d arrived
straightway at the city called Foligixx There did the happy
merchant sell all the goods that he had, and did even part
with his horse when a price was offered for him. Then he
took his way towafti Assisi, and he passed by the way the
church of St, D-amian. The new soldier of Christ straight-
way entered the church and sought out a certain poor priest,
and with reverence did kiss his hands and then offered to
him all the money that he had. . . .
[Rejoicing in the Lord, he lingered in the church of
St. Damian. 3 His father, hearing of these things, gath-
ered together his friends and neighbors and made all speed
Readings in European History'
possible to the place where the servant of God was abiding.
Then he, because he was but a new champion of Christ,
when he heard the threats of vengeance, did hide himself
in a certain secret cave and there did lie concealed for a
month. Fasting and praying, he did entreat the mercy of
the Saviour ; and though he lay in a pit and in the shadow
of death, yet was he filled with a certain unutterable joy,
unhoped for until now. All aglow with this gladness, he
left the cave and exposed himself openly to the abuses of
his persecutors. . . . Armed with the shield of faith and
the armor of trust, he took his way to the city. All who
knew him did deride him and called him insane and a
madman, and pelted him with the mud of the streets and
with stones.
The father of the blessed Francis, when he learned that
his son was ridiculed in the open streets, first strove by
abuse to turn him from his chosen way. When he could
not thus prevail over him, he desired the servant of God to
renounce all his inheritance. That this might be done, he
brought the blessed Francis before the bishop of Assisi.
At this Francis did greatly rejoice and hastened with a
willing heart to fulfill his father's demands.
When he had come before the bishop he did not delay,
nor did he suffer others to hinder him, Indeed, he waited
not to be told what he should do, but straightway did take
off his garments and cast them away and gave them back
to Ms father; and he stood all naked before the people.
But the bishop took heed of his spirit and was filled with
exceeding great wonder at his zeal and steadfastness ; so he
gathered him in his arms and covered him with the cloak
which be wore. Behold now had he cast aside all things
which are of this world.
The holy one, lover of all humility, did then betake him-
self to the lepers and abode with them most tenderly for the
love of God. He washed away all the putrid matter from
them, and even cleansed the blood and all that came forth
from the ulcers, as he himself spake im Ms will : " When I
was yet in my sins it did seem to me too bitter to look upon
Heresy and the Friars 391
the lepers, but the Lord himself did lead me among them
and I had compassion upon them/'
Now upon a certain day, in the church of Santa Maria
Portiuncula, the gospel was read — how that the Lord sent
forth his disciples to preach. It was while they did cele-
brate the solemn mystery of the mass, and the blessed one
of God stood by and would fain understand the sacred
words. So he did humbly ask the priest that the gospel
might be expounded unto him. Then the priest set it forth
plainly to him, and the blessed Francis heard how the
disciples were to have neither gold, nor silver, nor money,
nor purse, nor script, nor bread, not to carry any staff upon
the road, not to have shoes nor two coats, but to preach
repentance and the spirit of God, rejoicing always in the
spirit of God.
Then said the blessed Francis, "This is what I long fort
this is what I seek, this is what I desire to do from the
bottom of my heart." And he was exceeding rich in joy,
and did hasten to fulfill the blessed words that he had
heard. He did not sutler any hindrance to delay him, but
did earnestly begin to do that which he had heard. Forth-
with he did loose the shoes from his feet, and did lay
down the staff from out his hands, and was content with
one tunic, and changed his girdle for a rope. Then with
great fervor of spirit and joy of mind he began to preach
repentance to all men. He used simple speech, yet by his
noble heart did he strengthen those who heard him. His
word was as a flaming fire, and found a way into the depths
of all hearts.
The most blessed Father Francis once made his way iss.Qt,
through the valley of Spoleto, and he caaoc to a place near
Bevagna where birds of divers kinds had gathered together
in a great multitude, — crows, doves, and others which are
called, in the vulgar tongue, bullfinches. Now Francis, most
blessed servant of God, was a man full of zeal and moved to
tenderness and gentleness toward all creatures, even those
that be lowly and without reason. So when he had seen the
392 Readings in European History
birds he did run to them quickly, leaving his companions
upon the way.
When he had come near to them he saw that they awaited
him, and he made salutation, as he was wont to do. Won-
dering not a little that they did not take flight, as is the
habit of birds, he begged them humbly, yet with great joy,
that they would hear the word of God. And among many
things which he said unto them was this which follows :
"My brother birds, greatly should ye praise your Creator
and always serve him, because he gave you feathers to wear,
wings to fly, and whatsoever ye needed. He exalted you
among his creatures and made for you a mansion in the
pure air. Although ye sow not, neither reap, none the less
he protects you and guides you, and ye have not any care."
At this the birdlings — so one said who was with him —
began to stretch out their necks and raise their wings, to
open their mouths, and to look upon him. He went and
came, passing through the midst of them, and his tunic
touched their heads and bodies. Then he blessed them,
and made the sign of the cross, and gave them leave to fly
to other places.
156. TV* Francis left no more important memorial of himself
m .f
an<^ k*s Kte^5 tka*1 his w^l dictated by him shortly
before his death.
God gave it to me, Brother Francis, to begin to do
penance in the following manner: when I was yet in my
sins it did seem to me too bitter to look upon the lepers, but
the Lord himself did lead me among them, and I had com-
passion upon them. When I left them, that which had
seemed to me bitter had become sweet and easy.
A little while after I left the world, and God gave me such
faith that I would kneel down with simplicity in any of his
churches, and I would say, "We adore thee, Lord Jesus
Christ, here and in all thy churches which are in the world,
and we bless thee that by thy holy cross thou hast ransomed
tbeirold."
Heresy and t/ie Friars 393
Afterward the Lord gave me, and still gives me, so great
a faith in priests who live according to the form of the holy
Roman Church, because of their sacerdotal character, that
even if they persecuted me I would have recourse to them,
and even though I had all the wisdom of Solomon, if I
should find poor secular priests, I would not preach in their
parishes against their will. I desire to respect them like all
the others, to love them and honor them as my lords. I will
not consider their sins, for in them I see the Son of God,
and they are my lords. I do this because here below I see
nothing, I perceive nothing corporeally of the most high Son
of God, except his most holy body and blood, which the
priests receive and alone distribute to others,
I desire above all things to honor and venerate all these
most holy mysteries and to keep them precious. Wherever
I find the sacred names of Jesus, or his words, in unsuitable
places, I desire to take them away and put them in some
decent place; and I pray that others may do the same. We
ought to honor and revere all the theologians and those
who preach the most holy word of God, as dispensing to us
spirit and life.
When the Lord gave me the care of some brothers, no A
one showed me what I ought to do, but the Most High him-
self revealed to me that I ought to live according to the
model of the holy gospel. I caused a short and simple
formula to be written, and the lord pope confirmed it for
me.
Those who presented themselves to follow this kind of life
distributed all they might have to the poor. They contented
themselves with one tank, patched within a&d without, with
the cord and breeches, and we desired to have nothing more.
The clerics said the office like other derics, and the laymen
repeated the paternoster.
We loved to live in poor and abandoned churches, and we
were ignorant, and were submissive to ail. I worked with
my hands and would still do so, and I firmly desire also that
all the other brothers work, for this makes for goodness. Let
those who know no trade learn one, but not for the purpose of
394 Readings in European History
receiving the price of their toil, but for their good example
and to flee idleness. And when we are not given the price
of our work, let us resort to the table of the Lord, beg-
ging our bread from door to door. The Lord revealed to
me the salutation which we ought to give : " God give you
peace ! "
Let the brothers take great care not to accept churches,
habitations, or any buildings erected for them, except as all
is in accordance with the holy poverty which we have vowed
in the Rule ; and let them not live in them except as strangers
and pilgrims. I absolutely interdict all the brothers, in what-
soever place they may be found, from asking any bull from
the court of Rome, whether directly or indirectly, in the
interest of church or convent, or under pretext^of preaching,
nor even for the protection of their bodies. If they are not
received anywhere, let them go of themselves elsewhere, thus
doing penance with the benediction of God.
I firmly desire to obey the minister general of this brother-
hood, and the guardian whom he may please to give me. I
desire to put myself entirely into his hands, to go nowhere
and do nothing against his will, for he is my lord. Though
I be simple and ill, I would, however, have always a clerk
who will perform the office, as it is said in the Rule. Let
all the other brothers also be careful to obey their guardians
and to do the ofSce according to the Rule.
If it come to pass that there are any who do not the office
according to the Rule, and who desire to make any other
change, or if they are not Catholics, let all the brothers,
wherever they may be, be bound by obedience to present
them to the nearest custodian. Let the custodians be bound
by obedience to keep such a one well guarded, like a man who
is in bonds, day and night, so that he may not escape from
their hands until they personally place him in the minister's
hands. And let the minister be bound by obedience to send
him, by brothers who will guard him as a prisoner day and
night, until they shall have placed him in the hands of the
lord bishop of Ostia, who is the lord protector, and the cor-
rector of all the brotherhood*
Heresy and the Friars 395
And let the brothers not say, "This is a new Rule"; for
this is only a reminder, a warning, an exhortation ; it is my
last will and testament, that I, little Brother Francis, make
for you, my blessed brothers, in order that we may observe
in a more Catholic way the Rule which we promised the Lord
to keep.
Let the ministers general, all the other ministers, and the
custodians be held by obedience to add nothing to and take
nothing away from these words. Let them always keep this
writing near them beside the Rule ; and in all the assemblies
which shall be held, when the Rule is read, let these words
be read also.
I interdict absolutely by obedience all the brothers, clerics
and laymen, to introduce comments in the Rule, or in this
will, under pretext of explaining it. But since the Lord has
given me to speak and to write the Rule and these words in
a clear and simple manner, so do you understand them in
the same way without commentary, and put them in practice
until the end.
And whoever shall have observed these things, may be
be crowned in heaven with the blessings of the heavenly
Father, and on earth with those of his well-beloved Son and
of the Holy Spirit, the Consoler, with the assistance of all
the heavenly virtues and all the saints.
And I, little Brother Francis, your servitor, confirm to you,
so far as I am able, this most holy benediction. Amen.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Monastic Orders: Eimrro*, pp, 555-5775 Mimma, pp. 1*2-134; -*-
Tour, pp>. 198-209.
The Spread of Heresy : B*uoirr and MONOD, pp. 512-514; EME*
TON, PP- 333~3# ; MUH«O, pp. 175-178; Tour, pp, 214-217.
The Albigeaaiaa Crasftde: Btiuoirr and MONOO, pp. 506-511;
EMKKTON, p|x 339-342-
Tfce Xesdicast Friars: EMOTON, pp. 578-5&1 ; Mnnito, pp. 17$-
iSo; TOOT, pp. 434-444-
Tfce Rale of St Fraacis: HENDERSON, Historic*!
PP- 344-349-
Readings in European History
B. Addi-
tional read-
tngt*
English.
LEA, History of the Inquisition in the Middle Ages, Vol. I : Chapters
II-V deal very fully with the development of the Waldensian and
Aibigensian heresies and the early attempts to suppress them ; Chap-
ter VI takes up both the Franciscan and Dominican orders j while in
Chapters VII-XIV there is by far the fullest and best account in Eng-
lish of the origin of the papal Inquisition, its organization and methods.
This is one of the most scholarly works ever produced in the United
States.
SABATIER, Life of St. Francis of Assist, translated from the French
of the Protestant scholar who has done most to clear up the problems
connected with the sources for the saint's life and teachings. A charm-
ing book, with a very full and scholarly discussion of the sources.
ABB£ LEON LE MONNIER, History of St. Francis of Assist, 1804.
From the French edition of 1890. The work of a Catholic, written
before the appearance of Sabatier's.
JESSOPP, The Coming of the. Friars.
DRANE, AUGUSTA, History of St. Dominic, Founder of the Friars
Preachers^ 1891.
The oldest and most authentic life of St. Francis, BROTHER LEO'S
Mirror of Perfection (see below), is to be had in English (Temple
Classics). It was written almost immediately after the death of Francis
by one who was anxious that the friars should carefully adhere to the
ideas of their founder as they are expressed in his will (see pp. 392 sqq.).
Tjftf Life of Francis by THE THREE COMPANIONS, written in 1246, is
also in the Temple Classics.
Tke Littlf Flowers of St. Francis is a charming collection of anecdotes
about him, which was probably written in the fourteenth century.
C. Materials
TbeAfoi-
gensesaad
WaJdensians.
SCHMIDT, CH., ffistoire tt doctrine de la secte de Cathares ou Albi-
2 Tols^ 1849. Rather old but still the best full account. It
may be controlled by Lea and also by Karl Miiller (Kirchengeschichte*
Vol. I), wfeo has given much attention to the heresies of the Middle
Ages. See also DOUAIS, Les Albigeois, leurs origines* etc., Paris, 1879,
and Tocco, L*Eresia nel media evo, 1884. For the Waldensians : KARL
MULLER, Die Waldenser und ikre einselnen Grufpen, 1886, and the new
edition of COMB A, Histoire des Vasubis^ Vol. I, Florence, 1901.
We have to rely for the sources of our knowledge of the heretics
mainly upon the writings of their Catholic opponents and upon the
reports of the inquisitors. An excellent review by CH. DE SMEDT of
the writers who deal with the Alttgenses wifl be found in the Revue des
Questions Historiques^ Vol. XVI, pp. 433 jy^. Tfee most considerable
titul the Friars
397
The
mediaeval
Inquisition
loqafoitora
guides.
collection of material is that of DOLLIXGER, Beitragt zur Secttnge-
schichte des Mittehlters, 1891, especially Vol. II, « Document* rerneJkm-
lich zur Geschtihte der lraldesier und A'atkarer"
For the considerable literature that exists upon the Inquisition, see
LANGLOIS, UJnquisition d^apresdes traiuux ruents* Paris, 1901, and th«
introduction by FREBEJUCQ to the French translation of LEA'S Inquisi-
tion, Paris, 3 vols., 1902. Besides LEA'S great work, see TANON,
Tribunaux de F inquisition en France , 1803, an^ HENNER, /fftfragf zur
Organisation und Kompftenz des fapsthchfn Kttxrgtrukt. 1890.
Of the inquisitorial guides containing official acts and much other
information, one of the oldest and most authoritative is that of BFR-
NARD OF Gvi (d. 1331), an experienced inquisitor, Fratica inquisitienu
heretice pravitatis^ printed for the first time by Dor A is, in 1886.
EYMERIC, an inquisitor in Aragon, composed his Dinctorntm frt?uisi-
torum to-ward the end of the fourteenth century, some fifty years later
than the date of the Pratica of Bernard. It proved more popular
than Bernard's, and was printed a number of times in the sixteenth
centnry, and old copies of it are not difficult to find. Among the collec-
tions of material recently published are : FREDERICQ, Cerpus Jocumimt*-
rum inquisitionis haenticae pravitatis Nctrlanditae* /OJ^-T^atf, 5 vols^
1889-1902, and DOUAIS, Documents pour servir a Fkistoire di F inquisi-
tion dens le Langvcdoc, Paris, 1900 (Soc. de ITiist. de Fr.).
In addition to the excellent and popular biography of St. Francis Early Lives
by SABATIER, the student may consult KARL MULLER, Die Anfange
des Mmorittnordensy 1885. There has been not a little discussion,
which has in some cases become rather acrid, about the early Lives of
St. Francis. The Speculum perfedianis of BROTHER LEO, written appar-
ently a year after the saint's death, is the earliest. This has been
reconstructed aod edited with elaborate notes and discussion by SABA-
TIER, Paris, 189$. The first of the two Lives of the saint by THOMAS
OF C SLA NO {written in 1228), was previously regarded as the earliest
and most authoritative. This is in the Ada uuut»r*m, October, Vot II,
and in an edition pabfished at Rome ia 1880. The LegrnJ* tri*m j*r^
«r*»r, written in 1246,18 also important and very ciiarwmg. The official
* life composed by BONAVENTUBA in 1261 was prepared with a view to tak-
ing the place of the earlier Lives, which were all ordered to he destroyed.
This order was apparently pretty generally carried oat, and it is this
that has rendered the investigation of the material for St. Francis so
<fifficulf. AH these Lives, including the second one by THOMAS OF
CKLANO, may be found in the Act* sa*ftor*m. See " The Sources of
398 Readings in European History
the History of St. Francis of Assisi " in the English Historical Review,
Vol. XVII, pp. 643 W-
MACDONELL, ANNE, The Sons of St. Francis^ 1902. Deals with the
troubles in the order after the death of the founder.
Life of The earliest Life of St. Dominic (written before 1234) is that of JOR-
St Dominic. DANUS, the second head of the order, De principiis ordinis Predicate-
rum, edited by BERTH IER, Fribourg in Switzerland, 1892.
See articles in the Ktrckenlcxikon and Realeneyclopadie for all the
subjects spoken of in this chapter. Also HEIMBUCHER, Die Orden
und Congregationen der katholischen. Kir eke, 1896.
CHAPTER XVIII
THE PEOPLE HT CO0WTRY AHD TOWlf
I. THE MANOR AND ITS PEOPLE*
The following official accounts of two English manors
and their people give a good idea of the condition of
the serfs in general.
In Wermington are 7 hides at the taxation of the king. 157.
And of this land 20 full villeins and 29 half-villeins hold
34 virgates'2 and a half; and for these the full villeins work
3 days a week through the year ; and the half-tenants as
much as corresponds to their tenancies. And these men
have in all 16 plows, and they plow 68 acres and a half
and besides this they do 3 boon-works with their plows, and
they ought to bring from the woods 34 wagonloads of wood.
And all these men pay £4. us. 4d.; and at the love feast
of St. Peter, 10 rams and 400 loaves and 40 platters and
34 hens and 260 eggs. And there are 8 socmen who have
6 plows. In the demesne of the court are 4 plows and
32 oxen and 9 cows and 5 calves and x riding horse and
129 sheep and 61 swine and i draught horse and i colt*
And there is i mill with i virgate of land, and 6 acres which
pays 6os. and 500 eels. And Ascelin, the clerk, holds the
church with 2 virgates of land, from the altar of St. Peter
of Borough. Robert, son of Richard, has a virgates and a
half. In this fill 100 sheep can be placed.
1 1 am indebted for the fflostraiioos used in this section on the manor
and in the ooe wfaicfc f oflows on die towns, to Professor Cheyney*s admi-
rable selection of documents la die Trmnsletiems *mj Xeprimis, Vol. II,
No, i, and Vot III, No. 5-
9 A Tirgate appeals to have varied greatly in extent,
399
400
Readings in European History
158. A
Compfidted
swi'f iues rro-
dexedfora
house a»d 30
acres of land.
Extent of the manor of Bernehorne, made on Wednesday
following the feast of St. Gregory the pope, in the thirty-
fifth year of the reign of King Edward, in the presence of
Brother Thomas, keeper of Marley, John de la More, and
Adam de Thruhlegh, clerks, on the oath of William de
Gocecoumbe, Walter le Parker, Richard le Knyst, Richard
the son of the latter, Andrew of Estone, Stephen Morsprich,
Thomas Brembel, William of Swynham, John Pollard, Roger
le Glide, John Syward, and John de Lillingewist, who say
that there are all the following holdings : . . .
John Pollard holds a half acre in Aldithewisse and owes
i8d. at the four terms, and owes for it relief and heriot.
John Suthinton holds a house and 40 acres of land and
owes 35. 6d. at Easter and Michaelmas.
William of Swynham holds i acre of meadow in the thicket
of Swynham and owes id. at the feast of Michaelmas.
Ralph of Leybourne holds a cottage and i acre of land in
Pinden and owes 35. at Easter and Michaelmas, and attend-
ance at the court in the manor every three weeks, also relief
and heriot
Richard Knyst of Swynham holds 2 acres and a half of
laud and owes yearly 45.
William of Knelle holds 2 acres of land in Aldithewisse
and owes yearly 45.
Roger le Glede holds a cottage and 3 roods of land and
owes 23. 6d. at Easter and Michaelmas.
Alexander Hamound holds a little piece of land near
Aldewisse and owes i goose of the value of 2d.
The sum of the whole rent of the free tenants, with the
value of the goose, is i8s. 9d.
They say, moreover, that John of Cayworth holds a house
and 30 acres of land, and owes yearly 25. at Easter and
Michaelmas; and he owes a cock and two hens at Christ-
mas of the value of 4d.
And he ought to harrow for 2 days at the Lenten sowing
with one man and his own horse and his own harrow, the
value of the work being 4d; and he is to receive from
the lord on each day 3 meals, of the value of 5d., and then
The People in Country and TOIVM 401
the lord will be at a loss of id. Thus his harrowing Is of
no value to the service of the lord.
And he ought to carry the manure of the lord for 2 days
with one cart, with his own 2 oxen, the value of the work
being 8d. 5 and he is to receive from the lord each day 3
meals at the value as above. And thus the service is worth
3d. clear.
And he shall find one man for 2 days, for mowing the
meadow of the lord, who can mow, by estimation, i acre
and a half, the value of the mowing of an acre being 6d. :
the sum is therefore 9d. And he is to receive each day 3
meals of the value given above. And thus that mowing is
worth 4d. clear.
And he ought to gather and carry that same hay which he
has cut, the price of the work being 3d.
And he shall have from the lord 2 meals for i man, of the
value of i>sd. Thus the work will be worth i>^d. clear.
And he ought to carry the hay of the lord for i day with
a cart and 3 animals of his own, the price of the work being
6d. And he shall have from the lord 3 meals of the value
of 2j/-d. And thus the work is worth 3>id, clear.
And he ought to carry in autumn beans or oats for 3 days
with a cart and 3 animals of his own, the value of the work
being isd. And he shall receive from the lord each day 3
meals of the value given above. And thus the work is worth
7d- clear.
And he ought to carry wood from the woods of tfoe lord
as far as the manor, for two days in summer, with a cart and
3 animals of his own, the value of the work being 9d. And
he shall receive from the lord each day 3 meals of the price
given above. And thus the work is worth 4d. clear.
And he ought to find i man for s days to cut heath, the
value of the work being 4d,, and he shall have 3 meals each
day o€ the value given above : and thus the lord will lose,
if he receives die service, 3d. Thus that mowing is worth
nothing to the service of the lord.
And he ought to carry the heath which he has cut, the
value of the work being $d- And he shall receive front the
4O2 Readings in European History
lord 3 meals at the price of 2j£d. And thus the work will
be worth 2j^d. clear.
And he ought to carry to Battle, twice in the summer
season, each time half a load of grain, the value of the
service being 4d. And he shall receive in the manor each
time i meal of the value of 2d. And thus the work is worth
2d. clear.
The totals of the rents, with the value of the hens, is 25. 4d.
The total of the value of the works is 2S. 3j^d., owed
from the said John yearly.
William of Cayworth holds a house and 30 acres of land
and owes at Easter and Michaelmas 23. rent. And he shall
do all customs just as the aforesaid John of Cayworth.
William atte Grene holds a house and 30 acres of land and
owes in all things the same as the said John.
Alan atte Felde holds a house and 16 acres of land (for
which the sergeant pays to the court of Bixley 2s.), and he
owes at Easter and Michaelmas 45., attendance at the manor
court, relief, and heriot.
John Lyllingwyst holds a house and 4 acres of land and
owes at the two terms 2S., attendance at the manor court,
relief, and heriot.
The same John bolds i acre of land in the fields of Hoo
and owes at tke two periods 25., attendance, relief, and heriot.
Reginald atte Denne holds a house and 18 acres of land and
owes at the said periods i8d, attendance, relief, and heriot
Robert of Nortnehou holds 3 acres of land at Saltcote and
owes at the said periods attendance, relief, and heriot.
Total of the rents of the villeins, with the value of the
bens, 2 os.
Total of all the works of these three villeins, 6s. zoj^d.
And it is to be noted that none of the above-named vil-
leins can give tfaeir daughters in marriage, nor cause their
sons to be tonsured, nor can they cut down timber growing
on the lauds they hold, without license of the bailiff or ser-
geant of the lord, and then for building purposes and not
otherwise. And after the death of any one of the aforesaid
villeins, the lord shall have as a heriot his best animal, if he
The People In Country and Town
403
had any ; if, however, he have no living beast, the lord shall
have no heriot, as they say. The sons or daughters of the
aforesaid villeins shall give, for entrance into the holding after
the death of their predecessors, as much as they give of rent
per year.
Sylvester, the priest, holds i acre of meadow adjacent to
his house and owes yearly 35.
Total of the rent of tenants for life, 35.
Petronilla atte Holme holds a cottage and a piece of
land and owes at Easter and Michaelmas ; also, attend-
ance, relief, and heriot.
Walter Herying holds a cottage and a piece of land and
owes at Easter and Michaelmas i8d., attendance, relief, and
heriot.
Isabella Mariner holds a cottage and owes at the feast of
St. Michael i2d., attendance, relief, and heriot
Jordan atte Melle holds a cottage and i*4 acres of land
and owes at Easter and Michaelmas 25., attendance, relief,
and heriot.
William of Batelesmere holds i acre of land with a cottage
and owes at the feast of St. Michael 3d., and i cock and i hen
at Christmas of the value of 3d., attendance, relief, and heriot.
John le Man holds half an acre of land with a cottage
and owes at the feast of St. Michael 2S., attendance, relief,
and heriot.
John Werthe holds i rood of land with a cottage and
owes at the said term i8d.T attendance, relief, and heriot
Geoffrey Caumbreis holds half an acre and a cottage and
owes at the said term i8d, attendance, relief, and heriot
William Hassok holds i rood of land and a cottage and
owes at the said term iSd., attendance, relief, and heriot
The same man holds 3 j£ acres of land and owes yearly at
the feast of St Michael 33. for all.
Roger Do-get holds half an acre of land and a cottage,
which were those of R. the miller, and owes at the feast of
St. Michael i&L, attendance, relief, and heriot
Thomas ie Brod holds z acre and a cottage and owes at
the said term 33., attendance, relief, and heriot
Amount o
relief fixed
Lbtof
cottagers.
404 Readings in European History
Agnes of Cayworth holds half an acre and a cottage and
owes at the said term i8d., attendance, relief, and heriot. . . .
Total of the rents of the said cottagers, with the value of
the hens, 343. 6d.
And it is to be noted that all the said cottagers shall do
as regards giving their daughters in marriage, having their
sons tonsured, cutting down timber, paying heriot, and giv-
ing fines for entrance, just as John of Cayworth and the rest
of the villeins above mentioned.
Note : Fines * and penalties, with heriots and reliefs, are
worth yearly 55.
The house described below must have been "a pretty
comfortable one for the time.
He received also a sufficient and handsome hall well ceiled
with oak. On the western side is a worthy bed, on the
ground a stone chimney, a wardrobe, and a certain other
small chamber; at the eastern end is a pantry and a buttery.
Between the hall and the chapel is a side room. There is
a decent chapel covered with tiles, a portable altar, and a
small cross. In the hall are four tables on trestles. There
are likewise a good kitchen well covered with tiles, with a
furnace and ovens, one large, the other small, for cakes, two
tables, and alongside the kitchen a small house for baking.
Also a new granary covered with oak shingles, and a build-
ing m which the dairy is contained, though it is divided.
Likewise a chamber suited for clergymen and a necessary
chamber. Also a henhouse. These are within the inner gate.
Likewise outside of that gate are an old house for the
servants, a good stable, long and divided, and to the east of
the principal building, beyond the smaller stable, a solar for
the use of the servants. Also a building in which is con-
tained a bed ; also two barns, one for wheat and one for
oats. These buildings are enclosed with a moat, a wall, and
1 Namely, payments to the lord by those who acquired land within
the manor in any other way than by inheritance. The corresponding
payment by those who inherited land was the ** relief."
The People in Country am/ Ttncn 405
a hedge. Also beyond the middle gate is a good barn, and
a stable for cows and another for oxen, these old and ruinous.
Also beyond the outer gate is a pigsty.
The position of the serf is further illustrated by the
provisions necessary to make him a free man.
To all the faithful of Christ to whom the present writing shall 160.
come, Richard^ by the divine permission abbot of Peterborough ** * *crf
and of the Convent of the same place, eternal greeting in the
Lord:
Let all know that we have manumitted and liberated from
all yoke of servitude William, the son of Richard of \Yyth-
ington, whom previously we have held as our born bond-
man, with his whole progeny and all his chattels, so that
neither we nor our successors shall be able to require or
exact any right or claim in the said William, his progeny,
or his chattels. But the same William, with his whole prog-
eny and all his chattels, shall remain free and quit and
without disturbance, exaction, or any claim on the part of
us or our successors by reason of any servitude forever.
We will, moreover, and concede that he and his heirs
shall hold the messuages, land, rents, and meadows in
Wythington which his ancestors held from us and our prede-
cessors, by giving and performing the fine which is called
merchei for giving his daughter in marriage, and tallage from
year to year according to our will, — that he shall have and
hold these for the future from us and our successors freely,
quietly, peacefully, and hereditarily, by paying to us and our
successors yearly 40$. sterling, at the four terms of the year,
namely : at St. John the Baptist's day IDS., at Michaelmas
IDS., at Christmas ios., and at Easter ios^ for al! service,
exaction, custom, and secular demand ; saving to us, never-
theless, attendance at our court of Castre every three weeks,
wardship, and relief, and outside service of our lord the king,
when they shall happen.
And if it shall happen that the said William or his heirs
shall die at any time without an heir, the said messuage,
406 Readings in European History
land, rents, and meadows with their appurtenances shall
return fully and completely to us and our successors. Nor
will it be allowed to the said William or his heirs to give,
sell, alienate, mortgage, or encumber in any way, the said mes-
suage, land, rents, meadows, or any part of them, by which
the said messuage, land, rents, and meadows should not
return to us and our successors in the form declared above.
And if this should occur later, their deed shall be declared
null, and what is thus alienated shall come to us and our
successors. . . .
Given at Borough, for the love of Lord Robert of good
memory, once abbot, our predecessor and maternal uncle
of the said William, and at the instance of the good man,
Brother Hugh of Mutton, relative of the said abbot Robert,
A.D. 1278, on the eve of Pentecost
II. THE MEDIEVAL TOWN
As the towns grew up, certain local customs came
into existence. These were nothing more than the
rules which the townspeople recognized as necessary to
maintain order and prevent misunderstandings. They
were not necessarily written down, as every one was
supposed to be familiar with them. The commissioners
of William the Conqueror judged it wise, however, to
include in Domesday Book some forty of the town cus-
toms which involved the king's financial interests. The
following provisions occur among those of Chester.
161. Cos- If any free man of the king broke the peace which had
*"J^ ** ttft been granted, and killed a man in his house, all his land and
Chester, money came to the king, and he himself became an outlaw.
(From He who shed blood between Monday morning and the ninth
^Jff3*7 hour of Saturday compounded for it with ten shillings. From
the ninth hour of Saturday to Monday morning bloodshed
was compounded for with twenty shillings. Similarly any
The People in Country atui T<n*.*n 407
one paid twenty shillings who shed blood in the twelve
days after Christmas, on the day of the Purification of the
Blessed Mary, on the first day after Easter, the first day of
Pentecost, Ascension day, on the Assumption or Xativity
of the Blessed Mary, and on the day of All Saints.
He who killed a man on these holy days compounded
for it with four pounds ; but on other days, with forty shil-
lings. Similarly he who committed burglary or assault on
those feast days or on Sunday, four pounds ; on other days,
forty shillings.
Any one setting prisoners free in the city gave ten shil-
lings. But if the reeve of the king or of the earl committed
this offense, he compounded for it with twenty shillings.
He who committed theft or robbery, or exercised violence
upon a woman in a house, compounded for each of these
with forty shillings.
He who in the city seized upon the land of another and
was not able to prove it to be his was fined forty shillings.
Similarly also he who made claim upon it, if he was not
able to prove it to be his.
He who did not pay the tax at the period at which he
owed it compounded for it with ten shillings.
If fire burned the city, he from whose house it started
compounded for it with three oras of pennies, and gave to
his next neighbor two shillings. Of all these forfeitures,
two parts belonged to the king and the third to the earl,
A man or a woman making false measure in the city,
and being arrested, compounded for it with four shillings.
Similarly a person making bad ale was either placed in the
ducking stool or gave four shillings to the reeve. This for-
feiture the officer of the king and of the earl received in the
city, in whosesoever land it has been do&e, either of the
bishop or of another man. Similarly also, if any one held
the toll back beyond three nights, he compounded for it
with forty shillings.
In the time of King Edward there were in this city seven
moneyers, who gave seven pounds to the king and the earl,
besides the feraa, when the money was turned over.
408
Readings in European History
162, Opea-
163. The
Earforf
Chester's
tfeeotyof
Chester
oestoxy).
This city paid at that time of ferm forty-five pounds and
three bundles of martens' skins. The third part belonged
to the earl, and two to the king.
When Earl Hugh received it, it was worth only thirty
pounds, for it was much wasted. There were 205 fewer
houses there than there had been in the time of King
Edward. Now there are just as many there as he found.
When the king or lord granted a charter to a town
which had grown up on his land, he usually explicitly
legalized the guild of merchants, the members of which
enjoyed the monopoly of the right to carry on trade.
He then ratified, in whole or in part, the customs of
the town, which were not however enumerated in detail.
These documents are consequently usually short.
by the grace of God King of England, Duke of Nor-
mandy and Aquitaine, Count of Anjou, to the Bishop of Lin-
coln, justifiars, sheriffs, barons, officers, and all his faithful,
JFrenth and English, of Lincoln, greeting:
Know that I have conceded to my citizens of Lincoln all
their liberties and customs and laws, which they had in the
tiiae of Edward and William and Henry, kings of England;
and their guild merchant of the men of the city and of other
merchants of the county, just as 'they had it in the time of
our aforesaid predecessors, kings of England, best and most
freely.
Ralph, Earl of Chester ', to his constable and steward, and to
all his barons and bailiffs, and to aU his men, French and
English, as well to come as at present, greeting:
Let it be known to all of you that I have given and con-
ceded, and by this my present charter confirmed to all my
citizens of Chester, their guild merchant, with all liberties
and free customs which they have had in the aforesaid
guild, best> most freely and most peacefully in the times
of my predecessors. And I forbid under forfeiture to me
The People in Country and Toicn 409
of ten pounds that any one shall disturb them in it. With
these witnesses, etc.
The lists of rules established by the craft guilds,
two examples of which are given below, cast much
light on the industrial conditions and the habits of the
mediaeval artisans.
Be it remembered, that on Tuesday, the morrow of St. 164. Article*
Peter's bonds, in the nineteenth year of the reign of King
Edward III, the articles underwritten were read before
John Hammond, mayor, Roger de Depham, recorder, and (1345).
the other aldermen ; and seeing that the same were deemed
befitting, they were accepted and enrolled in these words.
In the first place, that no one of the trade of spurriers
shall work longer than from the beginning of the day until
curfew rings out at the church of St. Sepulcher, without
Newgate ; by reason that no man can work so neatly by
night as by day. And many persons of the said trade, who
compass how to practice deception in their work, desire to
work by night rather than by day ; and then they introduce
false iron, and iron that has been cracked, for tin, and also
they put gilt on false copper, and cracked.
And further, many of the said trade are wandering about
all day, without working at all at their trade ; and then, when
they have become drunk and frantic, they take to their
work, to the annoyance of the sick, and all their neighbor-
hood as well, by reason of the broils that arise between them
and the strange folk who are dwelling among them. And
then they blow up their fires so vigorously, that their forges
begin all at once to blaze, to the great peril of themselves
and of ail the neighborhood around. And then, too^all the
neighbors are much in dread of the sparks, which so vigor-
ously issue forth in ail directions from the mouths of the
chimneys in their forges,
By reason thereof it seems unto diem that working by
night should be put an end to, in order to avoid such false
work and such perils; and therefore the mayor and the
4io Readings in European History
aldermen do will, by the assent of the good folk of the
said trade and for the common profit, that from henceforth
such time for working, and such false work made in the
trade, shall be forbidden. And if any person shall be found
in the said trade to do the contrary hereof, let him be
amerced, the first time in forty pence, one half to go to the
use of the Chamber of the Guildhall of London, and the
other half to the use of the said trade ; the second time, in
half a mark ; and the third time, in ten shillings, to the use
of the same Chamber and trade ; and the fourth time, let
him forswear the trade forever.
Also, that no one of the said trade shall hang his spurs
out on Sundays, or on any other days that are double feasts;
but only a sign indicating his business ; and such spurs as
they shall so sell, they are to show and sell within their
shops, without exposing them without or opening the doors
or windows of their shops, on the pain aforesaid.
Also, that no one of the said trade shall keep a house or
shop to carry on his business, unless he is free of the city ;
and that no one shall cause to be sold, or exposed for sale,
any manner of old spurs for new ones, or shall garnish them
or change them for new ones.
Also, that no one of the said trade shall take an apprentice
tor a less term than seven years, and such apprentice shall
be carolled according to the usages of the said city.
Also, tfeat if any one of the said trade, who is not a free-
man, shall take an apprentice for a term of years, he shall
be amerced as aforesaid.
Also, that no one of the said trade shall receive the ap-
prentice, serving man, or journeyman of another in the same
trade, during the term agreed upon between his master and
him, o» tbe pain aforesaid.
Also, that no alien of another country, or foreigner of this
country, shall follow or use the said trade, unless he is
enfranchised before the mayor, aldermen, and chamberlain ;
and that, by witness and surety of the good folk of the said
trade, who will go surety for him, as to his loyalty and his
good behavior.
The People in Country and Town 41 1
Also, that no one of the said trade shall work on Satur-
days, after nones has been rung out in the city; and not from
that hour until the Monday morning following.
In honour of God, of our Lady, and of All Saints, and for 165,
the nurture of tranquillity and peace among the good folk, °* tt -
the Megucers, called white-tawyers,1 the folk of the same **"
trade have, by assent of Richard Lacer, mayor, and of the
Aldermen, ordained the points underwritten.
In the first place, they have ordained that they will furnish
a wax candle, to burn before our Lady, in the church of All-
hallows, near London wall.
Also, that each person of the said trade shall put in the
box such sum as he shall think fif, in aid of maintaining the
said candle.
Also, if by chance any of the said trade shall fall into
poverty, whether through old age or because he cannot
labor or work, and shall have nothing with which to keep him-
self, he shall have every week from the said box seven pence
for his support, if he be a man of good repute. And after
his decease, if he have a wife, a woman of good repute, she
shall have weekly for her support seven pence from the
said box, so long as she shall behave herself well and keep
single.
And that no stranger shall work in the said trade, or keep
a house* for the same in the city, if he be not an apprentice,
or a man admitted to the franchise of the said city.
And that no one shall take the serving man of another
to work with him, during his tens, unless it be with the per-
mission of his master.
And if any one of the said trade shall have work in his
house that he cannot complete, or if for want of assistance
such work shall be in danger of being lost, those of the said
trade shall aid h™, that so the said work be not lost.
And if any one of the said trade shall depart this life,
and have not withal to be buried, he shall he buried at the
1 Those who dressed leather in soch a w&y as to give it a white
surface.
412 Readings in European Histoty
expense of their common box. And when any one of the
said trade shall die, all those of the said trade shall go to
the vigil, and make offering on the morrow. . . .
III. THE HANSEATIC LEAGUE
Shortly after the death of Otto the Great, as the fol-
lowing document indicates, the merchants began to
attract the attention of the government and develop
the commerce which led, some centuries later, to the
formation of the Hanseatic League.
166. E»- Be it known to all our faithful subjects, now and in the
J^*^0 n future, that according to the desire of Adalbert, archbishop
JMtestioL. 0* Magdeburg, and the suggestions of other faithful subjects,
to the we do grant to the merchants dwelling in Magdeburg, for
"— "~ themselves and their descendants, such protection as our
father, of blessed memory, did in his time allow them to
have. That is, that everywhere in our realm, in Christian
and in barbarous lands, they shall be free to go and come
unmolested.
And we do further by our imperial authority forbid that
they be compelled to pay any taxes for cities, bridges, waters,
aad highways, except in the following places : Mayence,
Cologne, Bardewic, and Tiel ; and in these places no more
nor greater taxes shall be exacted than by their laws they
ought to pay. And if any one has the will, through enmity
toward us, to destroy bridges or in any wise to impede the
highways, let him know that such acts are forbidden by us
OB pain of our ban. And if any man shall think that this
decree is of no effect, and shall dare to set at naught the
above prohibitions, we command that whosoever is guilty of
such insolence shall pay to our treasury ten talents of gold.
The federation of Westphalian towns described below
indicates the dangers to which the merchants were
exposed.
TJie People in Country and Town 4 1 3
In the name of the holy and indivisible Trinity, Amen. The 167. \
magistrates, consuls, and the whole community of burghers 8tcr» 1>ort"
and dtizens in Munster, Dortmund, Soest, and Lippstadt, ^&? ^
to all who may read this document, greeting: Lipp*tadt
We hereby make known to all men, now and in the future, SjJ^l *.
that because of the manifold dangers to which we are con- protect tfceftr
stantly exposed, of capture, robbery, and many other injuries, ***<*»»*»
we have, by common counsel and consent, decided to unite -iaS3;o8*"
in a perpetual confederation under the following terms, and
we have mutually given and received word and oath :
First, that if any man shall take captive one of our citizens
or seize his goods without just cause, we will altogether
deny to him opportunity to trade in all our cities aforesaid.
And if the castellan of any lord shall be the author of an
injury that has been done, the afore-mentioned privileges
shall be altogether withheld from the lord of that castellan,
and from all his soldiers and servants, and all others dwell-
ing with him in his castle. . . .
If any robber has taken goods from one of our citizens
. . . and the injured man shall go to any one of our [feder-
ated] cities seeking counsel and aid, in order that justice
may be done upon the malefactor, the citizens of that city
shall act as they would be obliged to act if executing justice
for a similar crime committed against one of their own
fellow-citizens.
And if any of our burgesses shall chance to go to any of
our cities and fear to go forth because of peril to life and
property, the burgesses of that city shall conduct ima to a
place whence his fellow-citizens caa receive bin* m safety.
If a knight shall be denounced to us on reasonable
grounds as a violator of faith and honor, we will denounce
him in all our cities, and will by mutual consent withhold
from him all privileges in oar cities until he shall pay the
whole debt for which he broke his worcL
If any one of as shall bay goods taken from any of our
confederates by theft or robbery, ... he shall not offer the
goods at retail anywhere and shall be field guilty with the
thief and robber.
Readings in European History
The following illustrates the way in which the Hansa
towns negotiated with the city of London.
168. Agree- In the tenth year of the reign of King Edward, son of
ment Henry, Henry de Maleys being mayor of London, a conten-
t^^^or tion arose between the mayor and citizens of London and
aadcit»eBs the merchants of the German Hansa, concerning the gate
^^°n called Bishopsgate, which was falling into ruin. For the
merchants mayor and citizens of London claimed that the merchants
oftfce of the German Hansa were bound to repair thjs gate in
S^t^! return for the liberties granted to them ; but the merchants
\T3fS2 , some- *-*
what conr said that they were not so bound.
Then the lord king of England, at the suggestion of the
aforesaid mayor and citizens, wrote to his treasurer and the
barons of the treasury, and commanded them to call together
the contending parties and inquire into the facts of the
matter; and if they should find that the said merchants
were bound to keep this gate in repair, they should compel
the Germans to rebuild it.
When the two parties came before the treasurer and
barons, the merchants could show no cause wherefore they
should not make the repairs in question, especially since it
is clearly prescribed in the liberty which they have from the
aforesaid city that they should make them. Therefore the
treasurer and barons did enjoin the mayor and council afore-
said that they compel the merchants to repair the gate in
question.
The merchants, Gerard Merbade, alderman of the Hansa,
Ludolph of Cusfeld, burgher of Cologne, Bertram, burgher
of Hamburg, John of Erest, burgher of Tremoine, John of
Daten, burgher of Miinster, did, for themselves and all their
associates of the Hansa then dwelling in the city, promise to
pay to the mayor and citizens of London for the present
repairs of the gate 240 marks sterling. Further they agreed
that they and their successors, merchants of the Hansa,
would at all times repair the aforesaid gate whenever it should
be necessary ; and that when need should arise to defend
the gate, they would furnish a third part of the guard, to
The People in Coitntry ana Town 415
hold it above, while the mayor and citizens furnished two
thirds, to guard it below.
The mayor and citizens confirmed to the merchants . . .
the liberties which they had possessed before this time, to
be enjoyed by themselves and their successors forever. And,
moreover, in consideration of the repairs and defense of the
gate aforesaid, the citizens shall, so far as in them lies,
hold their peace forever concerning the duty of watch and
ward. . - .
The mayor and citizens agreed that the merchants should
have their own alderman as in former times, so that the
alderman be free of the city aforesaid ; provided that, after
his election by the merchants, he be presented to the mayor
and aldermen of the city, and swear to do right and justice
to every man, according to the law and custom of the city.
IV. KNIGHTS, BURGHERS, AND FARMERS
Although the various contracts and other legal doc-
uments, examples of which have been given, contain
the most accurate information available in regard to the
condition of the farmers and townspeople in the Middle
Ages, we may get a livelier, and in some ways better,
idea of the general situation from the fiction of the
period. While this cannot be taken as history, such
tales as those given below seem to give an essentially
true and living picture of the attitude of the various
classes of society toward one another.
Wolfram von Eschenbach (d. £0r. 1225), the famous
German minnesinger, narrates the adventures of Wil-
liam, count of Orange and margrave of Aquitaine, who,
although he really lived in the eighth century, fares in
Wolfram's tale as any knight might have dooe at the
opening of the thirteenth, when Wolfram wrote.
416 Rctutings in European History
William had to defend his possessions in southern
France against the Saracens. Having carried off a Sara-
cen princess, he was attacked by the infidels, defeated,
and forced to hasten to the court of King Louis of
France for assistance.
169. Knights After some days — I know not how many — the bold hero
aad burghers came to Orleans. ... In the morning he left his inn and
tLrtoentft7 fared forth into the city. Now there was in the town a man
century. of power who held his head high because he wielded author-
(PromWolf- -ty jn tke Ding's name. He tried to wreak causeless spite
Escfaeobach's upon the margrave ; but the knight gave him as good as
he sent "I go scot free of toll ! " he cried. "There are
no merchants' mares nor pack horses at my back. I am a
knight, as you see. If you can ferret out no harm I have
done to the land here, let that stand to my credit. I did not
ride out of the road upon the harvest field ; I kept to the
beaten track, whteh is free to all the world. What I had
need of to feed myself and my horse I have paid for."
But the magistrate and his men sternly ordered him to halt,
and at the burgher's behest forthwith the people of the -town
came flocking from all sides. The magistrate cried, " This
traveler must pay to the full a tax as great as the harm he
has done," In sooth it was a shame that they did not let
him go free. The magistrate called to his people, "Seize his
bridle rein ! " He answered : u My horse carries no load but
only noe and this shield. I Ve ha'd enough of this." Out
dashed his sword, and the magistrate grew shorter by a
head. Then the margrave bewed out a way through the
crowd for man and steed, so hastily that soon the street was
wide. The alarm bell began to sound.
Arnalt, son of the count of Narbonne, heard in his castle
the doleful cries that rang through all the streets. Soon the
magistrate's wife came to him and fell down on the ground
before him. She made her moan : " The king is put to
shame and I am undone. My husband lies in the market
place, slain by one who travels without retinue. He fought
The People in Country and Town 4 1 p
off all our people, and has gone hence unhindered. Woe
Is me ! He has left us a grim trophy for toll on the king's
highway."
To whom Count Arnalt : i4 Who can this be whose might
has done ye this ill ? Were he a merchant, woman* he must
needs have a train and pay toll for his wares." Those who
had come with the woman bore witness : " He carries a
shield, his banner is flecked with rust, yet in all Frankland
know we no knight whose armor is so costly and beautiful,
like the sun's beam to look upon — and eke his doublet and
his shield. As he put us to rout he cried wildly, * Monjoie ! f "
The count cried : " Cowards all ! Did ye not even know-
it is not seemly to treat a knight like a tradesman ? What
should a knight give for toll ? Ye durst not murmur if be
took all your lives. Yet for the king's sake, whose crown
my sister wears, I must after him."
With his knights, he armed and hastened after the mar-
grave. A little way from the town they overtook him, and
the count gave him battle. Both bore themselves bravely.
They did not give over fighting until the count became
aware that the stranger knight was his own brother. After
a parley, Arnalt let William ride on to seek the king.
Then the burghers clamored to know why he was suffered
to go free. To whom the count : " It is William, the mar-
grave ; I can in no wise suffer him to be killed here on
French ground. The burghers of Orleans have borne them-
selves like clumsy boors. Ye dolts J How could ony brother
pay toll like a merchant ? Even he who knows b«t ill the
just dues of knights knows that he goes free of tax.**
Meanwhile William rode on his way, and in due time
reached Moulon. A great crowd was gathered there for a
royal festival, and the knight could find no place to lodge.
At last he went forth from the town. He took off Ms helmet
and stretched himself on the grass beside the road. Then
came a merchant from the town and begged him most cour-
teously to do honor to all merchants by going to lodge with
him. The merchant's name was Wimar, and he was bora
of knightly blood. He said, * If ye will b«t grant me this
Readings in European History
ITO./fenwer
a picture of
German
fife is the
century.
boon to-day, all my fellows will tell afterward of the great
honor that was done me." The margrave answered: "What
ye ask I grant right gladly. I will requite ye as I can. And
now lead on ; I follow you."
The merchant then said courteously : " You should ride, and
I must walk ; else will I stand here the week through." The
margrave replied : u I know friendship's tie but ill if I suffer
ye to be my servant. Let me show courtesy like your own.
I will follow you on foot; for I would be your good comrade."
Wimar led his guest to his house. There the knight suffered
them to disarm him, for he had no fear. And now the host
bade his servants lay mattress and pillow and rich coverlid
on the carpet Then Wimar ordered that many viands, dainty
and fresh, be brought to be cooked and roasted, — meat of
all sorts and fish besides. All was daintily prepared. They
set a little table for the margrave alone ; and when he had
washed his hands, his host served him right deftly. There
were dishes manifold, and an emperor would not have dis-
dained the liquors. The roast peacock was served with the
best sauce the host knew ; and there were capon, pheasant,
partridge, and lamprey served in jelly,
The knight rested at the merchant's house until the next
day and then went to seek the king.
The following story was written, about the middle of
the thirteenth century, by one who calls himself Wernher
the Gardener. The scene is laid in southern Germany.
The version here given is an abridgment of the more
lengthy original, which is in verse.1
Old farmer Helmbrecht had a son. Young Helmbrecht's
yellow locks hung down to his shoulders. He tucked them
into a handsome silken cap, embroidered with doves and par-
rots and many a picture. -This cap had been embroidered
by a nun who had run away from her convent through a love
1 1 owe this tale in its present form to Professor George I* Barr,
who bases his translation upon the prose version gpven by Freytag in
his Bilder aus tier dnetscken Vtrgattgenktit.
The People in Country and Tmcn 419
adventure, as happens to so many. From her Helmbrecht's
sister Gotelind had learned to embroider and to sew. The
girl and her mother had well earned that from the nun, for
they gave her in pay a calf, and many cheeses and eggs.
Sister and mother dressed up the boy7 too, \\ith fine linen
clothing and a chain doublet and a sword, with pouch and
kerchief and a fine overcoat of blue cloth ; its buttons of gold
and silver and glass gleamed bright as he went out to dance,
and its seams were strung with belte which tinkled in the
ears of the maidens as he tripped to the measure.
When the proud boy was thus tricked out, he said to
his father: "Now I want to go to court; do you too, dear
father mine, give me something toward it." His father
replied : ** I might, to be sure, buy you a swift steed that
would leap over hedge and ditch. But, my dear son, give
up the journey to the court; court etiquette is hard for
one who is not used to it from his youth. Take the plow
and til! with me the field ; then you *il live and die respected.
See how I live, — true, respectable, honest, Every year I
pay ray tithes, and my whole life long I have never koown
hate or envy. At court you *11 suffer hunger, your bed will
be hard, and you roust do without love ; there you 11 be the
butt of the genuine court folk; in vain you *11 try to do like
them ; and, on the other hand, you will be just the one
worst hated by the peasant, — on you will he most gladly
revenge himself for what the bluer-blooded robbers have
taken from him/' But the son said : ** Stop, father ! Never
shall your bags chafe my shoulders; never will I load
dung upon your wagon : ill would that befit my long curling
locks, my handsome coat, and my embroidered cap. Shall
I drudge three years lor a coif or a calf, when I can have
my plunder everyday? I *Q drive other people's cattle over
the border, and feaul the peasants by tfeeir hair through
tbe hedges. Hurry up, father ; I stay with you no longer."
Then Ms father bought him the horse, aad said: **Ah, me,
wasted money! " But the boy shook hb head and cried :
** I could bite a stone in two, so fierce is my mood. Good-
bye, father, mother, and sister ! "
42 o Readings in European History
So he galloped through the gate and rode to a castle
whose lord lived by fighting and gladly kept those who did
knight service. There the boy joined the troop and was
soon the readiest rider. No robbery was for him too small
and none too great; he took horse, he took cow, he took
mantle and coat ; even what another let lie, he stuffed it all
in his sack. For the first year everything went to his wish.
Then he began to think of home, took a furlough from court,
and rode to his father'-s house. His sister ran to meet him
and threw her arms about him. He said to her, " Gratia
vestra ! " His parents came after and embraced him again
and again.
He shouted to his father, " Dieu vous salue!" and to his
mother he spoke Bohemian : " Dobra ytra ! " Father and
mother looked at each other. His mother said : " Husband,
we 're out of our wits ; it ?s not our child ; it 's a Bohemian
or a Wend." His father cried, " It's a foreigner — not my
son, much as he looks like him." And his sister Gotelind
said : " It 's not your son ; to me he spoke Latin — it must
be a priest." Now, it was late and there was no inn in the
neighborhood for the boy to put up at, so he bethought him
and said: "Indeed, I'm he; I'm Helmbrecht; once I was
your son." His father said, " You 're not he." " Yes, I am."
"Well, then, name me the names of my four oxen." "Auer,
Rame, Erke, Sonne ; I *ve often swung my switch over them ;
they 're the best oxen in the world — do you know me now ? "
So the son was well received, and a soft bed made ready
by sister and mother. His mother called to her daughter,
"Run, bring a bolster and a soft pillow." Thai was laid
under his arm on the warm stove, and snugly he waited till
supper was ready. It was a royal meal : fine chopped cab-
bage with good meat, a fat goose roasted on the spit,
chickens roasted and boiled. And his father, said: "If I
had wine, to-day it should be drunk ; as it is, however, drink,
dear son, of the best spring water that ever flowed out of
the earth.".
And young Helmbrecht unpacked his presents : for his
father a whetstone, a scythe, and a hatchet — the best
People in Country and Town 421
peasant jewels in. the world ; for his mother a fox skin which
he had pulled oil a priest ; for his sister Gotelind a silken
band and a tagged lace that would better have befitted a
noble dame — he had taken it from a peddler. And he
said: "I must to sleep; I have ridden far; I need rest
to-night." So he slept far into the next day in the bed over
which his sister Gotelind had spread out a new-washed
shirt — for a coverlet was there unknown.
So the son tarried at his father's for a week.
Then the father asked his son how court etiquette was
in the place where he had been living. " I myself," said
he, " when I was a boy, went once to court with cheeses
and eggs ; in those days there were knights of other sort,
courteous and well mannered; they practiced knightly feats
of arms, then they danced with ladies and sang to their
dancing. Then came the musician with his fiddle; and
when he began, the ladies stood up, the knights went up to
them, took them politely by the hand and danced gracefully,
and, when that was over, came another man and read aloud
out of a book about somebody named Ernst.
"All in those days was merry good-fellowship. Some shot
with bows at a mark, others went hunting and fishing ; the
worst one then would be the best nowadays. For now the
man is prized who can spy and lie ; truth and honor are
turned into falsehood ; not even the tourneys of the old
sort are in fashion any more — others are all the rage.
Then one used to hear in knightly sport the shout: * Heia,
knight, good cheer!5 Now there rings through the air:
* Chase him, knight, chase him, chase him ; stab him, fait
him, maim him, cut me that fellow's foot off, hew me this
one's hands off, hang me that one, catch this rich man, he '11
pay us a good hundred pounds.' So it was,' methinks,
better in the old days than now. Tell me, my son, more of
the new customs/'
" That I '11 do. Nowadays court etiquette is : * Drink, sir,
drink, drink ; if you >11 drink this, I '11 drink that.' One
does n't sit any more with women, only with the wine.-
Take my word for it, the life of the old fogies who live as
422 Readings in European History
you do is now hated like the hangman by man and woman,
Law and order is now a joke."
" Son," said his father, " let court etiquette go ; it is
bitter and sour. I *d much rather be a peasant than a poor
courtier who must forever ride for his life and take care that
his foes don't catch him and maim him and hang him."
" Father," said the youngster, " I 'm obliged to you, but
it 's more than a week since I Ve tasted wine — since then
I 've buckled my belt three holes tighter. I '11 have cattle
to lift before the buckle goes back to its old place. A rich
man has done me a grievous wrong ; I saw him once ride
through the grain of my godfather the knight. He shall
pay dear for it : his cattle, his sheep, and his hogs shall
trot for his trampling that field of a godfather of mine.
And I know another rich man who did me also great wrong :
he ate bread with doughnuts — by my life, I '11 be revenged
for it. And I know still another rich man who has given
me more pain than anybody else; I wouldn't forgive it, not
even if a bishop should pray for him, for once as he sat at
table lie loosened his belt most ungracefully. When I get
hold of what he calls his, it shall help me to a Christmas
suit. And there 's yet another stupid fool, who blew the
foam off his glass of beer in the most awkward fashion.
If I don't revenge that, I'll never wear a sword or win a
wife. Helmbrecht will be heard of shortly."
His father said : " Ei ! just name me once these fellows,
your comrades, who have taught you to rob a rich man if he
eats bread and doughnuts together ! " Then his son named
his comrades : " Lammerschling and Schluckdenwidder,
Hollensack and Riittelschrein, Kiihfrass, Knickekelch and
Wolf sgaumen, Wolfsriissel and Wolfsdarm x — these are my
schoolmasters."
His father asked, "And how do they call you ? "
"I'm called- Schlingdengau£i.e. Gulp-down-the-landJ — I'm
not the joy of the peasants; their children have to eat water
1 I,e. Swallow-the-lamb, Gobbte-the-buck, Hell-bag, Ransack-the-
cupboard, etc.
The People in Country and Tozun 423
soup; what the peasants have, that rs mine; for one, I gouge
his eye out, another I slash in the back, this one I tie in an
ant-hill, that one I string up by his legs on the willow."
Then his father burst forth : " Son, those you name and
brag of, be they never so fiery, still I hope, if there lives a
just God, the day will come when the hangman shall seize
them and push them off his ladder."
" Father, often from my comrades I 've saved your geese
and poultry, cattle and fodder ; I '11 never do so again. You
speak too sorely against the honor of good fellows. Your
daughter Gotelind I would have given as a wife to my
comrade Lammerschling ; with him she 7d have led the best
of lives. That *s past now ; you 've spoken too boorishly
against us."
And he took his sister Gotelind secretly aside and told
her confidentially : " When my comrade Lammerschling first
asked me for you, I said to him : * You'll find her worth your
while ; if you take her, never fear that you '11 hang long on
the gallows tree — she'll cut you down with her own hand
and drag you to the grave at the crossroads; with incense
and myrrh she'll march about your bones swinging the
censer a whole year. And if you have the luck to be only
blinded, she'll lead you by the hand over highway and
byway through all the world ; if your foot is struck off, she'll
bring you the crutches to the bed every morning; and if
they take your hand too, then she '11 cut your meat and bread
to the end of your days/ Then said Lammerschling to me :
* I Ve three full bags heavier than lead with fine linen, witfa
gowns and underwear and costly clothing, with scarlet and
sable ; I have it hid in a gorge near by — that I *II give her
for a morning-gif te* All that, Gotelind, you 've lost through
your father's fault ; now take you a peasant and spend your
days digging turnips for the churL A pity about your father !
For my father he's not: I'm sure some courtier had to do
with my mother — from him I get my high spirit."
And his foolish sister said : " Dear brother Schlingdengau,
let your comrade marry me, and I *11 leave father, mother, and
kinsfolk."
424 Readings in European History
" I '11 send you my messenger, whom you must follow ;
hold yourself ready. Good-bye, I'm going; the landlord
here is as little to me as I to him. Mother, good-bye."
So he rode back whence he came, and told his comrade
his sister's wish ; and the comrade kissed his hand for joy,
and made a bow to the wind that blew from Gotelind's way.
Many the widows and orphans who were robbed of their
own when the hero Lammerschling and his bride Gotelind
sat on the bridal seat. Busily did the retainers, on wagon
and on horseback, carry stolen food and drink into Lammer-
schling's house. But when Gotelind came, the bridegroom
went to meet her, and received her : " Welcome, Lady Gote-
lind." "God save you, Sir Lammerschling." Thus did
they greet each other in friendly fashion ; and an old man,
wise in words, stood up and placed the two in a ring, and
asked three times both the man and the maiden, " Will you
take each other in marriage ; if so, say yes." Then he gave
them to each other. All sang the bride-song, and the bride-
groom trod on the bride's foot.
Then the wedding feast was made ready. But strange it
was : the food vanished before the men as if a wind blew it
from the table ; they ate without end whatever the steward
brought on from the kitchen, and there was not enough left
of it for the dog to gnaw the bones. They say that when
anybody eats ravenously like that his end is nigh. The
bride, Gotelind, began to be frightened, and she moaned :
"Ah me ! some trouble is nearing us, my heart is so heavy !
Woe is me that I have left father and mother ; who grasps
at too much gets little ; this greediness leads to the pit of
helL" .
They sat yet awhile after the feast, and -already the musi-
cians had received their gift from bride and bridegroom,
when the judge was seen coming with five men. It was a
short fight ; with five the judge was victorious over ten, for
a real thief, no matter how bold, even though he can beat a
whole army, is helpless against the hangman. The robbers
hid in the oven and under the bench; whoever had not
taken to his legs betimes, the hangman's man now hauled
The People in Country and To*wn 425
out by the hair. Gotelind lost her bridal gown : in a hedge
they found her, scared, tattered, despised. But on the necks
of the thieves were bound the hides of the cattle they had
stolen, as a fee for the judge. Nine the hangman hung ; the
tenth he left alive, by hangman's right, and this tenth was
Schlingdengau Helmbrecht. The hangman revenged his
father on him — he picked him his eyes out ; he revenged
his mother, and chopped him a hand and a foot off. So
the blind Helmbrecht on a crutch was led home to his
father's house.
Hear how his father greeted him : " Dieu salue, Sir Blind
Man. Be off with you, Monsieur Blind Man; if you loiter,
I '11 have you clubbed off by my man ; get away with you
from the door."
So shouted his father ; yet his mother put a loaf of bread
into his hand, as if he were a child. And so the blind man
went away ; and the peasants called after him and taunted
him.
A year he suffered want. Once early in the morning he_
was going through the forest to beg bread, when some peas-
ants who were gathering wood saw him ; from one of them
he had stolen a cow which had seven times calved, and now
that peasant called the others to help him. He had wronged
them all : one's hut he had broken into and plundered ;
another's daughter he had disgraced ; the fourth quivered
with fury and said, " I '11 kill him like a hen — he stuffed my
sleeping baby at night into a bag, and when it awoke and
cried, he shook it out into the snow, where it would have
died had I not coine to its help," All turned then toward
Helmbrecht : " Now look out for thy cap \ " The embroid-
ery which once the hangman had left untouched was torn
in pieces and scattered with his hair along the road. His
confession they let the wretch utter, and one broke a clod
from the earth and put it in the gentleman's hand as an
entrance fee to hell fire. Then they hanged him on a tree.
If there are still at home, with father and mother, children
who want to be knights, let them be warned by Helmbrecht' s
fate.
426
Readings in European History
171. Ex-
pulsion of
the Jews
from Prance.
(From
Rigard's
LifeofPMltp
Augustus.)
V. MALTREATMENT OF THE JEWS
[Philip Augustus had often heard] that the Jews who dwelt
in Paris were wont every year on Easter day, or during the
sacred week of our Lord's Passion, to go down secretly into
underground vaults and kill a Christian as a sort of sacri-
fice in contempt of the Christian religion. For a long time
they had persisted in this wickedness, inspired by the devil,
and in Philip's father's time many of them had been seized
and burned with fire. St. Richard, whose body rests in the
church of the Holy Innocenrs-in-the-Fields in Paris, was
thus put to death and crucified by the Jews, and through
martyrdom went in blessedness to God. Wherefore many
miracles have been wrought by the hand of God through
the prayers and intercessions of St. Richard, to the glory of
God, as we have heard.
And because the most Christian King Philip inquired
diligently, and came to know full well these and many other
iniquities of the Jews in his forefathers' days, therefore he
burned with zeal, and in the same year in which he was
invested at Rheims with the holy governance of the kingdom
of the French, upon a Sabbath, the first of March, by his
command, the Jews throughout all France were seized in
their synagogues and then bespoiled of their gold and silver
and garments, as the Jews themselves had spoiled the Egyp-
tians at their ezodus from Egypt. This was a harbinger
of their expulsion, which by God's will soon followed. . . .
At this time a great multitude of Jews had been dwelling
in France for a long time past, for they had flocked thither
from divers parts of the world, because peace abode among
the French, and liberality; for the Jews. had heard how the
kings of the French were prompt to act against their ene-
mies, and were very merciful toward their subjects. And
therefore their elders and men wise in the law of Moses,
who were called by the Jews didascali, made resolve to come
to Paris.
When they had made a long sojourn there, they grew so
rich that they claimed as their own almost half of the whole
The People in Country and To^vn 427
city, and had Christians in their houses as menservants
and maidservants, who were open backsliders from the faith
of Jesus Christ, and judaized with the Jews. And this was
contrary to the decree of God and the law of the Church.
And whereas the Lord had said by the mouth of Moses in
Deuteronomy (xxiii. 19, 20), "Thou shalt not lend upon
usury to thy brother," but "to a stranger," the Jews in their
wickedness understood by "stranger" every Christian, and
they took from the Christians their money at usury. And
so heavily burdened in this wise were citizens and soldiers
and peasants in the suburbs, and in the various towns and
villages, that many of them were constrained to part with
their possessions. Others were bound under oath in houses
of the Jews in Paris, held as if captives in prison.
The most Christian King Philip heard of these things, and
compassion was stirred within him. He took counsel with
a certain hermit, Bernard by name,1 a holy and religious
man, who at that time dwelt in the forest of Vincennes, and
asked him what he should do. By his advice the king
released all Christians of his kingdom from their debts to
the Jews, and kept a fifth part of the whole amount for
himself.
Finally came the culmination of their wickedness. Cer-
tain ecclesiastical vessels consecrated to God — the chalices
and crosses of gold and silver bearing the image of our
Lord Jesus Christ crucified — had been pledged to the Jews
by way of security when the need of the churches was press-
ing. These they used so vilely, in their impiety and scorn
of the Christian religion, that from the cups in which the
body and blood of our Lord Jesus Christ was consecrated
they gave their children cakes soaked in wine. . . .
In the year of our Lord's Incarnation 1182, in the month
of April, which is called by the Jews Nisan, an edict went
forth from the most serene king, Philip Augustus, that all
the Jews of his kingdom should be prepared to go forth by
1 Not St. Bernard of Clairvaux, who died some thirty years before,
whose advice in regard to the treatment of the Jews will be found
above, p. 332.
428 Readings in European History
the coming feast of St. John the Baptist. And then the
king gave them leave to sell each his movable goods before
the time fixed, that is, the feast of St. John the Baptist.
But their real estate, that is, houses, fields, vineyards, barns,
winepresses, and such like, he reserved for himself and- his
successors, the kings of the French,
When the faithless Jews heard this edict some of them
were born again of water and the Holy Spirit and converted
to the Lord, remaining steadfast in the faith of our Lord
Jesus Christ. To them the king, out of regard for the
Christian religion, restored all their possessions in their
entirety, and gave them perpetual liberty.
Others were blinded by their ancient error and persisted
in their perfidy ; and they sought to win with gifts and
golden promises the great of the land, — counts, barons,
archbishops, bishops, — that through their influence and
advice, and through the promise of infinite wealth, they
might turn the king's mind from his firm intention. But
the merciful and compassionate God, who does not forsake
those who put their hope in him and who doth humble those
who glory in their strength, ... so fortified the illustrious
king that he could not be moved by prayers nor promises
of temporal things. . . .
The infidel Jews, perceiving that the great of the land,
through whom they had been accustomed easily to bend
the king's predecessors to their will, had 'suffered repulse,
and astonished and stupefied by the strength of mind of
Philip the king and his constancy in the Lord, exclaimed,
" Scema Israhel 1 " and prepared to sell all their household
goods. The time was now at hand when the king had
ordered them to leave France altogether, and it could not
be In any way prolonged. Then did the Jews sell all their
movable possessions in great haste, while their landed prop-
erty reverted to the crown. Thus the Jews, having sold
their goods and taken the price for the expenses of their
journey, departed with their wives and children and all their
households in the aforesaid year of the Lord 1182.
The People in Country and Town 429
BIBLIOGRAPHY
The Serfs and Peasants: CHEYNEY, Industrial and Social History A. Refcr-
of England^ Chapter II, pp. 31-56; EMERTON, pp. 509-520; MUNRO, wees,
pp. 148-153-
The Growth of Commerce and the Towns : CHEYNEY, Chapter III,
" Town Life and Organization," pp. 57-73, and Chapter IV, " Trade and
Commerce," pp. 75-94 ; ADAMS, Civilization, pp. 279-310; BEMOXT and
MONOD, pp. 375-390 ; EMERTON, pp. 520-540 ; HENDERSON, Germany
in the Middle Ages, pp. 417-422 ; MUNRO, pp. 153-159.
London in the Twelfth Century: COLBY, pp, 63-66; KENDALL,
pp. 65-78.
The Hanseatic League : HENDERSON, Short History of Germany,
pp. 181-202 ; LODGE, Close of the Middle Ages, pp. 419-451.
.A number of important documents relating to the manor and the
towns may be found in Translations and Reprints, Vol. II, No. i, and
Vol. Ill, No. 5. The extracts from the manor court rolls, which
Professor Cheyney gives there — Vol. Ill, No. 5, pp. 20 sqq. — are
particularly important.
BATESON, MARY, Mediaeval England, English Feudal Society from the B. Addi-
Norman Conquest to the Middle of the Fourteenth Century, 1904 (Story tionalrcad-
of the Nations). ***
JESSOPP, Coming of the Friar -s, second essay on " Village Life Six
Hundred Years Ago."
BARNARD, Companion to English History (Middle Ages), Oxford,
1902, containing essays by a number of scholars on social conditions,
trade, commerce, architecture, monasticism, etc. Very useful.
GIBBINS, History of Commerce in Europe. The best short account,
with good maps of the trade routes. Also by the same writer, The
Industrial History of England* and a more elaborate treatise, Industry
in England*
INGRAM, History of Slavery and Serfdom* 1895, especially Chapters
IV and V.
CUNNINGHAM, Outlines of English Industrial History* and his fuller
Growth of English Industry and Commerce during tke Middle Ages*
All these give good descriptions of the manor, the guilds, the fairs, etc.
JUSSERAND, English Wayfaring Life in the Middle Ages (fourteenth
century), translated from the French by Lucy Smith, 1887. Very
interesting and instructive, with good illustrations.
ZIMMERN, HELEN, The Hansa (Story of the Nations). Interesting,
with good illustrations.
430 Readings in European History
C. Materials GROSS, The Gild Merchant* 2 vols., 1890. The second volume con-
f or advanced tains documents. Excellent.
study. ASHLEY, English Economic History -, 1892.
VINOGRADOFF, Villanage in England. One of several special trea-
tises upon this rather obscure subject, some of which are reviewed in
ASHLEY'S Surveys (see above, p. 192).
LUCHAIRE, Manuel^ Part I, Book II. On the agrarian arrangements
in France.
LEVASSEUR, Histoire des classes ouvrieres et de V Industrie en France
avant 1789, 2d ed,, 1900, Vol. I. Excellent.
SEE, Les Classes rurales et le regime dominial en France au moyen
4gv, 1901. With many short extracts from the sources.
PlGEONNEAU, Histoire du commerce de la France^ 1885-1889, Vol. I.
HEYD, Geschichte des Levantehandels im Mittelalter, 2 vols., 1879.
Also a French translation, 1885-1886. A very important work.
SCHULTE, Geschichte des mittelalterlichen ffandels und Verkehrs
vwischen Westdeutschland und Italien^ 2 vols., 1900. Very careful
treatment.
VON SELOW, Das altere deutsche Stadtewesen, in the beautifully illus-
trated and inexpensive series of Monographien znr Weltgesckichte.
The most important work on German towns is HEGEL, Stadte und
Gilden der germanischen Volker im Mittelalter> 2 vols., 1891.
The discussion which has raged over the origin of the towns is
summed up by PIRENNE, UQrigine des constitutions urbaines au moyen
Age in the Revue Historique, Vol. LIII (1893) and LVI1 (l895)-
Besides the material given by Professor Gross in the second volume
of his Gild Merchant^ the following in the Collection detextes (see above,
p. 220) are readily procured : .
Documents sur les relations de la royaute avec les miles en France
de 1180 a 1314, edited by GlRY, 1885.
FAGNIEZ, Documents relatifs a rhistoire de Industrie etdu commerce
en France. Fascicle I (to fourteenth century).
CHAPTER XIX
THE CULTURE OF THE MIDDLE AGES
I. THE DEVELOPMENT OF THE MODERN LANGUAGES
A. — English
From the little example of Anglo-Saxon given below
one can form some notion of the general appearance of
English as it was written from the times of Alfred to
those of Henry II. The characters ]> and tS both stand
for th. The former is equivalent to th in " thin " and is
used at the beginning of a word ; the latter corresponds
to the vocalized th in " father " and occurs in the middle
of a word. The sign 3 means "and."
A little study and comparison with the translation
will show that almost all the words used correspond
to those with which we are familiar in our own modern1
speech.
Here on pissum geare Willelm cyng geaf Rodberde eorle 172. Ex-
thone eorldom on NorShymbraland. Da comon ]>a landes JJJJJ?0*
menn togeanes him. 3 hine ofslogon. 3 ix. hund manna saxon.
mid him. And Eadgar aetSeling com ]>a mid eallum Nor- (Pram the
Shymbram to Eoferwic 3 |?a J>ortmen wifc hine grifcedon. 3 Q^^^
se cyng Willelm com suSan mid eallan his fyrde. 3 J>a burh
forhergode 3 fela hund manna ofsloh. 3 se aetfeling for eft
to Scotlande.
In this year £1068] King William gave to Earl Robert the Transition,
earldom of Northumberland. Then came the men of the
country against him (Robert), and slew him, and nine hun-
dred men with him. And Edgar aetheling came then with
432
Readings in European History
173. An
aple of
in the
thirteenth
century.
(From
A Metrical
Version of
Modernized
all the Northumbrians to York, and the townsmen made
peace with him. And King William came from the south
with all his force, and ravaged the town, and slew many hun-
dred men. And the aetheling went back again to Scotland.
By the middle of the thirteenth century English
begins to look pretty familiar, although at first glance a
word may be disguised by the spelling. In the four-
teenth century the language became a literary vehicle of
great force and beauty, especially in the verse of Chaucer
and the prose of Wycliffe. Examples of the language
as used by the latter will be found in a succeeding chap-
ter (see below, pp. 498 sqq.).
And Aaron held up his hond
To the water and the more lond ;
Tho cam thor up schwilc froschkes here
The dede ai folc Egipte dere ;
Summe woren wilde, and summe tame,
And tho hem deden the moste schame ;
In huse, in drinc, in metes, in bed,
It cropen and maden hem for-dred. . . .
And Aaron held up his hand
To the water and the greater land ;
Then came there up such host of frogs
That did all Egypt's folk harm ;
Some were wild, and some were tame, .
And those caused them the most shame ;
In house, in drink, in meats, in bed,
They crept and made them in great dread. . . .
B. — Fre nek
The oath taken by Louis the German at Strasburg in
842 1 furnishes the first example which has been preserved
of the language which was destined to develop into modern
1 See History of Western Europe^ pp. 94 sq.
The Culture of the Middle Ages
433
French. A French scholar has ingeniously illustrated, by
the following parallel columns, the more important stages in
the progress from the ancient Latin to the French as it is
written to-day.
Classical Latin
Per Dei amorem et per
christiani populi et nos-
tram communem salutem,
ab hac die, quantum Deus
scire et posse mihi dat,
servabo hunc meum fra-
trem Carolum, et ope mea
et in quacumque re, ut
quilibet fratrem suum
servare jure debet, dum-
modo mecum idem agat,
et cum Clotario nullam
unquam pactionem faci-
am, quae mea voluntate
huic meo fratri Carolo
damno sit.
Conjectural Spoken Lan-
guage of the Transi-
tion Period
Pro deo amore et pro
christiano popolo et nos-
tro commune salvamento
de esto die in abante, in
quanto decs sapere et po-
tere me donat, sic salva-
raio eo eccesto mem fratre
Karlo et inadjutareetin
catuna causa sic qomo
omo per drecto som fra-
tre salvare debet, in o
qued elle me altero sic
faciat, et ab Luthero nul-
lo placito nunquam pren-
deraio, qui mem volere
eccesto mem fratre Karlo
in damno sit.
Strasburg Oath (842)
Pro deo amur et pro
Christian poblo et nostro
coramun saluament, d'ist
di en avant, in quant
Deus savir et podir me
dunat, si salvarai eo cist
meon fradre Karlo, et in
aiudha et in cadhtma co-
sa, si cum om per dreit
son fradra salvar dift, in
o quid il mi altresi fazet,
et ab Ludher nul plaid
nunquam prindrai, qui
meon vol cist meon fra-
dre Karle in damno sit.
174. Com-
parison of
the various
stages in
the develop-
ment of
French.
French of the irth Cen-
tury', Period of the Song
of Roland
For dieu amor et por
del crestiien poeple et
nostre comun salveraent,
de cest jor en avant, quant
que Dieus saveir et po-
deir me donet, si salverai
io cest mien fredre Char-
Ion, et en aiude, et en
chascnne chose, si come
on par dreit son fredre
salver deit, en §o que il
me altresi faget, et a Lo-
dher nul plait oncquesne
prendrai, qui mien vueil
oest mien fredre Charlon
en dam sit
Middle French, Opening
of the j5th Century
Pour Pamour Dieu et
pour le sauvement du
chrestien peuple et le nos-
tre commun, de cest jour
en avant, quant que Dieu
savoir et pouvoir me do-
net, si sauverai je cet mien
frere Charle, et par mon
aide et en chascune chose,
si comme on doit par droit
son frere sauver, en ce
qu'il me face autresi, et
avec Lothaire nul plaid
onques ne prendrai, qui,
£ mon veuil, £ ce mien
frere Charles soit 3t dan.
French of Ttnfay
Pour Parnour de Dien
et pour le salut commun
du peuple chre*tien et le
nfitre, i partir <ie ce jour,
antant que Dieu m'en
donne te savoir et le pou-
voir, je sontiendrai mon
frere Charles de mon aide
et en toute chose, comme
on doit justement soute-
nir son frere, 2t condition
qu'il m'en fasse autant,
et je ne prendrai jamais
aucun arrangement avec
Lothaire, qui, a ma vo-
Iont6, soit an d6trinoent de
mon dit frere Charles.
434
Readings in European History
175. A few
lines of
Translation.
troaba-
(Proni
Smith, 7*e
Trottbatfours
at Home.)
C — Provencal
leu m'en irai ; e on? Non sai,
Mais lai on tota li gens vai,
En 1'autre segle, per saber
Si lai aves tant de poder.
I am going hence; and whither? I know not,
But there where all the people go, —
Into the other world to learn
If you [namely, love] have as much power there.
176 The It was precisely in the land of the troubadours, and keep-
Meals of the ing time by the music of their songs, that a gay, brilliant,
and polished society was first developed in the modern
world. Partly by instinct, partly by feeling, and partly by
taking thought, a code of ideals and a system of conduct
were elaborated, to break and put in training the rude ways
and ungoverned passions of the feudal world. The starting-
point was love for woman, as we have already discovered.
As the result of love came that joi of which we already
know, a gladness and lightness of heart that illuminated and
vivified the inner world like another sun, and prompted to
all noble, beautiful, and self-denying acts. Joi led especially
to the boundless generosity that frequently almost ruined
wealthy nobles, and even made robbers of them sometimes.
Along with such qualities went naturally a passionate fond-
ness for social pleasure, witty conversation, and gallantry.
AH these together were summed up in the vrordjeven, that
youngness or young-heartedness which has already been
mentioned more than once,- while feebleness of spirit and
meanness of life were signified by the contrary word, old-
ness. Over all this were thrown the bonds of self-control
and moderation, expressed by another word always on the
lips — mesura, measure, which endeavored to bring even the
virtues into aesthetic form.
The precious fruit 'of so much striving and study was
known as carUsia^ courtliness, the perfect bearing and conduct
of a finished gentleman according to the code of chivalry and
The Culture of the Middle Ages 435
poetry; and the rewards a man gained from this were the
excellence or worth that he felt within himself, and — far
more important, as a rule — the repute or credit with others
that all were passionately bent upon winning.
Fair to me is April, bearing 177. A tnm-
Winds that o'er me softly blow, — badour's
Nightingales their music airing
While the stars serenely glow;
All the birds as they have power,
While the dews of morning wait,
Sing of joy in sky or bower,
Each consorting with his mate.
And as all the world is wearing
New delight while new leaves grow,
'Twould be vain to try forswearing
Love which makes my joys o'erflow ;
Both by habit and by dower
Gladness is my rightful state,
And when clouds no longer lower
Quick my heart throws off its weight.
Helen were not worth comparing,
Gardens no such beauty show ;
Teeth of pearl, — the truth declaring,
Blooming cheeks, a neck of snow,
Tresses like a golden shower,
Courtly charms, for baseness, hate, —
God who made her thus o'ertower
All the rest, her way make straight !
Kindness may she do me, sparing
Courtship long and favor slow,
Give a kiss to cheer my daring —
More, if more I earn, bestow;
Then the path where pleasures flower
We shall tread nor slow nor late, —
Ah, such hopes my heart o 'erpower
When her charms I contemplate.
436
Readings in European History
178. The
trouba-
dours'
creed.
(By Sort/el.)
As treasures buried in the earth
Possess no longer any worth,
I likewise count good sense quite vain
If one conceal it in his brain. . . „
Whoe'er considers life with care
Will always find, — so I declare,
One thing enjoined by wisdom's rod :
To please at once the world and God.
179. A song
byV&tel.
One is not wise, as wise I deem,
Unless he oft can make it seem
That he is pleased with what annoys
And bored by what he most enjoys;
And who this maxim e'er applies, —
I' faith I count him truly wise. . . .
A life of baseness and ill-fame
Destroys the body, soils the name,
And sends the rebel soul to dwell
Forever in the fires of hell. . . .
No man of worth, it seems to me,
Should wish to live except it be
For jay and fame, since only these
Give life a flavor that can please. , .
Oh, 'tis good and fair
When the trees all wear
Fresh green leaves, — the air
Sweet with flowers new,
Song birds, here and there,
Chanting full in view,
While gay lovers sue,
Amorous and true;
Loved and lover I would be,
Yet such answers to my plea
It hath been my lot to find
That I Ve nearly lost my mind.
The Culture of the Middle Ages 437
Strength and heart and mind.
Lovingly inclined,
I have all resigned
To my lady fair ;
Glad new life I find
Like the boughs that wear
Fruit again, — birds air
All their music there ;
Springing leaves and blossoms new
In my heart I ever view,
And this joy will ever be
Mine, for she hath heard my plea.
Whene *er the lark's glad wings I see . iso. A song
Beat sunward 'gainst the radiant sky by Bernard &
Till, lost in joy so sweet and free, Ventadori,.
She drops, forgetful how to fly, —
Ah, when I view such happiness
My bosom feels so deep an ache,
Meseems for pain and sore distress
My longing heart will straightway break,
Alas, I thought I held the key
To love ! How ignorant am 1 1
For her that ne 'er will pity me
I am not able to defy ;
My loving heart, my faithfulness,
Myself, my world, she deigns to take,
Then leaves me bare and comfortless
To longing thoughts that ever wake.
D. — German
So die bluomen us dem grase dringent, 181. A song
Sam si lachen gegen den spilnden sunnen by the
~r • T r minBft"
In einem meien an dem morgen fruo, singer,
Und die kleinen vogellin wol singent wanker
In ir besten wise die si kunnen,
Wunne kan sich da gelichen zuo ? . . .
438
Readings in European History
Translation
of these and
the following
lines.
When from the sod the flow 'rets spring,
And smile to meet the sun's bright ray,
When birds their sweetest carols sing
In all the morning pride of May,
What lovelier than the prospect there ?
Can earth boast anything more fair ?
To me it seems an almost heaven,
So beauteous to my eyes that vision bright is given.
But when a lady, chaste and fair,
Noble and clad in rich attire,
Walks through the throng with gracious air,
As sun that bids the stars retire, —
Then, where are all thy boastings, May ?
What hast thou beautiful and gay
Compared with that supreme delight ?
We leave thy loveliest flowers, and watch that lady bright.
Wouldst thou believe me, — come and place
Before thee all this pride of May ;
Then look but on my lady's face,
And, which is best and brightest? say:
For me, how soon (if choice were mine)
This would I take, and that resign !
And say, " Though sweet thy beauties, May,
I'd rather forfeit all than lose my lady gay."
II. MEDLEVAL NATURAL SCIENCE
Mediaeval books on science differ greatly, as might be
expected, from the scientific manuals of our own age.
In the first place, they are usually devoted to things in
general and are called On the Nature of Things, On the
Properties of Things y Things that can be Known> Mirror
of the World, etc. A writer did not hesitate to huddle
together into a short treatise matters which we should
regard as properly belonging to a dozen distinct sciences,
The Culture of the Middle Ages 439
such as zoology, mineralogy, botany, chemistry, physics,
meteorology, anatomy, physiology, ethics, theology, law,
and medicine. In the second place, important scientific
observations are mixed with what seem to us the most
preposterous legends and irrelevant anecdotes. Lastly,
writers were rarely satisfied when they had described a
particular kind of bird, fish, or mineral unless they could
add a moral, or illustrate the truths of Scripture.
Among the more worthy and serious of these mediaeval
writers is Alexander Neckam in his work entitled On
the Natures of Things. He was an Englishman, a con-
temporary of Richard the Lion-Hearted, and for a time
a professor in the University of Paris. In a single
fair-sized volume he takes up in turn the world and the
heavenly bodies ; fire, air, and the various birds ; water
and the fishes ; the earth, metals, gems, plants, and ani-
mals, with their respective virtues and properties ; man,
the vanity of his pursuits, his domesticated animals, —
the dog, horse, sheep, mule, silkworm ; scholastic learn-
ing, the universities, Virgil's necromancy, court life, dice,
chess, and the vices of envy and arrogance.
The eagle, [Neckam tells us] on account of its great 182. Tbe
heat, mixeth very cold stones with its eggs when it sitteth
on them, so that the heat shall not destroy them. In the
same way our words, when we speak with undue heat, Hecfcam,
should later be tempered with discretion, so that we may JJ^jjJJf*
conciliate in the end those whom we offended by the
beginning of our speech.
The wren is but a little bird, yet it glories in the number The vren.
of its progeny. Who has not wondered to hear a note of
such volume proceeding from so trifling a body? The
smaller the body, indeed, the greater the sound, it would
seem. By such things we are taught that the virtues of
44O Readings in European History
little things should not be scorned. . . . They say, more-
over, that when the body of the wren is put upon the spit
and placed before the fire it need not be turned, for the
wren will turn itself, not forgetful of its royal dignity.
The stratagem by which, according to a fabulous story, it
gained the royal power among birds is well known. The
birds had agreed among themselves that the glory of the
supreme power should be allotted to the one who should
excel all others by flying highest. The wren seized its
opportunity and hid itself under the eagle's wing. When
the eagle, who attains nearest to Jove's gates, would have
claimed the supremacy among its fellows, the little wren
sallied forth and perching on the eagle's head declared
itself the victor. And so it obtained its name of Regulus
(i.e. "ruler"). *
This fable touches those who enter upon the works of
others and presumptuously appropriate the credit due else-
where. As the philosopher says, "We are all like dwarfs
standing upon giants' shoulders." We should therefore be
careful to ascribe to our predecessors those things which we
ought not to claim for our own glory, and not follow the
example of that wren which, with little or no effort of its
own, claimed to have outdone the eagle.
In contrast with these tales and moralizings, Neckam
gives many true and useful facts. For example, the
habits and cultivation of the silkworm are clearly and
correctly described, and the use of the compass is
explained.
The mag- The sailors, as they sail over the sea, when in cloudy
netic needle. weather they can no longer profit by the light of the sun, or
when the world is wrapped in the darkness of night, and they
are ignorant whither the ship's course is directed, touch
a needle to the magnet ; the needle will then whirl around
in a circle until, when its motion ceases, its point is directed
to the north.
The Culture of the Middle Ages 441
A little Anglo-Saxon manual of the tenth century
thus describes the heavenly bodies.
On the second day God made the heaven, which is called 183. The
the firmament, which is visible and corporeal ; and yet we earth and
may never see it, on account of its great elevation and the "
thickness of the clouds, and on account of the weakness of
our eyes. The heaven incloses in its bosom all the world, SaM?
and it ever turns about us, swifter than any mill-wheel, all as SSJJbit
deep under this earth as it is above. It is all round and condensed.}
entire and studded with stars.1
Truly the sun goes by God's command between heaven
and earth, by day above and by night under the earth. She
is ever running about the earth, and so light shines under
the earth by night as it does above our heads by day.
The sun is very great : as broad she is, from what books say,
as the whole compass of the earth ; but she appears to us
very small, because she is very far from our sight. Every-
thing, the further it is, the less it seems. ... - The moon
and all the stars receive light from the great sun. The sun
is typical of our Saviour, Christ, who is the sun of right-
eousness, as the bright stars are typical of the believers in
God's congregation, who shine in good converse. ... No
one of us has any light of goodness except by the grace of
Christ, who is called the sun of true righteousness. . . .
Truly the moon's orb is always whole and perfect, although
it does not always shine quite equally. Every day the moon's
light is waxing or waning four points through the sun's light.
. . . We speak of new moon according to the custom of
men, but the moon is always the same, though its light often
1 Educated persons realized all through the Middle Ages that the earth
was a sphere. Bede — of whose work, On Tke Nature of Things, the
present treatise is an abridgment — says (Chapter XLVI) : " We
speak of the globe of the earth, not that it is perfectly round, owing to
the inequalities of mountains and plains, but because, if all its lines be
considered, it has the perfect form of a sphere." He adds that stars far
to the south are not visible to northern peoples, owing to the convexity
of the earth.
442
Readings in European History
Eclipse of
the sun.
Meteors.
The planets.
Comets.
ta
feoakoa
beasts—
eariy
twelfth
ceatary.)
varies. ... It happens sometimes when the moon runs on
the same track that the sun runs, that its orb intercepts the
sun's, so that the sun is all darkened and the stars appear
as by night This happens seldom, and never but at new
moons. By this it is clear that the moon is very large, since
it thus darkens the sun.
Some men say stars fall from heaven, but it is not stars
that fall, but it is fire from the sky, which flies down from
the heavenly bodies as sparks do from fire. Certainly
there are still as many stars in the heavens as there were
at the beginning, when God made them. They are almost
all fixed in the firmament, and will not fall thence while this
world endures. The sun, and the moon, and the evening
star, and morning star, and three other stars are not fast in
the firmament, but they have their own course severally.
These seven stars are called planets.
Those stars are called comets which appear suddenly and
unusually, and which are rayed so that the ray goes from
them like a sunbeam. They are not seen for any long time,
and as oft as they appear they foreshadow something new
toward the people over whom they shine.
A few examples of mediaeval zoology and of the
edifying habits of beasts and birds may be added.
The pelican is a bird of such fashion as is the crane, and it
is found in Egypt ... Its nature is such that when it comes
to its little ones, and they are large and beautiful, it wishes to
fondle them, and to cover them with its wings. But the little
ones are fierce ; they seize him to peck him, and wish to de-
vour him and pick out his two eyes. Then he takes them
and pecks them, and slays them with torment, and thereupon
leaves them, — leaves them lying dead. On the third day he
returns, and is grieved to find them dead, and makes sore
lamentations when he sees his little ones dead; with his
beak he strikes his body so that the blood gushes forth : the
blood goes dropping down and falls upon his birdlings : the
blood has such virtue that by it they come to life. . . .
The Culture of the Middle Ages 443
This bird signifies the son of Mary, and we are the young
birds in fashion of men. We are so raised and restored
from death by the precious blood which God shed for us, as
the birdlings are which were three days dead. Now hear
by science what that signifies, — why the birdlings peck at
the father's eye, and why the father is angry when he kills
them thus : he who denies truth will put out the eye of God,
and God will take vengeance upon that people. Have
in remembrance that this is the meaning.
Satyrs be somewhat like men, and have crooked noses, 185. Of
and horns in the forehead, and are like to goats in their satyrs,
feet. St. Anthony saw such an one in the wilderness, as ^^f^
it is said, and he asked what he was, and he answered Properties of
Anthony, and said, "I am deadly, and one of them that %£!£'?*
dwelleth in the wilderness." These wonderful beasts be Aagiicos?6*7
divers ; for some of them be called Cynophali, for they have thirteenth
heads as hounds, and seem, by the working, beasts rather centniy*'
than men ; and some be called Cyclops, and have that name
because each of them hath but one eye, and that in the
middle of the forehead ; and some be all headless and nose-
less and their eyes be in the shoulders; and some have
plain faces without nostrils, and the nether lips of them
stretch so that they hele therewith their faces when they be
in the heat of the sun ; and some of them have closed mouths,
in their breasts only one hole, and breathe and suck, as it
were, with pipes and veins, and these be accounted tongue-
less, and use signs and becks instead of speaking ; also in
Scythia be some with so great and large ears, that they
spread their ears and cover all their bodies with them, and
these be called Panchios. . . .
And others there be in Ethiopia, and each of them have
only one foot, so great and so large that they beshadow
themselves with the foot when they lie gaping on the ground
in strong heat of the sun ; and yet they be so swift that they
be likened to hounds in swiftness of running, and therefore
among the Greeks they be called Cynopodes. Also some
have the soles of their feet turned backward behind the
444 Readings in Eitropean History
legs, and in each foot eight toes, and such go about and
stare in the desert of Lybia.
A discriminat- The cat is a full lecherous beast in youth, swift, pliant,
ing descrfp- an(j m^rry^ anc[ leapeth and runneth on everything that is to
fore him : and is led by a straw, and playeth therewith: and
(From the is a right heavy beast in age and full sleepy, and lieth slyly
same source.) .n wa«t for mjce: ancj jS aware where they be, more by smell
than by sight, and hunteth and runneth on them in privy
places ; and when he taketh a mouse, he playeth therewith,
and eateth him after the play. In time of love is hard
fighting for wives, and one scratcheth and rendeth the other
grievously with biting and with claws. And he maketh a
ruthful noise and ghastful, when one proffereth to fight with
another: nor is he hurt when he is thrown down off an high
place. And when he hath a fair skin, he is, as it were,
proud thereof, and goeth fast about ; and when his skin is
burnt, then he bideth at home ; and he is oft, for his fair
skin, taken of the skinner, and slain and flayed.
III. HISTORICAL KNOWLEDGE IN THE MIDDLE AGES
Like the works on natural science, the histories of the
twelfth and thirteenth centuries furnish a singular mix-
ture of truth and occasional acute criticism along with
the most palpable absurdities. Such a writer as Otto of
Freising made use of some excellent authorities, — for
example, Eusebius and the best of the mediaeval chroni-
cles,— and one is astonished to find how correct and
philosophic is his account of the history of the world.
He knew as much about the past as writers of a hundred
years ago. On the other hand, there are frequent
passages like the following in other writers of the time.
[Philip Augustus* distressed by the ill-smelling mud in
Paris, arranges to have the city paved with hard and solid
The Culture of the Middle Ages
445
blocks of stone.] This city was originally called Lutetia
on account of the pestilential mud with which it was filled.
The inhabitants, shocked by the name, which was always
recalling the mud to them, preferred to call the city Paris,
from Paris Alexander, son of Priam, king of Troy; for we
read in the Acts of the Franks that the first king of the
Franks who exercised the royal power was Pharamond, son
of Marcomir, whose father was Priam, king of Austrasia.
This Priam, king of Austrasia, was not, however, the great
Priam, king of Troy, but he was a descendant of Hector,
Priam's son, through Francius, as will be seen from the
following table.
PRIA.M, KING OF TROY
TROILUS
Turck, son of Troilus
186. How
the Mero-
vingian
sprang
from Troy.
(Fromtfee
HECTOR
Francius, son of Hector
Priam, king of Austrasia
Marcomir, his son
Pharamond, his son, first king of Gaul,
reigned n years
Clodius, his son, reigned 20 years
Meroveus, of his race, reigned 17 years
Childeric, his son, reigned 20 years
Now, since it is not rare to find those who doubt this
origin of the Franks and the authorities which would prove
that the kings of France may really be traced back to the
Trojans, we have taken pains to collect all the information
in the history of Gregory of Tours, in the chronicles of
Eusebius and of Idacius, besides the writings of many
others, in order to establish this genealogy correctly.
After the destruction of Troy a great number of the
inhabitants of that city fled, and later separated into two
peoples ; one of these took for their king Francius, son of
Hector, and consequently grandson of Priam the former king
of the Trojans ; the other followed the son of Troilus, the
second son of Priam. He was called the Turck ; and it is
in this way, it is said, that these two peoples received the
How the
Franks awi
the Turks
came to be
so called.
446 Readings in European History
names which they keep even until to-day of^J£f£nks and
Turks.
Having advanced inland, they soon found themselves in
Thrace on the banks of the Danube ; but Turck soon sepa-
rated from Francius, his cousin, in order to establish a king-
dom in lower Scythia. We have here the origin of the Oster
Goths, the Hypo Goths, the Vandals, and the Normans.
Francius, on his part, established himself in the neighbor-
hood of the Danube, and there he founded his state under
the name of Sicambria. There he and his descendants
reigned for the space of 1507 years, until the time of the
emperor Valentinian, who came to the throne in the year
376 of the Incarnation of our Lord. They were then driven
from their country because they refused to pay, like the other
nations, a tribute to the Romans. . . .
They finally established themselves upon the banks of the
Rhine in a country neighboring upon Germany and Ale-
mannia, called Austrasia. Valentinian, having tried their
courage in many conflicts without ever being able to vanquish
them, called this people by their proper name of " Franks,"
— that is to say, in the language of the North, Feranc — that
is ferocious. The Franks soon increased their power to such
an extent that they finally conquered all Germany, and Gaul
as far as the Pyrenees and beyond.
IV. ABELARD AND THE UNIVERSITIES
While Abelard was not the first teacher to attract
students to Paris, his great gifts and his remarkable
popularity served to arouse such enthusiasm for learning
that it was not long after his death that the teachers
and students became so numerous that they organized
themselves into guilds, or corporations, which formed the
basis of the later university.
It is not difficult to understand the charm of Abelard's
teaching. ^ Three qualities are assigned to it by the writers
The Culture of the Middle Ages 447
of the period, some of whom studied at his feet : clearness, 187. Abe-
richness in imagery, and lightness of touch are said to have
been the chief characteristics of his teaching. Clearness is,
indeed, a quality of his written works, though they do not, (Prom
naturally, convey an impression of his oral power. His ^C*1*"
splendid gifts and versatility, supported by a rich voice, a
charming personality, a ready and sympathetic use of human
literature, and a freedom from excessive piety, gave him an
immeasurable advantage over all the teachers of the day.
Beside most of them, he was as a butterfly to an elephant
A most industrious study of the Roman classics that were
available, a retentive memory, an ease in manipulating his
knowledge, a clear, penetrating mind, with a corresponding
clearness of expression, a ready and productive fancy, a
great knowledge of men, a warmer interest in things human
than in things divine, a laughing contempt for authority, a
handsome presence, and a musical delivery, — these were
his gifts. •
Nowhere is so much to be found about Abelard's life iss.
and the education of his time as in a certain long, sad
letter which he wrote to a friend describing his troubles,
{Smnmary
and which is really a brief autobiography. He tells first
of his birth in Brittany, not far from Nantes. His father
had been interested in learning, although a soldier by
profession, and had resolved that his children should be
reared in letters before they were trained in arms. Abe-
lard, the firstborn, decided to surrender all his possessions
to his brothers and set forth to seek instruction, especially
in logic, preferring the laureJs to be won in disputation
to the trophies of war, the natural profession of a young
nobleman.
Consequently [foe says] I traversed the various provinces,
engaging in disputation and visiting all those places "where
I heard that the art of logic flourished. I came finally to
44$ Readings in European History
Abelard Paris, where this art was wont to be most cultivated, to
falls out William of Champeaux, my preceptor, who at that time was
naster at quite justly famous in his profession.. I remained with him
Paris. for a time and was at first favorably received ; later he came
to dislike me heartily, when I attempted to oppose certain of
his opinions. I began frequently to argue against him, and
sometimes appeared to get the better of him in debate.
Moreover those among my fellow-students who stood high-
est were especially indignant with me, since I was reckoned
of slight consequence owing to my youth and the brief
period I had been studying. Here my calamities had their
beginning and they still continue.
[In spite of his youthfulness Abelard ventured to begin
teaching for himself near Paris, and attracted many stu-
dents. But he speedily broke down in health and went
back to Brittany for several years. Later he returned to
Paris, and forced poor William of Champeaux to change
the formulation of his doctrine in a single point The
master being thus discredited, the students now flocked to
listen to the new teacher. Before long, however, Abelard
decided to turn to theology. He accordingly went to Laon,
to study under Master Anselm, then famous in that subject.]
I accordingly betook myself to this old man, but found that
he owed his name rather to mere tradition than to any special
ability. If one applied to him, uncertain as to some ques-
tion, one left him still more uncertain. He was marvelous
in the eyes of those who merely listened, but contemptible
to those who asked questions. He enjoyed an astonishing
facility in words but was despicable in his understanding
and fatuous in his reasoning. . . . When I discovered that
he was like a tree full of leaves but without fruit, I did not
spend many days lying idle in his shade. I went more and
more infrequently to his lectures. Some of the most promi-
nent among his students took this ill, since I seemed to
despise their great master.
[One day Abelard's fellow-students, who regarded him
as very ill prepared for the study of -theology, asked him
jokingly what he thought of the reading 'of the Scriptures.
The Culture of t/ie Middle Ages 449
Abelard replied that he believed that any one who could Abehrd
read ought to be able to understand the writings of the ^c^reson
saints without a long course under a master.] Those who without
heard laughed and asked if I would presume to interpret the preparation.
Scriptures myself. I said that if they wished to try me I was
ready. They then exclaimed, amid renewed laughter, that
they gladly assented.
[They agreed upon a very obscure passage in EzekieL
Abelard insisted upon the students coming on the morrow,
although they advised him to take more time to think over
the passage.] I said indignantly that it was not my custom
to reach my goal by long practice but by my wits. I added
that they should either let me off altogether or come to my
lecture when I wished them to come.
At my first lecture few were present, since it seemed absurd
to them all that I, hitherto almost wholly inexperienced in
the Scriptures, should undertake the task so suddenly. How-
ever, all who came were so pleased that, one and all, they
praised my words and urged me to proceed with my comments
according to my interpretation. As the affair became known,
those who had not been present at the first lecture began
to come in great numbers to the second and third. All
were, moreover, eager to make notes from the very begin-
ning, upon the explanation which I had given the first day.
[Not unnaturally Anselm was very much irritated and made
the audacious and self-complacent lecturer a great deal of
trouble later.]
Enough has been given from Abelard's famous biogra-
phy to show something of his character. The reasons,
too, are clear why he had many enemies. He has well
been called the enfant tirribh of the schools of his day.
In order to justify and promote a free discussion of the
theological questions in which he was much interested,
Abelard prepared his famous book, Yea and Nay. A
brief summary of the introduction is given below.
450 Readings in European History
189. Abe- There are many seeming contradictions and even obscuri-
Iard's ties in the innumerable writings of the church fathers. Our
). respect for their authority should not stand in the way of
an effort on our part to come at the truth. The obscurity
and contradictions in ancient writings may be explained upon
many grounds, and may be discussed without impugning
the good faith and insight of the fathers. A writer may use
different terms to mean the same thing, in order to avoid a
monotonous repetition of the same word. Common, vague
words may be employed in order that the common people
may understand ; and sometimes a writer sacrifices perfect
accuracy in the interest of a clear general statement. Poeti-
cal, figurative language is often obscure and vague.
Not infrequently apocryphal works are attributed to the
saints. Then, even the best authors often introduce the
erroneous views of others and leave the reader to distinguish
between the true and the false. Sometimes, as Augustine
confesses in his own case, the fathers ventured to rely upon
the opinions of others.
Doubtless the fathers might err ; even Peter, the prince of
the apostles, fell into error; what wonder that the saints
do not always show themselves inspired ? The fathers did
not themselves believe that they, or their companions, wer,e
always right. Augustine found himself mistaken in some
cases and did not hesitate to retract his errors. He warns
his admirers not to look upon his letters as they would upon
the Scriptures, but to accept only those things which, upon
examination, they find to be true.
AH writings belonging to this class are to be read with
full freedom to criticise, and with no obligation to accept
unquestioningly ; otherwise the way would be blocked to all
discussion, and posterity be deprived of the excellent intel-
lectual exercise of debating difficult questions of language
and presentation. But an explicit exception must be made in
the case of the Old and New Testaments. In the Scriptures,
when anything strikes us as absurd, we may not say that the
writer erred, but that the scribe made a blunder in copying
the manuscripts, or that there is an error in interpretation, or
The Culture of the Middle Ages 45 1
that the passage is not understood. The fathers make a
very careful distinction between the Scriptures and later
works. They advocate a discriminating, not to say suspi-
cious, use of the writings of their own contemporaries.
In view of these considerations, I have ventured to bring
together various dicta of the holy fathers, as they came to
mind, and to formulate certain questions which were sug-
gested by the seeming contradictions in the statements.
These questions ought to serve to excite tender readers to a
zealous inquiry into truth and so sharpen their wits. The
master key of knowledge is, indeed, a persistent and frequent
questioning. Aristotle, the most clear-sighted of all the phi-
losophers, was desirous above all things else to arouse this
questioning spirit, for in his Categories he exhorts a student
as follows : " It may well be difficult to reach a positive
conclusion in these matters unless they be frequently dis-
cussed. It is by no means fruitless to be doubtful on par-
ticular points," By doubting we come to examine, and by
examining we reach the truth.
Abelard supplies one hundred and fifty-eight prob-
lems, carefully balancing the authorities pro and con,
and leaves the student to solve each problem as best
he may. This doubtless shocked many of his con-
temporaries. Later scholastic lecturers did not hesitate
to muster all possible objections to a particular position,
but they always had a solution of their own to propose
and defend.
The following will serve as examples of the questions Questions
Abelard raised in the Yea and Nay: Abefeni fc*
Should human faith be based upon reason, or no ?
Is God one, or no ?
Is God a substance, or no ?
Does the first Psalm refer to Christ, or no ?
Is sin pleasing to God, or no ?
Is God the author of evil, or no ?
452 Readings in European History
Is God all-powerful, or no ?
Can God be resisted, or no ?
Has God free will, or no ?
Was the first man persuaded to sin by the devil, or no ?
Was Adam saved, or no ?
Did all the apostles have wives except John, or no ?
Are the flesh and blood of Christ in very truth and essence
present in the sacrament of the altar, or no ?
Do we sometimes sin unwillingly, or no ?
Does God punish the same sin both here and in the future,
or no?
Is it worse to sin openly than secretly, or no ?
190. Privi- In the thirteenth century the rulers, both ecclesiastical
k8!!^^ and lay, vied with one another in protecting the ever-
jFTHHtSQ \fo
students by growing body of students and in granting them excep-
^^^am tional privileges. The first instance of such protection
is found in the following document issued by Frederick
Barbarossa in 1158.
After a careful consideration of this subject by the bishops,
abbots, dukes, counts, judges, and other nobles of our sacred
palace, we, out of our piety, have granted this privilege to all
scholars who travel for the sake of study, and especially to
the professors of divine and sacred laws, namely : that they
may go in safety to the places in which the studies are carried
on, both they themselves and their messengers, and may
dwell there in security. For we think it fitting that, so long
as they conduct themselves with propriety, those should
enjoy our approval and protection who, by their learning,
enlighten the world and mold the life of our subjects to
obey God and us, his minister* By reason of our special
regard we desire to defend them from all injuries.
For who does not pity those who exile themselves through
love for learning, who wear themselves out in poverty in place
of riches, who expose their lives to all perils and often suffer
bodily Injury from the vilest men, — yet all these vexatious
The Culture of the Middle Ages
453
things must be endured by the scholar. Therefore, we
declare, by this general and ever-to-be-valid law, that in the
future no one shall be so -rash as to venture to inflict any~
injury on scholars, or to occasion any loss to them on account
of a debt owed by an inhabitant of their province, — a thing
which we have learned is sometimes done, by an evil custom,
And let it be known to the violators of this decree, and also
to those who shall at the time be the rulers of the places
where the offense is committed, that a fourfold restitution of
property shall be exacted from all those who are guilty and
that, the mark of infamy being affixed to them by the law
itself, they shall lose their office forever.
Moreover, if any one shall presume to bring a suit against
them on account of any business, the choice in this matter
shall be given to the scholars, who may summon the accusers
to appear before their professors, or before the bishop of
the city, to whom we have given jurisdiction in this matter.
But if, in sooth, the accuser shall attempt to drag the scholar
before another judge, even though his cause is a very just
one, he shall lose his suit for such an attempt
We also order this law to be inserted among the imperial
constitutions under the title, nt filius pro patre^ etc*
Given at Roncaglia, in the year of our Lord 1158, in the
month of November.1
A modern writer gives the following picture of student 191. A*
life at Paris in Abelard's time.
At five or six o'clock each morning the great cathedral
bell would ring out the summons to work. From the neigh-
boring houses of the canons, from the cottages of the towns-
folk, from the taverns, and hospices, and boarding-houses,
the stream of the industrious would pour into the enclosure
beside the cathedral. The master's beadle, who levied a
1 The remarkable privileges granted by Philip Augustus to the stu-
dents at Paris in 1 200, and the protection extended to the same students
by Pope Gregory IX in 1231, may be found in Translations and Reprints,
VoL II, No. 3, « The Mediaeval Student," by Professor Munro.
McCafee»a
454
Readings in European History
192. Life
at Paris,
(Fsomfte
History of
ike West,
by Jacques
deVxtry;
d. 1240.)
precarious tax on the mob, would strew the floor of the lec-
ture hall with hay or straw, according to the season, bring
the master's text-book, with the notes of the lecture between
lines or on the margin, to the solitary desk, and then retire
to secure silence in the adjoining street Sitting on their
haunches in the hay, the right knee raised to serve as a desk
for the waxed tablets, the scholars would take notes during
the long hours of lecture (about six or seven), then hurry
home — if they were industrious — to commit them to parch-
ment while the light lasted.
The lecture over, the stream would flow back over the
Little Bridge, filling the taverns and hospices, and pouring
out over the great playing meadow, that stretched from the
island to the present Champ de Mars. All the games of
Europe were exhibited, on that international play-ground :
running, jumping, wrestling, hurling, fishing and swimming
in the Seine, tossing and thumping the inflated ball — a
game on which some minor poet of the day has left us an
enthusiastic lyric — and especially the great game of war,
in its earlier and less civilized form. The nations were not
yet systematically grouped, and long and frequent were the
dangerous conflicts.
,That the students had a bad reputation among the
serious-minded may be inferred from the following.
Almost all the students at Paris, foreigners and natives,
did absolutely nothing except learn or hear something new.
Some studied merely to acquire knowledge, which is curi-
osity; others to acquire fame, which is vanity; still others
for the sake of gain, which is cupidity and the vice of
simony. Very few studied for their own edification or that
of others. They wrangled and disputed not merely about
the various factions and subjects of discussions; but the
differences between the countries also caused dissensions,
hatreds and virulent animosities among them, and they
impudently uttered all kinds of affronts and insults against
one another.
The Culture of the Middle Ages 455
They affirmed that the English were drunkards and had
tails ; that the sons of France were proud, effeminate and
carefully adorned like women. They said that the Germans
were furious and obscene at their feasts ; the Normans, vain
and boastful ; the Poitevins, traitors and always adventurers.
The Burgundians they considered vulgar and stupid. The
Bretons were reported to be fickle and changeable arid were
often reproached for the death of Arthur. The Lombards
were called avaricious, wicked and cowardly ; the Romans,
seditious, turbulent and slanderous ; the Sicilians, tyrannical,
brigands and ravishers ; the Flemings, fickle, prodigal, glut-
tonous, yielding as butter, and slothful. After such insults
as these in words they often came to blows.
V. SUPREMACY OF ARISTOTLE IN THE MEDIAEVAL
UNIVERSITIES : SCHOLASTICISM
Aristotle, utilizing all that the previous Greek phi-
losophers, including Socrates and Plato, had discovered,
augmented what the past had bequeathed to him by his
own thought and investigations. He then gathered the
whole vast and heterogeneous material into a series of
works summing up the achievements of the Greeks in
all the more important fields of knowledge, — logic, meta-
physics, physics, natural history, politics, ethics, rhetoric,
etc. His works form an encyclopedia of ancient thought
and discovery. Abelard possessed none of Aristotle's
works except a port of his logical treatises, but shortly
after the year 1200 practically all of his works became
known in Paris. The abstract scientific discussion and
the unreligious character of his books offended some
good people, but the enthusiasm for his incomparable
learning and insight was so great that he was generally
held in the utmost veneration.
Readings in European History
193. Aver-
roes on
Aristotle's
greatness.
Attitude of
ffee Church
toward
Aristotle's
works.
His Arabic commentator, Averroes, shared his fame,
and promoted the superstitious awe in which " The Phi-
losopher " was held by the following eulogy, to be found
in the preface to his commentary on Aristotle's Physics.
Aristotle was the wisest of the Greeks and constituted
and completed logic, physics, and metaphysics. I say that
he constituted these sciences, because all the works on these
subjects previous to him do not deserve to be mentioned
and were completely eclipsed by his writings. I say that
he put the finishing touches on these sciences, because none
of those who have succeeded him up to our time, to wit,
during nearly fifteen hundred years, have been able to add
anything to his writings or find in them any error of any
importance. Now that all this should be found in one man
is a strange and miraculous thing, and this privileged being
deserves to be called divine rather than human.
The Church at first opposed the study of Aristotle's
books on natural philosophy, and forbade, in 1210, their
discussion at Paris. Five years later the papal legate
ordered that no one should lecture upon either the meta-
physics or natural philosophy of Aristotle, or discuss
the commentary of Averroes. In spite of this we find
the University of Toulouse advertising in 1229 that the
various treatises on natural science which had been
prohibited at Paris might be read there freely by all
those who cared to penetrate into the secrets of nature.
When, about 1230, Pope Gregory IX undertook a
partial reorganization of the demoralized University of
Paris, he learned that the prohibited books of natural
science by Aristotle contained many useful matters,
along with some reprehensible thin'gs. Three masters
were consequently appointed to examine the works with
penetration and prudence and suppress everything which
The Culture of the Middle Ages 457
might lead to scandal or harm the reader, so that the
rest might become a safe subject for study. This was
a difficult task, and the pope's plan was not carried out.
It would seem that the monks and some of the theolo-
gians remained suspicious of Aristotle during pretty
much the whole of the thirteenth century.
The distinguished Dominican monk, Albertus Mag- Editing of
nus, undertook, however, to put Aristotle in a form
suitable for general study. He did this by writing a
series of works in which he followed Aristotle's classifi-
cation of the sciences, and in which he incorporated his Aiuinas-
own notions and discoveries and the suggestions of the
Arabic commentators. While this was useful as a fofm
of popularization, Aristotle roused such interest in the
minds of many of the scholars of the time that they
began to ask to see his work hi its original form.
It was perhaps due to this demand that Thomas Aqui-
nas undertook, with a collaborator, a new translation, or
revision of the Latin version, of many of Aristotle's
works, and then added a commentary on the text.
Aquinas appears to have done his work with extraor-
dinary thoroughness and to have, in general, faithfully
reproduced the thought, although his translation, like
Aristotle's own works, has little elegance of style.
Aquinas did not, however, share the unreasonable view of
admiration for Aristotle which was expressed by the
followers of Averroes. He declares that "the object
of the study of philosophy is not to learn what men
have thought, but what is the real truth of the matter/'
He says, moreover, in his commentary on The Meta-
physics: " Any thing that a single man can contribute
by his labors to the knowledge of truth is necessarily
458
Readings in European History
Bacon's
views.
trifling in comparison with our knowledge. Neverthe-
less, when all the contributions are correlated, selected,
and brought together, they produce something really
great. This is readily seen in the case of the various
branches of knowledge where, by the studies and insight
of many investigators, a marvelous increase result s."
Roger Bacon, as usual, took a rather gloomy view of
the situation. "The books and sciences of Aristotle,''
he says, "are the foundations of all the study of wisdom,
and whoever is ignorant of his works labors in vain and
takes useless pains. Yet the sciences in general, such
as. logic, natural philosophy, mathematics, are so badly
translated that no mortal can really understand anything
of them, as I myself have learned by sad experience.
. . . Therefore I am sure it would be better for the
Latins if the wisdom of Aristotle had not been trans-
lated at all than translated so obscurely and incorrectly."
Bacon declares, further, that he has seen the translations
made by Thomas Aquinas and his colleague, and that
they are altogether incorrect and should be carefully
avoided.
In his remarkable History of the Medi&val Univer-
sities Rashdall thus describes the work of the great
Dominican scholars.
194. Rash- The Dominican theologians made peace between the con-
dan<m tending factions by placing Aristotle and the fathers side
by side, and deferring as reverently to the one as to the
othar, except ^on the few fundamental points upon which
the former could not be interpreted into harmony with the
latter. The scholastic form of argument, which attained its
full development in Aquinas, — a chain of authorities and
syllogisms in defence of one thesis, another series for the
Aquinas
and Ms
work.
The Cnltzire of the Middle Ages 459
opposite view, a conclusion in harmony with Augustine or
Aristotle, as the case might be, and a reply to the opposing
arguments by means of ingenious distinction or reconcili-
ation,— afforded exceptional facilities for the harmonious
combination of orthodoxy and intellectuality.1
The Dominicans showed the Latin churchman how to
be ingenious, startling, brilliant, even destructive, without
suspicion of heresy. [St.] Bernard would have been shocked
at the idea of inventing or even of fairly stating objections
to the Catholic Faith. By the time of Aquinas it was felt
that the better the imaginary opponent's case could be stated,
the more credit there was in refuting it. The scholar's intel-
lectual enjoyment of thirty ingenious arguments against the
Immortality of the Soul was not diminished by the thirty-six
equally ingenious arguments with which the attack would
immediately be met. In scholastic disputation restless intel-
lectual activity found an innocent outlet; love of controversy
and speculation, the real ardour for truth and knowledge
which distinguished the age of Berengar* and the age of
Abelard, had for the most part degenerated. . . -
Hitherto Philosophy had been either an avowed foe to
Theology or a dangerous and suspected ally. By the genius
of the great Dominicans all that was Christian, or not un-
christian, in Aristotle was woven into the very substance
and texture of what was henceforth more and more to grow
into the accredited Theology of the Catholic Church. The
contents of whole treatises of the pagan Philosopher — in-
cluding even his great treatise on Ethics — are embodied
in the Summa TJieoIogiac of Aquinas, still the great classic
of the Seminaries. To that marvellous structure — strangely
compounded of solid thought, massive reasoning, baseless
subtlety, childish credulity, lightest fancy — Aristotle has
contributed assuredly not less than St. Augustine,
1 An example of the scholastic method of arraying arguments and
reaching conclusions will be found in Translations and
Vol. Ill, No. 6.
a A philosopher of the eleventh century.
460
Readings in European History
195. Roger
Bacon's
eulogy of
one who
devoted
himself
to experi-
mental
science.
VI. ROGER BACON AND THE BEGINNING OF MODERN
EXPERIMENTAL SCIENCE
The following passage makes clear Bacon's attitude
toward investigation, and also shows that he was not
the only one who was turning his attention to experi-
ment, which was to prove so fruitful in the following
centuries.
One man I know, and one only, who can be praised for
his achievements in experimental science.1 Of discourses
and battles of words he takes no heed: he pursues the
works of wisdom and in them finds satisfaction. What
others strive to see dimly and blindly, like bats blinking at
the sun in the twilight, he gazes at in the full light of day,
because he is a master of experiment. Through experiment
he gains knowledge of natural things, medical, chemical,
indeed of everything in the heavens and on earth.
" He is ashamed that things should be known to laymen, old
women, soldiers, plowmen, of which he is ignorant. There-
fore he has looked closely into the doings of those who melt
metals and who work in gold and silver and other metals
and in minerals of all sorts ; he knows everything relating to
the art of war, the making of weapons, and the chase ; he has
looked carefully into agriculture, mensuration, and farming
work ; he has even taken note of remedies, lot casting, and
charms used by old women and by wizards and magicians,
and of the devices and deceptions of conjurers, so that
nothing which deserves investigation should escape him, and
in order that he might be able to expose the impostures
of the magicians.
If philosophy is to be carried to its perfection and is to
be handled with certainty and advantage, his aid is indis-
pensable. As for reward, he neither receives it nor looks
for it. If he frequented the courts of kings and princes he
would easily find those who would bestow upon him both
1 Of Peter of Maricourt, to whom Bacon refers, very little is known.
TJie Culture of ttie Middle Ages 461
honor and wealth. Or if he would show the results of his
researches in Paris the whole world would follow him. But
since either of these courses would hinder him from pursuing
the great experiments in which he takes delight, he puts
honor and wealth aside, knowing well that his knowledge
.would secure him wealth whenever he chose. For the last
three years he has been working at the invention of a mirror
which should produce combustion at a fixed distance, and he
will, with God's aid, soon reach his end.
In a curious letter " On the hidden workings of nature
and art and the emptyness of magic," Bacon forecasts
the wonderful achievements which he believed would
come with the progress of applied science.
I will now enumerate the marvelous results of art and 196. BOCMI
nature which will make all kinds of magic appear trivial ^^^j-
and unworthy. Instruments for navigation can be made progress ra
which will do away with the necessity of rowers, so that
great vessels, both in rivers and on the sea, shall be borne
about with only a single man to guide them and with greater
speed than if they were full of men. And carriages can be
constructed to move without animals to draw them, and with
incredible velocity. Machines for flying can be made in
which a man sits and turns an ingenious device by which
skillfully contrived wings are made to strike the air in the
manner of a flying bird. Then arrangements can be devised,
compact in themselves, for raising and lowering weights
indefinitely great. . . . Bridges caa be constructed ingen-
iously so as to span rivers without any supports.
Some other hopes expressed elsewhere in this letter
seem a bit fantastic, even to us, habituated as we are
to the most incredible achievements. We may, how-
ever, yet learn to make gold and to prolong human Me
almost indefinitely, as Bacon believed would be possible.
462 Readings in European History
BIBLIOGRAPHY
A. Refer- Popular Literature : BEMONT and MONOD, pp. 527-534 ; EMERTON,
ences. pp. 471-476; HENDERSON, Germany in the Middle Ages, pp. 427-437;
MASSON, Medieval France, pp. 36-46.
Chivalry: HENDERSON, Short History of Germany, pp. 111-121;
MASSON, pp. 33-36. The making of a knight, and a fourteenth-century
tourney: FLING, Studies, Vol. II, No. 4.
Architecture : BEMONT and MONOD, pp. 536-544. The burning and
rebuilding of Canterbury Cathedral : COLBY, pp. 59-63.
Rise of the Universities: BEMONT and MONOD, pp. 515-527;
EMERTON, pp. 465-471 ; MUNRO, pp. 160-168 ; TOUT, pp. 428-434 and
444-449. University charters and privileges: HENDERSON, Select
Documents, pp. 262-266. Course of study at Paris : Translations and
Reprints, Vol. II, No. 3.
Scholasticism: EMERTON, pp. 446-464; TOUT, 209-214. Roger
Bacon's account of his own difficulties : COLBY, pp. 83-87.
B. Addi- SAINTSBURY, The Flourishing of Romance. The best short account
ttotud read- of the state of literature in the twelfth and thirteenth centuries.
tngm LOUNSBURY, History of the English Language. Short and good.
** * TEN BRINK, Early English Literature to Wiclif (Bohn Library).
Excellent.
Specimens of Early English, edited by MORRIS and SKEAT, 2 vols.
(Clarendon Press), with vocabularies and notes.
SMITH, JUSTIN H., The Troubadours at Home. An excellent popu-
lar description of the life in Provence and the poems of the troubadours
by one who has made a careful study of them and their country.
GAUTIER, LEON, Chivalry. The standard work.
CORNISH, Chivalry. Shorter and more recent than Gautier.
PUTNAM, GEORGE HAVEN, Books and their Makers during the Middle
Ages, 2 vols., 1896-1897. Vol. I deals with the Middle Ages. An inter-
esting work by an experienced publisher.
RASHDALL, History of the Universities of Europe in the Middle Ages,
3 vols., 1895. Tkk i3 by far the best general account of the mediaeval
universities in any language. It has an excellent index, and may be
consulted with advantage upon most topics connected with mediaeval
higher education. Earlier works on the subject in English should be
avoided, as they all rest upon very insufficient investigation.
McCABE, Abclard. A model biography.
UEBERWEG, History of Philosophy, Vol. I. Contains a good account
of the scholastic uhilosoDhv.
The Culture of t)ie Middle Ages 463
MOORE, C. H., The Development and Character of Gothic Architec-
ture. Excellent. The general history of art is treated in the rather arid
review given by LUBKE, Outlines of the History of Art, 2 vols.
Among the few examples of mediaeval popular literature to be had The
in English, the following are especially good and available : Carmina
SYMONDS, J. A., Wine, Women and Song. (Selections from this in Burana-
Latin Students' Songs* published by Mosher in his Bibelot Aeries.)
In this little volume Symonds has translated, with an excellent and
scholarly introduction, some of the Carmina Burana^ a strange collec-
tion of verses in Latin, or Latin mixed with German , discovered in the
monastery of Benediktbeuren, Bavaria, — hence the name, •' Burana."
The collection was made apparently in the thirteenth century, and con-
tains the greatest variety of pieces, ranging from love and drinking
songs, through satirical attacks on the clergy * and parodies of the church
service, to poems showing genuine religions and poetic feeling. Few
sources give one so vivid a notion of the variety and range of sentiment
in the Middle Ages as the Carmina Burana. (The complete collection
in the original tongues, edited by SCHMELLER, has been twice reprinted
and is not difficult to obtain.)
The Song of Roland has been translated into spirited English verse-
by O'HAGEN.
Aucassin and Nicolette. A most charming tale of the twelfth century.
MALLORY, Mort d** Arthur (Temple Classics). A collection of the
stories of King Arthur, made in the fifteenth century for English readers.
WOLFRAM OFESCHENBACH, Parsifal \ translated by Jessie L. Weston,
2 vols., London, 1894; and GODFREY OF STRASBURG, Tristan and
Iseult) translated by the same, New York, 1905.
The Romance of the Rose. A famous production of the thirteenth
century, in the Temple Classics.
Huon of Bordeaux, Renaud of Montauban^ and The Story «f Alexander
(Allen, London). These three romances have been excellently pre-
pared for English readers by MR. STEELS.
Medieeval Tales, edited by HENRY MOR£EY in his Universal
Library.
For the general mediaeval knowledge of the world, the following are
especially good :
The Travels of Sir John MandeviUe (The Macmillan Company,
1900). This is not only a good edition of the story of travel falsely
i One of these satires, "The Gospel according to the Marks of Silver," is
translated by Emerton, Mediaval Europe^ p. 475.
464 Readings in European History
attributed to Mandeville, but contains the original accounts upon which
it was based.
STEELE, Mediaval Lore. Selections from a very early English
version, printed at the end of the fifteenth century, of the famous popular
encyclopedia of Bartholomew Anglicus, compiled in the thirteenth
century (see extracts above, pp. 443 jy.)-
c Materials Even a very brief bibliography for the vast subjects of Romance
for advanced and Germanic philology, mediaeval art in its various manifestations, and
study. tne scholastic philosophy would hardly be looked for in the present
volume. The chief works on the economic and industrial conditions
have been already enumerated at the close of the previous chapter.
It only remains, therefore, to mention a few treatises in French and
German to which the student of history, anxious to get a general idea
of the range of mediaeval culture and thought, may most profitably
turn.
For France: Histoire de France, edited by LAVISSE, Vol. Ill, Part I,
" French Society at the End of the Twelfth and the Opening of the Thir-
teenth Century," by LUCHAIRE, and Vol. Ill, Part II, " French Society
in the Thirteenth Century," by LANGLOIS. This may be supplemented
by LANGLOIS, La Societl Jrangaise au XIII e siZcle d^aprts dix romans
d'aventure, 1904.
For the French language and its development, above all, GASTON
PARIS, La Littiraturefran$aiseaumoyen Age, — a truly remarkable little
manual by a great scholar. Also, Histoire de la langue et literature
franfoise, edited by PETIT DE JULLEVILLE, Vols. I-II, especially the
excellent introduction. On the formation of the tongue, see the intro-
ductory essay in HATZF^LD ET DARMESTETER, Dictionnaire gtntrale de
la langue franfaise, 1890-1900.
Grundriss der romaniscken Philologie^ edited by GR5BER. A tech-
nical encyclopedia by a number of scholars covering the whole field.
In Vol. II there is a useful Ubersicht uber die Lateiniscken Litteratur,
from the sixth century to 1350.
For Germany, the fullest and most recent account of the general state
of culture is MICHAEL, GeschichU des deutschen Volkes sett dem drei-
zehnten Jahrhundert, the earlier volumes of which deal with the thir-
teenth century and are evidently modeled upon the well-known work of
the Catholic scholar Janssen, who has written an elaborate account of
the German people in the sixteenth century (see bibliography at the close
of Chapter XXIV, below). There is, so far as I know, no account of
the German language and literature in the Middle Ages corresponding
The Culture of the Middle Ages 465
to that of Gaston Paris for France. SCHERER, A History of German
Literature, is fairly good. LAMPRECHT, Deutsche Gtschickte, Vol. Ill,
may be added.
A very useful recent work on the architecture, etc., of France is
ENLART, Manuel d^archeologiefranfaise depuis les temps Merwingiens
jusgu'd la Renaissance, 1902^^. Vol. I on the religious structures,
Vol. II on the civil and military architecture. Well illustrated.
The chief collection of sources for the university life in western
Europe is the Chartularium universitatis Partsiensis, edited by DENIFLE
and CHATELAIN, 1889 sqq. Vol. I comes down to the latter part of
the thirteenth century, when the material becomes much more abun-
dant. In addition to Rashdall's work, mentioned above, beyond which
few will care to go, may be mentioned DENIFLE, Die Entstehung der
Universitaten des Afittelalters, which served to dispel many ancient
illusions in regard to the subject, and KAUFMANN, Die Geschichte der
deutschen Universitdten, Vol. I ; also CLERVAL, Les Izcoles de Chartres
au moyen 6ge^ 1895.
The Opus Majus of ROGER BACON, edited with introduction and
analytical table by J. H. BRIDGES, 2 vols., Oxford, 1897. The analysis BacoaTs
which fills pp. xciii-clxxxvii is so full and satisfactory that it almost worlcs-
takes the place of a condensed translation. For several of the
other important works of Bacon, one must turn to FR. ROGERI BACON
Opera quaedam hactenus inedita, edited by J. S. BREWER (Rolls Series),
1859. This volume contains the Opus tertium, the Opus minus, and
the Compendium pkilosopkiae. Brewer's introduction is valuable.
Something was said of the writings of Aquinas and the theologians
at the close of Chapter XVI, above, p. 370.
CHAPTER XX
197. The
great battle
between the
French and
English, at
(From
Pioissart's
Ckronfc/ea.)
THE HUNDRED YEARS' WAR
I. FROISSART'S ACCOUNT OF THE BATTLE OF CRECY
[Having reached a point near Cre'cyJ the king of England
was well informed how the French king followed after him
to fight. Then he said to his company : " Let us take here
some plot of ground, for we will go no farther till we have
seen our enemies. I have good cause here to abide them,
for I am on the right heritage of the queen, my mother, the
which land was given her at her marriage ; I will challenge
it of mine adversary, Philip of Valois." And because he
had not the eighth part in number of men that the French
king had, therefore he commanded his marshals to choose
a plot of ground somewhat for his advantage ; and so they
did, and thither the king and his host went. . . .
That night the king made a supper to all his chief lords
of his host, and made them good cheer ; and when they were
all departed to take their rest, then the king entered into
his oratory and kneeled down before the altar, praying God
devoutly that if he fought the next day he might achieve
the expedition to his honor. Then about midnight he laid
him down to rest, and in the morning he rose betimes and
heard mass, and the prince his son with him ; and the most
part of his company were confessed and received the com-
munion ; and after the mass was said, he commanded every
man to be armed and to draw to the field, to the same place
before appointed. . . .
Then [after arranging his army in three divisions,] the
king lept on a palfrey, with a white rod in his hand, one of
his marshals on the one hand and the other on the other
hand. He rode from rank to rank, desiring every man to
466
The Hundred Years War
467
take heed that day to his right and honor. He spake it so
sweetly and with so good countenance and merry cheer that
all such as were discomfited took courage in the seeing and
hearing of him. And when he had thus visited all his bat-
tles [i.e. divisions] it was then nine of the day. Then he
caused every man to eat and drink a little, and so they did
at their leisure. And afterward they ordered again their
battles. Then every man lay down on the earth, his hel-
met and his bow by him, to be the more fresher when their
enemies should come.
This Saturday the French king rose betimes and heard
mass in Abbeville, in his lodging in the abbey of St. Peter,
and he departed after the sun rising. [He dispatched four
knights to view the English, who let them alone and per-
mitted them to return to the king as they had come. The
knights advised the king that the French should defer the
attack until the morrow.] Then the king commanded that it
should be so done. Then his two marshals rode, one before,
another behind, saying to every banner, "Tarry and abide
here in the name of God and St. Denis." They that were
foremost tarried, but they that were behind would not tarry,
but rode forth, and said how they would in no wise abide
till they were as far forward as the foremost. And when
they that were before saw them come on behind, then they
rode forward again, so that the king nor his marshals could
not rule them.
So they rode without order or good array till they came in
sight of their enemies ; and as soon as the foremost saw them,
they reculed them aback without good array, whereof they
behind had marvel and were abashed, and thought that the
foremost company had been fighting. Then they might have
had leisure and room to have gone forward if they had listed,
but some went forth while some abode still.
The commons, of whom all the ways between Abbeville
and Crdcy were full, when they saw that they were near to
their enemies, took their swords and cried, "Down with
them 1 Let us slay them all." There were no man, though
he were present, that could imagine or show the truth of the
King
Edward
cheers his
forces, who
arrange
themselves
with care
and deliber-
ation.
Hasty and
disorderly
approach of
the French.
The Genoese
mercenaries
forced to
lead the
attack.
evil order that was among the French party, — and yet they
were a marvelous great number. What I write in this book
I learned especially of the Englishmen, who beheld their
dealing ; and also certain knights of Sir John of Hainault's,
who was always about King Philip, showed me what they
knew.
The Englishmen, who were in three battles lying on the
ground to rest them, as soon as they saw the Frenchmen
approach, they rose upon their feet, fair and easily without
any haste, and arranged their battles. The first was the
prince's battle, and the archers there stood in manner of a
harrow and the men-at-arms in the bottom of the battle.
The earl of Northampton and the earl of Arundel with the
second battle were on the wing in good order, ready to com-
fort the prince's battle, if need were.
The lords and knights of France came not to the engage-
ment together in good order, for some came before and some
came after, in such evil order that one of them did trouble
another. When the French king saw the Englishmen his
blood changed and he said to his marshals, "Make the
Genoese go on before and begin the battle in the name of
God and St. Denis." There were of the Genoese crossbows
about fifteen thousand, but they were so weary of going afoot
that day a six leagues armed with their crossbows that they
said to their constables, "We be not well ordered to fight this
day, for we be not in the case to do any great deed of arms ;
we have more need of rest." . . .
Also the same season there fell a great rain, and a flash of
lightning with a terrible thunder, and before the rain there
came flying over both battles a great number of crows for
fear of the tempest coming. Then anon the air began to
wax clear, and the sun to shine fair and bright, the which
was right in the Frenchmen's eyen and on the Englishmen's
backs.
When the Genoese were assembled together and began to
approach they uttered a great cry to abash the Englishmen,
but these stood still and stirred not for all that. Then the
Genoese a second time made a fell cry and stept forward a
The Hundred Years* War 469
little, but the Englishmen removed not one foot. Thirdly
they shouted again and went forth until they came within
shot. Then they shot fiercely with their crossbows. Then
the English archers stepped forth one pace and let fly their
arrows so wholly and so thick that it seemed snow. When
the Genoese felt the arrows piercing through their heads,
arms, and breasts, many of them cast down their crossbows
and did cut their strings and returned discomfited.
When the French king saw them fly away he said, " Slay
these rascals, for they shall let and trouble us without reason."
Then ye should have seen the men-at-arms dash in among
them and they killed a great number of them ; and ever still
the Englishmen shot where they saw the thickest press. The
sharp arrows ran into the men-at-arms and into their horses,
and many fell, horses and men, among the Genoese, and when
they were down they could not rise again; the press was so
thick that one overthrew another. And also among the Eng-
lishmen there were certain rascals that went afoot with great
knives, and they went in among the men-at-arms and slew
and murdered many as they lay on the ground, both earls,
barons, knights, and squires ; whereof the king of England
was after displeased, for he had rather that they had been
taken prisoners. . . .
[The division led by the king's son, the Black Prince,
being hard pressed,] they sent a messenger to the king, who
was on a little windmill hill. Then the knight said to the
king, " Sir, the earl of Warwick and the earl of Oxford, Sir
Raynold Cobham, and others, such as be about the prince
your son, are fiercely fought withal and are sorely handled ;
wherefore they desire you that you and your battle will come
and aid them ; for if the Frenchmen increase, as they doubt
they will, your son and they will have much ado." Then the
king said, " Is my son dead, or hurt, or on the earth felled ? "
" No, sir/* quoth the knight, "but he is hardly matched, where-
f or he hath need of your aid." " Well," said the king, " return
to him and to them that sent you hither, and say to them
that they send no more to me for any adventure that falleth,
as long as my son is alive ; and also say to them that they
470 Readings in European History
suffer him this day to win his spurs ; for if God be pleased,
I will that this expedition be his, and the honor thereof, and
to them that be about him."
198. Cap-
ture of King
John (1356).
(Prom
Froissart's
Chronicles.)
II. How KING JOHN OF FRANCE WAS TAKEN PRISONER
BY THE ENGLISH AT POITIERS
Ofttimes the adventures of amours and of war are more
fortunate and marvelous than any man can think or wish.
Truly this battle, the which was near to Poitiers in the fields
of Beauvoir and Maupertuis, was right great and perilous,
and many deeds of arms there were done the which all came
not to knowledge. The fighters on both sides endured much
pain. King John with his own hands did that day marvels
in arms. He had an ax in his hands wherewith he defended
himself and fought in the breaking of the press. . . .
The pursuit endured to the gates of Poitiers. There were
many slain and beaten down, horse and man, for they of
Poitiers closed their gates and would suffer none to enter;
wherefore in the street before the gate was horrible murder,
men hurt and beaten down. The Frenchmen yielded them-
selves as far as they might know an Englishman : there were
divers English archers that had four, five, six prisoners. . . .
Then there was a great press to take the king, and such
as knew him cried, " Sir, yield you, or else ye are but dead."
[A French knight in the service of the English king made
his way through the press] and said in good French, " Sir,
yield you." The king beheld the knight and said, " To whom
shall I yield me ? Where is my cousin, the prince of Wales ?
If I might see him, I would speak with him." The knight
answered and said, " Sir, he is not here ; but yield you to me
. and I shall bring you to him." "Who be you ? " quoth the
king. " Sir," quoth he, " I am Denis of Morbeke, a knight
of Artois; but I serve the king of England because I am
banished from the pealm of France and have forfeited all
that I had there." Then the king gave him his right
gauntlet, saying, " I yield me to you."
The Hundred Years' War 471
The prince of Wales, who was courageous and cruel as
a lion, took that day great pleasure to fight and chase his
enemies. The lord John Chandos, who was with him, all
that day never left him nor never took heed of taking any
prisoner. Then at the end of the battle he said to the
prince, "Sir, it were good that you rested here and set your
banner a-high in this bush, that your people may draw hither,
for they be sore spread abroad, nor can I see no more ban-
ners nor pennons of the French party. Wherefore, sir, rest
and refresh you, for ye be sore chafed."
[Then the prince sent two lords to get news of the French
king.] These two lords took their horses and departed from
the prince and rode up a little hill to look about them. Then
they perceived a flock of men-at-arms coming together right
slowly, and there was the French king afoot in great peril,
for the Englishmen and Gascons were his masters. They
had taken him from Sir Denis Morbeke perforce, and such
as were most of force said, *< I have taken him " ; ** Nay,"
quoth another, "I have taken him." So they strave which
should have him. Then the French king, to eschew that
peril, said, " Sirs, strive not : lead me courteously, and my
son, to my cousin the prince, and strive not for my taking,
for I am so great a lord as to make you all rich." The king's
words somewhat appeased them. Howbeit, ever as they
went they made riot and brawled for the taking of the king.
When the two aforesaid lords saw and heard that noise
and strife among them, they came to them and said, " Sirs,
what is the matter that ye strive for ? " " Sirs," said one of
them, " it is for the French king, who is here taken pris-
oner, and there be more than ten knights and squires that
challenge the taking of him and of his son." Then the
two lords entered into the press and caused every man to
draw back, and commanded them in the prince's name, on
pain of their heads, to make no more noise nor to approach
the king no nearer without they were commanded. Then
every man gave room to the lords, and they alighted and did
their reverence to the king, and so brought him and his son
in peace to the prince of Wales. . . .
472
Readings in European History
How the The same day of the battle at night the prince made a
Black Prince SUpper in his lodging to the French king and to the most of
^nchking the great lords that were prisoners. The prince made the
with knightly king and his son, the lord James of Bourbon, the lord John
courtesy, of ArtojS} tke earl of Tancreville, the earl of Estampes, the
earl Darnmartin, the earl Joinville, and the lord of Partenay,
to sit all at one board, and the other lords, knights, and
squires at other tables. And always the prince served before
the king as humbly as he could, and would not sit at the
king's board for any desire that the king could make, for
he said he was not sufficient to sit at the table with so great
a prince as the king was.
Then he said to the king: " Sir, for God's sake, make none
evil nor heavy cheer, though God this day did not consent
to follow your will ; for, sir, surely the king, my father, shall
bear you as much honor and amity as he may do, and shall
accord with you so reasonably that ye shall ever be friends
together after. And, sir, methink ye ought to rejoice,
though the expedition be not as ye would have had it, for
this day ye have won the high renown of prowess and have
surpassed this day in valiantness all other of your party.
Sir, I say not this to mock you, for all that be of our party,
that saw every man's deeds, are plainly accorded by true
sentence to give you the prize and chaplet."
199. Sack
of Limoges
(1370) by
the Black
Prince.
(Fiom
Froissart's
Chronicles.)
III. FEARFUL DEVASTATION WROUGHT IN FRANCE BY THE
HUNDRED YEARS' WAR
[Having mined the town walls,] the miners set fire into
their mine, and so the next morning, as the prince had
ordained, there fell down a great piece of the wall and filled
the moats, whereof the Englishmen were glad and were
ready armed in the field to enter the town. The foot-men
might well enter at their ease, and so they did, and ran to
the gate and beat down the fortifying and barriers, for there
was no defense against them: it was done so suddenly that
they of the town were not g.ware thereof*
The Hutidred Years' War 473
Then the prince, the duke of Lancaster, the earl of Cam-
bridge, the earl of Pembroke, Sir Guichard d'Angle, and all
the others, with their companies, entered into the city, and
all other foot-men ready apparelled to do evil, and to pill and
rob the city, and to slay men, women, and children; for so it
was commanded them to do. It was a great pity to see the
men, women, and children that kneeled down on their knees
before the prince for mercy. But he was so inflamed with
ire that he took no heed of them, so that none was heard, but
all put to death as they were met withal, and such as were
nothing culpable.
There was no pity taken of the poor people who wrought
never no manner of treason, yet they bought it dearer than
the great personages, such as had done the evil and trespass-
There was not so hard a heart within the city of Limoges
and if he had any remembrance of God, but that wept pit-
eously for the great mischief that they saw before their eyen,
for more than three thousand men, women, and children
were slain that day. God have mercy on their souls, for I
trow they were martyrs.
And thus entering into the city, a certain company of
Englishmen entered into the bishop's palace, and there they
found the bishop ; and so they brought him to the prince's
presence, who beheld him right fiercely and felly, and the
best word that he could have of him was how he would
have his head stricken off, and so he was had otit of his
sight. . . .
Thus the city of Limoges was pilled, robbed, and clean
brent and brought to destruction.
Father Denifle, a distinguished Dominican scholar,
has brought together from the Vatican archives — of
which he is the head — and from other sources a volume
of letters and other material depicting the fearful results
of the Hundred Years' War in France, especially upon
the churches and monasteries. The following extracts
relating to the period following the death of Joan of Arc
474
Readings in European History
200. How
the count
of Arundel
burned a
town and
hanged the
inhabitants
(00-1433).
Over one
half of the
churches
destroyed
by 1441.
201. Con-
the time of
CfeartesVTL
will give some idea of the general impression produced
by reading his book.
The count of Arundel, John Fitz-Alain, attacked MilW
and its church with fire. The women, boys, and old men
took refuge in the tower of the church, but were soon sur-
rounded by flames. The lead of the roof melted and fell in
burning drops on the miserable folk below, and even the
molten metal of the bells ran down upon them. All but
two perished. The fire not only destroyed the church, but
all the houses within a wide circuit to the number of more
than seven hundred. The wretched inhabitants and the
cultivators of the soil were ordered to be hung.
Out of one thousand churches in the region of Quercy,
when the war with the English was done there were scarce
three or four hundred left in which services could be held,
so completely was everything devastated and consumed.
Certain parishes, for example those of Fraissinet and St
Caprassius, were entirely deserted by their former inhab-
itants, so that the bishop of Bourges was forced to give the
lands belonging to his temporalities as fiefs to those living
at a distance.
Charles VI being dead, Charles VII succeeded to his
father in the kingdom, in the year of our Lord 1422, when he
was about twenty-two years of age. In his time, owing to
the long wars which had raged within and without, the leth-
argy and cowardliness of the officers and commanders who
were under him, the destruction of all military discipline
and order, the rapacity of the troopers, and the general dis-
solution into which all things had fallen, such destruction
had been wrought that from the river Loire to the Seine, —
even to the Somme, — the farmers were dead or had fled,
and almost all the fields had for many, years lain without
cultivation or any one to cultivate them. A few districts
might indeed be excepted, where if any agriculture remained,
it was because they were far from cities, towns, or castles,
The Hundred Years War 475
and in consequence the constant excursions of the despoil-
ers could not be extended to them. Lower Normandy,
embracing the bishoprics of Bayeux and Coutances, which
were under English rule, were far from the headquarters of
the enemy, nor could they be easily reached by the depre-
dators. They therefore remained somewhat better off in
the matter of population and cultivators, but nevertheless
were often afflicted by the greatest misfortunes, as will
appear later.
We have ourselves beheld the vast regions of Champagne,
Brie, Chartres, Perche, Beauvais, . . . Amiens, Abbeville,
Soissons, Laon, and beyond toward Hainault, well-nigh
deserted, untilled, without husbandmen, grown up to weeds
and briers. In many places where fruit trees could flourish
these had grown up into dense forests. The vestiges of
such ruin, unless the divine clemency shall aid mere human
endeavor, will, it is to be feared, last for long years to come.
If any kind of cultivation was still carried on in the
regions enumerated, it could only be done close to cities,
towns, or castles, no farther away than the watch could be
seen, stationed on a high lookout, whence he could observe
the robbers as they approached. He would then give the
alarm by means of a bell, or a hunter's horn, to those in the
fields or vineyard, so that they could betake themselves to
a place of safety. This happened so frequently in many
places that so soon as the oxen and plow animals were
loosed, having heard the signal of the watch, they would,
taught by long experience, rush to a place of safety in a
state of terror. Even the pigs and sheep did the same.
IV. " THE VISION OF PIERS THE PLOWMAN "
From a literary standpoint, by far the most important 202. &-
of the many productions in prose and verse relating to
the conditions in England in the times of the Peasant
Revolt is The Vision of Piers Plowman^ ascribed to
476
Readings in European History
What Piers
had withal
to stave off
hunger until
the harvest.
How Covet-
oasness
appeared.
Langland, who appears to have been born about 1332,
and to have given the last revision to his poem shortly
before the year 1400. Much is said by Langland of the
hard lot of the peasant, the abuses in the Church, the
seven cardinal sins, and the various Christian virtues.
The following passages in modern English prose illus-
trate the spirit, charm, and interest of the little book.1
"I have no penny," said Piers, "to buy pullets, nor geese,
nor pigs, but I have two green cheeses, a few curds and
cream, and an oat-cake, and two loaves of beans and bran
baked for my children. And yet I say, by my soul, I have
no salt bacon nor eggs forsooth to make collops, but I have
parsley and leeks and many cabbages, and eke a cow and a
calf and a cart mare to draw my dung a-field while the drought
lasteth, and by this provision we must live till Lammastide ;
and by that I hope to have harvest in my croft, and then
may I get thy dinner [O Hunger] as it pleaseth me well."
Then [among the cardinal sins] came Covetousness. I
cannot describe him, so hungry and hollow Sir Harvey
looked. He was beetle-browed and also thick-lipped, with
twp bleared eyes like a blind hag; and like a leathern purse
his cheeks lolled about even lower than his chin and they
trembled with old age. And his beard was beslobbered
with bacon like a bondsman's. A hood was on his head
above a lousy hat, and he was in a tawny coat twelve win-
ters old, and full of vermin, and all dirty and torn to rags,
and full of creeping lice; — except a louse were a good
leaper he could not have walked on that scurvy coat, it
was so threadbare.
The poet gives at the close of his poem his notion of
the relative worth of good conduct (" Do-well ") as
against confidence in papal pardons and in masses said
after one's death.
1 I borrow, -with slight changes, from Miss Kate Warren's spirited
and scholarly prose version (London, 1^99).
The Hundred Years' War 477
And all this maketh me think upon my dream. And how
the priest found no pardon like Do-well and thought that
Do-well surpassed indulgences, saying mass two or three
years for departed souls, and bishops' letters ; and how Do-
well shall be worthier received at the day of doom, and shall
surpass all the pardons of St. Peter's church.
Now the pope hath power to grant people the power to
pass into heaven without any penance. This is our belief,
as learned men teach us. Quodcumque ttgavcris super terram,
erit Ugatum in celis, etc.1 And so I truly believe (Lord for-
bid otherwise !) that pardon and penance and prayers indeed
cause souls to be saved which have sinned deadly seven
times. But to trust these three-year masses methinketh
truly is not so safe for the soul, certes, as is Do-well.
Therefore, I counsel you, ye men who are rich on this earth
and have three-year masses in trust of your treasure, be ye
never the bolder to break the ten commandments ; and espe-
cially, ye masters, mayors, judges, who are held for wise men
and have the wealth of this world and can purchase pardon
and the pope's bulls. At the dreadful doom when the dead
shall rise and all come before Christ to render account, —
how thou didst lead thy life here and didst keep his laws,
and how thou didst do day by day, the doom will declare.
A bagful of pardons there, or provincial letters, — or though
ye be found in the fraternity of all the four monastic orders,
and have doublefold indulgences, — except Do- well help yon,
I set your letters and pardons at the worth of a pea shell !
V. CHARLES THE BOLD OF BURGUNDY AND THE Swiss
What ease or what pleasure did Charles, duke of Bur- zos.Ctedec
gundy, enjoy more than our master, King Louis? In his ^^Jjj^
youth, indeed, he had less trouble, for he did not begin to
enter upon any action till nearly the two-and-thirtieth year
of his age ; so that before that time he lived in great ease
1 u Whatsoever thoa shalt bind on earth shall be bound in heaven,"
etc.
473
Readings in European History
Arduous life
of Charles
the Bold.
Swiss
defeated
Charles the
Bold at
Granson
(1476).
and quiet . . . From the time Duke Charles undertook
his war to recover the towns in Picardy (which our master
had redeemed from Duke Philip), and joined himself with
the lords of the kingdom in the war called the Public Good,
what pleasure, what tranquillity had he ? He had continual
trouble and labor, without the least cessation or refreshment,
either to his body or mind ; for ambition got entire posses-
sion of his heart and constantly spurred him on to attempt
new conquests.
He was always in the field during summer, exposing his
person to the greatest danger, taking the care and command
of the whole army upon himself; and yet he thought his
work too little. He was the first that rose and the last that
went to bed in the camp; and he slept in his clothes, like
the poorest foot soldier in the army. 'In winter, when the
campaign was over, he was busily employed about raising
money ; six hours every morning he set apart for conferences,
and for giving audience to ambassadors. And in this per-
petual hurry of affairs he ended his days, and was killed by
the Swiss in the battle of Nancy; so that it cannot be said
that he enjoyed one happy day from the time of his begin-
ning to aggrandize himself to the hour of his death. And
then what were the fruits of all his pains and labor? Or
what necessity was there of his so doing? — since he was a
rich prince, and already had towns and territories large
enough to have made him happy, if he could have been
contented with them.
All hopes of an accommodation with the Swiss being
entirely vanished, their ambassadors returned to acquaint
their masters with the duke of Burgundy's absolute refusal
of their propositions, and to make preparations for their
defense. The duke marched with his army into the Pays
de Vaud, which the Swiss had taken from the Count of
Romont, and he took three or four towns belonging to
Monsieur de Chiteau-Guyon, which the Swiss had seized
upon but defended very ill. From thence he advanced to
besiege a place called Granson (which also belonged to
The Hundred Years" War 479
Monsieur de Chateau-Guy on), into which they had thrown
seven or eight hundred of their best troops; and because it
was near to them, they had resolved to defend it to the last
extremity. The duke's army was mightily increased, for he
daily received considerable reinforcements out of Lombardy
and Savoy ; for he employed strangers rather than his own
subjects, of whom he might have formed a sufficient army
that would have been more faithful and valiant. . .
He had a fine train of artillery, and he lived in great
pomp and magnificence in the camp, to show his grandeur
and riches to the Italian and German ambassadors who were
sent to him ; and he had all his valuable jewels, plate, and
rich furniture with him : besides he had great designs upon
the duchy of Milan, where he expected to find a consider-
able party of sympathizers.
It was not many days after the duke's investing Granson
before the garrison, being terrified with his continual batter-
ing it with cannon, surrendered at discretion, and were all
put to the sword. The Swiss were assembled, but they were
not very numerous, as several of them have told me (for that
country produced not so many soldiers as was imagined, and
still fewer than at present, because of late many of them
have left their husbandry and followed the wars). . . .
The duke of Burgundy, contrary to the advice of his
officers, resolved to advance and meet the enemy at the foot
of the mountains, to his great disadvantage ; for he was
already posted in a place much more proper for an engage-
ment, being fortified on one side with his artillery and on
the other by a lake, so that to all appearance there was no
fear of his being injured by the enemy. He had detached
a hundred of his archers to secure a certain pass at the
entrance of the mountains, and was advancing forward him-
self, when the Swiss attacked him, while the greatest part
of Ms army was still in the plain.
The foremost troops designed to fall back ; but the infan-
try that were behind, supposing they were running away,
retreated toward their camp, and some of them behaved
themselves handsomely enough ; but, in the end, when they
480 Readings in European History
arrived in their camp, they wanted courage to make a stand
and defend themselves, and they all fled, and the Swiss
possessed themselves of their camp, in which were all their
artillery and a vast number of tents and pavilions, "besides a
great deal of valuable plunder, for they saved nothing but
their lives.
The duke lost all his finest rings, but of men, not above
seven men-at-arms ; the rest fled, and the duke with them.
It may more properly be said of him, " that he lost his
honor and his wealth in one day," than it was of King
John of France, who, after a brave defense, was taken
prisoner at the battle of Poitiers.
This was the first misfortune that ever happened to the
duke of Burgundy in his whole life, for in the rest of his
enterprises he always acquired either honor or advantage.
But what a mighty loss did he sustain that day by his per-
verseness and scorn of good advice! How greatly did his
family suffer ! In what a miserable condition it is at present,
and how like to continue so ! How many great princes and
states became his enemies, and openly declared against him,
who but the day before the battle were his friends, or at
least pretended to be so !
And what was the cause of this war? A miserable cart-
load of sheepskins that the count of Romont had taken
from a Swiss in his passage through his estates. If God
Almighty had not forsaken the duke of Burgundy, it is
scarce conceivable that he would have exposed himself to
such great dangers upon so small and trivial an occasion ;
especially considering the offers the Swiss had made him, and
that his conquest of such enemies would yield him neither
profit nor honor ; for at that time the Swiss were not in such
esteem as now, and no people in the world could be poorer.
A gentleman who had been one of their first ambassadors
to the duke of Burgundy told ine that one of his chief argu-
ments to dissuade the duke from attacking them was that
there was nothing for him to gain from them; for their
country was barren *and poor, and he believed that, if all
his countrymen were taken prisoners^ all the money they
The Hundred Years War
4$ I
could raise for their ransom would not buy spurs and
bridles for the duke's army.
The poor Swiss were mightily enriched by the plunder of
the duke's camp. At first they did not understand the value
of the treasure they were masters of, especially the common
soldiers. One of the richest and most magnificent tents in
the world was cut into pieces. There were some of them
that sold quantities of dishes and plates of silver for about
two sous of our money, supposing they had been pewter.
His great diamond (perhaps the largest and finest jewel
in Christendom), with a large pearl fixed to it, was taken
up by a Swiss, put up again into the case, thrown under a
wagon, taken up again by the same soldier, and after all
offered to a priest for a florin, who bought it and sent it to
the magistrates of that country, who returned him three
francs as a sufficient reward. Tbey took also three very
rich jewels, called the Three Brothers, another large ruby
called La Hatte, and another called the Ball of Flanders,
which were the fairest and richest in the world ; besides a
prodigious quantity of other goods, which has since taught
them what fine things may be purchased for money; inas-
much as their victories, the esteem the king had of their
service afterwards, and the presents he made them, have
enriched them prodigiously.
How the
poor Swiss
mountaineers
misunder-
stood the
treasure that
fell into
their hands.
VL Louis XI OF FRANCE
Small .hopes and comfort ought poor and inferior people
to have in this world, considering what so great a king suf-
fered and underwent, and how he was at last forced to leave
all, and could not, with all his care and diligence, protract
his life one single hour. I knew him, and was entertained
in his service in the flower of his age and at the height of
his prosperity, yet I never saw him free from labor and care.
Of all diversions he loved hunting and hawking in their
seasons, but his chief delight was in dogs. ... In hunt-
ing, his eagerness and pain were equal to his pleasure, for
his chase was the stag, which he always ran down. He
204.4
acteraad
deatfmf
LeefeXL
(Frenite
The Hag's
kborioos
interest in
the chase.
482 Readings in European History
rose very early in the morning, rode sometimes a great dis-
tance, and would not leave his sport, let the weather be
never so bad. And when he came home at night he was
often very weary and generally in a violent passion with
some of his courtiers or huntsmen; for hunting is a sport
not always to be managed according to the master's direc-
tion; yet, in the opinion of 'most people, he understood it
as well as any prince of his time. He was continually at
these sports, lodging in the country villages to which his
recreations led him, till he was interrupted by business ; for
during the most part of the summer there was constantly
war between him and Charles, duke of Burgundy, while in
the winter they made truces.
Trouble over He was also involved in some trouble about the county of
Roussillon. Roussillon, with John, king of Arragon, father of Peter of
Castile, who at present is king of Spain. For though both
of them were poor, and already at variance with their sub-
jects in Barcelona and elsewhere, and though the son had
nothing but the expectation of succeeding to the throne of
Don Henry of Castile, his wife's brother (which fell to him
afterwards), yet they made considerable resistance; for that
province being entirely devoted to their interest, and they
being universally beloved by the people, they gave our king
abundance of trouble, and the war lasted till his death, and
many brave men lost their lives in it, and his treasury was
exhausted by it. So that he had but a little time during the
whole year to spend in pleasure, and even then the fatigues
he underwent were excessive.
When his body was at rest his mind was at work, for he
had affairs in several places at once, and would concern
himself as much in those of his neighbors as in his own,
putting officers of his own over all the great families, and
endeavoring to divide their authority as much as possible.
When he was at war he labored for a peace or a truce, and
when he had obtained it he was impatient for war again.
He troubled himself with many trifles in his government
which he had better have let alone ; but it was his temper,
and he could not help it. Besides, he had a prodigious
The Hundred Years' War
483
memory, and he forgot nothing, but knew everybody, as well
in other countries as in his own. . . .
I am of opinion that if all the days of his life were com-
puted in which his joys and pleasures outweighed his pain
and trouble, they would be found so few, that there would
be twenty mournful ones to one pleasant. He lived about
sixty-one years, yet he always fancied he should never out-
live sixty, giving this for a reason, that for a long time no
king of France had lived beyond that age.
His last illness continued from Monday to Saturday night.
Upon which account I will now make comparison between
the evils and sorrows which he brought upon others and
those which he suffered in his own person : for I hope his
torments here on earth have translated him into paradise
and will be a great part of his purgatory. And if, in respect
of their greatness and duration, his sufferings were inferior
to those he had brought upon other people, yet, if you con-
sider the grandeur and dignity of his office, and that he had
never before suffered anything in his own person, but had
been obeyed by all people, as if all Europe had been created
for no other end but to serve and be commanded by him,
you will find that that little -which he endured was so con-
trary to his nature and custom that it was more grievous for
him to bear. . . .
The king had ordered several cruel prisons to be made :
some were cages of iron, and some of wood, but all were
covered with iron plates both within and without, with terri-
ble locks, about eight feet wide and seven high. The first
contriver of them was the bishop of Verdun, who was
Immediately put in the first of them that was made, where
he continued fourteen years. Many bitter curses he has
had since for his invention, and some from me as I lay in
one of them eight months together in the minority of our
present king. He also ordered heavy and terrible fetters
to be made in Germany, and particularly a certain ring for
the feet, which was extremely hard to be opened, and fitted
like an iron collar, with a thick weighty chain, and a great
globe of iron at the end of it, most unreasonably heavy,
Apprehen- m
sions and
precautions
of the dying
Louis.
Loots Xf*s
ideas of
prism
484 Readings in European History
which contrivances were called the king's nets. However, I
have seen many eminent and deserving persons in these
prisons, with these nets about their legs, who afterwards
carne forth with great joy and honor, and received great
rewards from the king.
This by way of digression. But to return to my principal
design. As in his time this barbarous variety of prisons
was invented, so before he died he himself was in greater
torment and more terrible apprehension than those whom
he had imprisoned; which I look upon as a great mercy
toward him, and as part of his purgatory. And I have men-
tioned it here to show that there is no person, of what
station or dignity soever, but suffers some time or other,
either publicly or privately, especially if he has caused other
people to suffer.
The king, toward the latter end of his days, caused his
castle of Plessis-les-Tours to be encompassed with great bars
of iron in the form of thick grating, and at the four corners
of the house four sparrow nests of iron, strong, massy, and
thick, were built. The grates were without the wall, on the
farther side of the ditch, and sank to the bottom of it. Sev-
eral spikes of iron were fastened into the wall, set as thick
by one another as was possible, and each furnished with
three or four points. He likewise placed ten bowmen in
the ditches, to shoot at any man that durst approach the
castle before the opening of the gates ; and he ordered that
they should lie in the ditches, but retire to the sparrow
nests upon occasion.
He was sensible enough that this fortification was too
weak to keep out an army or any great body of men, but he
had no fear of such an attack ; his great apprehension was
that some of the nobility of his kingdom, having intelligence
within, might attempt to make themselves masters of the
castle by night and, having possessed themselves of it,
partly by favor and partly by force, might deprive him of
the regal authority, and take upon themselves the adminis-
tration of public affairs, upon pretense that he was incapable
of business and no longer fit to govern.
Tke Hundred Years War 485
The gate of the castle was never opened, nor the draw-
bridge let down, before eight o'clock in the morning, at which
time the officers were let in, and the captains ordered their
guards to their several posts, with pickets of archers in the
middle of the court, as in a town upon the frontiers that
is closely guarded : nor was any person admitted to enter
except by the wicket, and with the king's knowledge, unless
it were the steward of his household and such persons as
were not admitted into the royal presence.
Is it possible then to keep a prince (with any regard to
his quality) in a closer prison than he kept himself? The
cages which were made for other people were about eight
feet square ; and he (though so great a monarch) had but a
small court of the castle to walk in, and seldom made use of
that, but generally kept himself in the gallepy, out of which
he went into the chambers on his way to mass, but never
passed through the court. Who can deny that he was a
sufferer as well as .his neighbors, considering how he was
locked up and guarded, afraid of his own children and rela-
tions, and changing every day those very servants whom he
had brought up and advanced; and though they owed all
their preferment to him, yet he durst not trust any of them,
but shut himself up in those strange chains and enclosures.
If the place where he confined himself was larger than a
common prison, he also was much greater than common
prisoners.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
Conquest of Wales : GREEN, Short History* pp. 161-169.
Scottish Wars : CHEYNEY, Short History of England^ pp. 220-226.
France during the Hundred Years' War : ADAMS, Gremtb *f ike
French Nation, Chapter IX, pp. 108-135; LODGE, Chapter IV, pp,
66-97.
Black Death and Peasants' Rebellion : CHEYNEY, Industrial *nd
Economic History, pp. 96-134; Short History, pp. 243-250; Statutes
of Laborers, in Translations and Reprints^ Vol. II, No. 5.
Constitutional Progress in England: ADAMS, doHitation, pp.
347-363-
Wars of the Roses : GREEN, Chapter VI, sect. 2.
486
Readings in European History
B. Addi-
tional read-
ing in
English.
Tudor Despotism: GREEN, Chapter VI, opening of sect. 3, on the
«' New Monarchy." CHEYNEY, Skort History, pp. 278-284.
Breaking up of the Feudal System: CHEYNEY, Industrial and
Economic History r, pp. 136-161.
Joan of Arc: GREEN, pp. 274-281. Official report of her trial:
COLBY, pp. 113-117.
Louis XI and Charles the Bold : ADAMS, Growth of the French
Nation, pp. 136-143; LODGE, Chapter XVI, pp. 349~393-
The following are the best special treatments of English history in
the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries :
TREVELYAN, England in the Age of Wycliffe, 1899.
LONGMAN, The Life and Times of Ed-ward HI, 1869. Still the best
work for the period.
GASQUET, The Great Pestilence, 1348-134.9, 1893.
RAMSAY, Lancaster and York, 1399-1485, 2 vols., 1892.
WYLIE, History of England under Henry IV, 4 vols., 1884-1898.
Very detailed and exhaustive.
BUSCH, England under the Tudors, Vol. I.
LOWELL, Joan of Arc.
GREEN, MRS. J. R., Town Life in England in the Fifteenth Century,
2 vols.
KIRK, Charles the Bold. Rather antiquated and rhetorical but
based upon careful research.
The Chronicles of Froissart, edited by MACAULAY (Globe edition),
carefully condensed into one volume.
The Chronicles of Commines, 2 vols. (Bohn Library).
The Paston Letters, edited by GAIRDNER, 1875. These " are the first
instance in England of a family correspondence, and throw great light
on the social history of the time " (Green).
FRAZER, English History illustrated from the Original Sources,
1307-1399* This contains a great variety of extracts.
Compare excellent bibliographies given by ANDREWS, History of
England, pp. 196-197 and 229-230, and CHEYNEY, Short History,
pp. 262-263 and 276-277.
C. Materials Histoire de France, edited by LAVISSE, Vol. Ill, Part II, on Philip
for advanced the Fair antf Boniface VIIL
study' COVILLE contributes Vol. IV, Part I, of the Histoire de France, on
the period of the Hundred Years' War. Excellent.
The Hundred Years War 487
DENIFLE, the well-known archivist of the Vatican, has issued a
remarkable volume of material and written a history of the horrors of
the war to 1380 to accompany it, — La Desolation des eghses* monas-
tery et hdpitaux en France^ Vol. I and Vol. II, Parts l-II, 1899. (See
extracts given above, pp. 474^7.)
PICOT, Histoire des iLtats ge/u-raux, 6 vols., 1889. Short and good
account in VIGLLET, Histoire des institutions politiques de la France?
Vol. HI, pp. 177 sqq.
COSNEAU, Les Grandes Traites de la Guerre dt Cent Ans, in Collection
de textes (see above, p. 220). In the same convenient collection will be
found Annales de Gand (1296-1310), Chronique artesienne (1295-1304),
and Textes relatifs a rhistoire du Parlement a 1314* edited by LANGLOIS.
BEAUCOURT, Histoire de Charles VII, 6 vols., 1881-1891. The
chief authority for this period.
Of the narrative sources the most conspicuous are :
WALSINGHAM, Historia Anglicana^ 1272-1422, 2 vols., In die Rolls
Series. Written by a monk of St. Albans.
The vivacious but diffuse and somewhat inaccurate Ckrimules of Frotssartt
Froissart were first written in 1373, and up to the battle of Cn£cy the
author depends chiefly on JEAN LE BEL, whose work, Let Frays
Chroniquest was published by POLAIN in 1863. Froissart rewrote fcis
history later, when he loved the English less, and even undertook a third
edition, which was interrupted by his death. KERVYN DE LETTEHOVE
has issued an edition of the Chronicles in 20 volumes, with admirable
notes and apparatus. There is a newer edition edited by 3-UCE, issued
by the Societe de Thistoire de France, in n volumes, 1867-1899.
COMMINES, Memoires* edited by MAXDROT in the Collection dt textes,
2 vols., 1901-1903. (Translated in the Bohn Library, 2 vols.)
Other works will be found mentioned in GROSS, Sources of English
History, and in LOSERTH, Geschickte desspoteren Mittclolters* pp. 324 sf$^
530 sg., 539, 541 sf.9 and 553 sy., which also gjves abundant material for
France.
CHAPTER XXI
THE POPES AND THE COUNCILS
I. QUESTION WHETHER THE CIVIL GOVERNMENT MIGHT
TAX THE VAST POSSESSIONS OF THE CHURCH
A struggle between the papacy and the temporal rulers
over the proportion of the vast income of the Church
which each should enjoy could hardly be avoided. When
Philip the Fair of France and Edward I of England
applied to the clergy for a part of the revenue necessary
to meet the expenses of the state, Boniface VIII, who
believed in claiming the most exalted prerogatives for
the papacy,1 met them with the following emphatic and
unconditional denial of the right of the civil power to
take any part of the ecclesiastical property or revenue.
But two years later he consented to make certain excep-
tions, admitting the propriety of the dons gratuits> or
free gifts, on the part of the clergy to the king, and
even of exceptional exactions which, in cases of urgent
necessity, might be collected by the king without waiting
for the papal sanction.
Bishop Boniface, servant of the servants of God, in per-
taffl GAirfo/* Petual record of this matter. Antiquity shows that the laity
Lafcos issued have always been exceeding hostile to the clergy ; and this the
f^vm experience of the present time clearly demonstrates, since,
(1^6) deny- not c°ntent with their limitations, the laity strive for forbid-
ing the den things and give free reign to the pursuit of illicit gain,
right of the &
state to tax * See above, pp. 346 sqq., for bull Unam Sanctam^ which he issued
the clergy. in 1302.
488
The Popes and the Councils 489
They do not prudently observe that all control over the
clergy, as well as over .all ecclesiastical persons and their
possessions, is denied them, but impose heavy burdens
upon the prelates of the churches, upon the churches them-
selves, and upon ecclesiastical persons both regular and
secular, exacting tallages and other contributions from them.
From such persons they require and extort the payment of
a half, a tenth, a twentieth, or some other quota of their
property or income, and strive in many other ways to sub-
ject the churchmen to slavery and bring them under their
control.
And (with grief do we declare it) certain prelates of the
churches and ecclesiastical persons, fearing where they
ought not to fear, and seeking a temporary peace, dreading
to offend a temporal more than the eternal majesty, do,
without having received the permission or sanction of the
apostolic see, acquiesce in such abuses, not so much from
recklessness as from want of foresight. We, therefore, de-
siring to check these iniquitous practices, by the counsel of
our brothers, do, of our apostolic authority, decree that all
prelates and ecclesiastical persons, whether monastic or
secular, whatever their order, condition, or status, who shall
pay, or promise or agree to pay, to laymen, any contribu-
tions or tallages, tenths, twentieths, or hundredths of then-
own or of their churches* revenues or possessions, or shall
pay any sum, portion, or part of their revenues or goods, or
of their estimated or actual value, in the form of an aid,
loan, subvention, subsidy, or gift, or upon any other pre-
tense or fiction whatsoever, without authority of this same
apostolic see : — likewise emperors, kings and princes, dukes,
counts, barons, podestk, captains, officers, rectors, whatever
their title, of cities* castles, or other places, wherever situated,
or any other persons, whatever their rank, condition, or status,
who shall impose, exact, or receive such payments, or who
shall presume to lay hands upon, seize, or occupy the pos-
sessions of churches or of ecclesiastical persons deposited
in the sacred edifices, or who shall order such to be seized
or occupied, or shall receive such things as shall be seized
490 Readings in European History
or occupied, — likewise all who shall consciously lend aid,
counsel, or support in such undertakings, either publicly or
privately, — shall, by the very act, incur the sentence of ex-
communication ; corporations, moreover, which shall show
themselves guilty in these matters, we place under the
interdict.
We strictly command all prelates and ecclesiastical per-
sons above mentioned, in virtue of their obedience, and
under penalty of deposition, that they shall not hereafter
acquiesce in any such demands, without the express permis-
sion of the aforesaid chair. Nor shall they pay anything
under pretext of any obligation, promise, or declaration
made in the past, or which may be made before this notice,
prohibition, or order shall be brought to their attention.
Nor shall the above-mentioned laymen in any way receive
any such payments. And if the former pay, or the latter
receive anything, they shall incur, by the act itself, the
sentence of excommunication. No one, moreover, shall be
freed from the above-mentioned sentences of excommuni-
cation or of the interdict, except in the article of death,
'vithout the authority and special permission of the apos-
.olic see, since it is our intention to make no kind of com-
prooaise with so horrible an abuse of the secular power;
notwithstanding any privileges, whatever their
or wording, conceded to emperors, kings, or
persons above mentioned, for we will that such con-
as are in conflict with the preceding prohibitions
avail no individual person or persons. Let no man
therefore, violate the page of this our decree, pro-
or order, or with rash assumption contravene it.
shall presume to attempt this, let him know that
s&all incur the indignation of omnipotent God and of
blessed Peter and Paul, his apostles.
XJ&ven at Rome, at St. Peter's, on the sixth day before the
Kalends of March, in the second year of our pontificate.
The Popes and the Councils 491
II. MARSIGLIO OF PADUA AND HIS u DEFENDER OF
PEACE "
The earliest uncompromising attack upon the tempo-
ral power of the pope and the clergy is that of Marsiglio
of Padua. Marsiglio was born in 1270 at Padua and
probably took the ordinary course of study in the uni-
versity there. He then led a wandering life until he
became rector of the University of Paris in 1312. The
struggle which had begun between Louis of Bavaria, an
aspirant for the imperial crown, and his opponent, Pope
John XXII (1316-1334), aroused Marsiglio's interest in
the great problem of the relations between the civil and
ecclesiastical powers. In 1324 he planned out, with
a co-worker, the Defender of Peace (Defensor Pads),
which has quite properly been called " the greatest and
most original political treatise of the Middle Ages." In
1328 he accompanied Louis of Bavaria to Italy and
became the papal vicar of an antipope whom the emperor
had set up in place of his enemy, John XXII. Louis*
however, utterly failed to establish himself in Italy. We
know nothing about Marsiglio's later life. He probably
died not long after 1 336. His book is far more important
than the little that we know of his career.
Only peace can furnish the necessary conditions for 206. Brief
progress, for peace is the mother of all the higher arts. The
evils of discord and strife have nearly all been described
by Aristotle ; but one great and important cause of trouble
naturally escaped him, — a potent, hidden influence which
interferes with the welfare not only of the empire but of all
the governments of Europe. [Marsiglio cleverly refrains
from revealing this modern cause of discord until he has
described the proper nature and organization of the state.]
492
Readings in European History
Popular
sovereignty.
Unfounded
xfetims ma.de
ay the pope
md clergy
the chief
obstacle to
peace.
= Christian
believers.
The power of making the laws should belong to the whole
body of citizens, for there is no lawgiver among men superior
to the people themselves. The argument that there are an
infinite number of fools in the world may be met by pointing
out that "foolish" is a relative term, and that the people
know their own needs best and will not legislate against
their own interests. Any particular class of people is, how-
ever, likely to be self-seeking, as is shown by the decrees of
the popes and the clergy, where the "self-interest of the law-
maker is only too apparent.
The actual administration must, nevertheless, be in the
hands of a single person or group of persons.1 Perhaps a
king is the best head for the state, but the monarch should
be elected and not hold his office hereditarily, and should be
deposed if he exceed his powers.2
[At the end of Part I the time comes to take up the
chief cause of trouble which has grown up since Aristotle's
time, — namely, the papacy and the clergy.] The bishops
of Rome have extended their jurisdiction not only over the
clergy but, since the Donation of Constantine, over secular
rulers as well. This is illustrated by the acts of the popes
of the time (including the famous bull Unam Sanctam) and
of the existing bishop of Rome, John XXII, who claims,
both in Italy and Germany, to have supreme jurisdiction over
the emperor and over the lesser princes and communities,
even in purely temporal and feudal matters.
In its original meaning the " church " meant all believers
in Christ, — all those for whom he shed his blood. " Church-
men " (viri ecclesiastic?) then include all the faithful, whether
they be priests or not. The assumed supremacy of the
bishop of Rome is without foundation. Even if Peter was
ever in Rome, — which is doubtful, — there is no reason to
suppose that he handed down any exceptional power to the
succeeding bishops.
1 All this is strikingly similar to the teachings of Rousseau in his
Social Contract. See History of Western Europe, § 214.
2 Rather singularly Marsiglio appears to have no enthusiasm for a
universal monarchy or, empire.
The Popes and tfie Councils 493
The third part of the Dcfcnsor Pads contains a brief
summary of the main arguments of the book. It is pos-
sible that this resume was not prepared by Marsiglio
himself, but it furnishes a clear analysis of the whole
treatise. It opens as follows :
In our preceding pages we have found that civil discord
and dissension in the various kingdoms and communities is
due, above all, to a cause which, unless it be obviated, will
continue to be a source of future calamity, — namely, the
claims, aspirations, and enterprises of the Roman bishop
and of his band of ecclesiastics, bent upon gaining secular
power and superfluous worldly possessions. The bishop of
Rome is wont to support his claim to supreme authority
over others by the assertion that the plenitude of power was
delegated to him by Christ through the person of St. Peter,
as we showed at the end of Part I, and in several chapters
of Part II. But in reality no princely authority, nor any
coercive jurisdiction in this world — to say nothing of supreme
authority — belongs to him or to any other bishop, priest, or
clerk, whether jointly or severally. This we have proved by
sound human arguments in Part I, chapters xii, xiii, and xv.
We have, in Part II, chapters vi and vii, further supported
our conclusions by the testimony of eternal truth and by the
discussions of the saints and learned men who have inter-
preted this truth.
Then in the sixth and seventh chapters we established
from the Scriptures and by sound reasoning what was the
character and extent of the legitimate authority of the priests
and bishops. We demonstrated that the plenitude of power
to which the clergy, especially the Roman bishop, lays claim
belongs neither to the clergy as a whole nor to any of its
members. In this way the foundations of the bishop of
Rome's malign assumptions would seem to be completely
undermined.
Now, in order that this plague which has scattered the
seeds of discord and strife in kingdoms and communities,
494 Readings in European History
nor has ceased to provoke dissension, may be the more
speedily checked and prevented from further increase, we
add a third and last part to the preceding two. This is
nothing more than a collection of the clear and inevitable
deductions from the statements and demonstrations given
above. If these conclusions be duly attended to and acted
upon this plague and its sophistical source will be easily
abolished, now and hereafter, from the various kingdoms
and other states.
Of Marsiglio's conclusions the most interesting are the
following :
It is necessary to accept as true and essential to salvation
only the holy and canonical Scriptures, together with their
clear implications as interpreted by a general council of the
faithful. This is assuredly true and may be assumed.
Doubtful points in the Christian belief are to be deter-
mined by a general council, — in no case by a single person,
whoever he may be.
No one, according to the gospel, may be forced to observe
the divine law by a temporal penalty or any punishment of
this world.
The human lawgiver can only be the whole body of -citi-
zens or a majority of them.
No one may be compelled by temporal penalties to obey
the decretals or ordinances of the bishops of Rome, or of
any other bishop, unless the decrees are issued with the
sanction of the human lawgiver [namely, the people].
No bishop or priest, as such, has any coercive authority or
jurisdiction over any clerk or layman, even over a heretic.
No bishop or priest, or assembly of bishops or priests,
may excommunicate any person, or interdict the perform-
ance of divine services, except with the authority of the
lawgiver [namely, the people].
The Popes and the Councils 495
All bishops have equal authority immediately from Christ,
nor, according to divine law, can it be shown that any one
of them is superior to, or subordinate to, another, either in
divine or temporal matters.
With the consent of the human legislator, other bishops
may, together or separately, excommunicate the Roman
bishop and exercise other forms of authority over him.
The determination of the number of churches and of
priests, deacons, and other officials necessary to administer
them, belongs to the rulers who shall conform to the laws of
the faithful people.
The temporal possessions of the Church, except such as
are necessary for the support of the priests and other minis-
ters of the gospel and for the maintenance of divine services
and the relief of the helpless poor, may properly, and accord-
ing to divine law, be devoted, in whole or in part, by the
human law, to public needs and the public defense.
Marsiglio's modern independence of thought and
methods of criticism may be illustrated by the following
passage, in which he questions a universally accepted
belief of the Middle Ages.
Since, then, it is evident from the Scriptures that Paul
spent two years in Rome, there received all the gentiles who Petex»s
were converted, and preached there, it is clear that he was in presence la
a special sense bishop of Rome, since he fulfilled the duties Rozae.
of pastor there, having his authority immediately from Christ
through revelation and, by the consent of the other apostles,
through election.
As for St. Peter, on the other hand, I maintain that it can-
not be proved by Holy Scripture that he was bishop of Rome,
or, what is more, that he ever was in Rome. It is true that,
according to a certain popular ecclesiastical legend of the
saints, Sr, Peter reached Rome before St. Paul preached the
word there, and was later arrested ; moreover it is related that
St. Paul, on his arrival at Rome, engaged with St Peter in
49<5
Readings in European History
Improba-
bility of the
current
- tradition
of Peter's
episcopate.
many conflicts with Simon Magus, and at the same time
stoutly withstood emperors and their ministers in the cause
of the faith. Finally, according to the same story, both were
decapitated at the same time for confessing Christ, and slept
in the Lord, thus consecrating the Roman Church in Christ.
It is most astonishing, however, that neither St. Luke,
who wrote the Acts of the Apostles, nor St. Paul, makes
any mention of St. Peter. Moreover the last chapter of
Acts makes it very probable that St Peter had not arrived
in Rome before them. For when Paul addressed the Jews
upon his arrival, in explaining the reason for his coming to
Rome, he said, among other things, " But. when the Jews
spake against it [his liberation] I was constrained to appeal
unto Caesar." And they said unto him, " We neither received
letters out of Jerusalem concerning thee, neither any of the
brethren that came shewed or spake any harm of thee.
But we desire to hear of thee what thou thinkest : for as
concerning this sect [of the Christians] we know that
every where it is spoken against."
I would that any one anxious for the truth, and not bent
upon mere discussion, should tell me if it be probable that
St Peter had preceded Paul in Rome and yet had made no
proclamation of Christ's faith, which the Jews, in speaking
to Paul, call a " sect." Moreover would not Paul, in reprov-
ing them for their Incredulity, have spoken of Peter had he
been there preaching, and have called as a witness one who,
according to the third chapter of Acts, beheld Christ's resur-
rection ? Then, from what has been said, who could suppose
that Paul could spend two years in Rome and still have no
intercourse or communication with St. Peter ? And if he
had, why did the author of Acts make absolutely no men-
tion of the fact ? In other less important towns, when Paul
came upon Peter he makes mention of him and associated
with him, for example, in Corinth (i Cor. iii), and in
Antioch (Gal. ii), and so in other places. Why does he say
nothing of Peter if he found him in Rome, the most cele-
brated of all cities, where, according to the story mentioned
above, Peter was conspicuous as bishop ?
The Popes and the Councils 497
Such a state of affairs is well-nigh incredible, so that the Marsiglio
story or legend ought not to be regarded as probable in claims ^
reference to the matter in hand, and should be reckoned as appa^iv
apocryphal. We must, however, following Holy Scripture, the first
hold that St. Paul was bishop of Rome, and if any one else
was there with him, Paul was nevertheless in charge, and in
a special sense bishop of Rome, as is shown by the reasons
adduced. Peter would seem to have been bishop of Antioch,
as appears in the second chapter of Galatians. I do not
deny that Peter was ever in Rome, but hold it as probable
that he did not precede Paul, but rather the contrary.
III. WYCLIFFE'S ATTACK UPON THE POPE, CLERGY, MONKS,
AND THE ROMAN CATHOLIC TEACHINGS
Wycliffe wrote many treatises, pamphlets, and ser-
mons, in both Latin and English. In his sermons, which
are generally very brief, he often refers to the evil life
and what he regarded as the perverse teachings of the
pope and clergy, especially of the mendicant friars, most
of whom seemed to him to be the servants of Antichrist.
The following extracts illustrate his spirit : *
[We should put on the armor of Christ, for Antichrist 207. Wye-
has turned] hise clerkes to coveitise and worldli love, and
so blindid the peple and derkid the lawe of Crist, that hise
servantis ben thikke, and fewe ben on Cristis side. And clergy,
algatis [= always] thei dispisen that men shulden knowe
Cristis liif, for bi his liif and his loore shalde help rise on
his side, and prestis shulden shame of her lyves, and speciali
thes highe presrJs, for thei reversen Crist bothe in word
and dede.
And herfore oo greet Bishop of Engelond, as men seien,
is yvel paied [= pleased] that Goddis lawe is writun in
1 It seemed a pity to modernize the ancient spelling ; it, of conrse,
somewhat impedes the inexperienced reader, but does not prevent his •
coming at the full sense of the passages.
498
Readings in European History
The opposi-
tion of the
Primate of
England to
the translat-
ing of the
Scriptures
into English.
Three chief
enemies of
Christ's law,
namely, the
pope and
cardinals,
bad bishops
and rulers,
and the
mendicant
friars.
The pride
aad arro-
gance of tie
The pope
and prelates
are given
over to
avarice.
Englis, to lewide men [= laymen] ; and he pursueth a preest,
for that he writith to men this Englishe, and somonith him
and traveilith him, that it is hard to him to rowte. And thus
he pursueth another preest by the helpe of Phariseis, for he
prechide Cristis gospel freeli withouten fablis.
O men that ben on Cristis half/ helpe ye now agens Anti-
crist! for the perilous tyme is comen that Crist and Poul
telden bifore. Butt *oo confort is of knygttis, that thei
savoren myche the gospel and han wille to rede in Englishe
the gospel of Cristis liif. For aftirward, if God wole, this
lordship shal be taken from preestis ; and so the staaff that
makith hem hardi agens Crist and his la we. For three sectis
figten here, agens Cristene mennis secte. The firste is the
pope and cardinals, bi fals lawe that thei han made; the
secounde is emperours [and] bishopis, whiche dispisen Cristis
lawe; the thridde is thes Pharisees possessioners and beg-
geris. Alle thes three, Goddis enemyes, traveilen in ypoc-
risie, and in worldli coveitise, and idilnesse in Goddis lawe.
Crist helpe his Chirche from these fendis, for thei figten
perilously.
In another sermon Wycliffe speaks of the pride and
arrogance of the clergy.
And Crist sitting, clepide [= called] thes twelve, and
seide, " yif ony of you wole be the firste, he shal be the laste
of alle and servant of alle, for he must be moost meke of
alle other." And Crist take a child, and putte him in the
middil of hem ; the which child whanne Crist hadde biclippid,
lie seide thus to hem, " Who ever takith oon of thes children
in my name resseyveth me, and whoever resseyveth me, res-
seyveth not me, but my fadir." And, for this lore is profit-
able to governaile of holy Chirche, therfore seith Crist, as
he seith ofte, "He that hath eeris to heere, heere he."
And in this point synnen specialy gretteste of the Chirche,
for thei suen not Crist heere but Anticrist and the world.
Loke the pope first and his cardinalis, where thei taken no
worldli worship, but ben the laste, moost servisable, and
TJie Popes and the Councils
499
moost meke of alle othir. More foul pride and coveitise is
in no Lord of the world. Go we to bishopis binethe thes,
and riche abbotis, fadirs in coventis, and thes axen worldly
worshipis, and bi this mai men knowe hem. Yif thou wil
wite which of thes is more, loke which takith more worldly
worship.
And yif thou go doun to freris, that ben beggeris, and
shulden be mekerste, more worship of their bretheren takith
no man in this world, as bi kneling and kissyng of feet ;
take thou- the ministre of ffreris and other service at mete
and bedde, more than ony bishop doith. And so Cristis
reule in thes preestis is more reversid than in worldli lordis.
And sith thei professen and seien this gospel bothe in word
and in oth, it is open that thes false ypocritis disseyve the
peple, and harmen the Chirche.
But on this men douten ofte how that thes shriftes [= con-
fession] camen in. For Goddis lawe spekith not but of
schrift maad to God, and of general shrifte to men, and to
stire hem to leve ther synne ; and thes shriftes ben ofte betere
for this than thes newe rownyngis. Here men seien, yif
thei dursten, that noo shrifte that now is usid> is good to
man, but in as myche as it lettith man to synne. And so yif
prestis prechiden faste as Crist hath ordeyned hem to preche,
it semeth that this were ynow, with general conf essioun. And
so, al if it do good, netheles it doith myche harm, for con-
fessores han her menes to spuyle the peple by symonye, and
to foyle hem many weies by coveitise and lecherie.
Thes ben to rude heretikes, that seien thei eten Crist
bodili, and seien thei parten ech membre of him, — nekke,
bac, heed, and foot. And alle siche heresies springen, for
thei witen not what this oost [= host] is. This cost is
breed [= bread] in his kynde, as ben other oostes unsacrid,
and sacramentaliche Goddis bodi; for Crist seith so, that mai
not lye. And so, yif this sacrament be foulid in that it is
breed or wyn, it may not thus be defoulid in thingis which it
figurith. And so a man brekith not Goddis bodi, ne drynkith
his blood with his mouth, alyif he ete and drynke the breed
Arrogance 01
the friars.
208. Wyc-
liffeon
auricular
andtran-
snbstaHtia-
tkm.
Denial of
transnbstan-
tiatioa.
Readings in European History
209. State-
ment of the
views of
Wycliffe's
followers.
Contrast
between the
life led by
the pope and
Christ's life.
and the wiin that is thes ; for thei ben not thes in kynde. . . .
And thus a mous etith not Cristis bodi alyif he ete this
sacrament ; for the mous failith goostli wiit, to chewe in him
this bileve.
Shortly after Wycliffe's death his followers drew up a
reply to the charges brought against the " pore Crist en
men." The first charge is discussed as follows :
Furste, that this pope Urban tho sixte beres not strength
of Seint Petur in erthe, but thai affermen hym to be tho son
of Anticriste, and that no verrey pope was sith tho tyme of
Silvester [I] pope.
Here Cristen men seyne pleynly, that whatever pope or
other preste, in maner of lyvynge or techynge or lawis-mak-
ynge, contrarius Crist, is verrey Anticrist, adversary of Jesus
Crist, and of his apostlis, ande of alle Cristen pepul. See
inwardely, alle ye Cristen pepul, tho meke life of Jesus
Crist, pore and symple to the worlde, and ful of brennynge
charite, and putty nge hym selfe to penaunce and travayle
in prechynge and prayinge, and willeful [= voluntary] sched-
ynge of his "precious blode, for to make pes and charite and
for to save mennes soules. Ande sees ye tho open lyif of
popes, how proude thai bene, that Cristen kyngus schal
kysse ther fete, and with ther fote thai schal kroune tho
emperoure, ther lorde and founder, ande that emperours,
barfot, leden openly, as men sayne, ther bridelis, and that
all men that schal with hem speke schul kisse ther fete, and
calle hem moste holy faderis, and moste blessid and moste
mercyful and gracius. And loke whether this be contrarie
to Cristis mekenes, that weysche his disciplis feete, and
coome not for to be served but to serve other men, and to
gif hys lyife for redempcioun of mony. And he coome not
to seche his owne glorie by manned, but in alle thingus to
do tho wille of his Fadir of heven.
Tho secunde tyme, See ye Cristen peple, tho willeful
poverte of Jesus Crist, how he hade nougt by worldly lord-
schipe one howse where he mygt reste his heved, but lyved
The Popes and the Councils 501
by temporale almes of Mary Mawdeleyne ande other holy
wymrnen, as tho gospel sais. Ande see ye wisely, whether
oure popis, makyng stronge palayces with pore mennes lyve-
lodis, with al ther glorie of richesses and jewelis, acordem
with this porenes of Criste.
Tho thrid tyme, See, yee Cristen pepul, tho charitabul
lyif of Crist, ande like whether oure popis contrarien hym.
Where he was moste bisye in spirituale occupacione, these
popis bene most bisy in delynge of beneficis to him that
moste muck brynggen or worldly favour. Where Criste
willefully gafe tribute to tho emperoure, these popis robben
cristes rewenes by the furste frutes of mony thowsande
poundis, by manyschynge of suspending and enterdytynge
of londis.
Where Criste mekely travelid with grete penaunce upon
his fete for to preche tho gospel, these popes, more then
emperoures, resten in palaycis chargid with pretious in ther
feete and in al ther stynkynge carione, ande prechen not
tho gospel to Cristen men, but crien ever aftur glorye and
riches, and make newe lawes for to magnify ther worldly
state, that Crist and his apostlis durste never do.
Where Crist gafe his precious blode and lyif for to make
pes and charite, these popis maken ande mayntenys werre
thoroweout Cristendame, for to hold ther worldly state,
moste contrarie ageyne Crist and his apostlis, ande herto
spenden tho almes of kyngis, and oppressen Cristen rewenes
by newe subsidies.
And, that is werst, thai senden indulgences, fouudid as
thai faynen on Cristis charite and his dethe, to sle alle men
contrarie to theire lustis, Certis this seines contrarious to
Crist and his lovers. Seynt Robert Grosthede1 sais that
this court is cause, welle, and begynnynge of destruccione
of Cristendame, and loser of al tho worlde. Ande trewly,
if thai be thus contrary to Crist in lyvynge and techyng, as
ther open dedis and tho world crien, thai ben cursid here-
tikist manquellars bodily and gostly, Anticrist, and Sathanas
1 Bishop of Lincoln (d. 1253), an ardent advocate of reform.
502
Readings in European History
transfigurid into aungelis [of] ligt. Ande, as this worthi
clerk Grosthede proves, ande certis no man is verrey pope
but in als myche as he sewis Crist ; and in so myche Cristen
men wole do aftur hym, ande no more, for alle bulles and
censuris, for no creature of God.
210. A
letter of
Petrarch's
describing
the papal
court at
Avignon.
IV. THE SOJOURN OF THE POPES AT AVIGNON. THE
ORIGIN OF THE GREAT SCHISM
The residence of the popes at Avignon (1316-1377)
did much to undermine their prestige. Avignon was
so near France that the English and Germans sus-
pected that the French king really directed the papal
policy. Besides, the pope maintained a very luxurious
court, and an ever-increasing burden of taxation was
necessary to maintain the splendor which Petrarch, long
a resident of the city, describes in the letter given below.
Petrarch's criticism is especially noteworthy, for, in the
first place, he had ample opportunity for forming his
opinions from personal observation ; in the second place,
he was an ardent adherent of the papacy and a devout
member of the Roman Catholic Church, — unlike Mar-
siglio and Wycliffe, who were openly heretical in their
denial of some of the fundamental teachings of the
mediaeval Church. This letter is undated, but was writ-
ten probably between 1340 and 1353, when he left the
detested Avignon forever, and removed to Italy.
. . . Now I am living in France, in the Babylon of the
West. The sun in its travels sees nothing more hideous
than this place on the shores of the wild Rhone, which sug-
gests the hellish streams of Cocytus and Acheron. Here
reign the successors of the poor fishermen of Galilee ; they
have strangely forgotten their origin. I am astounded, as
The Popes and the Councils 503
I recall their predecessors, to see these men loaded with
gold and clad in purple, boasting of the spoils of princes
and nations ; to see luxurious palaces and heights crowned
with fortifications, instead of a boat turned downwards for
shelter.
We no longer find the simple nets which were once used
to gain a frugal sustenance from the lake of Galilee, and
with which, having labored all night and caught nothing,
they took, at daybreak, a multitude of fishes, in the name
of Jesus. One is stupefied nowadays to hear the lying
tongues, and to see worthless parchments turned by a leaden
seal into nets which are used, in Christ's name, but by the
arts of Belial, to catch hordes of unwary Christians. These
fish, too, are dressed and laid on the burning coals of anxiety
before they fill the insatiable maw of their captors.
Instead of holy solitude we find a criminal host and
crowds of the most infamous satellites ; instead of sober-
ness, licentious banquets ; instead of pious pilgrimages,
preternatural and foul sloth ; instead of the bare feet of the
apostles, the snowy coursers of brigands fly past us, the
horses decked in gold and fed on gold, soon to be shod with
gold, if the Lord does not check this slavish luxury. In
short, we seem to be among the kings of the Persians or
Parthians, before whom we must fall down and worship,
and who cannot be approached except presents be offered.
O ye unkempt and emaciated old men, is it for this you
labored ? Is it for this that you have sown the field of the
Lord and watered it with your holy blood? But let us
leave the subject.
Commiserate the cruel fate which holds your friend here.
He may merit punishment, but certainly not one like this.
Here I am, at a more advanced age, back in the haunts of
my childhood, dragged again by fate among the disagree-
able surroundings of my early days, when I thought I was
freed from them. I have been so depressed and overcome
that the heaviness of my soul has passed into bodily afflic-
tions, so that I am really ill and can only give voice to sighs
and groans. Although many things offer themselves which
504
Readings in European History
211. The
beginning of
schism in
holy Church.
(From
Froissart's
Chronicles.)
How
Gregory XI
resolved to
return from
Avignon to
Rome.
I wanted to communicate to you, as both my stomachs1 are
troubling me you need look for nothing agreeable from me
to-day, Sweet water cannot come from a bitter source.
Nature has ordered that the sighs of an oppressed heart
shall be distasteful, and the words of an injured soul harsh.
Froissart, in his famous Chronicles> gives the following
account of Pope Gregory XI's return to Rome and of
the opening of the Great Schism due to the election
of Clement VII.
Ye have heard herebefore how Pope Gregory, the eleventh
of that name, was in the city of Avignon. And when he saw
that he could find no manner of peace to be had between
the kings of England and France, wherewith he was in great
displeasure, for he had greatly travailed thereabout and had
made his cardinals to do the same, then he advised himself
and had a devotion to go and revisit Rome and the see apos-
tolic, the which St. Peter and St. Paul had edified. He had
made promise before that, if ever he came to the degree
to be pope, he would never keep his see but there where
St. Peter kept his and ordained it.
This pope was a man of feeble complexion and sickly,
and endured much pain, more than any other. And he
thus being in Avignon was sore let with the business of
France, and so sore travailed with the king and his brethren
that with much pain he had any leisure to take heed any-
thing to himself or to his Church. Then he said to himself
that he would go farther off from them to be more at rest,
. . . and then he said to his cardinals, " Sirs, make you
ready, for I will go to Rome."
Of that motion his cardinals were sore abashed and dis-
pleased, for they loved not the Romans, and so they would
fain have turned his purpose, but they could not. And when
the French king heard thereof he was sore displeased, for
he thought that he had the pope nearer at hand there than
1 Perhaps a pun on the Lathi stomackus, -which means ill humor as
well as stomach.
The Popes and the Councils
505
at any other place. Then the king wrote incontinent to his
brother, the duke of Anjou, who was at Toulouse, signifying
him that after he had received his letter he should go to
Avignon to the pope and break his voyage to Rome, if it
were possible. The duke did as the king commanded him,
and so came to Avignon, where the cardinals received him
with great joy, and so he was lodged in the pope's palace,
the ofter thereby to speak with the pope.
Ye may know well that he spoke with the pope and How the
showed him divers reasons to have broken his purpose; king of
but the pope would in no wise consent thereto nor take ^^ to
any heed of any 'business on this side of the mountains, dissuade the
. . . When the duke saw that he could not come to his
intent for no reason nor fair words that he could show, he
took leave of the pope, and said at his parting, " Holy father,
ye go into a country among such people where ye be but
little beloved, and ye will leave the fountain of faith and the
reahn where holy Church hath most faith and excellence of
all the world. And, sir, by your deed the Church may fall
into great tribulation. For if ye die there, the which is
right likely, and so say the physicians, then the Romans,
who be malicious and traitors, shall be lords and masters of
all the cardinals and shall make a pope at their own will."
Howbeit, for all these words and many others, the pope
never rested till he was on his way. . . . The Romans were
right joyful of his coming, and all the chief men of Rome
mounted on their horses and so brought him into Rome
with great triumph and lodged him in SL Peter's palace.
And ofttimes he visited a church called Our Lady the Great
[Santa Maria Maggiore] within Rome, wherein be had great
pleasure and did make therein many costly works. And
within a while after his coming to Rome he died and was
buried in the said church, and there his obsequy was made,
as to a pope appertained.1
1 Here Froissart inserts a fabulous story of the election of a pope
one hundred years of age, who straightway died, worn out by the cele-
bration which the enthusiastic Romans prepared in his honor. His
account of the election of Urban VI and Clement VII, given below, is,
506
Readings in European History
Of the orgu-
lous words
at the elec-
tion of a
new pope.
[When the cardinals had entered the conclave] the
Romans assembled themselves before the conclave and made
semblance to break it up and slay them all if they did not
choose a pope according to their minds, and cried to the
cardinals and said, " Sirs, advise you well. If ye deliver us
a Roman pope, we be content; else we will make your heads
redder than your hats be." Such words and menaces greatly
abashed the cardinals, for they would rather a died con-
fessors than martyrs. Then to bring themselves out of that
danger and peril they made a pope. But he was none of the
college of cardinals: he was the archbishop of Bari, a great
clerk, who greatly had travailed for the wealth of holy Church.
With this promotion to the papality the Romans were
appeased, for the cardinal of Genoa put out his head at a
window of the conclave and said on high to the people of
Rome, " Sirs, appease you, for you have a Roman pope, and
that is Bartholomew des Aigles, archbishop of Bari." The
people answered all with one voice, " Then we be content."
The same archbishop was not then at Rome ; I think he
was in Naples. Then he was incontinent sent for, of the
which tidings he was right glad; and so came to Rome. And
at his coming there was a great feast made to him, and so
he had all the rights that pertained to the papality and was
called Urban, the sixth of that name.
The Romans had great joy. His creation was signified
to all the churches of Christendom, and also to emperors,
kings, dukes, and earls, and the cardinals sent word to all
thebr friends that he was chosen by a good and true election.
Howbeit some of them repented them after that they had
spoken so largely of the matter.1 . . .
however, essentially correct, except that, with a view to justifying the
desertion of Urban by the cardinals, he exaggerates the disorder which
attended his election and which formed the only possible excuse for a
new election.
1 There appears to be no doubt that Urban was admitted by all at
the time to have been regularly elected, and that the plea that the cardi-
nals had been intimidated by the Roman populace was trumped up
later, when Urban had made himself hated by his rudeness and austerity.
The Popes and tJte Councils 507
The intention of divers of the cardinals was that when Thecardina*
they might see a better hour and time they would return desert Urbar
again to their election, because this pope was not profitable new £o£e7 *
for them, nor also for the Church, for he was a furnish man Clement vn
and melancholious, so that when he saw himself in prosperity
and in puissance of the papality, and that divers Christian
kings were joined to him and wrote to him and did put
them under his obedience, he waxed proud and headstrong,
and would have taken from the cardinals divers of their
rights and old customs, the which greatly displeased them.
And so they spake together and imagined how he was not
well worthy to govern the world ; wherefore they purposed
to choose another pope, sage and discreet, by whom the
Church should be well governed. . . .
[Accordingly when they left Rome for the summer] all of
one accord assembled together and their voices rested on Sir
Robert of Geneva, son to the earl of Geneva. He was first
bishop of Therouanne and later of Cambrai, and was called
cardinal of Geneva. At his election were most of the car-
dinals, and he was called Clement [VII]. . . .
And when the French king who as then reigned was cer- Ded*™
tified thereof, he had great marvel, and sent for his brother actk)n °* ***
and for all the nobles and prelates of his realm and for the in^kring
rector and master doctors of the university of Paris, to know for Cfement
of them which election, whether the first or the second, he
should hold unto. This matter was not shortly determined,
for divers clerks varied, but finally all the prelates of France
inclined to Clement, and so did the king's brethren and the
most part of the university of Paris ; and so the king was
informed by all the great clerks of his realm; and so he
obeyed the pope Clement and held him for the true pope,
and made a special commandment throughout his realm
that every man should take and repute Clement for pope
and that every man should obey him as God on earth. The
king of Spain was of the same opinion and so was the earl
of Savoy, the duke of Milan, and the queen of Naples.
The believing thus of the French king upon Clement
greatly strengthened his cause, for the realm of France was
So8
Readings in European History
212.
gesonthe
tferee vices
wfekhhave
tffee Cfattrdi.
reputed to be the chief fountain of belief of the Christian
faith, because of the noble churches and prelacies that be
therein. . . . The Christian realms were in variation and the
churches in great difference because of the popes. Urban
had the greater part, but to speak of the most profitable
revenues and plain obedience, Clement had it. And so
Clement, by consent of the cardinals, sent to Avignon to
make ready the palace there for him, for his intent was to go
thither as soon as he might.
The disorders of the Great Schism offered little oppor-
tunity for improvement in the Church, so that during
the generation preceding the opening of the Council of
Constance the complaints are as loud as ever that the
popes, whether those at Rome or their rivals at Avignon,
are hopelessly corrupt. In a work on The Downfall of
the Church^ a cleric connected with the court of the
popes at Avignon writes as follows :
After the great increase of worldly goods, the virtues of
our ancestors being quite neglected, boundless avarice and
blind ambition invaded the hearts of the churchmen. As a
result they were carried away by the glory of their position
and the extent of their power, and soon gave way to the
degrading effects of luxury. Three most exacting and
troublesome masters had now to be satisfied. Luxury de-
mands sundry gratifications, — wine, sleep, banquets, music,
debasing sports, courtesans, and the like. Display requires
fine houses, castles, towers, palaces, rich and varied furni-
ture, expensive clothes, horses, servants, and the pomp of
luxury. Lastly is Avarice, which carefully brings together
vast treasures to supply the demands of the above-mentioned
vices or, if these are otherwise provided for, to gratify the
eye by the vain contemplation of the coins themselves.
So insatiable are these lords, and so imperious are their
demands, that the Golden Age of Saturn, which -we hear of
in stories, should it now return, would hardly suffice to meet
The Popes and the Councils 509
the requirements. Since it is impossible, however rich the
bishop and ample his revenue, to satisfy these rapacious
harpies with that alone, he must cast about for other sources
of income.
For carrying on these exactions and gathering the gains Papal coi-
into the camera, or Charybdis, as we may better call it, the k^rs and
popes appoint their collectors in every province, — those, bring with T
namely, whom they know to be most skillful in extracting them,
money, owing to peculiar energy, diligence, or harshness of
temper, those, in short, who will neither spare nor except but
would squeeze gold from a stone. To these the popes grant,
moreover, the power of anathematizing any one, even prelates,
and of expelling from the communion of the faithful every
one who does not, within a fixed period, satisfy their de-
mands for money. What ills these collectors have caused,
and the extent to which poor churches and people have been
oppressed, are questions best omitted, as we could never
hope to do the matter justice. From this source come the
laments of the unhappy ministers of the Church, which reach
our ears, as they faint under the insupportable yoke, — yea,
perish of hunger. Hence come suspensions from divine
service, interdicts from entering a church, and anathemas,
a thousandfold intensified in severity.
Such things were resorted to in the rarest instances by the
fathers, and then only for the most horrible of crimes ; for
by these penalties a man is separated from the companion-
ship of the faithful and turned over to Satan. But nowa-
days these inflictions are so fallen in esteem that they are
used for the lightest offense, often for no offense at all, so
that they no longer bring terror but are objects of contempt.
To the same cause is to be ascribed the ruin of numerous
churches and monasteries and the leveling to the ground, in
so many places, of sacred edifices, while the money which
was formerly used for their restoration is exhausted in pay-
ing these taxes. But it even happens, as some well know,
that holy relics in not a few churches — crosses, chalices,
feretories, and other precious articles — go to make up this
tribute.
510 Readings in' European History
Who does not know how many abbots and other prelates,
when they come to die, are, if they prove obnoxious to the
papal camera on account of their poverty, refused a dignified
funeral, and even denied burial, except perchance in some
field or garden, or other profane spot, where they are secretly
disposed of. Priests, as we all can see, are forced, by reason
of their scanty means of support, to desert their parishes
and their benefices and, in their hunger, seek bread where
they may, performing profane services for laymen. Some
rich and hitherto prosperous churches have, indeed, been
able to support this burden, but all are now exhausted and
can no longer bear to be cheated of their revenue,
A German writer of the early fifteenth century in his
History of the Council of Constance shows the inevitable
manner in which the corruption spread from the prelates
downward to the simple priests, who were tempted to
indemnify themselves for the outlay they had been obliged
to make in obtaining their offices.
213. How The supreme pontiffs, as I know, are elected through
corrapiM avarice and simony, and likewise the other bishops are
^rpreiates ordained for gold. These in turn will not ordain those below
to the lower them — the priests, deacons, subdeacons, and acolytes —
except ^a strict agreement be first drawn up. Of the mammon
of unrighteousness the bishops, the real rulers, and the
chapters each receives a part.
The once accepted maxim, " Freely give, for freely ye have
received," is now most vilely perverted: " Freely I have not
received, nor will I freely give, for I bought my bishopric
for a great price and must indemnify myself impiously for
my untoward outlay. I will not ordain you as a priest
except .for money. I purchased the sacrament of ordination
when I became a bishop, and I propose to sell you the same
sign and seal of ordination. By beseeching and for gold I
obtained my office, and for beseeching and for gold do I sell
you your place. Refuse the amount I demand and you
shall not become a priest."
The Popes and the Councils
5**
V. THE COUNCIL OF CONSTANCE
The two most interesting acts, historically, passed by
the Council of Constance were the decree Sacrosancta,
in which it declared that as a general council of Chris-
tendom it had the right to reform even the papacy ; and,
secondly, the decree Frequens, which provided that gen-
eral councils should thereafter be assembled regularly
and so form a sort of parliament which, with the pope,
should govern the Church.
In the name of the Holy and Indivisible Trinity r, of the Father •,
Son, and Holy Ghost. Amen.
This holy synod of Constance, constituting a general coun-
cil for the extirpation of the present schism and the union
and reformation of the Church of God in head and members,
legitimately assembled in the Holy Ghost, to the praise of
omnipotent God, in order that it may the more easily, safely,
effectively, and freely bring about the union and reformation
of the Church of God, hereby determines, decrees, ordains,
and declares what follows :
It first declares that this same council, legitimately as-
sembled in the Holy Ghost, forming a general council and
representing the Catholic Church militant, has its power
immediately from Christ, and every one, whatever his posi-
tion or rank, even if it be the papal dignity itself, is bound
to obey it in all those things which pertain to the faith, to
the healing of the schism, and to the general reformation
of the Church of God in head and members.
It further declares that any one, whatever his position,
station, or rank, even if it be the papal, who shall contuma-
ciously refuse to obey the mandates, decrees, ordinances, or
instructions which have been, or shall be, issued by this holy
council, or by any other general council legitimately sum-
moned, which concern, or in any way relate to, the above-
mentioned objects, shall, unless he repudiate his conduct, be
214. The
decree Sac w
passed fry
tie Council
of COD-
staace
(Aprilfi,
1413)-
512 Readings in European History
subjected to condign penance and be suitably punished, hav-
ing recourse, if necessary, to the resources of the law. . . .1
215. The A frequent celebration of general councils is an especial
decree means for cultivating the field of the Lord and effecting the
passed by destruction of briers, thorns, and thistles, to wit, heresies,
the Council of errors, and schism, and of bringing forth a most abundant
(Octoter06 harvest The neglect to summon these fosters and develops
1417). ' all these evils, as may be plainly seen from a recollection of
the past and a consideration of existing conditions. There-
fore, by a perpetual edict, we sanction, decree, establish, and
ordain that general councils shall be celebrated in the fol-
lowing manner, so that the next one shall follow the close
of this present council at the end of five years. The second
shall follow the close of that, at the end of seven years, and
councils shall thereafter be celebrated every ten years in
such places as the pope shall be required to designate and
assign, with the consent and approbation of the council, one
month before the close of the council in question, or which,
in his absence, the council itself shall designate. Thus, with
a certain continuity, a council will always be either in ses-
sion, or be expected at the expiration of a definite time.
This term may, however, be shortened on account of
emergencies, by the supreme pontiff, with the counsel of
his brethren, the cardinals of the holy Roman Church, but
it may not be hereafter lengthened. The place, moreover,
designated for the future council may not be altered without
evident necessity. If, however, some complication shall
arise, in view of which such a change shall seem necessary,
as, for example, a state of siege, a war, a pest, or other
obstacles, it shall be permissible for the supreme pontiff,
with the consent and subscription of his said brethren, or
two thirds of them, to select another appropriate place near
the first, which must be within the same country, unless such
1 The rest of the decree relates specifically to John XXIII, wfco
had fled from Constance. The council claims that John enjoyed full
liberty at Constance, and orders that he shall not induce the cardinals
and members of his curia to desert the council and follow him,
The Popes and the Councils
5*3
obstacles, or similar ones, shall exist throughout the whole
nation. In that case, the council may be summoned to some
appropriate neighboring place, within the bounds of another
nation. To this the prelates, and others, who are wont to be
summoned to a council, must betake themselves as if that
place had been designated from the first. Such change of
place, or shortening of the period, the supreme pontiff is
required legitimately and solemnly to publish and announce
one year before the expiration of the term fixed, that the
said persons may be able to come together, for the celebra-
tion of the council, within the term specified. . . -1
The council found itself unable to remedy the abuses
unaided, so it drew up the following list of evils which
the new pope was to be required to abolish, in coopera-
tion with the deputies chosen by the council. This list
indicates what were considered the worst defects of the
existing system.
The holy council of Constance decrees and ordains that
the supreme pontiff who shall next, by the grace of God.
assume office, shall, in conjunction with this holy councii.
or with the deputies of the several " nations," 3 reform the
Church, before the council dissolves, in head and members,
as well as the Roman curia, in accordance with justice and
the proper organization of the Church, in all the respects
enumerated below, and which are submitted by the " nations "
as requiring reform :
The number, character, and nationality of the lords car-
dinals.
The reservations [of benefices] made by the apostolic
see.
1 The succeeding paragraphs relate to various means for avoiding
fnture schism, and provide an oath to be taken by the pope on his
election.
2 The council had organized itself, like the universities of the times,
according to nations, which served the purpose of committees.
216. List of
toe Cnrmfril
of Coostsnce
just before
its dose
(October,
1417).
514 Readings in European History
The annates, both the scrvitia communia and the seruitia
minuta?-
The collation to benefices and expectative favors.2
What cases are to be brought before the Roman curia and
what not.
Appeals to the Roman curia.
The functions of the [papal] chancery and penitentiary.
Exemptions and incorporations made during the schism.
Benefices in commendam.
Confirmation of elections.
Income during vacancies.
The non-alienation of the possessions of the Roman church
or other churches.
For what reasons and in what manner a pope shall be
corrected or deposed.
The extirpation of heresy.
Dispensations.
The means of support of pope and cardinals.
Indulgences.
Tenths.
When the above-mentioned deputies shall have been
appointed by the " nations/' it shall be free to the others,
with the permission of the pope, to return home.
BIBLIOGRAPHY
££ Jfc/fer- The Papacy in the Fourteenth and Fifteenth Centuries : ADAMS,
Civilisation, Chapter XVI, pp. 392-415; LODGE, pp. 196-201 ; WALKER,
Reformation, Chapter I.
Wydiffe: GREEN,^0r//&r/0rx, pp, 235-244. Documents in Trans-
lations and Reprint^ Vol. II, No. 5. For treatment of the Lollards, see
LEE, pp. 209-223.
Council of Constance : LODGE, pp. 206-22 1 .
1 The annates, or payment to the pope of a half, more or less, of the
first year's revenue from benefices to which he appointed, was divided
in such a way that the pope and cardinals received the so-called servitia
communia, while the balance, the so-called servitia minuta, fell to the
lower officials of the papal chancery.
2 Benefices promised by the pope while the incumbent still lived.
The Popes and the Councils
5*5
CREIGHTON, History of the Papacy from the Schism to the Sack of
6 vols. The first volume of this great work is far the best
account in English of the Great Schism, and of the Council of Constance,
with a good review of Wycliffe's doctrines.
PASTOR, History of the Popes, Vol. I. Gives a brief but excellent
review of the effects of the Great Schism and of the results of the
council from the standpoint of a learned Catholic.
POOJLE, Illustrations of Mediaeval Thought. Has good chapters on
Marsiglio of Padua and Wycliff e.
VAN DYKE, The Age of Renascence. A sketch of the papacy
(1377-1527).
Cambridge Modern History, Vol. I, Chapter XVIII.
LEA, History of the Inquisition , Vol. II, C hapter VII. Deals with the
trial of Huss.
B. Addi-
tional read-
ing in
English.
Histoire de France^ Vol. Ill, Part II, for Philip the Fair and Boniface.
V ALOIS, La France et le grand Schisme d'* Occident, 4 vols., Paris,
1896-1902. Not confined narrowly to France and constituting the
most important treatment of the subject, with references to the sources,
GAYET, Le grand Schisme d* Occident, 2 vols., Paris, 1898. Not so
good as the preceding, but gives some important sources.
THEQDERICUS DE NYEM, De Scismate libri tres, edited by ERLE&,
Leipzig, 1890. Written by one who was associated with the Roman
pope Urban VI, and the only source readily obtainable in a modern
edition. It closes with 1410.
SCHWAB, Johannes Gerson, 1858. The best life of Gerson, one of the
most interesting men of the time.
For the Council of Constance the chief collection of sources, pam-
phlets of the time, proceedings and decrees of the council, is VON DER
HARDT, Magnum aecumenifum. Constantiensis Concilium* six large vol-
umes, 1700.
FlNKE, Acta Concilii Canstantiensis, VoL I, 1896. The first volume
of a new critical collection of the sources ; it contains documents relat-
ing to the antecedents of the assembly.
HUBI-ER, Die JConstanxer Reformation, 1867. An excellent little
guide to the material-
HAULER, Papstthuvn und J&rchenreforme, vier ICapitel xvr Geschickte
des ausgehcnden Mittelalters, Vol. I, Berlin, 1903.
LOSERTH, GeschvhU des spateren Mittelalters, 1903. Gives a brief but
critical account of the events, and remarkable bibliographies for the
schism and the councils: see especially pp. 400 sqg. and 462 sqq.
C.MaU-
rialsfor
advanced
study.
CHAPTER XXII
217. Machia-
velli's
advice to
despots.
(From The
Prfnoe.)
Unreliable
character of
the<ro»-
doftiere
and their
mercenary
troops.
THE ITALIAN CITIES AND THE RENAISSANCE
I. THE ITALIAN DESPOTS
No one better understood the Italian despot and the
peculiarities of his position than did Machiavelli. The
following passages are from The Prince, his little hand-
book for despots.
That prince who founds the duration of his government
upon his mercenary forces will never be firm or secure;
for they are divided, ambitious, undisciplined, unfaithful;
insolent to their friends, abject to their enemies, without
fear of God or faith to men ; so the ruin of that person who
trusts to them is no longer protracted than the attempt is
deferred. In time of peace they plunder you, in time of war
they desert you ; and the reason is because it is not love nor
any principle of honor that keeps them in the field, but only
their pay, and that is not a consideration strong enough to
prevail with them to die for you. Whilst you have no ser-
vice to employ them in, they are excellent soldiers ; but tell
them of an engagement and they will either disband before,
or run away during the battle. . . .
The great officers of these mercenaries [i.e. the condottiere\
are either men of great courage, or otherwise ; if the first, you
can never be safe, for they always aspire to make themselves
great, either by supplanting you who are their master, or by
oppressing other people whom you desire to have protected.
On the other hand, if the commanders be not courageous,
you are still ruined. If it should be urged that all generals
will do the same, whether mercenaries or others, I would
answer, that all war is managed either by a prince or a
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 517
republic. The prince ought to go in person, and perform
the office of general himself; the republic should depute
some one of her choice citizens, who may be changed if he
carries himself ill; if he behaves himself well he may be
continued, but so straitened and circumscribed by his com-
mission that he may not transgress. . . .
Of the danger of mercenary forces we have an ancient
example in the Carthaginians, who, after the end of their first
war with the Romans, had like to have been ruined and over-
run by their own mercenaries, though their own citizens com-
manded them. [In modern times] upon the death of Duke
Filippo,1 the Milanese employed Francesco Sforza against Example of
the Venetians, and Francesco, having worsted the enemy at Sforza mak-
^ ...... ,- . „ , . , . ine himself
Caravaggio, joined himself with them, with design to have ma^erof
mastered his masters. Francesco's father was formerly in Milan,
the service of Joan, queen of Naples, and on a sudden
marched away from her with his army and left her utterly
destitute, so that she was constrained to throw herself under
the protection of the king of Aragon.
Though both the Venetians and Florentines have lately
enlarged their dominion by employing these forces, and their
generals have rather advanced than enslaved them, I answer
that the Florentines may impute it to their good fortune, be-
cause, of such of their generals as they might rationally have
feared, some had no victories to encourage them, others were
obstructed, and others turned their ambition another way.
It now remains for us to see in what manner a prince On soch
ought to comport himself with his subjects and friends ; and ^*j^**
because many have written of this subject before, it may pfiSKXS
perhaps seem arrogant in me to do so, especially considering worthy <rf
that in my discourse I shall deviate from the opinion of other
men. But my intention being to write for the benefit and
advantage of him who understands, I thought it more con-
venient to respect the essential verity than the imagination
of the thing (and many have framed imaginary common-
wealths and governments to themselves which never were
1 The last of the Visconti.
5 1 8 Readings in European History
seen nor had any real existence), since the present manner
of living is so different from the way that ought to be taken,
that he who neglects what is done to follow what ought to be
done will sooner learn how to ruin than how to preserve him-
self ; for a tender man, and one that desires to be honest in
everything, must needs run a great ha2ard among so many
of a contrary principle. Wherefore it is necessary for a
prince who wishes to subsist, to harden himself, and learn to
be good or otherwise according to the exigence of his affairs.
Laying aside, therefore, all imaginary notions of a prince,
and discoursing of nothing but what is actually true, I say
that all men when they are spoken of, and especially princes,
who are in a higher and more eminent station, are remarkable
for some quality or other that makes them either honorable
or contemptible. Hence it is that some are counted liberal,
others miserable; . . . some munificent, others rapacious;
some cruel, others merciful ; some faithless, others precise ;
one poor-spirited and effeminate, another fierce and ambi-
tious ; one courteous, another haughty ; one modest, another
impure; one sincere, another -cunning; one rugged and
morose, another accessible and easy; one grave, another
giddy; one devout, another an atheist.
No man, I am sure, will deny but that it would be an
admirable thing and highly to be commended to have a
prince endowed with all the good qualities aforesaid ; but
because it is impossible to have, much less to exercise, them
all by reason of the frailty and grossness of our nature, it is
convenient that he be so well instructed as to know how to
avoid the scandal of those vices which may deprive him
of his state, and be very cautious of the rest, though their
consequence be not so pernicious, so that where they are
unavoidable he need trouble himself the less.
He is not to concern himself if he incur the infamy of
those vices without which his dominion cannot be preserved ;
for if we consider things impartially, we shall find some things
are virtuous in appearance, and yet, if pursued, would bring
certain destruction, while others are seemingly bad, which, if
followed by a prince, procure his peace and security.
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 5 19
To come now to the other qualities proposed, I say that Whether it
every prince should desire to be esteemed merciful rather
than cruel, but with great caution that his mercy be not
abused. Caesar Borgia was counted cruel, yet that cruelty feared,
reduced Romagna, united it, settled it in peace, and rendered
it faithful ; so that if well considered he will appear much
more merciful than the Florentines, who, rather than be
thought cruel, suffered Pistoja to be destroyed. A prince,
therefore, is not to regard the scandal of being cruel, if
thereby he keeps his subjects in their allegiance and united,
seeing that by some few examples of justice you may be more
merciful than they who, by an universal exercise of pity, per-
mit several disorders to follow, which occasion rapine and
murder; and the reason is, because that exorbitant mercy
has an ill effect upon the whole body of the people, whereas
particular executions extend only to particular persons.
But among all princes a new prince has the hardest task
to avoid the scandal of being cruel, by reason of the newness
of his government, and the dangers which attend it. ...
Nevertheless, he is not to be too credulous of reports, too
hasty in his motions, nor create fears and jealousies of him-
self, but so to temper his administration with prudence
and humanity that neither too much confidence may make
him careless, nor too much diffidence intolerable.
And from hence arises a new question, Whether It be
better to be beloved than feared, or feared than beloved ?
It is answered, both would be convenient, but because that
is hard to attain, it is better and more secure, if one must
be wanting, to be feared rather than beloved ; for, in general,
men are ungrateful, inconstant, hypocritical, fearful of danger,
and covetous of gain. Whilst they receive any benefit by
you, and the danger is at a distance, they are absolutely
yours ; their blood, their estates, their lives, and their children,
as I said before, are all at your service. But when mischief
is at hand, and you have present need of their help, they
make no scruple to revolt ; and that prince who leaves him-
self naked of other preparations, and relies wholly upon
their professions, is sure to be ruined ; for amity contracted
520
Readings in European History
by price, and not by the greatness and generosity of the
mind, may seem a good pennyworth, yet when you have
occasion to make use of it, you will find it of no account.
Moreover, men do with less remorse offend against those
who desire to be beloved than against those who are ambi-
tious of being feared, and the reason is because love is fas-
tened only by a ligament of obligation, which the ill-nature
of mankind breaks upon every occasion that is presented
to his profit; but fear depends upon an apprehension of
punishment, which is never to be dispelled.
Yet a prince is to inspire fear in such sort that, if he gains
not his subjects' love, he may eschew their hatred; for to
be feared and not hated are compatible enough, and he may
be always in that condition if he offers no violence to their
estates, nor attempts anything upon the honor of their wives,
and also, when he has occasion to take away any man's life,
if he takes his time when the cause is manifest, and he has
good matter for his justification. But above all things he is
to have a care of intrenching upon their estates, for men do
sooner forget the death of their father than the loss of their
patrimony ; besides, occasions of confiscation never fail, and
he that once gives way to that humor of rapine shall never
want temptation to ruin his neighbor. But, on the contrary,
provocations to bloodshed are more rare, and do sooner
evaporate ; but when a prince is at the head of his army,
and has a multitude of soldiers to govern, then it is abso-
lutely necessary not to value the epithet of cruel, for without
that no army can be kept in unity, nor in the disposition for
any great act.
218. Dante
and the
great writ-
ers of Greece
and Rome.
(From the
Divine
C&nedy.)
II. HUMANISM
Dante was not a humanist in the later sense of the
term, but he clearly appreciated the distinction and
worth of the ancient writers. The following passage
from the Divine Comedy is his poetic conception of the
fate of the famous pagans who lived worthily. He is
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 521
passing through limbo, the uppermost region of hell,
with Virgil for his guide. As they proceed he sees
a fire that conquered a hemisphere of darkness.1
We were still a little distant from it, yet not so far that
I could not partially discern that honorable folk possessed
that place. "O thou that honorest both science and art,
these, who are they, that have such honor that from the
condition of the others it sets them apart?" And he to me,
" The honorable fame of them which resounds above in thy
life wins grace in heaven that so advances them/' At this
a voice was heard by me, " Honor the loftiest Poet ! his
shade returns that was departed/7 When the voice had
ceased and was quiet, I saw four great shades coming to
us : they had a semblance neither sad nor glad. The good
Master [Virgil] began to say, " Look at him with that sword
in hand who cometh before the three, even as lord. He is
Homer, the sovereign poet ; the next who comes is Horace,
the satirist ; Ovid is the third, and the last is Lucan. Since
each shares with me the name that the solitary voice sounded,
they do me honor, and in that do well/'
Thus I saw assembled the fair school of that Lord of the
loftiest song which above the others as an eagle flies. After
they had discoursed somewhat together, they turned to me
with sign of salutation ; and my Master smiled thereat.
And far more of honor yet they did me, for they made me
of their band, so that I was the sixth amid so much wit
Thus we went on as far as the light, speaking things con-
cerning which silence is becoming, even as was speech there
where I was.
We came to the foot of a noble castle, seven times circled
by high walls, defended roundabout by a fair streamlet.
This we passed as if hard ground; through seven gates I
entered with these sages ; we came to a meadow of fresh
verdure. People were there with eyes slow and grave, of
great authority in their looks ; they spake seldom and with
1 I follow Professor Norton's prose version here.
522 Readings in European History
soft voices. Thus we drew apart, on one side, into a place
open, luminous, and high, so that they all could be seen.
There opposite upon the green enamel were shown to me
the great spirits, whom to have seen I inwardly exalt
myself.
I saw Electra with many companions, among whom I
knew Hector and ^Eneas, Caesar in armor, with his ger-
falcon eyes; I saw Camilla and Penthesilea on the other
side, and I saw the King Latinus, who was seated with
Lavinia, his daughter. I saw that Brutus who drove out
Tarquin ; Lucretia, Julia, Marcia, and Cornelia; and alone,
apart, I saw the Saladin. When I raised my brow a little
more, I saw the Master of those who know, seated amid
the philosophic family; all regard him, all do him honor.
Here I saw both Socrates and Plato, who before the others
stand nearest to him; Democritus, who ascribes the world
to chance;- Diogenes, Anaxagoras, and Thales, Empedocles,
Heraclitus, and Zeno; and I saw the good collector of the
qualities, Dioscorides, I mean ; and I saw Orpheus, Tully,
and Linus, and moral Seneca, Euclid the geometer, and
Ptolemy, Hippocrates, Avicenna, Galen, and Averroes,
who made the great comment. I cannot report of all in
full, because the long theme so drives me that many times
speech comes short of fact
2!& Dante's Dante, however, was a sturdy defender of Italian against
those who despised their mother tongue and gave pref-
erence to other languages. In explaining why he
employed Italian in writing his Banquet (Convito) he
bursts forth :
To the perpetual shame and abasement of the evil men of
Italy who commend the mother tongue of other nations
and depreciate their own, I say that their action proceeds
from five abominable causes : the first is blindness of dis-
cretion ; the second, mischievous self-justification ; the third,
greed of vainglory ; the fourth, an invention of envy ; the
fifth and last, littleness of soul, that is, cowardice. And
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 523
each one of these grave faults has a great following, for few
are those who are free from them. . . .
There are many who would rather be thought masters
than be such; and to avoid the opposite — that is, to be
held not to be such — they always cast blame on the material
they work on, or upon the instrument ; as the clumsy smith
blames the iron given to him, and the bad harpist blames the
harp, thinking to cast the blame of the bad blade and of
the bad music upon the iron and upon the harp, and to lift
it from themselves. Thus there are some, — and not a few,
— who desire that men may hold them to be orators ; and to
excuse themselves for not speaking, or for speaking badly,
they accuse or throw blame on the material, that is, their own
mother tongue, and praise that of other lands, which they
are not required to employ. And he who wishes to see
wherefore this iron is to be blamed, let him look at the work
which good artificers make of it, and he will understand the
malice of those who, in casting blame upon it, think thereby
to excuse themselves. Against such as these Cicero ex-
claims in the beginning of his book, which he names Z><?
I?inibu$i because in his time they blamed the Roman Latin
and praised the Greek grammar. And thus I say, for like
reasons, that these men vilify the Italian tongue, and glorify
that of Provence. . . .
There are many who, by describing certain things in some
other language, and by praising that language, deem them-
selves to be more worthy of admiration than if they described
them in their own. And undoubtedly to learn well a foreign
tongue is deserving of some praise for intellect; but it is
a blamable thing to applaud that language beyond truth, to
glorify oneself for such an acquisition. . . . Wherefore many,
on account of this baseness of soul, depreciate their native
tongue, and applaud that of others ; and such as these are
the abominable wicked men of Italy who hold this precious
mother tongue in vile contempt, which if it be vile in any
case is so only inasmuch as it sounds in the evil mouth of
these adulterers, under whose guidance go those blind men
of whom I spoke in the first argument.
524
Readings in European History
220. Dante's
sad life.
(From the
Corwito.)
221. Pe-
trarch's de-
scription of
himself.
(From his
Letter to Pos-
terity.)
Dante excuses himself for a certain obscurity which
he has introduced into his Banquet, with the hope of
giving it some dignity in the eyes of the many Italians
who had seen him during his wanderings, and perhaps
had formed a low estimate of him.
Alas ! would that it might have pleased the Dispenser of
the Universe that the cause of my excuse might never have
been, that others might neither have sinned against me, nor
I have suffered punishment unjustly; the punishment, I
say, of exile and poverty ! Since it was the pleasure of the
citizens of the most beautiful and the most famous daughter
of Rome, Florence, to cast me out from her most sweet
bosom (wherein I was born and nourished even to the
height of my life, and in which, with her good will, I desire
with all my heart to repose my weary soul, and to end the
time which is given to me), I have gone through almost all
the land in which this language lives — a pilgrim, almost
a mendicant — showing forth against my will the wound
of Fortune, with which the ruined man is often unjustly
reproached.
Truly I have been a ship without a sail and without a
rudder, borne to divers ports and lands and shores by the
dry wind which blows from grievous poverty ; and I have
appeared vile In the eyes of many, who perhaps through some
report may have imaged me in other form. In the sight of
whom not only my person became vile, but my work was held
to be of less value, both that already done and that which
remained still to do,
Petrarch well knew how to describe himself and his
aspirations. He writes thus to posterity:
Greeting. — It is possible that some word of me may
have come to you, though even this is doubtful, since an
insignificant and obscure name will scarcely penetrate far
in either time or space. If, however, you should have
heard of me, you may desire to know what manner of man
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 525
I was, or what was the outcome of my labors, especially
those of which some description or, at any rate, the bare
titles may have reached you.
To begin with myself, then : the utterances of men con-
cerning me will differ widely, since in passing judgment
almost every one is influenced not so much by truth as by
preference, and good and evil report alike know no bounds.
I was, in truth, a poor mortal like yourself, neither very
exalted in my origin, nor, on the other hand, of the most
humble birth, but belonging, as Augustus Csesar says of
himself, to an ancient family. As to my disposition, I was
not naturally perverse or wanting in modesty, however the
contagion of evil associations may have corrupted me.
My youth was gone before I realized it ; I was carried
away by the strength of manhood ; but a riper age brought
me to my senses and taught me by experience the truth I
had. long before read in books, that youth and pleasure are
vanity, — nay, that the Author of all ages and times permits
us miserable mortals, puffed up with emptiness, thus to
wander about, until finally, coming to a tardy consciousness
of our sins, we shall learn to know ourselves.
In my prime I was blessed with a quick and active body,
although not exceptionally strong ; and while I do not lay
claim to remarkable personal beauty, I was comely enough
in my best days. I was possessed of a clear complexion,
between light and dark, lively eyes, and for long years a
keen vision, which however deserted me, contrary to my
hopes, after I reached my sixtieth birthday, and forced me,
to my great annoyance, to resort to glasses. Although I
had previously enjoyed perfect health, old age brought witn
it the usual array of discomforts.
My parents were honorable folk, Florentine in their origin,
of medium fortune, or, I may as well admit it, in a condition
verging upon poverty. They had been expelled from their
native city, and consequently I was born in exile, at Arezzo,
in the year 1304 of this latter age, which begins with Christ's
birth, July the 2oth, on a Monday, at dawn. . . . In my
familiar associations with kings and princes, and in my
526 Readings in European History
friendship with noble personages, my good fortune has been
such as to excite envy. But it is the cruel fate of those who
are growing old that they can commonly only weep for
friends who have passed away. The greatest kings of this
age have loved and courted me. They may know why; I
certainly do not. With some of them I was on such terms
that they seemed in a certain sense my guests rather than
I theirs ; their lofty position in no way embarrassing me,
but, on the contrary, bringing with it many advantages. I
fled, however, from many of those to whom I was greatly
attached ; and such was my innate longing for liberty, that
I studiously avoided those whose very name seemed incom-
patible with the freedom that I loved.
I possessed a well-balanced rather than a keen intellect, —
one prone to all kinds of good and wholesome study, but
especially inclined to moral philosophy and the art of poetry.
The latter, indeed, I neglected as time went on, and took
delight in sacred literature. Finding in that a hidden sweet-
ness which I had once esteemed but lightly, I came to regard
the works of the poets as only amenities.
Among the many subjects which interested me, I dwelt
especially upon antiquity, for our own age has always repelled
me, so that, had it not been for the love of those dear to me,
I should have preferred to have been born in any other period
tfcan our own. In order to forget my own time, I have con-
stantly striven to place myself in spirit in other ages, and con-
sequently I delighted in history. The conflicting statements
troubled me, but when in doubt I accepted what appeared
most probable, or yielded to the authority of the writer.
222. PC- In one of the most sprightly of his letters, Petrarch
reputation confesses that he is afflicted with a mania for writing,
a disease which, perhaps through his example, has spread
(From a let- so widely that every one is writing verses and talking
of the muses.
It is after all but a poor consolation to have companions
in misery. I should prefer to be ill by myself. Now I am
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 527
involved in other's ill fortune as well as in my own, and am
hardly given time to take breath. For every day letters
and poems from every corner of our land come showering
down upon my devoted head. Nor does this satisfy my
foreign friends. I am overwhelmed by floods of missives,
no longer from France alone, but from Greece, from Ger-
many, from England. I am unable to judge even my own
work, and yet I am called upon to be the universal critic of
others.
Were I to answer the requests in detail, I should be the
busiest of mortals. If I condemn the composition, I am
a jealous carper at the good work of others; if I say a
good word for the thing, it is attributed to a mendacious
desire to be agreeable; if I keep silence altogether, it is
because I am a rude, pert fellow. They are afraid, I infer,
that my disease will not make way with me promptly enough.
Between their goading and my own madness I shall doubtless
gratify their wishes.
But all this would be nothing if, incredible as it may
seem, this subtle poison had not just now begun to show
its effects in the Roman curia itself [at Avignon]. What do
you think the lawyers and doctors are up to? Justinian and
^Esculapius have palled upon them. The sick and the liti-
gious cry in vain for their help, for they are deafened by the
thunder of Homer's and Virgil's names, and wander oblivi-
ous in the woody valleys of Cirrha, by the purling waters of
the Aonian fountain. But it is hardly necessary to speak of
these lesser prodigies. Even carpenters, fullers, and plow-
men leave the implements of their calling to talk of Apollo
and the Muses. I cannot say how far the plague, which
lately was confined to a few, has now spread.
Petrarch's enthusiasm for the classical authors, espe- 223.P&-
cially Cicero, whom he admired most ardently, is shown C
in the following letter.
Your copy of Cicero has been in my possession four years *** letters->
There is a good reason, though, for so long a delay ;
528 Readings in European History
namely, the great scarcity of copyists who understand such
work. It is a state of affairs that has resulted in an incred-
ible loss to scholarship. Books that by their nature are a
little hard to understand are no longer multiplied, and have
ceased to be generally intelligible, and so have sunk into
utter neglect, and in the end have perished. This age of
ours consequently has let fall, bit by bit, some of the richest
and sweetest fruits that the tree of knowledge has yielded ;
has thrown away the results of the vigils and labors of the
most illustrious men of genius, — things of more value, I am
almost tempted to say, than anything else in the whole
world. . . .
But I must return to your Cicero. I could not do without
it, and the incompetence of the copyists would not let me
possess it. What was left for me but to rely upon my own
resources, and press these weary fingers and this worn and
ragged pen into the service ? The plan that I followed was
this. I want you to know it, in case you should ever have
to grapple with a similar task. Not a single word did I
read except as I wrote. But how is that, I hear some one
say ; did you write without knowing what it was that you
were writing ? Ah ! but from the very first it was enough
for me to know that it was a work of Tullius, and an
extremely rare one too. And then as soon as I was fairly
started, I found at every step so much sweetness and charm,
and felt so strong a desire to advance, that the only diffi-
culty which I experienced in reading and writing at the
same time came from the fact that my pen could not cover
the ground so rapidly as I wanted it to, whereas my expec-
tation had been rather that it would outstrip my eyes, and
that my ardor for writing would be chilled by the slowness
of my reading.
So the pen held back the eye, and the eye drove on the
pen, and I covered page after page, delighting in my task,
and committing many and many a passage to memory as I
wrote. For just in proportion as the writing is slower than
the reading does the passage make a deep impression and
cling to the mind.
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 529
Vespasiano, a Florentine bookseller who died in 1498, 224. Found-
gives us some very interesting accounts of his distin-
guished patrons in his Lives of Illustrious Men. Library by
JTkholasV.
Owing to the jubilee of 1450 a great quantity of money
came in by this means to the apostolic see, and with this
the pope commenced building in many places, and sent for
Gre.ek and Latin books, wherever he was able to find them,
without regard to price. He gathered together a large band
of writers, the best that he could find, and kept them in con-
stant employment. He also summoned a number of learned
men, both for the purpose of composing new works and of
translating such existing works as were not already translated,
giving them most abundant provision for their needs mean-
while ; and when the works were translated and brought to
him, he gave them large sums of money, in order that they
should do more willingly that which they undertook to do.
He made great provision for the needs of learned men.
He gathered together great numbers of books upon every
subject, both Greek and Latin, to the number of five thou-
sand volumes. So at his death it was found by inventory
that never since the time of Ptolemy had half that number
of books of every kind been brought together. All books
he caused to be copied, without regard to what it cost
him, and there were few places where his Holiness had not
copiers at work. When he could not procure a book for
himself in any way, he had it copied.
After he had assembled at Rome, as I said above, many
learned men at large salaries, he -wrote to Florence taMesser
Giannozzo Manetti, that he should come to Rome to trans-
late and compose for him. And when Manetti left Florence
and came to Rome, the pope, as was his custom, received him
with honor, and assigned to him, in addition to hb income
as secretary, six hundred ducats, urging him to attempt the
translation of the books of the Bible and of Aristotle, and to
complete the book already commenced by him, Contra Judaos
etgcntes; a wonderful work, if it had been completed, but he
carried it only to the tenth book. Moreover he translated
530
Readings in European History
iafbero*
Lorenzo de'
Medici,
founded
a library.
(Prom
Vespasiano,}
the New Testament, and the Psalter, . . . with five apologet-
ical books in defense of this Psalter, showing that in the
Holy Scriptures there is not one syllable that does not
contain the greatest of mysteries.
It was Pope Nicholas' intention to found a library in
St. Peter's, for the general use of the whole Roman curia,
which would have been an admirable thing indeed, if he had
been able to carry it out, but death prevented his bringing
it to completion. He illumined the Holy Scriptures through
innumerable books, which he caused to be translated ; and
in the same way with the works of the pagans, including cer-
tain works upon grammar, of use in learning Latin, — the
Orthography of Messer Giovanni Tortelle, who was of his
Holiness' household and worked upon the library, a worthy
book and useful to grammarians; the Iliad of Homer;
Strabo's De situ orbis he caused to be translated by Guerrino,
and gave him five hundred florins for each part, — that is
to say, Asia, Africa, and Europe ; that was in all fifteen hun-
dred florins. Herodotus and Thucydides he had translated
by Lorenzo Valla, and rewarded him liberally for his trouble ;
Zenophon and Diodorus, by Messer Poggio ; Polybius, by
Nicolo Perotto, whom, when he handed it to him, he gave
five hundred brand-new papal ducats in a purse, and said to
him that it was not what he deserved, but that in time he
would take care to satisfy him.
When Cosimo had finished the monastery [near Florence]
and a good part of the church, he fell to thinking how he
should have the place peopled with honest men of letters ;
and in this way it occurred to him to found a fine library;
and one day when I happened to be present in his chamber,
he said to me, " In what way would you furnish this library? "
I replied that as for buying the books it would be impossible,
for they were not to be had. Then he said, " How is it
possible then to furnish it? " I 'told him that it would be
necessary to have the books copied. He asked in reply if I
would be willing to undertake the task- I answered him,
that I was willing. He told me to commence my work and
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 531
he would leave everything to me; and as for the money
that would be necessary, he would refer the matter to Con
Archangel, then prior of the monastery, who would draw
bills upon the bank, which should be paid.
The library was commenced at once, for it was his pleasure
that it should be done with the utmost possible celerity ; and
as I did not lack for money, I collected in a short time forty-
five writers, and finished two hundred volumes in twenty-two
months ; in which work we made use of an excellent list,
that of the library of Pope Nicholas, which he had given
to Cosimo; in the form of a catalogue made out with his
own hands . . . and all the other works necessary to a
library, of which no one was wanting. And since there were
not copies of all these works in Florence, we sent to Milan,
to Bologna, and to other places, wherever they might be
found. Cosimo lived to see the library wholly completed,
and the cataloguing and the arranging of the books; in all
of which he took great pleasure, and the work went forward,
as was his custom, with great promptness.
III. THE ARTISTS OF THE RENAISSANCE
One of the most instructive and diverting of the
sources for the Renaissance period is The Life of Ben-
-uenuto Cellini written by Himself — in Florence, as he *»*te* h
tells us, in the fifty-eighth year of his age (1558).
Cellini was the most famous goldsmith of his time, or
perhaps of any time ; but he worked also in every kind
of metal and produced, among other things, one famous
piece of sculpture in bronze, — the Perseus and Medusa,
which still adorns the piazza in Florence, for which it
was made, at the order of Duke Cosimo de Medici.
Cellini was employed by, and came into close personal
relations with, most of the princes of his time in Italy,
and also in France, where he lived for some time under
532 Readings in European History
the patronage of Francis I. He came of a good Floren-
tine family, and exhibits in a marked degree most of the
characteristic virtues and vices of the age. There is,
indeed, hardly a phase of the many-sided life of the
Renaissance period which is not illustrated in his auto-
biography.
Vasan'schar- Vasari closes his Life of Cellini as follows : "Though
ofcemni.011 * mignt nere enlarge on the productions of Benvenuto,
who has always showed himself a man of great spirit
and vivacity, bold, active, enterprising, and formidable
to his enemies, — a man, in short, who knew as well how
to speak to princes as to exert himself in his art, — I
shall add nothing further, since he has written an account
of his life and works, and a treatise on goldsmiths*
work, as well as on casting statues and many other sub-
jects, with more art and eloquence than it is possible
for me to imitate."
226. Cellini [Cellini had been engaged to reset some jewels for Pope
and the art- clement VII.] Since that was not, however, a work in which
{^^^jjlf I could gain great reputation, the pope was resolved, he said,
(Ceadensed,) to employ me in an undertaking of the last importance, in
which I should have opportunity of displaying my abilities.
"The work I have in mind," he added, "is the button for the
pontifical cope, which is made round and in the form of a
trencher and as big as a small trencher ; in this I would have
Q^ {fte Father represented in half relievo, and in the midst
°£ ft * would have the edge of the large diamond set, with
many other jewels of the greatest value. Go then and draw a
fine design of it" Thereupon he caused all his jewels to be
shown me, and I left him, highly pleased with my success.
[Several of Cellini's rivals, hearing of this undertaking,
had a number of other designs made, which were submitted
to the pope at the same time as his.] It so fell out that all
(hose who had drawn those designs had laid the fine large
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 533
and beautiful diamond in the middle of the breast of God
the Father. The pope, who was a person of great genius,
having noticed this blunder, would proceed no farther in
examining their performances. After he had examined
about ten, he threw the rest upon the ground and desired
me to give him my model, that he might see whether I had
committed the same mistake. Thereupon I came forward
and opened a little round box, when instantly there seemed
to flash from it a luster which dazzled the pope himself, and
he cried out with a loud voice, " Benvenuto, had you been
my very self, you could not have designed this with greater
propriety." Then calling to Trojano, his gentleman of the
bedchamber, he ordered him to fetch five hundred ducats.
Whilst they were bringing the money, he examined more
minutely the ingenious artifice by which I had placed that
fine diamond and God the Father in a proper position. I
had laid the diamond exactly in the middle of the work,
and over it I represented God the Father sitting in a sort of
free, easy attitude, which suited admirably well with the rest
of the piece, and did not in the least crowd the diamond;
his right hand was lifted up, giving his blessing. Under the
diamond I had drawn 'three little boys, who supported it
with their arms raised aloft. Round it was a number of
figures of boys placed amongst other glittering jewels. The
remainder of God the Father was covered with a cloak which
wantoned in the wind, from whence issued several figures of
boys, with other striking ornaments, most beautiful to behold.
[While Cellini was engaged on this work aud other orders
for the pope, his brother was killed in a street brawl between
some soldiers and young gallants, such as occurred almost
daily on any provocation, or none.] Meanwhile I exerted
my utmost efforts to finish the work in gold which I was
employed in by Pope Clement ; still thinking day and night
of the musketeer that shot my brother. Perceiving that
my solicitude and anxious desire of revenge deprived me
both of sleep and appetite, which threw me into a lingering
disorder, and not caring to have recourse to any treacherous
Ceilings f uH
appreciation
of his
own skill
534 Readings in European History
or dishonorable means, one evening I prepared to put an
end to my disquietude.-
Just after sunset, as this musketeer stood at his door
with his sword in his hand, when he had done supper, I
with great address came close up to him with a long dagger
and gave him a violent back-handed stroke which I had
aimed at his neck; that instant he turned about, and the
blow falling directly upon his left shoulder, broke the whole
bone of it ; upon which he dropped his sword, quite over-
come by the pain, and took to his heels. I pursued and in
four steps came up with him, when, raising the dagger over
his head which he lowered down, I hit exactly upon his
collar bone and the middle of the neck; the weapon pene-
trated so deep into both that though I made a great effort
to recover it again, I found it impossible; for at this same
instant there issued out of a neighboring house four soldiers,
with their swords drawn, so that I was obliged to draw mine
also in my own defense.
[He takes refuge with his protector, Duke Alexander of
Medici, in whose palace he stays under cover for eight days.
At the end of that time the pope sends for trim, the messenger
saying that the pope] knew all that had happened, that his
Holiness was very much my friend, and desired me to go
on with my business without giving myself any uneasiness.
When I came into the presence of the pontiff, he frowned
on me very much, and with angry looks seemed to reprimand
me ; but, upon viewing my performance, his countenance
grew serene and he praised me highly, telling me that I had
done a great deal in a short time ; then looking attentively
at me, he said, " Now that you have recovered your health,
Benvemito, take care of yourself." I understood his mean-
ing, and told him that I should not neglect his advice.
Giorgio Vasari (1512-1574), a painter of some ability
himself and an enthusiastic admirer of the great artists
of Italy, among whom he considered his friend and con-
temporary, Michael Angelo, the greatest, wrote a long
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 535
series of charming biographies of painters, sculptors, and
architects, which forms the chief source for the lives of
the Italian artists from Giotto to Titian.
The richest gifts are occasionally seen to be showered, as
by celestial influence, upon certain human beings; nay, they
sometimes supernaturally and marvelously congregate in a
single person, — beauty, grace, and talent being united in
such a manner that to whatever the man thus favored may
turn himself, his every action is so divine as to leave all
other men far behind him. This would seem manifestly to
prove that he has been specially endowed by the hand of
God himself, and has not obtained his preeminence through
human teaching or the powers of man.
This was perceived and acknowledged by all men in the
case of Leonardo da Vinci, in whom (to say nothing of his
beauty of person, which yet was such that it has never been
sufficiently extolled) there was a grace beyond expression,
which was manifest without thought or effort in every act
and deed, and who had besides so rare a gift of talent and
ability that to whatever subject he turned his attention, no
matter how difficult, he presently made himself absolute
master; of it.
In him extraordinary power was combined with remark-
able facility, a mind of regal boldness and magnanimous
daring. His gifts were such that the celebrity of his name
was spread abroad, and he was held in the highest estima-
tion not only in his own time but also, and even to a greater
degree, after his death, — nay, he has continued, and will
continue, to be held in the highest esteem by all succeeding
generations.
Truly remarkable, indeed, and divinely endowed was
Leonardo da Vinci. He was the son of Ser Piero da VincL
He would without doubt have made great progress in learn-
ing and knowledge of the sciences had he not been so ver-
satile and changeful. The instability of his character led
him to undertake many things which having commenced
he afterwards abandoned. In arithmetic, for example, he
227. Rfr-
marfeabte
versatility
ofLeooaitio
da Vinci.
(Prom
Vasari's
Painters.)
536 Readings in European History
made such rapid progress in the short time that he gave his
attention to it, that he often confounded the master who was
teaching him by the perpetual doubts that he started and by
the difficult questions that he proposed.
He also commenced the study of music, and resolved to
acquire the art of playing the lute, when, being by nature
of an exalted imagination and full of the most graceful
vivacity, he sang to the instrument most divinely, improvis-
ing at once both the verse and the music.
[Verocchio, an esteemed artist of the period, upon see-
ing some of the drawings which Leonardo had made, gladly
agreed to take him into his shop,] Thither the boy resorted
with the utmost readiness, and not only gave his attention
to one branch of art but to all those of which design makes
a portion. Endowed with such admirable intelligence and
being also an excellent geometrician, Leonardo not only
worked in sculpture but in architecture; likewise he pre-
pared various designs for ground plans and the construction
of entire buildings. He too it was who, while only a youth,
first suggested the formation of a canal from Pisa to Flor-
ence by means of certain changes to be effected in the river
Arno. Leonardo likewise made designs for mills, fulling
machines, and other engines which were run by water. But
as he had resolved to make painting his profession, he gave
the greater part of his time to drawing from nature.
82S. Kindly Vasari writes thus of Raphael's premature death and
of his kindly disposition toward his fellow-artists.
When this noble artist died, well might Painting have
departed also, for when he closed his eyes she too was
/rfens. j^ ^ .t were^ bijncj. m _ TO him of a truth it is that we
owe the possession of invention, coloring, and execution,
brought alike and together to that perfection for which few
could have dared to hope ; nor has any man ever aspired to
surpass him.
And in addition to the benefits which this great master
conferred on art, being as he was its best friend, we have
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 537
the further obligation to him of having taught us by his life
in what manner we should comport ourselves toward great
men, as well as toward those of lesser degree, and even
toward the lowest ; nay, there was among his many extraor-
dinary gifts one of such value and importance that I can
never sufficiently admire it and always think thereof with
astonishment.
This was the power accorded to him by heaven, of bring-
ing all who approached his presence into harmony, an effect
inconceivably surprising in our calling, and contrary to the
nature of our artists. Yet all, I do not say of the inferior
grades only, but even those who lay claim to be great per-
sonages (and of this humor our art produces immense num-
bers) became as of one mind, once they began to labor in
the society of Raphael, continuing in such unity and con-
cord that all harsh feelings and evil dispositions became
subdued and disappeared at the sight of him ; every vile and
base thought departing from the mind before his influence.
Such harmony prevailed at no other time than his own.
And this happened because all were surpassed by him in
friendly courtesy as well as in art ; all confessed the influ-
ence of his sweet and gracious nature, which was so replete
with excellence and so perfect in all the charities, that not
only was he honored by men but even by the very animals,
who would constantly follow his steps and always loved
him.
Several of Michael Angelo's greatest works were un-
dertaken at the order of Pope Julius II (d 1512), who
had the highest appreciation of his genius. But the
independence of the artist and the irascible temper
of the pontiff occasioned numerous quarrels between
them, which invariably resulted in fresh favors from the
pope. After one of these reconciliations, which took
place in Bologna, Julius had ordered a bronze statue of
himself to be placed over one of the city gates.
538
Readings in European History
Relations
of Michael
Angelo
with Pope
Julius II.
The Benti-
vogli destroy
the statue of
the pope.
The pope's
impatience
to see the
frescoes in
fteSistme
Cfeapelcom-
The statue was finished in the clay model before Pope
Julius left Bologna for Rome, and his Holiness went to see
it, but, the right hand being raised in an attitude of much
dignity, and the pontiff not knowing what was to be placed
in the left, inquired whether he were anathematizing the peo-
ple or giving them his benediction ; Michael Angelo replied
that he was admonishing the Bolognese to behave them-
selves discreetly, and asked his Holiness to decide whether
it were not well to put a book in the left hand. " Put a
sword into it," replied Pope Julius, " for of letters I know
but little." The pontiff left a thousand crowns in the bank
of Messer Antonmaria da Lignano for the purpose of com-
pleting the figure, and after Michael Angelo had labored at
it for sixteen months it was placed over the door of San
Petronio.
The work was eventually destroyed by the Bentivogli,1
and the bronze was sold to the Duke Alfonzo of Ferrara,
who made a piece of artillery, called the Julia, of the frag-
ments ; the head only was preserved, and this is now in the
Duke's Guardaroba.
[The pope was very anxious to see the decoration of the
Sistine Chapel completed, and constantly inquired when it
would be finished.] On one occasion, therefore, Michael
Angelo replied, " It will be finished when I shall have done
all that I believe is required to satisfy Art." "And we com-
mand," rejoined the pontiff, "that you satisfy our wish to
have it done quickly," adding that if it were not at once
completed, he would have Michael Angelo thrown headlong
from the scaffolding. Hearing this, our artist, who feared
the fury of the pope, and with good cause, without taking
time to add what was wanting, took down the remainder
of the scaffolding, to the great satisfaction of the whole city,
on All Saints' day, when Pope Julius went into that chapel
to sing mass. But Michael Angelo had much desired to
1 The chief family of Bologna, wjio practically ruled the town,
although it was nominally a republic and lay within the papal domin-
innc
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 539
retouch some portions of the work a secco^ as had been done
by the older masters who had painted the stories on the
walls. He would also have gladly added a little ultramarine
to the draperies and gilded other parts, to the end that the
whole might have a richer and more striking effect
The pope, too, hearing that these things were still want-
ing, and finding that all who beheld the chapel praised it
highly, would now fain have had the additions made ; but
as Michael Angelo thought reconstructing the scaffold too
long an affair, the pictures remained as they were, although
the pope, who often saw Michael Angelo, would sometimes
say, "Let the chapel be enriched with bright colors and
gold ; it looks poor." When Michael Angelo would reply
familiarly, "Holy Father, the men of those days did not
adorn themselves with gold ; those who are painted here
less than any, for they were none too rich ; besides which
they were holy men, and must have despised riches and
ornaments."
[In 1546, San Gallo, who was in charge of the building Michael
operations at St. Peter's in Rome, having died, Pope Paul III
asked Michael Angelo to undertake the office.] The mas-
ter at first replied that he would not, architecture not being cany oo tbe
his vocation ; but when entreaties were found useless, the
pope commanded him to accept the trust, and to his infinite
regret he was compelled to obey. He did not approve of
San Gallo's plan. He would often publicly declare that
San Gallo had left the building without lights, and had
heaped too many ranges of columns one above the other
on the outside ; adding that, with its innumerable projec-
tions, pinnacles, and divisions of members, it was more like
a work of the Teutons than of the good antique manner,
or of the cheerful and beautiful modern style.* He further-
more affirmed that fifty years of time, with more than three
1 That is, after the damp plaster upon which the paint had been
originally laid alfresco had dried.
2 That 1% that it resembled the Gothic rather than the Classical or
Renaissance style.
540
Readings in European History
Prolonged
building of
5t. Peter's
i source of
:orruption.
hundred thousand crowns in the cost, might very well be
spared, while the work might be completed with increased
majesty, grandeur, and lightness, to say nothing of better
design, greater beauty, and superior convenience.
He made a model also, to prove the truth of his words,
and this was of the form wherein we now see the work to
have been carried on ; it cost twenty-five crowns and was
finished in a fortnight, that of San Gallo having exceeded
four thousand and having occupied several years in making.
From this and other circumstances, it was indeed easy to
see that the church had become an object of traffic and
a means of gain rather than a building to be completed,
being considered by those who undertook the work as a
kind of bargain to be turned to the best account.
Such a state of things could not fail to displease so upright
a man as Michael Angelo, and as the pope had made him
superintendent against his will, he determined4 to be rid of
them all. He therefore one day told them openly that he
knew well that they had done and were doing all they could
by means of their friends to prevent him from entering on
this office, but that if he were to undertake the charge he
would not suffer one of them to remain about the building.
Michael Angelo worked for his amusement almost every
day Ut a group of four figures, but he broke up the block at
last, either because it was found to have numerous veins, was
excessively hard, and often caused the chisel to strike fire,
or because the judgment of the artist was so severe that he
could never content himself with anything that he ever did.
Tfeere is proof of this in the fact that few of his works
undertaken in his manhood were ever entirely completed,
those entirely finished being the productions of his youth.
. . . Michael Angelo himself would often remark that if
he were really permitted to satisfy himself in the works to
be produced, he should give little or nothing to public view.
And the reason for this is obvious. He had advanced to
such an extent of knowledge in. art that the very slightest
error could not exist in any figure without £*s ia
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 541
discovery thereof; but having found such after the work
had been given to view, he would never attempt to correct
it, and would commence some other production, believing
that a like failure would not happen again. This then was,
as he often "declared, the reason why the number of pictures
and statues finished by his hand was so small. . . .
His powers of imagination were such that he was fre-
quently compelled to abandon his purpose because he could
not express by the hand those grand and sublime ideas
which he had conceived in his mind, — nay, he has spoiled
and destroyed many works for this cause. I know, for
example, that a short time before his death he burned a large
number of his designs, sketches, and cartoons, that none
might see the labors he had gone through and the trials to
which he had subjected his spirit in his resolve not to fall
short of perfection. I have myself secured some drawings
by his hand which were found in Florence and which are
now in my book of designs; and these, although they give
evidence of his great genius, yet prove also that the ham-
mer of Vulcan was necessary to bring Minerva from the
head of Jupiter.
Vignero, another friend of Michael Angelo's, thus
describes the impetuous way in which he worked, even
in his later years.
I may add that I have seen Michael Angelo, although 230.
then sixty years old and not in robust health, strike more
chips from the hardest marble in a quarter of an hour than
would be carried off by three young stonecutters ia three
or four times as long, — a thing incredible to him who has
not seen it He would approach the marble with such
impetuosity, not to say fury, that I have often thought the
whole work must be dashed to pieces. At one blow he
would strike off pieces of three or four inches ; yet with such
exactitude was each stroke given that a mere atom more
would sometimes have spoiled tjie- whole work.
542 Readings iu European History
BIBLIOGRAPHY
A. Refer- General Review of the Period : ADAMS, Civilization, Chapter XV ;
ences. LODGE, Close of the Middle Ages, Chapter XXIL
Political History: LODGE, Chapter VIII, "Italy in the Fourteenth
Century"; Chapter XII, "Milan and Venice in the Fifteenth Cen-
tury " ; Chapter XIV, " Florence under the Medici."
Florence : Cambridge Modern History, Vol. I, Chapter V, " Savona-
rola," and Chapter VI, " Machiavelli."
Venice: Cambridge Modern History ', Vol. I, Chapter VIII.
The Papacy: Cambridge Modern History, Vol. I, Chapter VII.
Humanism: Cambridge Modern History, Vol. I, Chapter XVI.
Extracts from the Writers of the Time: WHITCOMB, Literary
Source-Book of the Italian Renaissance.
B. Addi- SYMONDS, J. A., Renaissance in Italy, 7 vols. This is by far the most
ttonal extensive treatment in English of the culture of the Renaissance. It is
°ften brilUant but diffuse- Vo1- r» "The A£e of the Despots," is the
best introduction to the general political and social situation ; Vol. II
is on "The Revival of Learning" ; Vol. Ill, " The Fine Arts " ; Vols.
IV and V, "Italian Literature"; Vols. VI and VII, "The Catholic
Reaction," relate to the sixteenth century.
BURCKHARDT, The Civilization of the Italian Renaissance. All serious
students of the period should be acquainted with this remarkable volume,
where the various phases of the Renaissance are treated in a more pro-
found and scholarly spirit than in " The Age of the Despots."
AR^STRWO, Lorenzo dej Medici and Florence in the Fifteenth Century
(Heroes of the Nations).
BROWN, HORATIO, Venice: An Historical Sketch of the Republic.
By one well versed in the subject.
MK& OLIPHANT, Makers of Florence. Popular essays on Dante,
Giotto, and Savdnarola. Also Makers of Venice by the same writer.
Of the writers of the time, there are available in English the
following :
DANTE, Divine Comedy* translated into English prose by Professor
C. E, Norton; and his Banquet, a very interesting but uncompleted
treatise on a variety of matters, written in Itafian for those who did not
know Latin. It is well translated by Miss Katharine Hillard. Pro-
fessor Norton has also translated Dante's charming account of his early
experiences, — The New Life,
The Italian Cities and the Renaissance 543
Dante's treatise on government — De Monarchic, — is translated in
CHURCH, Dante, pp. 175-308, and portions, in the Old South Leaflets,
General Series, No. 123. His work on the mother tongue — De Fulgari
Eloquio — is translated with notes by Howell, 189/3.
Of the vast literature relating to Dante, the historical student will
find especially useful : MOORE, EDW., Studies in £>ante, first series, on
his knowledge of books, and WITTE, KARL, Assays on JDanU-
Petrarch^ the First Modern. Scholar and Afan of Letters, a selection
from his letters to Boccaccio and his other friends, translated, with an
introduction, by ROBINSON and ROLFE. This book was prepared with
a view to giving the historical student an idea of Petrarch and his great
rdle in the history of culture.
VILLANI, GIOVANNI, Florentine Chronicle, coming down to 1348 and
relating especially to Dante's and Petrarch's time. It was continued by
Giovanni's brother Matteo to 1363. Portions of the earlier part are
translated, — Selections from the first nine books of the Croniche Floren-
tine, edited by WICKSTEED, and coming down to Dante's death, 1321.
BALDASSARE CASTIGLIONE, The Book of the Courtier* completed in
1516 by a gentleman at the court of Urbino. This proved a very popular
book and was translated into English in 1561. It deals in a charming
way with those qualities which a true gentleman should possess. In
" Tudor Translations ** ($7.50) and in a new translation by Opdycke
(Scribner's, 1903; $10.00), both unfortunately expensive.
MACHIAVELLI, The Prince. This famous little work which casts so
much light on the political spirit of the time has been several times
translated into English. There is a good edition by N. H. Hill (Claren-
don Press), another together with Machiavelli's History of Florence in
the Bohn library. The latter becomes detailed with the beginnings of
the power of the Medici about 1434 and closes about 1525.
VASARI, Lives of Seventy of the Most Eminent Painters, Sculptors,
and Architects (see above, pp. 534 J??.). Translated, complete, by
Mrs. Foster in the Bohn Library, 5 vols. Also in the Temple Classics, a
new edition of selected lives by Blasbfield and Hopkins, with useful
notes.
For Rome and the popes, see CRBIGHTQN, History of the Papacy;
PASTOR, History of the Popes; and GRBGOROVius, History of the City of
Kome, Vol. VII.
For the art: "College Histories of Art," edited by JOHN C. VAN
DYKE, including VAN I>YKE, The History of Painting; HAMLIN, The
History of Architecture ; MARQUAND and FROTHINGKAM, TTte History
of Sculpture, — useful rnarmala- Larger works : FURGUSSQN, History of
544 Readings in European History
Modern Architecture; FLETCHER, A History of Architecture; LfjBKE,
History of Sculpture ; WOLTMANN and WOERMANN, History of Painting.
DE VINNE, The Invention of Printing^ by a well-known expert in
that art; BLADES, Pentateuch of Printing, — very good; and PUTNAM,
Books and their Makers, Vol. I (referred to above, p. 462),
C. Materials SCHAFF, PHILIP, The Renaissance. This little book is scarcely more
for advanced than a syllabus of the subject, but it contains very complete and useful
^"dy- bibliographies.
GEIGER, Humanismus ttn$ Renaissance in Italien und Deutschland
(Oncken Series). An excellent work, with good bibliographies.
VoiGT, Die Wiederbelebung des classischen Alterthums, 2 vols., 3d
ed. The best account of the humanists, -with good bibliography. A
very remarkable work.
^OLHAC, P&rarque et V Humanism^ 1892. A very interesting study
of the range of Petrarch's reading.
GASPARY, Geschichte der italienischen Literatury 2 vols., 1885. Excel-
lent and readable.
CAPPONI, Storia della repubblica di Firenze, 3 vols., 1888. Perhaps
the best detailed account; it maybe supplemented by the well-known
monographs of VILLARI, Life and Times of Niccolo Machiavelli^ 2 vols.,
2d ed., 1892, and Life and Times of Savonarola, 2 vols., 1888.
VESPASIANO DA BlSTICCr, Vite di uomini illustri del secolo XV,
Florence, 1849; new edition in 3 vols., Bologna, 1892 (see above,
pp. 529 <W-)-
GurcciARDINl, Storia dTItalia, 4 vols., Milan, 1884. Guicciardini
(d. 1540) ranks with Machiavelli as a political thinker and is his superior
as an historian. His history covers the period 1492-1530 and is by far
the best among several produced by Florentine writers of the period.
INDEX
This Index should be supplemented by the analytical Table of Contents at
the opening of this volume.
ABELARD, 446 sqq.
Acta, Sanctorum* 113-
Adamnus, Life of Columba^ 112.
Adrianople, battle of, 39.
Aids, feudal, 235 sq.
Aistnlf, king of the Lombards,
122 sqq.
Alaric, 41 sqq.
Alberic, ruler of Rome, 252.
Albertus Magnus, 370, 457.
Albigenses, 26, 381 sqq.
Alcuin, 128.
Alfred the Great, 222 sqq.
Allegory, 78 sq.
Allod, 176.
Atnmianus Marcellinus, 35 sqq.*
57-
Anglo-Sascon Chronicle ^ zzg sqq.,
244, 431.
Anglo-Saxon language, 431 sq.
Anna Comnena, 320 sq.
Annals, origin of, 147 sq.
Annals, Royal, 148.
Annals of Fulda* 155 sqq.^ 169.
Annals of L-iege , 299 J^^.
Annals of St. Bertin, 157 sqq~> 169.
Annals of St~ Vaast^ 163 sqq.y 169^.
Annals of Xanten^ 158 sqq^ 169.
Antapodosis of Liutprand, 255 sqg*
Ante-Jtficene Fathers^ 85.
Autioch, siege of, 321 sqq*
Apollinaris Sidonlus, 58 sygr-t
150^.
Aquinas, 370, 457 -W-
Aristotle, 355 sqq.
Arnold of Liibeck, 311*
Arrian, 15.
Artists of the Renaissance, 531 sqq.
Asser, 244.
Astronomy, mediaeval, 441 sq.
Atavulf, 43.
Attila, jfisgq* ; interview of, \vith
Leo the Great, 49 sqq.
Augustine, Czty of Gotl, 58.
Augustine of Canterbury, 97 sgq,
Averroes, 456.
Avignon, popes at, 502 sqq,
BABYLON, 327.
Bacon, Roger, 460 s?q.* 465-
Baptism, sacrament of r 349 sqg.
Barbarian invasions, sources for,
57 sqq .
Barbarians compared with the
Romans, 28 sqq.
Bartholomew Anglicus, 443 sq,
Bede, 61 , 97 sqq.+ 112, 44 1 , note ;
description of, of purgatory, hell,
and heaven, 93 sqg.
Benedict of St. Andrea, Chronicle
of, **£>sqq.
Benencium, ^T^sqq.
Benefit of clergy, 358 sqq.
Berengar II of Italy, 256^^.
Bernard of Gtd, 381 s#f .
Bernard, St., letter of, 329 $#f- ;
miracles of, 334 sq.
Bernheim, Z*eArbttck* 12.
Bestiaries, 442 s#.
Bishop of Rome, see Papacy.
Black Prince, 467 sqq.
Bollandists, 113.
Bonaventxira, 397.
Boniface, St., 105 sqq^ 108, 1 10 ;
commission of, 105 ; appoint-
ment of, as bishop, 105 ; oath
of, 106; crowns Pippin, 121,
Boniface VII, 346 sqq.
Boniface VIII, 488 sqq.
Books, copying of, 527 sq.
545
546
Readings in European History
Bouquet, 219.
Bruno, archbishop of Cologne,
259 sq.
Burghers, see Towns.
Burnt WjaZ, Story of,
C-/ESAR of Heisterbach, 355, 365^.,
37 o-
Canon law, 369,
Canons, definition of, 68.
Canossa, 282^.
Canterbury, 99.
Capitularies, extracts from, 1 35 sqq.,
148.
Cardinals, 375 sq.
Carmina Bur ana, 463.
Cartulaires, 193.
Cassiodorus, 56, 59.
Cathari, 384, note.
Catholic Church, early conception
of, iQsqq.
Cellini, 531 sqq.
Charlemagne, \z6sqq.
Charles of Lorraine, 194^.
Charles the Bald, 156 sqq.
Charles the Bold, 477 sqq.
Charles the Fat, 167 sq.
Chartularium universitatis Pari-
siensis, 465.
Childeric III, 120.
Christianity and paganism, 14 sqq.
Chronicles and Memorials of Great
Britain, 243.
Chrorticon, Urspergense, 311.
Church, ^gsqq.\ power of, 346^^.5
re venues of, 361 sqq. ; abuses in,
508 sqq.
Church and State, 21 sqq., 284 sqq.,
346 sqq., 492 sqq.
Church and the Roman emperors,
Church histories, 82, note.
Cities, German, 296^^.; Italian,
303 -W-* S^W-
Civil power, relations of, to the
papacy, 21 sqq., 284 sqq.
Clement of Rome, 63, note, 64.
Clement VII, antipope, 507.
Clergy, 24, 25, 358 sgg., 370 sqq.,
488 sqq., 492 sqq., 497 sqq.
Clericis JLaicos^ bull, 488 sqq.
Clermont, Council of, 312 sqq.
Clovis, 51 sqq, ; conversion of,
52 sqq.
Coal, 301.
Codex Carolinus, 149.
Co! lectio ft de tejctes pour servir &
retude de I'kistoire, 220.
Collection des documents inedits,
220.
Cologne, Annals of, 196 sqq.
Columba, St., 104.
Columban, St., life of, in.
Commendation, 175 -*y.
Commines, 477 sqq.> 487.
Condottiere, 516^.
Confession, sacrament of, 353,
356 sq., 499.
Confirmation, sacrament of, 350 sq.
Conrad I, 246.
Constance, Council of, 511 sqq.
Constantine, 22, note, 23.
Convito of Dante, 522 sqq., 542.
Copying of books, 527 sq.
Corpus Juris Canonici, 369.
Corpus scriptorum ecclesiasticorum
JLati-norum, 85.
Cosimo de" Medici, library of,
53° S2-
Council of Constance, 511 sq.
Councils, 488 sqq.
Crecy, battle of, 466 sqq.
Crusaders, 317 sqq., 331, 337 sqq.
Crusades, 214^^., 312^^.
Culture of the Middle Ages, 43 1 sqq.
Customs, 406 sqq.
Cyprian, 19 sqq.; on appeals to
the bishop of Rome, 66.
DAHLMANN- WAITZ, Quellenkunde,
10, note.
Dante, $2O$qq.
Decretals, papal, 68 and note,
265> 369-
Defensor JPacis, 491 sqq.
Denifle, 465, 473 sqq., 487.
Denzinger, Enchiridion, 370.
Despots, Italian, 516^^.
Devil and his wicked angels,
89 sqq.
JDialogues of Gregory the Great,
76 sq.
IHctatus of Gregory YII* 274 s^
Dietrich Vrie,
Index
547
Dill on the sack of Rome, 45 sq.
Divine C&?nedy, the, 520^^.
Dominic, St., 398.
Doomsday Book, 229^.
Du Cange, Glossari-um, 12, 192.
EASTER, controversy concerning,
in England, 103 sqq.
Eastern empire, 320^., 340 sqq.
Ebert, Geschichte der Literatur,
34-
Einhard, Annals, 122, 131 sqq.,
148; L,ife of Charlemagne, 120,
126 sqq., 148.
Ekkehard of Aurach, Chronicle of,
266 sqq., 316^^.
Electoral college, German, 307.
England in the Middle Ages,
222 sqq.
England, conversion of, 97 sq.
English language, development of,
43 r -W-
Epictetus, 15.
Eucharist, 351 sq., 355 sq.
Eudes Rigaud, 370, 377 sqq.
Eugenius III, 337 sq.
Extreme unction, 353.
Farmer If£lmbrecht9 418 sqq.
Fealty, oath of,
Feudalism, 171 sqq.
Fiefs, granting of,
Flodoard, 220.
Fodrum, 305.
Fontenay, battle of, 1 56 sq.
France, devastation of, during the
Hundred Years' War, 43 2. sqq.
France, development of, 194 sqq.
Francis of Assisi, St, 387 sqq. ;
sermon of, to the birds, 391 sq.\
will of, 392 sqq. ; lives of, 397.
Franks, 51 sqq.
Fredegarius* 61.
Frederick Barbarossa, 299 sq. ;
letter of, 302 sq. ; in Italy,
303 sqq.
Frederick II of Hohenstaufen,
laws of, against heresy, 384 sqq.
French language, development of,
^432'
Jtreyu&ns, decree, 512 sq.
Friars, 37 1 sqq.
Friedlander, Darstellungen aus
der SittengescJticJite, 33, note.
Froiasart, 466 sqq.^ 487, 504 sqq.
Fulbert of Chartres, 184 sq.
Fulcher of Chartres, 314, note.
fulda, A finals of, 155 sqq., 169.
Fulda, founding of, 107 sqq.
Fustel de Coulanges, 57.
GAILLARD, Castle, 211.
Galerius, edict of, 21 sq.
GelasiusT letter of, 72^.
Geoffrey of Clairvaux, 334 sq.
Gerbert (Sylvester II), 220, 375.
German invasions, 35 sqq.
German language, development
of, 437 sq.
Germany in the tenth and eleventh
centuries, 245 sqq~
Gcschicktschreibcr der devtschen,
V0rxcit, 263.
Gildas, 244.
Giry, Manuel de diplomatique^^ sg.
Godfrey of Bouillon, letter of, 325
sqq.
Goths, 35 sqq. ; conversion of, 39
sq. ; in Italy, 42 sqq.
Granges Ckraniqztes de la Franc^
221.
Granson, battle of, 478 sqq.
Gratian, JDecretui* of, 369.
Great Charter, 231 sqq.
Gregory of Tonrs, 5 1 sqq. 60 sqq.
Gregory the Great, 73«r$^.; £>*&-
logttes of, 92 ; missionaries of, in
England, 97 sqq. • instructions of,
to Engjli&h tnissionarieSj 100 sqr-
Gregory VII, 2661^.; letter
to Henry IV, 276 sqq. ; letter o^
to Hermann of Metz, 384 sq$ ,
Grobert GntndrisSi 464.
Gross, Charles, Soterfff 0f £ng&s£
History, n.
Guilds, 409 sqq .
Goizot, 220.
HA^SEATIC LRAGITB, 41 2 sqq.
Hardt, Von der, 515.
Harnacfc, 84, in.
Harold, 224 sqq.
Hastings, battle of, 224 sqq.
Hauck, 112.
548
Readings in European History
IJeaven, Bede's description of,
83 sqq. ; description of, in Koran,
1 1 8 sq.
Hefele, 84.
Hell, Bede's description of, 93 sqq.;
in Koran, 118 sq.
Henry I of England, 205.
Henry I of Germany, 246 sq.
Henry IV, 266 sqq. ; letter of, to
Gregory VII, 279 sqq. ; excom-
munication of, 28 r sq. ; penance
of, at Canossa, 282 sq.
Henry V of Germany, 296 sq.
Heresy, Cyprian on, 21 ; attitude
of Roman government toward,
26; 364^^., 371 sqq. ; laws
against, 384 sqq.
Heriot, 402 sq.
Hermann of Reichenau, 264.
Hildebrand, see Gregory VJI.
Hincmar of Rheims, 170.
Histoire littfraire dela France, 220.
Historical atlases, 13.
Historical knowledge in the Mid-
dle Ages, 444 sqq.
Hodgkin, 56.
Homage, 179 sqq.
Honorius, Emperor, 42 sq.
Hrosvita, 264.
Hugh Capet, 194 sqq.
Humanism, 520 sqq.
Hundred Years' War,
Himgarians, 245 sqq.9 251.
Huns, 31, 35 sqq., 46 sqq.
IMMUNITY, 171 sqq.
Indelible characters, 349-
Indulgences 339 sq.* 477-
Innocent I II, 338 sqq.
Inquisition, 397.
Investiture, 272 sqq. ; decrees for-
bidding lay, 275 sq. ; settlement
of question of, 290 sqq.
Irenseus, 63^.
Irish missionaries in England,
103 sqq.
Italian cities, 303 sqq.
Italian language, 522 sqq,
JACQUES DE VITRY, 345, 356 sq.,
JafTe?.
Jahrbucher der deutsehen Ge-
sckickte, 147, 261 ff.9 294, 310.
James, William, on monasticism,
88 sq.
Jerome, on barbarian invasions,
44 sq. ; on monastic life, 86 sq. ;
on the equality of the bishops, 66.
Jerusalem, capture of, 327 sqq.
Jews, 333, 339, 426 sqq.
John of England, 209 sqq., 231 sqq.
John of France, 470 sqq.
John XII, 253 sq.
Joinville, 212 sqq.
Jordanes, 59.
KENT, missionaries' arrival in,
97 sqq.
JZirchenlexikon, 84.
Koran, the, 114^.; extracts from,
124.
LAMBERT of Hersfeld, 264.
Langlois, Manuel
10, note.
Langlois and Seignobos, Introduc-
tion to the Study of History, 12.
Laws of the barbarians, 57.
Layettes du Trtsor des Chartres,
*93-
Lea, H. C., 370, 396.
Lecky, European Morals, 17.
Leonardo da Vinci, 535 sqq*
Leo the Great, 49 sqq., 69 sqq.
Leo III, 131 sq.
LibetU de lite, 295.
Liber pontificates, 85.
JLiege, Annals of, z^gsqq.
Little Flowers of St. Francis, 396.
Liutprand, 255^^,, 264,
Lives of the Saints, 113.
Lollards, 500 sqq.
Lombard towns, 303 sqq.
Lombards besiege Rome,
Lothaire, 155^^.
Louis the Child, 246.
Louis the Fat, 198 sqq.
Louis the German,
Louis the Pious, 155 sqrq.
Lotus, St., 212 sqq*
Louis XI of France, 481 s
LtLchaire, Manuel of, 192.
Luke o£ Tuy, 365 sqq. ,
Index
549
McCABE, Augustine^ 56 ; Abelard,
453 S2-
Machiavelli, Prince of, ^iS sqq.
Magna Charta, 231 sqq.
Magnetic needle, 440.
Malmesbury, William ofr 224 sqq.
Manichaeans, 26 and note, 27-
Manor, 399 sqq.
Manor house, 404 sq.
Mansus* 135, note.
Mapes, Walter, 37 1 sqq,
Marcellinus, Ammianus, 35 sq., 57.
Marcus Aurelius, 17, 22.
Marozia, 251 sq.
Marsiglio of Padua, 491 sqq.
Mass, 351 sq., 355^.
Masses for the dead, 77, note.
Matrimony, sacrament of, 354.
Matthew of Paris, 244.
Matthew of Westminster, 24.
Mayors of the palace, 120.
Merovingian kings, 1 20 sg.
Michael Angelo, 537 sqq.
Migne, Patrologia, 84 sq.
Milan, 305 sq. ; edict of, 22, note.
Military service, 135^^., 185^^.
Milman on Gregory the Great,
,,73 *9\
Minnesingers, 437 sq.
Mirrftr of Perfection, 396 sq.
Mzsst, 139 sqq.
Mithras, 18.
Model Parliament, 238 sqq.
Mohammed, 114^^.; Lane-Poole
on, 115 sq.
Molinier, Les sources de Fhistoire
de France, n.
Monasteries, support of the,
360 sqq.
Monasticism, 86 sqq.
Monk of St Gall, 149, 151 sq.
Monks, 373 sq^ 377.
Montalembert, in.
Moisumenta Germattiat Ifistericf^
8 sq,9 262 sq.
Moralia of, Gregory the Great,
77 *?4-
science, mediaeval,
438 sqq.
Necfeam, 439^-
Neighborhood war, 187 sqq., 314.
Nicaea, Council of, 66 sq.
Nicene creed, 23.
Nicholas of Clemanges, 508 sqq,
Nicholas V, library of, 529 sq.
Nithard, 169.
Norman Conquest, 224 sqq.
Normandy conquered by Philip
, Augustus, 211.
Normans, 228 sq.
Norse sagas^ 152 sqq,
Northmen, 150.1^.
Northumbria, conversion of,
IOI sqq*
Nuns, 379.
OCTAVTAN (John XII), 253^-
Octavo edition of the M&nujnfnta^
263.
Odo, count of Paris, 166 sqq.
Ordericus Vitalis, 221.
Ordination, sacrament of, 353 s#.
Orosras, 58.
Ortlieb, 363 sqq.
Otto of Freising, 302 sqq.* 311-
Otto the Great, 248 sqq., 253 sq.
Otto II, privilege of, granted to
towns, 412.
Otto IV of Germany, 307 sqq.
PAGAN gods regarded as demons,
90 sqq.
Paganism and Christianity, 14 sqq.
Papacy, 62 sqq., 66 sq^ 250*??.,
284^., 372, 488 sqq., 492 sqq.
Paris, siege of, by Northmen,
163 sqq.
Parliament, EngSsb, 238 sq$,
Paschal II, 272 $$$-* 290 *$$.
Pasfor&l CJkarge <rf Gregory the
Great, So s#f.f 222 sf$ .
Panlus Diaconos, 61.
Peasants, 399 j^y., 418 sy$.
Penance, sacrameiit of, 352 sf.
Peter at Rome^ 6ar sqq«> 495 ja^.
Peter Lombard, 370.
Peter the Hermit, 333.
Petrarch, 502 sqg~> 524 sgq.
Philip Augustus, 206 sqq*
Philip of Germany, 307 sgq,
Philip the Fair, 488 sqq.
Pkilobiblon* 358.
Piers Plvwman* Visitm of, 475 sqq.
550
Readings in European History
Pilgrims, 335 sq.
Pilichdorfer, 383 sqq.
Pippin, i2Ojy#.
Popes, see Papacy.
jPost-Wicene Fat hers, 85.
Potthast, Wegweiser of, 10 ; Rcgesta
pontificnm, 311-
JPrecaria, 17 4s?*
Priscus Panites, visit to Attila,
30 sqq.i 46 sqq.
Privileges of crusaders, 337 sqq.
Procopius, 60.
Prosper, 49.
Provencal, 434 sqq.
Pseudo-Jsidorian decretals, 265.
Purgatory, Bede's description of,
083 sqq.
Pythagoreans, 18.
RAOUL G LASER, 196 sqq., 220.
Raphael, 536 sq.
Rashdall, 458, 462.
JRealencyklopadie fur protestan-
•tesche Theologie, 84.
Recueil des historiens des croisades,
345-
Recueil des historiens des Gaules,
219.
Regino, continuation of, 245 fgff.
Regino of Priim, 169.
Reiner, 300^^. *
Renaissance, 531 sqg.> 566 sq.
Revelation of G olios ^ 371 sqq.
Richard of BuryT 358 sqq.
Richer, 194 J^., 220.
Richter, AnnaZea, 262.
iRigord, 206 sqq.) 221, 445 sq.
Robert, king of France, 196 sqq.
Robert of Sorbonne, 216 sy.
Robert the Monk, 312 sqq.^ 345.
Roger Bacon, 460 sqq*
Roger of Hoveden, 244.
Roger of Wendover, 231 sqq.
Rolls S-eries, 243.
Roman Church, see Papacy.
Roman Empire, break-up of,
Roman government and the
Church, 21 sqq.
Romans compared with the bar-
barians, 28 sqq.
Rome, sack of, by Alaric, 43 sqq.
Rome, siege of, by the Lombards
122 sqq.
Rouen, surrender of, 212.
Ruotger, 259^.
Rutilius Namatianus, 46.
SABATIER, 396^.
Sacraments, 348 sqq.y 383 sqq.
Sacrosancta^ decree, 511 sq.
Sagas > 152 sqq,
St. Albans, historians of, 244.
St. Bertin, Annals of-, 157 sq.
169.
St. Denis, historians of, 221.
St. Vaastj Annals <?f9 163 sqq..
169.
Saints, Lives of, 59.
Salvian, 28 sqq^ 58.
Sardika, Council of, 67.
Saxons, 129^., 150 sqq.
Schism, Great, origin of, 506 sqq.
Scholasticism, 455 sqq.
Schools established by Charle-
magne, 144 sqq.
Science, mediaeval, 460 jy^,
Seneca, 14.
Serfs, 399 sqq^ 405 sq.
Severinus, 59.
Sforza, 517.
Sidonius Apollinaris, §8jy.
Siricius, decretal of, 68.
Socie~t<§ de 1'histoire de France,
publications of, 220.
Soissons, vase of, 51 sq.
Sources, historical, I sqq.
Spurriers, articles of, 409 sqq,
Stephen of Blois, 321 sqq.
Stephen of Bourbon, 355 sq., 370.
Stephen III, Pope, letter of, to
Pippin, 122.
Stoics, 1 6.
Strasburg oath, 432 sq.
Stubbs, on .feudalism, 187.
Students, privileges granted to,
452 Jtf-
Sturmi, 107 sqq.
Suger, 198 sqq., 221, 272 sqq.
Swiss, 478 &gq*
Sylvester ll, 375 and note.
Gtrma#($&t 28* note.
, 64 s$* ,
Index
55*
Theodoricus de Nyem, 515.
Theodosian Code, 23 sqq.
Theodosius the Great, 41.
Thietmar, 264.
Thomas of Celano, 387 sqq.^^g&sq.
Thor, oak of, 106.
Three Companions, The, 396 sq.
Towns, German, 296 sqq. ; medise-
val, 406 sqq.
Traill, 242.
Trajan, 22.
Transubstantiation, 352, 355 sq.r
499 S2-
Trojans, Franks descended from,
445 Jy-
Troubadours, 434 sqq.
Truce of God, 187 sqq.
, 336.
Sanctam? bull,
Universities, 446 sqq.t 448, 453 sq.
Urban II, address of, at Clennont,
Url
:, s°«-
Valens, 38 sg., 40.
Valentinian II, edict of, 72.
Vasari, 532, 534^^-
Vassalage, 1795-^^., 184^.
Vatican archives, 311.
Vatican Library, 529 sq.
Verden, massacre of, 137.
Vespasiano, 529 sqq*
Villari, 56.
Virgin, the holy, 357 sg.
" of Piers JPZ&iuf&av** 475 sq$-
Si 380 sq.
Walsingham, 487.
Walther von der Vogelweide, 375
•»</-. 437 J^-
Wattenbach, JDeuischlatids Oe-
sckichtsqnellen^ 1 1.
>?Vatterich, 265.
Welf receives duchy of Bavaria,
269.
\Vernher the Gardener,
\Vest Goths in Italy, 41 sg.
\Vhite-tawyers, rules of, 411 sqq~
\Vidukind, rebellion of, i 2Q-
\Vidukind of Corvei, chronicler,
248 sqq^ 264.
"Wilfrid, 104.
William of Malmesbury, 224 sqq.+
244.
William of Tyre, 345.
William the Conqueror, 224 sqq.,
229 sqq.
Willibald, Life of Bon if ace ^ 106 sg.
Wolfram von Eschenbach, 415 sgg.
W^orms, Concordat of, 292 sg.
Wycliffe, 497 sqq.
, Annals of, 69, 158 sqq,
Yea and ffay, Abelard's, 449 sqq.
Year iooor legend of, 3.
ZACHARIUS, Pop>e, decrees that
Pippin be crowned king, 120.
Zoology, mediaeval, 442.
Zosimus, 42, note.
Zwifalt, monastery of, 363 sg.